Addted table of content and links
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 141.txt
1 MANSFIELD PARK
2
3 (1814)
4
5
6 By Jane Austen
7
8
9
10
11 CHAPTER I
12
13 About thirty years ago Miss Maria Ward, of Huntingdon, with only seven
14 thousand pounds, had the good luck to captivate Sir Thomas Bertram, of
15 Mansfield Park, in the county of Northampton, and to be thereby raised
16 to the rank of a baronet's lady, with all the comforts and consequences
17 of an handsome house and large income. All Huntingdon exclaimed on the
18 greatness of the match, and her uncle, the lawyer, himself, allowed her
19 to be at least three thousand pounds short of any equitable claim to it.
20 She had two sisters to be benefited by her elevation; and such of their
21 acquaintance as thought Miss Ward and Miss Frances quite as handsome as
22 Miss Maria, did not scruple to predict their marrying with almost equal
23 advantage. But there certainly are not so many men of large fortune in
24 the world as there are pretty women to deserve them. Miss Ward, at the
25 end of half a dozen years, found herself obliged to be attached to
26 the Rev. Mr. Norris, a friend of her brother-in-law, with scarcely any
27 private fortune, and Miss Frances fared yet worse. Miss Ward's match,
28 indeed, when it came to the point, was not contemptible: Sir Thomas
29 being happily able to give his friend an income in the living of
30 Mansfield; and Mr. and Mrs. Norris began their career of conjugal
31 felicity with very little less than a thousand a year. But Miss Frances
32 married, in the common phrase, to disoblige her family, and by fixing on
33 a lieutenant of marines, without education, fortune, or connexions, did
34 it very thoroughly. She could hardly have made a more untoward choice.
35 Sir Thomas Bertram had interest, which, from principle as well as
36 pride--from a general wish of doing right, and a desire of seeing all
37 that were connected with him in situations of respectability, he would
38 have been glad to exert for the advantage of Lady Bertram's sister; but
39 her husband's profession was such as no interest could reach; and before
40 he had time to devise any other method of assisting them, an absolute
41 breach between the sisters had taken place. It was the natural result of
42 the conduct of each party, and such as a very imprudent marriage almost
43 always produces. To save herself from useless remonstrance, Mrs. Price
44 never wrote to her family on the subject till actually married. Lady
45 Bertram, who was a woman of very tranquil feelings, and a temper
46 remarkably easy and indolent, would have contented herself with merely
47 giving up her sister, and thinking no more of the matter; but Mrs.
48 Norris had a spirit of activity, which could not be satisfied till she
49 had written a long and angry letter to Fanny, to point out the folly of
50 her conduct, and threaten her with all its possible ill consequences.
51 Mrs. Price, in her turn, was injured and angry; and an answer, which
52 comprehended each sister in its bitterness, and bestowed such very
53 disrespectful reflections on the pride of Sir Thomas as Mrs. Norris
54 could not possibly keep to herself, put an end to all intercourse
55 between them for a considerable period.
56
57 Their homes were so distant, and the circles in which they moved so
58 distinct, as almost to preclude the means of ever hearing of each
59 other's existence during the eleven following years, or, at least, to
60 make it very wonderful to Sir Thomas that Mrs. Norris should ever have
61 it in her power to tell them, as she now and then did, in an angry
62 voice, that Fanny had got another child. By the end of eleven years,
63 however, Mrs. Price could no longer afford to cherish pride or
64 resentment, or to lose one connexion that might possibly assist her.
65 A large and still increasing family, an husband disabled for active
66 service, but not the less equal to company and good liquor, and a very
67 small income to supply their wants, made her eager to regain the friends
68 she had so carelessly sacrificed; and she addressed Lady Bertram in
69 a letter which spoke so much contrition and despondence, such a
70 superfluity of children, and such a want of almost everything else, as
71 could not but dispose them all to a reconciliation. She was preparing
72 for her ninth lying-in; and after bewailing the circumstance, and
73 imploring their countenance as sponsors to the expected child, she
74 could not conceal how important she felt they might be to the future
75 maintenance of the eight already in being. Her eldest was a boy of ten
76 years old, a fine spirited fellow, who longed to be out in the world;
77 but what could she do? Was there any chance of his being hereafter
78 useful to Sir Thomas in the concerns of his West Indian property?
79 No situation would be beneath him; or what did Sir Thomas think of
80 Woolwich? or how could a boy be sent out to the East?
81
82 The letter was not unproductive. It re-established peace and kindness.
83 Sir Thomas sent friendly advice and professions, Lady Bertram dispatched
84 money and baby-linen, and Mrs. Norris wrote the letters.
85
86 Such were its immediate effects, and within a twelvemonth a more
87 important advantage to Mrs. Price resulted from it. Mrs. Norris was
88 often observing to the others that she could not get her poor sister and
89 her family out of her head, and that, much as they had all done for her,
90 she seemed to be wanting to do more; and at length she could not but
91 own it to be her wish that poor Mrs. Price should be relieved from the
92 charge and expense of one child entirely out of her great number. "What
93 if they were among them to undertake the care of her eldest daughter,
94 a girl now nine years old, of an age to require more attention than her
95 poor mother could possibly give? The trouble and expense of it to them
96 would be nothing, compared with the benevolence of the action." Lady
97 Bertram agreed with her instantly. "I think we cannot do better," said
98 she; "let us send for the child."
99
100 Sir Thomas could not give so instantaneous and unqualified a consent. He
101 debated and hesitated;--it was a serious charge;--a girl so brought up
102 must be adequately provided for, or there would be cruelty instead
103 of kindness in taking her from her family. He thought of his own four
104 children, of his two sons, of cousins in love, etc.;--but no sooner
105 had he deliberately begun to state his objections, than Mrs. Norris
106 interrupted him with a reply to them all, whether stated or not.
107
108 "My dear Sir Thomas, I perfectly comprehend you, and do justice to the
109 generosity and delicacy of your notions, which indeed are quite of a
110 piece with your general conduct; and I entirely agree with you in
111 the main as to the propriety of doing everything one could by way of
112 providing for a child one had in a manner taken into one's own hands;
113 and I am sure I should be the last person in the world to withhold my
114 mite upon such an occasion. Having no children of my own, who should I
115 look to in any little matter I may ever have to bestow, but the children
116 of my sisters?--and I am sure Mr. Norris is too just--but you know I am
117 a woman of few words and professions. Do not let us be frightened from
118 a good deed by a trifle. Give a girl an education, and introduce
119 her properly into the world, and ten to one but she has the means of
120 settling well, without farther expense to anybody. A niece of ours, Sir
121 Thomas, I may say, or at least of _yours_, would not grow up in this
122 neighbourhood without many advantages. I don't say she would be so
123 handsome as her cousins. I dare say she would not; but she would be
124 introduced into the society of this country under such very favourable
125 circumstances as, in all human probability, would get her a creditable
126 establishment. You are thinking of your sons--but do not you know that,
127 of all things upon earth, _that_ is the least likely to happen, brought
128 up as they would be, always together like brothers and sisters? It is
129 morally impossible. I never knew an instance of it. It is, in fact, the
130 only sure way of providing against the connexion. Suppose her a pretty
131 girl, and seen by Tom or Edmund for the first time seven years hence,
132 and I dare say there would be mischief. The very idea of her having been
133 suffered to grow up at a distance from us all in poverty and neglect,
134 would be enough to make either of the dear, sweet-tempered boys in love
135 with her. But breed her up with them from this time, and suppose her
136 even to have the beauty of an angel, and she will never be more to
137 either than a sister."
138
139 "There is a great deal of truth in what you say," replied Sir Thomas,
140 "and far be it from me to throw any fanciful impediment in the way of a
141 plan which would be so consistent with the relative situations of each.
142 I only meant to observe that it ought not to be lightly engaged in,
143 and that to make it really serviceable to Mrs. Price, and creditable to
144 ourselves, we must secure to the child, or consider ourselves engaged to
145 secure to her hereafter, as circumstances may arise, the provision of
146 a gentlewoman, if no such establishment should offer as you are so
147 sanguine in expecting."
148
149 "I thoroughly understand you," cried Mrs. Norris, "you are everything
150 that is generous and considerate, and I am sure we shall never disagree
151 on this point. Whatever I can do, as you well know, I am always ready
152 enough to do for the good of those I love; and, though I could never
153 feel for this little girl the hundredth part of the regard I bear your
154 own dear children, nor consider her, in any respect, so much my own,
155 I should hate myself if I were capable of neglecting her. Is not she a
156 sister's child? and could I bear to see her want while I had a bit of
157 bread to give her? My dear Sir Thomas, with all my faults I have a warm
158 heart; and, poor as I am, would rather deny myself the necessaries of
159 life than do an ungenerous thing. So, if you are not against it, I will
160 write to my poor sister tomorrow, and make the proposal; and, as soon
161 as matters are settled, _I_ will engage to get the child to Mansfield;
162 _you_ shall have no trouble about it. My own trouble, you know, I never
163 regard. I will send Nanny to London on purpose, and she may have a bed
164 at her cousin the saddler's, and the child be appointed to meet her
165 there. They may easily get her from Portsmouth to town by the coach,
166 under the care of any creditable person that may chance to be going. I
167 dare say there is always some reputable tradesman's wife or other going
168 up."
169
170 Except to the attack on Nanny's cousin, Sir Thomas no longer made any
171 objection, and a more respectable, though less economical rendezvous
172 being accordingly substituted, everything was considered as settled,
173 and the pleasures of so benevolent a scheme were already enjoyed. The
174 division of gratifying sensations ought not, in strict justice, to
175 have been equal; for Sir Thomas was fully resolved to be the real and
176 consistent patron of the selected child, and Mrs. Norris had not the
177 least intention of being at any expense whatever in her maintenance.
178 As far as walking, talking, and contriving reached, she was thoroughly
179 benevolent, and nobody knew better how to dictate liberality to others;
180 but her love of money was equal to her love of directing, and she knew
181 quite as well how to save her own as to spend that of her friends.
182 Having married on a narrower income than she had been used to look
183 forward to, she had, from the first, fancied a very strict line of
184 economy necessary; and what was begun as a matter of prudence, soon grew
185 into a matter of choice, as an object of that needful solicitude which
186 there were no children to supply. Had there been a family to provide
187 for, Mrs. Norris might never have saved her money; but having no care
188 of that kind, there was nothing to impede her frugality, or lessen the
189 comfort of making a yearly addition to an income which they had never
190 lived up to. Under this infatuating principle, counteracted by no real
191 affection for her sister, it was impossible for her to aim at more than
192 the credit of projecting and arranging so expensive a charity; though
193 perhaps she might so little know herself as to walk home to the
194 Parsonage, after this conversation, in the happy belief of being the
195 most liberal-minded sister and aunt in the world.
196
197 When the subject was brought forward again, her views were more fully
198 explained; and, in reply to Lady Bertram's calm inquiry of "Where shall
199 the child come to first, sister, to you or to us?" Sir Thomas heard with
200 some surprise that it would be totally out of Mrs. Norris's power to
201 take any share in the personal charge of her. He had been considering
202 her as a particularly welcome addition at the Parsonage, as a desirable
203 companion to an aunt who had no children of her own; but he found
204 himself wholly mistaken. Mrs. Norris was sorry to say that the little
205 girl's staying with them, at least as things then were, was quite out of
206 the question. Poor Mr. Norris's indifferent state of health made it an
207 impossibility: he could no more bear the noise of a child than he could
208 fly; if, indeed, he should ever get well of his gouty complaints, it
209 would be a different matter: she should then be glad to take her turn,
210 and think nothing of the inconvenience; but just now, poor Mr. Norris
211 took up every moment of her time, and the very mention of such a thing
212 she was sure would distract him.
213
214 "Then she had better come to us," said Lady Bertram, with the utmost
215 composure. After a short pause Sir Thomas added with dignity, "Yes, let
216 her home be in this house. We will endeavour to do our duty by her, and
217 she will, at least, have the advantage of companions of her own age, and
218 of a regular instructress."
219
220 "Very true," cried Mrs. Norris, "which are both very important
221 considerations; and it will be just the same to Miss Lee whether she has
222 three girls to teach, or only two--there can be no difference. I only
223 wish I could be more useful; but you see I do all in my power. I am not
224 one of those that spare their own trouble; and Nanny shall fetch her,
225 however it may put me to inconvenience to have my chief counsellor away
226 for three days. I suppose, sister, you will put the child in the little
227 white attic, near the old nurseries. It will be much the best place
228 for her, so near Miss Lee, and not far from the girls, and close by the
229 housemaids, who could either of them help to dress her, you know, and
230 take care of her clothes, for I suppose you would not think it fair to
231 expect Ellis to wait on her as well as the others. Indeed, I do not see
232 that you could possibly place her anywhere else."
233
234 Lady Bertram made no opposition.
235
236 "I hope she will prove a well-disposed girl," continued Mrs. Norris,
237 "and be sensible of her uncommon good fortune in having such friends."
238
239 "Should her disposition be really bad," said Sir Thomas, "we must not,
240 for our own children's sake, continue her in the family; but there is
241 no reason to expect so great an evil. We shall probably see much to wish
242 altered in her, and must prepare ourselves for gross ignorance, some
243 meanness of opinions, and very distressing vulgarity of manner; but
244 these are not incurable faults; nor, I trust, can they be dangerous for
245 her associates. Had my daughters been _younger_ than herself, I should
246 have considered the introduction of such a companion as a matter of very
247 serious moment; but, as it is, I hope there can be nothing to fear for
248 _them_, and everything to hope for _her_, from the association."
249
250 "That is exactly what I think," cried Mrs. Norris, "and what I was
251 saying to my husband this morning. It will be an education for the
252 child, said I, only being with her cousins; if Miss Lee taught her
253 nothing, she would learn to be good and clever from _them_."
254
255 "I hope she will not tease my poor pug," said Lady Bertram; "I have but
256 just got Julia to leave it alone."
257
258 "There will be some difficulty in our way, Mrs. Norris," observed Sir
259 Thomas, "as to the distinction proper to be made between the girls
260 as they grow up: how to preserve in the minds of my _daughters_ the
261 consciousness of what they are, without making them think too lowly of
262 their cousin; and how, without depressing her spirits too far, to make
263 her remember that she is not a _Miss Bertram_. I should wish to see them
264 very good friends, and would, on no account, authorise in my girls the
265 smallest degree of arrogance towards their relation; but still they
266 cannot be equals. Their rank, fortune, rights, and expectations will
267 always be different. It is a point of great delicacy, and you must
268 assist us in our endeavours to choose exactly the right line of
269 conduct."
270
271 Mrs. Norris was quite at his service; and though she perfectly agreed
272 with him as to its being a most difficult thing, encouraged him to hope
273 that between them it would be easily managed.
274
275 It will be readily believed that Mrs. Norris did not write to her sister
276 in vain. Mrs. Price seemed rather surprised that a girl should be
277 fixed on, when she had so many fine boys, but accepted the offer most
278 thankfully, assuring them of her daughter's being a very well-disposed,
279 good-humoured girl, and trusting they would never have cause to throw
280 her off. She spoke of her farther as somewhat delicate and puny, but was
281 sanguine in the hope of her being materially better for change of air.
282 Poor woman! she probably thought change of air might agree with many of
283 her children.
284
285
286
287 CHAPTER II
288
289 The little girl performed her long journey in safety; and at Northampton
290 was met by Mrs. Norris, who thus regaled in the credit of being foremost
291 to welcome her, and in the importance of leading her in to the others,
292 and recommending her to their kindness.
293
294 Fanny Price was at this time just ten years old, and though there might
295 not be much in her first appearance to captivate, there was, at least,
296 nothing to disgust her relations. She was small of her age, with no glow
297 of complexion, nor any other striking beauty; exceedingly timid and shy,
298 and shrinking from notice; but her air, though awkward, was not vulgar,
299 her voice was sweet, and when she spoke her countenance was pretty. Sir
300 Thomas and Lady Bertram received her very kindly; and Sir Thomas,
301 seeing how much she needed encouragement, tried to be all that was
302 conciliating: but he had to work against a most untoward gravity of
303 deportment; and Lady Bertram, without taking half so much trouble, or
304 speaking one word where he spoke ten, by the mere aid of a good-humoured
305 smile, became immediately the less awful character of the two.
306
307 The young people were all at home, and sustained their share in the
308 introduction very well, with much good humour, and no embarrassment, at
309 least on the part of the sons, who, at seventeen and sixteen, and tall
310 of their age, had all the grandeur of men in the eyes of their little
311 cousin. The two girls were more at a loss from being younger and in
312 greater awe of their father, who addressed them on the occasion with
313 rather an injudicious particularity. But they were too much used to
314 company and praise to have anything like natural shyness; and their
315 confidence increasing from their cousin's total want of it, they were
316 soon able to take a full survey of her face and her frock in easy
317 indifference.
318
319 They were a remarkably fine family, the sons very well-looking, the
320 daughters decidedly handsome, and all of them well-grown and forward of
321 their age, which produced as striking a difference between the cousins
322 in person, as education had given to their address; and no one would
323 have supposed the girls so nearly of an age as they really were. There
324 were in fact but two years between the youngest and Fanny. Julia
325 Bertram was only twelve, and Maria but a year older. The little visitor
326 meanwhile was as unhappy as possible. Afraid of everybody, ashamed of
327 herself, and longing for the home she had left, she knew not how to look
328 up, and could scarcely speak to be heard, or without crying. Mrs. Norris
329 had been talking to her the whole way from Northampton of her wonderful
330 good fortune, and the extraordinary degree of gratitude and good
331 behaviour which it ought to produce, and her consciousness of misery was
332 therefore increased by the idea of its being a wicked thing for her
333 not to be happy. The fatigue, too, of so long a journey, became soon no
334 trifling evil. In vain were the well-meant condescensions of Sir Thomas,
335 and all the officious prognostications of Mrs. Norris that she would be
336 a good girl; in vain did Lady Bertram smile and make her sit on the sofa
337 with herself and pug, and vain was even the sight of a gooseberry tart
338 towards giving her comfort; she could scarcely swallow two mouthfuls
339 before tears interrupted her, and sleep seeming to be her likeliest
340 friend, she was taken to finish her sorrows in bed.
341
342 "This is not a very promising beginning," said Mrs. Norris, when Fanny
343 had left the room. "After all that I said to her as we came along, I
344 thought she would have behaved better; I told her how much might depend
345 upon her acquitting herself well at first. I wish there may not be a
346 little sulkiness of temper--her poor mother had a good deal; but we must
347 make allowances for such a child--and I do not know that her being sorry
348 to leave her home is really against her, for, with all its faults,
349 it _was_ her home, and she cannot as yet understand how much she has
350 changed for the better; but then there is moderation in all things."
351
352 It required a longer time, however, than Mrs. Norris was inclined to
353 allow, to reconcile Fanny to the novelty of Mansfield Park, and the
354 separation from everybody she had been used to. Her feelings were very
355 acute, and too little understood to be properly attended to. Nobody
356 meant to be unkind, but nobody put themselves out of their way to secure
357 her comfort.
358
359 The holiday allowed to the Miss Bertrams the next day, on purpose to
360 afford leisure for getting acquainted with, and entertaining their young
361 cousin, produced little union. They could not but hold her cheap on
362 finding that she had but two sashes, and had never learned French; and
363 when they perceived her to be little struck with the duet they were so
364 good as to play, they could do no more than make her a generous present
365 of some of their least valued toys, and leave her to herself, while
366 they adjourned to whatever might be the favourite holiday sport of the
367 moment, making artificial flowers or wasting gold paper.
368
369 Fanny, whether near or from her cousins, whether in the schoolroom, the
370 drawing-room, or the shrubbery, was equally forlorn, finding something
371 to fear in every person and place. She was disheartened by Lady
372 Bertram's silence, awed by Sir Thomas's grave looks, and quite overcome
373 by Mrs. Norris's admonitions. Her elder cousins mortified her by
374 reflections on her size, and abashed her by noticing her shyness: Miss
375 Lee wondered at her ignorance, and the maid-servants sneered at her
376 clothes; and when to these sorrows was added the idea of the brothers
377 and sisters among whom she had always been important as playfellow,
378 instructress, and nurse, the despondence that sunk her little heart was
379 severe.
380
381 The grandeur of the house astonished, but could not console her. The
382 rooms were too large for her to move in with ease: whatever she touched
383 she expected to injure, and she crept about in constant terror of
384 something or other; often retreating towards her own chamber to cry; and
385 the little girl who was spoken of in the drawing-room when she left it
386 at night as seeming so desirably sensible of her peculiar good fortune,
387 ended every day's sorrows by sobbing herself to sleep. A week had
388 passed in this way, and no suspicion of it conveyed by her quiet
389 passive manner, when she was found one morning by her cousin Edmund, the
390 youngest of the sons, sitting crying on the attic stairs.
391
392 "My dear little cousin," said he, with all the gentleness of an
393 excellent nature, "what can be the matter?" And sitting down by her,
394 he was at great pains to overcome her shame in being so surprised, and
395 persuade her to speak openly. Was she ill? or was anybody angry with
396 her? or had she quarrelled with Maria and Julia? or was she puzzled
397 about anything in her lesson that he could explain? Did she, in short,
398 want anything he could possibly get her, or do for her? For a long while
399 no answer could be obtained beyond a "no, no--not at all--no, thank
400 you"; but he still persevered; and no sooner had he begun to revert
401 to her own home, than her increased sobs explained to him where the
402 grievance lay. He tried to console her.
403
404 "You are sorry to leave Mama, my dear little Fanny," said he, "which
405 shows you to be a very good girl; but you must remember that you are
406 with relations and friends, who all love you, and wish to make you
407 happy. Let us walk out in the park, and you shall tell me all about your
408 brothers and sisters."
409
410 On pursuing the subject, he found that, dear as all these brothers and
411 sisters generally were, there was one among them who ran more in her
412 thoughts than the rest. It was William whom she talked of most, and
413 wanted most to see. William, the eldest, a year older than herself, her
414 constant companion and friend; her advocate with her mother (of whom
415 he was the darling) in every distress. "William did not like she should
416 come away; he had told her he should miss her very much indeed." "But
417 William will write to you, I dare say." "Yes, he had promised he would,
418 but he had told _her_ to write first." "And when shall you do it?" She
419 hung her head and answered hesitatingly, "she did not know; she had not
420 any paper."
421
422 "If that be all your difficulty, I will furnish you with paper and every
423 other material, and you may write your letter whenever you choose. Would
424 it make you happy to write to William?"
425
426 "Yes, very."
427
428 "Then let it be done now. Come with me into the breakfast-room, we shall
429 find everything there, and be sure of having the room to ourselves."
430
431 "But, cousin, will it go to the post?"
432
433 "Yes, depend upon me it shall: it shall go with the other letters; and,
434 as your uncle will frank it, it will cost William nothing."
435
436 "My uncle!" repeated Fanny, with a frightened look.
437
438 "Yes, when you have written the letter, I will take it to my father to
439 frank."
440
441 Fanny thought it a bold measure, but offered no further resistance; and
442 they went together into the breakfast-room, where Edmund prepared her
443 paper, and ruled her lines with all the goodwill that her brother
444 could himself have felt, and probably with somewhat more exactness. He
445 continued with her the whole time of her writing, to assist her with his
446 penknife or his orthography, as either were wanted; and added to these
447 attentions, which she felt very much, a kindness to her brother which
448 delighted her beyond all the rest. He wrote with his own hand his
449 love to his cousin William, and sent him half a guinea under the seal.
450 Fanny's feelings on the occasion were such as she believed herself
451 incapable of expressing; but her countenance and a few artless words
452 fully conveyed all their gratitude and delight, and her cousin began
453 to find her an interesting object. He talked to her more, and, from all
454 that she said, was convinced of her having an affectionate heart, and
455 a strong desire of doing right; and he could perceive her to be farther
456 entitled to attention by great sensibility of her situation, and great
457 timidity. He had never knowingly given her pain, but he now felt that
458 she required more positive kindness; and with that view endeavoured,
459 in the first place, to lessen her fears of them all, and gave her
460 especially a great deal of good advice as to playing with Maria and
461 Julia, and being as merry as possible.
462
463 From this day Fanny grew more comfortable. She felt that she had a
464 friend, and the kindness of her cousin Edmund gave her better spirits
465 with everybody else. The place became less strange, and the people less
466 formidable; and if there were some amongst them whom she could not cease
467 to fear, she began at least to know their ways, and to catch the best
468 manner of conforming to them. The little rusticities and awkwardnesses
469 which had at first made grievous inroads on the tranquillity of all,
470 and not least of herself, necessarily wore away, and she was no longer
471 materially afraid to appear before her uncle, nor did her aunt Norris's
472 voice make her start very much. To her cousins she became occasionally
473 an acceptable companion. Though unworthy, from inferiority of age and
474 strength, to be their constant associate, their pleasures and schemes
475 were sometimes of a nature to make a third very useful, especially when
476 that third was of an obliging, yielding temper; and they could not but
477 own, when their aunt inquired into her faults, or their brother Edmund
478 urged her claims to their kindness, that "Fanny was good-natured
479 enough."
480
481 Edmund was uniformly kind himself; and she had nothing worse to endure
482 on the part of Tom than that sort of merriment which a young man of
483 seventeen will always think fair with a child of ten. He was just
484 entering into life, full of spirits, and with all the liberal
485 dispositions of an eldest son, who feels born only for expense and
486 enjoyment. His kindness to his little cousin was consistent with his
487 situation and rights: he made her some very pretty presents, and laughed
488 at her.
489
490 As her appearance and spirits improved, Sir Thomas and Mrs. Norris
491 thought with greater satisfaction of their benevolent plan; and it
492 was pretty soon decided between them that, though far from clever, she
493 showed a tractable disposition, and seemed likely to give them little
494 trouble. A mean opinion of her abilities was not confined to _them_.
495 Fanny could read, work, and write, but she had been taught nothing more;
496 and as her cousins found her ignorant of many things with which they had
497 been long familiar, they thought her prodigiously stupid, and for the
498 first two or three weeks were continually bringing some fresh report of
499 it into the drawing-room. "Dear mama, only think, my cousin cannot
500 put the map of Europe together--or my cousin cannot tell the principal
501 rivers in Russia--or, she never heard of Asia Minor--or she does
502 not know the difference between water-colours and crayons!--How
503 strange!--Did you ever hear anything so stupid?"
504
505 "My dear," their considerate aunt would reply, "it is very bad, but
506 you must not expect everybody to be as forward and quick at learning as
507 yourself."
508
509 "But, aunt, she is really so very ignorant!--Do you know, we asked her
510 last night which way she would go to get to Ireland; and she said, she
511 should cross to the Isle of Wight. She thinks of nothing but the Isle of
512 Wight, and she calls it _the_ _Island_, as if there were no other island
513 in the world. I am sure I should have been ashamed of myself, if I had
514 not known better long before I was so old as she is. I cannot remember
515 the time when I did not know a great deal that she has not the least
516 notion of yet. How long ago it is, aunt, since we used to repeat the
517 chronological order of the kings of England, with the dates of their
518 accession, and most of the principal events of their reigns!"
519
520 "Yes," added the other; "and of the Roman emperors as low as Severus;
521 besides a great deal of the heathen mythology, and all the metals,
522 semi-metals, planets, and distinguished philosophers."
523
524 "Very true indeed, my dears, but you are blessed with wonderful
525 memories, and your poor cousin has probably none at all. There is a
526 vast deal of difference in memories, as well as in everything else,
527 and therefore you must make allowance for your cousin, and pity her
528 deficiency. And remember that, if you are ever so forward and clever
529 yourselves, you should always be modest; for, much as you know already,
530 there is a great deal more for you to learn."
531
532 "Yes, I know there is, till I am seventeen. But I must tell you another
533 thing of Fanny, so odd and so stupid. Do you know, she says she does not
534 want to learn either music or drawing."
535
536 "To be sure, my dear, that is very stupid indeed, and shows a great
537 want of genius and emulation. But, all things considered, I do not know
538 whether it is not as well that it should be so, for, though you know
539 (owing to me) your papa and mama are so good as to bring her up with
540 you, it is not at all necessary that she should be as accomplished as
541 you are;--on the contrary, it is much more desirable that there should
542 be a difference."
543
544 Such were the counsels by which Mrs. Norris assisted to form her nieces'
545 minds; and it is not very wonderful that, with all their promising
546 talents and early information, they should be entirely deficient in the
547 less common acquirements of self-knowledge, generosity and humility. In
548 everything but disposition they were admirably taught. Sir Thomas did
549 not know what was wanting, because, though a truly anxious father, he
550 was not outwardly affectionate, and the reserve of his manner repressed
551 all the flow of their spirits before him.
552
553 To the education of her daughters Lady Bertram paid not the smallest
554 attention. She had not time for such cares. She was a woman who spent
555 her days in sitting, nicely dressed, on a sofa, doing some long piece of
556 needlework, of little use and no beauty, thinking more of her pug than
557 her children, but very indulgent to the latter when it did not put
558 herself to inconvenience, guided in everything important by Sir Thomas,
559 and in smaller concerns by her sister. Had she possessed greater leisure
560 for the service of her girls, she would probably have supposed it
561 unnecessary, for they were under the care of a governess, with proper
562 masters, and could want nothing more. As for Fanny's being stupid at
563 learning, "she could only say it was very unlucky, but some people
564 _were_ stupid, and Fanny must take more pains: she did not know what
565 else was to be done; and, except her being so dull, she must add she saw
566 no harm in the poor little thing, and always found her very handy and
567 quick in carrying messages, and fetching what she wanted."
568
569 Fanny, with all her faults of ignorance and timidity, was fixed at
570 Mansfield Park, and learning to transfer in its favour much of her
571 attachment to her former home, grew up there not unhappily among her
572 cousins. There was no positive ill-nature in Maria or Julia; and though
573 Fanny was often mortified by their treatment of her, she thought too
574 lowly of her own claims to feel injured by it.
575
576 From about the time of her entering the family, Lady Bertram, in
577 consequence of a little ill-health, and a great deal of indolence, gave
578 up the house in town, which she had been used to occupy every spring,
579 and remained wholly in the country, leaving Sir Thomas to attend his
580 duty in Parliament, with whatever increase or diminution of comfort
581 might arise from her absence. In the country, therefore, the Miss
582 Bertrams continued to exercise their memories, practise their duets,
583 and grow tall and womanly: and their father saw them becoming in person,
584 manner, and accomplishments, everything that could satisfy his anxiety.
585 His eldest son was careless and extravagant, and had already given him
586 much uneasiness; but his other children promised him nothing but good.
587 His daughters, he felt, while they retained the name of Bertram, must
588 be giving it new grace, and in quitting it, he trusted, would extend
589 its respectable alliances; and the character of Edmund, his strong good
590 sense and uprightness of mind, bid most fairly for utility, honour, and
591 happiness to himself and all his connexions. He was to be a clergyman.
592
593 Amid the cares and the complacency which his own children suggested,
594 Sir Thomas did not forget to do what he could for the children of Mrs.
595 Price: he assisted her liberally in the education and disposal of her
596 sons as they became old enough for a determinate pursuit; and Fanny,
597 though almost totally separated from her family, was sensible of the
598 truest satisfaction in hearing of any kindness towards them, or of
599 anything at all promising in their situation or conduct. Once, and once
600 only, in the course of many years, had she the happiness of being with
601 William. Of the rest she saw nothing: nobody seemed to think of her ever
602 going amongst them again, even for a visit, nobody at home seemed to
603 want her; but William determining, soon after her removal, to be a
604 sailor, was invited to spend a week with his sister in Northamptonshire
605 before he went to sea. Their eager affection in meeting, their exquisite
606 delight in being together, their hours of happy mirth, and moments of
607 serious conference, may be imagined; as well as the sanguine views and
608 spirits of the boy even to the last, and the misery of the girl when he
609 left her. Luckily the visit happened in the Christmas holidays, when she
610 could directly look for comfort to her cousin Edmund; and he told her
611 such charming things of what William was to do, and be hereafter, in
612 consequence of his profession, as made her gradually admit that the
613 separation might have some use. Edmund's friendship never failed her:
614 his leaving Eton for Oxford made no change in his kind dispositions, and
615 only afforded more frequent opportunities of proving them. Without any
616 display of doing more than the rest, or any fear of doing too much,
617 he was always true to her interests, and considerate of her feelings,
618 trying to make her good qualities understood, and to conquer the
619 diffidence which prevented their being more apparent; giving her advice,
620 consolation, and encouragement.
621
622 Kept back as she was by everybody else, his single support could not
623 bring her forward; but his attentions were otherwise of the highest
624 importance in assisting the improvement of her mind, and extending its
625 pleasures. He knew her to be clever, to have a quick apprehension
626 as well as good sense, and a fondness for reading, which, properly
627 directed, must be an education in itself. Miss Lee taught her French,
628 and heard her read the daily portion of history; but he recommended
629 the books which charmed her leisure hours, he encouraged her taste, and
630 corrected her judgment: he made reading useful by talking to her of what
631 she read, and heightened its attraction by judicious praise. In return
632 for such services she loved him better than anybody in the world except
633 William: her heart was divided between the two.
634
635
636
637 CHAPTER III
638
639 The first event of any importance in the family was the death of Mr.
640 Norris, which happened when Fanny was about fifteen, and necessarily
641 introduced alterations and novelties. Mrs. Norris, on quitting the
642 Parsonage, removed first to the Park, and afterwards to a small house
643 of Sir Thomas's in the village, and consoled herself for the loss of her
644 husband by considering that she could do very well without him; and for
645 her reduction of income by the evident necessity of stricter economy.
646
647 The living was hereafter for Edmund; and, had his uncle died a few years
648 sooner, it would have been duly given to some friend to hold till he
649 were old enough for orders. But Tom's extravagance had, previous to
650 that event, been so great as to render a different disposal of the next
651 presentation necessary, and the younger brother must help to pay for the
652 pleasures of the elder. There was another family living actually held
653 for Edmund; but though this circumstance had made the arrangement
654 somewhat easier to Sir Thomas's conscience, he could not but feel it to
655 be an act of injustice, and he earnestly tried to impress his eldest son
656 with the same conviction, in the hope of its producing a better effect
657 than anything he had yet been able to say or do.
658
659 "I blush for you, Tom," said he, in his most dignified manner; "I blush
660 for the expedient which I am driven on, and I trust I may pity your
661 feelings as a brother on the occasion. You have robbed Edmund for ten,
662 twenty, thirty years, perhaps for life, of more than half the income
663 which ought to be his. It may hereafter be in my power, or in yours
664 (I hope it will), to procure him better preferment; but it must not
665 be forgotten that no benefit of that sort would have been beyond his
666 natural claims on us, and that nothing can, in fact, be an equivalent
667 for the certain advantage which he is now obliged to forego through the
668 urgency of your debts."
669
670 Tom listened with some shame and some sorrow; but escaping as quickly as
671 possible, could soon with cheerful selfishness reflect, firstly, that he
672 had not been half so much in debt as some of his friends; secondly, that
673 his father had made a most tiresome piece of work of it; and,
674 thirdly, that the future incumbent, whoever he might be, would, in all
675 probability, die very soon.
676
677 On Mr. Norris's death the presentation became the right of a Dr. Grant,
678 who came consequently to reside at Mansfield; and on proving to be a
679 hearty man of forty-five, seemed likely to disappoint Mr. Bertram's
680 calculations. But "no, he was a short-necked, apoplectic sort of fellow,
681 and, plied well with good things, would soon pop off."
682
683 He had a wife about fifteen years his junior, but no children; and
684 they entered the neighbourhood with the usual fair report of being very
685 respectable, agreeable people.
686
687 The time was now come when Sir Thomas expected his sister-in-law to
688 claim her share in their niece, the change in Mrs. Norris's situation,
689 and the improvement in Fanny's age, seeming not merely to do away any
690 former objection to their living together, but even to give it the most
691 decided eligibility; and as his own circumstances were rendered less
692 fair than heretofore, by some recent losses on his West India estate, in
693 addition to his eldest son's extravagance, it became not undesirable
694 to himself to be relieved from the expense of her support, and the
695 obligation of her future provision. In the fullness of his belief that
696 such a thing must be, he mentioned its probability to his wife; and the
697 first time of the subject's occurring to her again happening to be when
698 Fanny was present, she calmly observed to her, "So, Fanny, you are going
699 to leave us, and live with my sister. How shall you like it?"
700
701 Fanny was too much surprised to do more than repeat her aunt's words,
702 "Going to leave you?"
703
704 "Yes, my dear; why should you be astonished? You have been five years
705 with us, and my sister always meant to take you when Mr. Norris died.
706 But you must come up and tack on my patterns all the same."
707
708 The news was as disagreeable to Fanny as it had been unexpected. She had
709 never received kindness from her aunt Norris, and could not love her.
710
711 "I shall be very sorry to go away," said she, with a faltering voice.
712
713 "Yes, I dare say you will; _that's_ natural enough. I suppose you have
714 had as little to vex you since you came into this house as any creature
715 in the world."
716
717 "I hope I am not ungrateful, aunt," said Fanny modestly.
718
719 "No, my dear; I hope not. I have always found you a very good girl."
720
721 "And am I never to live here again?"
722
723 "Never, my dear; but you are sure of a comfortable home. It can make
724 very little difference to you, whether you are in one house or the
725 other."
726
727 Fanny left the room with a very sorrowful heart; she could not feel the
728 difference to be so small, she could not think of living with her aunt
729 with anything like satisfaction. As soon as she met with Edmund she told
730 him her distress.
731
732 "Cousin," said she, "something is going to happen which I do not like
733 at all; and though you have often persuaded me into being reconciled to
734 things that I disliked at first, you will not be able to do it now. I am
735 going to live entirely with my aunt Norris."
736
737 "Indeed!"
738
739 "Yes; my aunt Bertram has just told me so. It is quite settled. I am to
740 leave Mansfield Park, and go to the White House, I suppose, as soon as
741 she is removed there."
742
743 "Well, Fanny, and if the plan were not unpleasant to you, I should call
744 it an excellent one."
745
746 "Oh, cousin!"
747
748 "It has everything else in its favour. My aunt is acting like a sensible
749 woman in wishing for you. She is choosing a friend and companion exactly
750 where she ought, and I am glad her love of money does not interfere.
751 You will be what you ought to be to her. I hope it does not distress you
752 very much, Fanny?"
753
754 "Indeed it does: I cannot like it. I love this house and everything in
755 it: I shall love nothing there. You know how uncomfortable I feel with
756 her."
757
758 "I can say nothing for her manner to you as a child; but it was the
759 same with us all, or nearly so. She never knew how to be pleasant to
760 children. But you are now of an age to be treated better; I think she is
761 behaving better already; and when you are her only companion, you _must_
762 be important to her."
763
764 "I can never be important to any one."
765
766 "What is to prevent you?"
767
768 "Everything. My situation, my foolishness and awkwardness."
769
770 "As to your foolishness and awkwardness, my dear Fanny, believe me, you
771 never have a shadow of either, but in using the words so improperly.
772 There is no reason in the world why you should not be important where
773 you are known. You have good sense, and a sweet temper, and I am sure
774 you have a grateful heart, that could never receive kindness without
775 wishing to return it. I do not know any better qualifications for a
776 friend and companion."
777
778 "You are too kind," said Fanny, colouring at such praise; "how shall I
779 ever thank you as I ought, for thinking so well of me. Oh! cousin, if I
780 am to go away, I shall remember your goodness to the last moment of my
781 life."
782
783 "Why, indeed, Fanny, I should hope to be remembered at such a distance
784 as the White House. You speak as if you were going two hundred miles
785 off instead of only across the park; but you will belong to us almost
786 as much as ever. The two families will be meeting every day in the
787 year. The only difference will be that, living with your aunt, you will
788 necessarily be brought forward as you ought to be. _Here_ there are
789 too many whom you can hide behind; but with _her_ you will be forced to
790 speak for yourself."
791
792 "Oh! I do not say so."
793
794 "I must say it, and say it with pleasure. Mrs. Norris is much better
795 fitted than my mother for having the charge of you now. She is of a
796 temper to do a great deal for anybody she really interests herself
797 about, and she will force you to do justice to your natural powers."
798
799 Fanny sighed, and said, "I cannot see things as you do; but I ought to
800 believe you to be right rather than myself, and I am very much obliged
801 to you for trying to reconcile me to what must be. If I could suppose
802 my aunt really to care for me, it would be delightful to feel myself of
803 consequence to anybody. _Here_, I know, I am of none, and yet I love the
804 place so well."
805
806 "The place, Fanny, is what you will not quit, though you quit the house.
807 You will have as free a command of the park and gardens as ever. Even
808 _your_ constant little heart need not take fright at such a nominal
809 change. You will have the same walks to frequent, the same library to
810 choose from, the same people to look at, the same horse to ride."
811
812 "Very true. Yes, dear old grey pony! Ah! cousin, when I remember how
813 much I used to dread riding, what terrors it gave me to hear it talked
814 of as likely to do me good (oh! how I have trembled at my uncle's
815 opening his lips if horses were talked of), and then think of the kind
816 pains you took to reason and persuade me out of my fears, and convince
817 me that I should like it after a little while, and feel how right you
818 proved to be, I am inclined to hope you may always prophesy as well."
819
820 "And I am quite convinced that your being with Mrs. Norris will be as
821 good for your mind as riding has been for your health, and as much for
822 your ultimate happiness too."
823
824 So ended their discourse, which, for any very appropriate service it
825 could render Fanny, might as well have been spared, for Mrs. Norris had
826 not the smallest intention of taking her. It had never occurred to her,
827 on the present occasion, but as a thing to be carefully avoided. To
828 prevent its being expected, she had fixed on the smallest habitation
829 which could rank as genteel among the buildings of Mansfield parish,
830 the White House being only just large enough to receive herself and her
831 servants, and allow a spare room for a friend, of which she made a
832 very particular point. The spare rooms at the Parsonage had never been
833 wanted, but the absolute necessity of a spare room for a friend was now
834 never forgotten. Not all her precautions, however, could save her from
835 being suspected of something better; or, perhaps, her very display of
836 the importance of a spare room might have misled Sir Thomas to suppose
837 it really intended for Fanny. Lady Bertram soon brought the matter to a
838 certainty by carelessly observing to Mrs. Norris--
839
840 "I think, sister, we need not keep Miss Lee any longer, when Fanny goes
841 to live with you."
842
843 Mrs. Norris almost started. "Live with me, dear Lady Bertram! what do
844 you mean?"
845
846 "Is she not to live with you? I thought you had settled it with Sir
847 Thomas."
848
849 "Me! never. I never spoke a syllable about it to Sir Thomas, nor he to
850 me. Fanny live with me! the last thing in the world for me to think
851 of, or for anybody to wish that really knows us both. Good heaven! what
852 could I do with Fanny? Me! a poor, helpless, forlorn widow, unfit for
853 anything, my spirits quite broke down; what could I do with a girl at
854 her time of life? A girl of fifteen! the very age of all others to need
855 most attention and care, and put the cheerfullest spirits to the test!
856 Sure Sir Thomas could not seriously expect such a thing! Sir Thomas is
857 too much my friend. Nobody that wishes me well, I am sure, would propose
858 it. How came Sir Thomas to speak to you about it?"
859
860 "Indeed, I do not know. I suppose he thought it best."
861
862 "But what did he say? He could not say he _wished_ me to take Fanny. I
863 am sure in his heart he could not wish me to do it."
864
865 "No; he only said he thought it very likely; and I thought so too. We
866 both thought it would be a comfort to you. But if you do not like it,
867 there is no more to be said. She is no encumbrance here."
868
869 "Dear sister, if you consider my unhappy state, how can she be any
870 comfort to me? Here am I, a poor desolate widow, deprived of the best of
871 husbands, my health gone in attending and nursing him, my spirits still
872 worse, all my peace in this world destroyed, with hardly enough to
873 support me in the rank of a gentlewoman, and enable me to live so as not
874 to disgrace the memory of the dear departed--what possible comfort could
875 I have in taking such a charge upon me as Fanny? If I could wish it for
876 my own sake, I would not do so unjust a thing by the poor girl. She
877 is in good hands, and sure of doing well. I must struggle through my
878 sorrows and difficulties as I can."
879
880 "Then you will not mind living by yourself quite alone?"
881
882 "Lady Bertram, I do not complain. I know I cannot live as I have done,
883 but I must retrench where I can, and learn to be a better manager. I
884 _have_ _been_ a liberal housekeeper enough, but I shall not be ashamed
885 to practise economy now. My situation is as much altered as my income.
886 A great many things were due from poor Mr. Norris, as clergyman of the
887 parish, that cannot be expected from me. It is unknown how much was
888 consumed in our kitchen by odd comers and goers. At the White House,
889 matters must be better looked after. I _must_ live within my income, or
890 I shall be miserable; and I own it would give me great satisfaction to
891 be able to do rather more, to lay by a little at the end of the year."
892
893 "I dare say you will. You always do, don't you?"
894
895 "My object, Lady Bertram, is to be of use to those that come after me.
896 It is for your children's good that I wish to be richer. I have nobody
897 else to care for, but I should be very glad to think I could leave a
898 little trifle among them worth their having."
899
900 "You are very good, but do not trouble yourself about them. They are
901 sure of being well provided for. Sir Thomas will take care of that."
902
903 "Why, you know, Sir Thomas's means will be rather straitened if the
904 Antigua estate is to make such poor returns."
905
906 "Oh! _that_ will soon be settled. Sir Thomas has been writing about it,
907 I know."
908
909 "Well, Lady Bertram," said Mrs. Norris, moving to go, "I can only say
910 that my sole desire is to be of use to your family: and so, if Sir
911 Thomas should ever speak again about my taking Fanny, you will be able
912 to say that my health and spirits put it quite out of the question;
913 besides that, I really should not have a bed to give her, for I must
914 keep a spare room for a friend."
915
916 Lady Bertram repeated enough of this conversation to her husband to
917 convince him how much he had mistaken his sister-in-law's views; and
918 she was from that moment perfectly safe from all expectation, or the
919 slightest allusion to it from him. He could not but wonder at her
920 refusing to do anything for a niece whom she had been so forward to
921 adopt; but, as she took early care to make him, as well as Lady Bertram,
922 understand that whatever she possessed was designed for their family,
923 he soon grew reconciled to a distinction which, at the same time that it
924 was advantageous and complimentary to them, would enable him better to
925 provide for Fanny himself.
926
927 Fanny soon learnt how unnecessary had been her fears of a removal;
928 and her spontaneous, untaught felicity on the discovery, conveyed some
929 consolation to Edmund for his disappointment in what he had expected to
930 be so essentially serviceable to her. Mrs. Norris took possession of the
931 White House, the Grants arrived at the Parsonage, and these events over,
932 everything at Mansfield went on for some time as usual.
933
934 The Grants showing a disposition to be friendly and sociable, gave great
935 satisfaction in the main among their new acquaintance. They had their
936 faults, and Mrs. Norris soon found them out. The Doctor was very fond of
937 eating, and would have a good dinner every day; and Mrs. Grant, instead
938 of contriving to gratify him at little expense, gave her cook as high
939 wages as they did at Mansfield Park, and was scarcely ever seen in her
940 offices. Mrs. Norris could not speak with any temper of such grievances,
941 nor of the quantity of butter and eggs that were regularly consumed
942 in the house. "Nobody loved plenty and hospitality more than herself;
943 nobody more hated pitiful doings; the Parsonage, she believed, had never
944 been wanting in comforts of any sort, had never borne a bad character
945 in _her_ _time_, but this was a way of going on that she could not
946 understand. A fine lady in a country parsonage was quite out of place.
947 _Her_ store-room, she thought, might have been good enough for Mrs.
948 Grant to go into. Inquire where she would, she could not find out that
949 Mrs. Grant had ever had more than five thousand pounds."
950
951 Lady Bertram listened without much interest to this sort of invective.
952 She could not enter into the wrongs of an economist, but she felt all
953 the injuries of beauty in Mrs. Grant's being so well settled in life
954 without being handsome, and expressed her astonishment on that point
955 almost as often, though not so diffusely, as Mrs. Norris discussed the
956 other.
957
958 These opinions had been hardly canvassed a year before another event
959 arose of such importance in the family, as might fairly claim some place
960 in the thoughts and conversation of the ladies. Sir Thomas found it
961 expedient to go to Antigua himself, for the better arrangement of his
962 affairs, and he took his eldest son with him, in the hope of detaching
963 him from some bad connexions at home. They left England with the
964 probability of being nearly a twelvemonth absent.
965
966 The necessity of the measure in a pecuniary light, and the hope of its
967 utility to his son, reconciled Sir Thomas to the effort of quitting the
968 rest of his family, and of leaving his daughters to the direction of
969 others at their present most interesting time of life. He could not
970 think Lady Bertram quite equal to supply his place with them, or rather,
971 to perform what should have been her own; but, in Mrs. Norris's watchful
972 attention, and in Edmund's judgment, he had sufficient confidence to
973 make him go without fears for their conduct.
974
975 Lady Bertram did not at all like to have her husband leave her; but she
976 was not disturbed by any alarm for his safety, or solicitude for his
977 comfort, being one of those persons who think nothing can be dangerous,
978 or difficult, or fatiguing to anybody but themselves.
979
980 The Miss Bertrams were much to be pitied on the occasion: not for their
981 sorrow, but for their want of it. Their father was no object of love to
982 them; he had never seemed the friend of their pleasures, and his absence
983 was unhappily most welcome. They were relieved by it from all restraint;
984 and without aiming at one gratification that would probably have been
985 forbidden by Sir Thomas, they felt themselves immediately at their
986 own disposal, and to have every indulgence within their reach. Fanny's
987 relief, and her consciousness of it, were quite equal to her cousins';
988 but a more tender nature suggested that her feelings were ungrateful,
989 and she really grieved because she could not grieve. "Sir Thomas, who
990 had done so much for her and her brothers, and who was gone perhaps
991 never to return! that she should see him go without a tear! it was a
992 shameful insensibility." He had said to her, moreover, on the very last
993 morning, that he hoped she might see William again in the course of the
994 ensuing winter, and had charged her to write and invite him to Mansfield
995 as soon as the squadron to which he belonged should be known to be
996 in England. "This was so thoughtful and kind!" and would he only have
997 smiled upon her, and called her "my dear Fanny," while he said it, every
998 former frown or cold address might have been forgotten. But he had ended
999 his speech in a way to sink her in sad mortification, by adding, "If
1000 William does come to Mansfield, I hope you may be able to convince him
1001 that the many years which have passed since you parted have not been
1002 spent on your side entirely without improvement; though, I fear, he must
1003 find his sister at sixteen in some respects too much like his sister at
1004 ten." She cried bitterly over this reflection when her uncle was
1005 gone; and her cousins, on seeing her with red eyes, set her down as a
1006 hypocrite.
1007
1008
1009
1010 CHAPTER IV
1011
1012 Tom Bertram had of late spent so little of his time at home that he
1013 could be only nominally missed; and Lady Bertram was soon astonished
1014 to find how very well they did even without his father, how well Edmund
1015 could supply his place in carving, talking to the steward, writing to
1016 the attorney, settling with the servants, and equally saving her
1017 from all possible fatigue or exertion in every particular but that of
1018 directing her letters.
1019
1020 The earliest intelligence of the travellers' safe arrival at Antigua,
1021 after a favourable voyage, was received; though not before Mrs. Norris
1022 had been indulging in very dreadful fears, and trying to make Edmund
1023 participate them whenever she could get him alone; and as she depended
1024 on being the first person made acquainted with any fatal catastrophe,
1025 she had already arranged the manner of breaking it to all the others,
1026 when Sir Thomas's assurances of their both being alive and well made it
1027 necessary to lay by her agitation and affectionate preparatory speeches
1028 for a while.
1029
1030 The winter came and passed without their being called for; the accounts
1031 continued perfectly good; and Mrs. Norris, in promoting gaieties for her
1032 nieces, assisting their toilets, displaying their accomplishments,
1033 and looking about for their future husbands, had so much to do as, in
1034 addition to all her own household cares, some interference in those of
1035 her sister, and Mrs. Grant's wasteful doings to overlook, left her very
1036 little occasion to be occupied in fears for the absent.
1037
1038 The Miss Bertrams were now fully established among the belles of the
1039 neighbourhood; and as they joined to beauty and brilliant acquirements
1040 a manner naturally easy, and carefully formed to general civility and
1041 obligingness, they possessed its favour as well as its admiration. Their
1042 vanity was in such good order that they seemed to be quite free from it,
1043 and gave themselves no airs; while the praises attending such behaviour,
1044 secured and brought round by their aunt, served to strengthen them in
1045 believing they had no faults.
1046
1047 Lady Bertram did not go into public with her daughters. She was too
1048 indolent even to accept a mother's gratification in witnessing their
1049 success and enjoyment at the expense of any personal trouble, and the
1050 charge was made over to her sister, who desired nothing better than a
1051 post of such honourable representation, and very thoroughly relished
1052 the means it afforded her of mixing in society without having horses to
1053 hire.
1054
1055 Fanny had no share in the festivities of the season; but she enjoyed
1056 being avowedly useful as her aunt's companion when they called away the
1057 rest of the family; and, as Miss Lee had left Mansfield, she naturally
1058 became everything to Lady Bertram during the night of a ball or a party.
1059 She talked to her, listened to her, read to her; and the tranquillity
1060 of such evenings, her perfect security in such a _tete-a-tete_ from any
1061 sound of unkindness, was unspeakably welcome to a mind which had seldom
1062 known a pause in its alarms or embarrassments. As to her cousins'
1063 gaieties, she loved to hear an account of them, especially of the
1064 balls, and whom Edmund had danced with; but thought too lowly of her
1065 own situation to imagine she should ever be admitted to the same, and
1066 listened, therefore, without an idea of any nearer concern in them. Upon
1067 the whole, it was a comfortable winter to her; for though it brought
1068 no William to England, the never-failing hope of his arrival was worth
1069 much.
1070
1071 The ensuing spring deprived her of her valued friend, the old grey pony;
1072 and for some time she was in danger of feeling the loss in her health as
1073 well as in her affections; for in spite of the acknowledged importance
1074 of her riding on horse-back, no measures were taken for mounting her
1075 again, "because," as it was observed by her aunts, "she might ride one
1076 of her cousin's horses at any time when they did not want them," and as
1077 the Miss Bertrams regularly wanted their horses every fine day, and had
1078 no idea of carrying their obliging manners to the sacrifice of any real
1079 pleasure, that time, of course, never came. They took their cheerful
1080 rides in the fine mornings of April and May; and Fanny either sat at
1081 home the whole day with one aunt, or walked beyond her strength at
1082 the instigation of the other: Lady Bertram holding exercise to be as
1083 unnecessary for everybody as it was unpleasant to herself; and Mrs.
1084 Norris, who was walking all day, thinking everybody ought to walk
1085 as much. Edmund was absent at this time, or the evil would have
1086 been earlier remedied. When he returned, to understand how Fanny was
1087 situated, and perceived its ill effects, there seemed with him but one
1088 thing to be done; and that "Fanny must have a horse" was the resolute
1089 declaration with which he opposed whatever could be urged by the
1090 supineness of his mother, or the economy of his aunt, to make it appear
1091 unimportant. Mrs. Norris could not help thinking that some steady old
1092 thing might be found among the numbers belonging to the Park that would
1093 do vastly well; or that one might be borrowed of the steward; or that
1094 perhaps Dr. Grant might now and then lend them the pony he sent to the
1095 post. She could not but consider it as absolutely unnecessary, and even
1096 improper, that Fanny should have a regular lady's horse of her own, in
1097 the style of her cousins. She was sure Sir Thomas had never intended it:
1098 and she must say that, to be making such a purchase in his absence, and
1099 adding to the great expenses of his stable, at a time when a large part
1100 of his income was unsettled, seemed to her very unjustifiable. "Fanny
1101 must have a horse," was Edmund's only reply. Mrs. Norris could not see
1102 it in the same light. Lady Bertram did: she entirely agreed with her son
1103 as to the necessity of it, and as to its being considered necessary by
1104 his father; she only pleaded against there being any hurry; she only
1105 wanted him to wait till Sir Thomas's return, and then Sir Thomas might
1106 settle it all himself. He would be at home in September, and where would
1107 be the harm of only waiting till September?
1108
1109 Though Edmund was much more displeased with his aunt than with his
1110 mother, as evincing least regard for her niece, he could not help paying
1111 more attention to what she said; and at length determined on a method of
1112 proceeding which would obviate the risk of his father's thinking he
1113 had done too much, and at the same time procure for Fanny the immediate
1114 means of exercise, which he could not bear she should be without. He had
1115 three horses of his own, but not one that would carry a woman. Two
1116 of them were hunters; the third, a useful road-horse: this third he
1117 resolved to exchange for one that his cousin might ride; he knew where
1118 such a one was to be met with; and having once made up his mind, the
1119 whole business was soon completed. The new mare proved a treasure; with
1120 a very little trouble she became exactly calculated for the purpose,
1121 and Fanny was then put in almost full possession of her. She had not
1122 supposed before that anything could ever suit her like the old grey
1123 pony; but her delight in Edmund's mare was far beyond any former
1124 pleasure of the sort; and the addition it was ever receiving in the
1125 consideration of that kindness from which her pleasure sprung, was
1126 beyond all her words to express. She regarded her cousin as an example
1127 of everything good and great, as possessing worth which no one but
1128 herself could ever appreciate, and as entitled to such gratitude from
1129 her as no feelings could be strong enough to pay. Her sentiments towards
1130 him were compounded of all that was respectful, grateful, confiding, and
1131 tender.
1132
1133 As the horse continued in name, as well as fact, the property of Edmund,
1134 Mrs. Norris could tolerate its being for Fanny's use; and had Lady
1135 Bertram ever thought about her own objection again, he might have
1136 been excused in her eyes for not waiting till Sir Thomas's return in
1137 September, for when September came Sir Thomas was still abroad, and
1138 without any near prospect of finishing his business. Unfavourable
1139 circumstances had suddenly arisen at a moment when he was beginning to
1140 turn all his thoughts towards England; and the very great uncertainty
1141 in which everything was then involved determined him on sending home his
1142 son, and waiting the final arrangement by himself. Tom arrived safely,
1143 bringing an excellent account of his father's health; but to very little
1144 purpose, as far as Mrs. Norris was concerned. Sir Thomas's sending away
1145 his son seemed to her so like a parent's care, under the influence of a
1146 foreboding of evil to himself, that she could not help feeling dreadful
1147 presentiments; and as the long evenings of autumn came on, was so
1148 terribly haunted by these ideas, in the sad solitariness of her cottage,
1149 as to be obliged to take daily refuge in the dining-room of the Park.
1150 The return of winter engagements, however, was not without its effect;
1151 and in the course of their progress, her mind became so pleasantly
1152 occupied in superintending the fortunes of her eldest niece, as
1153 tolerably to quiet her nerves. "If poor Sir Thomas were fated never to
1154 return, it would be peculiarly consoling to see their dear Maria well
1155 married," she very often thought; always when they were in the company
1156 of men of fortune, and particularly on the introduction of a young man
1157 who had recently succeeded to one of the largest estates and finest
1158 places in the country.
1159
1160 Mr. Rushworth was from the first struck with the beauty of Miss Bertram,
1161 and, being inclined to marry, soon fancied himself in love. He was
1162 a heavy young man, with not more than common sense; but as there was
1163 nothing disagreeable in his figure or address, the young lady was well
1164 pleased with her conquest. Being now in her twenty-first year, Maria
1165 Bertram was beginning to think matrimony a duty; and as a marriage with
1166 Mr. Rushworth would give her the enjoyment of a larger income than her
1167 father's, as well as ensure her the house in town, which was now a prime
1168 object, it became, by the same rule of moral obligation, her evident
1169 duty to marry Mr. Rushworth if she could. Mrs. Norris was most zealous
1170 in promoting the match, by every suggestion and contrivance likely to
1171 enhance its desirableness to either party; and, among other means, by
1172 seeking an intimacy with the gentleman's mother, who at present lived
1173 with him, and to whom she even forced Lady Bertram to go through ten
1174 miles of indifferent road to pay a morning visit. It was not long before
1175 a good understanding took place between this lady and herself. Mrs.
1176 Rushworth acknowledged herself very desirous that her son should marry,
1177 and declared that of all the young ladies she had ever seen, Miss
1178 Bertram seemed, by her amiable qualities and accomplishments, the best
1179 adapted to make him happy. Mrs. Norris accepted the compliment,
1180 and admired the nice discernment of character which could so well
1181 distinguish merit. Maria was indeed the pride and delight of them
1182 all--perfectly faultless--an angel; and, of course, so surrounded by
1183 admirers, must be difficult in her choice: but yet, as far as Mrs.
1184 Norris could allow herself to decide on so short an acquaintance, Mr.
1185 Rushworth appeared precisely the young man to deserve and attach her.
1186
1187 After dancing with each other at a proper number of balls, the young
1188 people justified these opinions, and an engagement, with a due reference
1189 to the absent Sir Thomas, was entered into, much to the satisfaction
1190 of their respective families, and of the general lookers-on of the
1191 neighbourhood, who had, for many weeks past, felt the expediency of Mr.
1192 Rushworth's marrying Miss Bertram.
1193
1194 It was some months before Sir Thomas's consent could be received; but,
1195 in the meanwhile, as no one felt a doubt of his most cordial pleasure
1196 in the connexion, the intercourse of the two families was carried
1197 on without restraint, and no other attempt made at secrecy than Mrs.
1198 Norris's talking of it everywhere as a matter not to be talked of at
1199 present.
1200
1201 Edmund was the only one of the family who could see a fault in the
1202 business; but no representation of his aunt's could induce him to find
1203 Mr. Rushworth a desirable companion. He could allow his sister to be
1204 the best judge of her own happiness, but he was not pleased that her
1205 happiness should centre in a large income; nor could he refrain from
1206 often saying to himself, in Mr. Rushworth's company--"If this man had
1207 not twelve thousand a year, he would be a very stupid fellow."
1208
1209 Sir Thomas, however, was truly happy in the prospect of an alliance
1210 so unquestionably advantageous, and of which he heard nothing but the
1211 perfectly good and agreeable. It was a connexion exactly of the right
1212 sort--in the same county, and the same interest--and his most hearty
1213 concurrence was conveyed as soon as possible. He only conditioned that
1214 the marriage should not take place before his return, which he was again
1215 looking eagerly forward to. He wrote in April, and had strong hopes
1216 of settling everything to his entire satisfaction, and leaving Antigua
1217 before the end of the summer.
1218
1219 Such was the state of affairs in the month of July; and Fanny had just
1220 reached her eighteenth year, when the society of the village received
1221 an addition in the brother and sister of Mrs. Grant, a Mr. and Miss
1222 Crawford, the children of her mother by a second marriage. They were
1223 young people of fortune. The son had a good estate in Norfolk, the
1224 daughter twenty thousand pounds. As children, their sister had been
1225 always very fond of them; but, as her own marriage had been soon
1226 followed by the death of their common parent, which left them to the
1227 care of a brother of their father, of whom Mrs. Grant knew nothing, she
1228 had scarcely seen them since. In their uncle's house they had found a
1229 kind home. Admiral and Mrs. Crawford, though agreeing in nothing else,
1230 were united in affection for these children, or, at least, were no
1231 farther adverse in their feelings than that each had their favourite, to
1232 whom they showed the greatest fondness of the two. The Admiral delighted
1233 in the boy, Mrs. Crawford doted on the girl; and it was the lady's death
1234 which now obliged her _protegee_, after some months' further trial at
1235 her uncle's house, to find another home. Admiral Crawford was a man of
1236 vicious conduct, who chose, instead of retaining his niece, to bring his
1237 mistress under his own roof; and to this Mrs. Grant was indebted for her
1238 sister's proposal of coming to her, a measure quite as welcome on one
1239 side as it could be expedient on the other; for Mrs. Grant, having by
1240 this time run through the usual resources of ladies residing in the
1241 country without a family of children--having more than filled her
1242 favourite sitting-room with pretty furniture, and made a choice
1243 collection of plants and poultry--was very much in want of some variety
1244 at home. The arrival, therefore, of a sister whom she had always loved,
1245 and now hoped to retain with her as long as she remained single, was
1246 highly agreeable; and her chief anxiety was lest Mansfield should not
1247 satisfy the habits of a young woman who had been mostly used to London.
1248
1249 Miss Crawford was not entirely free from similar apprehensions, though
1250 they arose principally from doubts of her sister's style of living and
1251 tone of society; and it was not till after she had tried in vain to
1252 persuade her brother to settle with her at his own country house,
1253 that she could resolve to hazard herself among her other relations. To
1254 anything like a permanence of abode, or limitation of society, Henry
1255 Crawford had, unluckily, a great dislike: he could not accommodate his
1256 sister in an article of such importance; but he escorted her, with the
1257 utmost kindness, into Northamptonshire, and as readily engaged to fetch
1258 her away again, at half an hour's notice, whenever she were weary of the
1259 place.
1260
1261 The meeting was very satisfactory on each side. Miss Crawford found a
1262 sister without preciseness or rusticity, a sister's husband who looked
1263 the gentleman, and a house commodious and well fitted up; and Mrs. Grant
1264 received in those whom she hoped to love better than ever a young man
1265 and woman of very prepossessing appearance. Mary Crawford was remarkably
1266 pretty; Henry, though not handsome, had air and countenance; the manners
1267 of both were lively and pleasant, and Mrs. Grant immediately gave them
1268 credit for everything else. She was delighted with each, but Mary was
1269 her dearest object; and having never been able to glory in beauty of her
1270 own, she thoroughly enjoyed the power of being proud of her sister's.
1271 She had not waited her arrival to look out for a suitable match for her:
1272 she had fixed on Tom Bertram; the eldest son of a baronet was not too
1273 good for a girl of twenty thousand pounds, with all the elegance
1274 and accomplishments which Mrs. Grant foresaw in her; and being a
1275 warm-hearted, unreserved woman, Mary had not been three hours in the
1276 house before she told her what she had planned.
1277
1278 Miss Crawford was glad to find a family of such consequence so very near
1279 them, and not at all displeased either at her sister's early care, or
1280 the choice it had fallen on. Matrimony was her object, provided she
1281 could marry well: and having seen Mr. Bertram in town, she knew that
1282 objection could no more be made to his person than to his situation in
1283 life. While she treated it as a joke, therefore, she did not forget to
1284 think of it seriously. The scheme was soon repeated to Henry.
1285
1286 "And now," added Mrs. Grant, "I have thought of something to make it
1287 complete. I should dearly love to settle you both in this country; and
1288 therefore, Henry, you shall marry the youngest Miss Bertram, a nice,
1289 handsome, good-humoured, accomplished girl, who will make you very
1290 happy."
1291
1292 Henry bowed and thanked her.
1293
1294 "My dear sister," said Mary, "if you can persuade him into anything
1295 of the sort, it will be a fresh matter of delight to me to find myself
1296 allied to anybody so clever, and I shall only regret that you have
1297 not half a dozen daughters to dispose of. If you can persuade Henry
1298 to marry, you must have the address of a Frenchwoman. All that English
1299 abilities can do has been tried already. I have three very particular
1300 friends who have been all dying for him in their turn; and the pains
1301 which they, their mothers (very clever women), as well as my dear aunt
1302 and myself, have taken to reason, coax, or trick him into marrying, is
1303 inconceivable! He is the most horrible flirt that can be imagined. If
1304 your Miss Bertrams do not like to have their hearts broke, let them
1305 avoid Henry."
1306
1307 "My dear brother, I will not believe this of you."
1308
1309 "No, I am sure you are too good. You will be kinder than Mary. You
1310 will allow for the doubts of youth and inexperience. I am of a cautious
1311 temper, and unwilling to risk my happiness in a hurry. Nobody can
1312 think more highly of the matrimonial state than myself. I consider the
1313 blessing of a wife as most justly described in those discreet lines of
1314 the poet--'Heaven's _last_ best gift.'"
1315
1316 "There, Mrs. Grant, you see how he dwells on one word, and only look
1317 at his smile. I assure you he is very detestable; the Admiral's lessons
1318 have quite spoiled him."
1319
1320 "I pay very little regard," said Mrs. Grant, "to what any young person
1321 says on the subject of marriage. If they profess a disinclination for
1322 it, I only set it down that they have not yet seen the right person."
1323
1324 Dr. Grant laughingly congratulated Miss Crawford on feeling no
1325 disinclination to the state herself.
1326
1327 "Oh yes! I am not at all ashamed of it. I would have everybody marry if
1328 they can do it properly: I do not like to have people throw themselves
1329 away; but everybody should marry as soon as they can do it to
1330 advantage."
1331
1332
1333
1334 CHAPTER V
1335
1336 The young people were pleased with each other from the first. On each
1337 side there was much to attract, and their acquaintance soon promised as
1338 early an intimacy as good manners would warrant. Miss Crawford's beauty
1339 did her no disservice with the Miss Bertrams. They were too handsome
1340 themselves to dislike any woman for being so too, and were almost as
1341 much charmed as their brothers with her lively dark eye, clear brown
1342 complexion, and general prettiness. Had she been tall, full formed, and
1343 fair, it might have been more of a trial: but as it was, there could be
1344 no comparison; and she was most allowably a sweet, pretty girl, while
1345 they were the finest young women in the country.
1346
1347 Her brother was not handsome: no, when they first saw him he was
1348 absolutely plain, black and plain; but still he was the gentleman, with
1349 a pleasing address. The second meeting proved him not so very plain:
1350 he was plain, to be sure, but then he had so much countenance, and his
1351 teeth were so good, and he was so well made, that one soon forgot he was
1352 plain; and after a third interview, after dining in company with him at
1353 the Parsonage, he was no longer allowed to be called so by anybody. He
1354 was, in fact, the most agreeable young man the sisters had ever known,
1355 and they were equally delighted with him. Miss Bertram's engagement made
1356 him in equity the property of Julia, of which Julia was fully aware; and
1357 before he had been at Mansfield a week, she was quite ready to be fallen
1358 in love with.
1359
1360 Maria's notions on the subject were more confused and indistinct. She
1361 did not want to see or understand. "There could be no harm in her liking
1362 an agreeable man--everybody knew her situation--Mr. Crawford must take
1363 care of himself." Mr. Crawford did not mean to be in any danger! the
1364 Miss Bertrams were worth pleasing, and were ready to be pleased; and he
1365 began with no object but of making them like him. He did not want them
1366 to die of love; but with sense and temper which ought to have made him
1367 judge and feel better, he allowed himself great latitude on such points.
1368
1369 "I like your Miss Bertrams exceedingly, sister," said he, as he returned
1370 from attending them to their carriage after the said dinner visit; "they
1371 are very elegant, agreeable girls."
1372
1373 "So they are indeed, and I am delighted to hear you say it. But you like
1374 Julia best."
1375
1376 "Oh yes! I like Julia best."
1377
1378 "But do you really? for Miss Bertram is in general thought the
1379 handsomest."
1380
1381 "So I should suppose. She has the advantage in every feature, and I
1382 prefer her countenance; but I like Julia best; Miss Bertram is certainly
1383 the handsomest, and I have found her the most agreeable, but I shall
1384 always like Julia best, because you order me."
1385
1386 "I shall not talk to you, Henry, but I know you _will_ like her best at
1387 last."
1388
1389 "Do not I tell you that I like her best _at_ _first_?"
1390
1391 "And besides, Miss Bertram is engaged. Remember that, my dear brother.
1392 Her choice is made."
1393
1394 "Yes, and I like her the better for it. An engaged woman is always more
1395 agreeable than a disengaged. She is satisfied with herself. Her cares
1396 are over, and she feels that she may exert all her powers of pleasing
1397 without suspicion. All is safe with a lady engaged: no harm can be
1398 done."
1399
1400 "Why, as to that, Mr. Rushworth is a very good sort of young man, and it
1401 is a great match for her."
1402
1403 "But Miss Bertram does not care three straws for him; _that_ is your
1404 opinion of your intimate friend. _I_ do not subscribe to it. I am sure
1405 Miss Bertram is very much attached to Mr. Rushworth. I could see it in
1406 her eyes, when he was mentioned. I think too well of Miss Bertram to
1407 suppose she would ever give her hand without her heart."
1408
1409 "Mary, how shall we manage him?"
1410
1411 "We must leave him to himself, I believe. Talking does no good. He will
1412 be taken in at last."
1413
1414 "But I would not have him _taken_ _in_; I would not have him duped; I
1415 would have it all fair and honourable."
1416
1417 "Oh dear! let him stand his chance and be taken in. It will do just as
1418 well. Everybody is taken in at some period or other."
1419
1420 "Not always in marriage, dear Mary."
1421
1422 "In marriage especially. With all due respect to such of the present
1423 company as chance to be married, my dear Mrs. Grant, there is not one in
1424 a hundred of either sex who is not taken in when they marry. Look where
1425 I will, I see that it _is_ so; and I feel that it _must_ be so, when I
1426 consider that it is, of all transactions, the one in which people expect
1427 most from others, and are least honest themselves."
1428
1429 "Ah! You have been in a bad school for matrimony, in Hill Street."
1430
1431 "My poor aunt had certainly little cause to love the state; but,
1432 however, speaking from my own observation, it is a manoeuvring business.
1433 I know so many who have married in the full expectation and confidence
1434 of some one particular advantage in the connexion, or accomplishment, or
1435 good quality in the person, who have found themselves entirely deceived,
1436 and been obliged to put up with exactly the reverse. What is this but a
1437 take in?"
1438
1439 "My dear child, there must be a little imagination here. I beg your
1440 pardon, but I cannot quite believe you. Depend upon it, you see but
1441 half. You see the evil, but you do not see the consolation. There will
1442 be little rubs and disappointments everywhere, and we are all apt to
1443 expect too much; but then, if one scheme of happiness fails, human
1444 nature turns to another; if the first calculation is wrong, we make
1445 a second better: we find comfort somewhere--and those evil-minded
1446 observers, dearest Mary, who make much of a little, are more taken in
1447 and deceived than the parties themselves."
1448
1449 "Well done, sister! I honour your _esprit_ _du_ _corps_. When I am a
1450 wife, I mean to be just as staunch myself; and I wish my friends in
1451 general would be so too. It would save me many a heartache."
1452
1453 "You are as bad as your brother, Mary; but we will cure you both.
1454 Mansfield shall cure you both, and without any taking in. Stay with us,
1455 and we will cure you."
1456
1457 The Crawfords, without wanting to be cured, were very willing to stay.
1458 Mary was satisfied with the Parsonage as a present home, and Henry
1459 equally ready to lengthen his visit. He had come, intending to spend
1460 only a few days with them; but Mansfield promised well, and there was
1461 nothing to call him elsewhere. It delighted Mrs. Grant to keep them both
1462 with her, and Dr. Grant was exceedingly well contented to have it so: a
1463 talking pretty young woman like Miss Crawford is always pleasant society
1464 to an indolent, stay-at-home man; and Mr. Crawford's being his guest was
1465 an excuse for drinking claret every day.
1466
1467 The Miss Bertrams' admiration of Mr. Crawford was more rapturous than
1468 anything which Miss Crawford's habits made her likely to feel. She
1469 acknowledged, however, that the Mr. Bertrams were very fine young men,
1470 that two such young men were not often seen together even in London, and
1471 that their manners, particularly those of the eldest, were very good.
1472 _He_ had been much in London, and had more liveliness and gallantry than
1473 Edmund, and must, therefore, be preferred; and, indeed, his being the
1474 eldest was another strong claim. She had felt an early presentiment that
1475 she _should_ like the eldest best. She knew it was her way.
1476
1477 Tom Bertram must have been thought pleasant, indeed, at any rate; he was
1478 the sort of young man to be generally liked, his agreeableness was of
1479 the kind to be oftener found agreeable than some endowments of a higher
1480 stamp, for he had easy manners, excellent spirits, a large acquaintance,
1481 and a great deal to say; and the reversion of Mansfield Park, and a
1482 baronetcy, did no harm to all this. Miss Crawford soon felt that he and
1483 his situation might do. She looked about her with due consideration, and
1484 found almost everything in his favour: a park, a real park, five miles
1485 round, a spacious modern-built house, so well placed and well screened
1486 as to deserve to be in any collection of engravings of gentlemen's
1487 seats in the kingdom, and wanting only to be completely new
1488 furnished--pleasant sisters, a quiet mother, and an agreeable man
1489 himself--with the advantage of being tied up from much gaming at present
1490 by a promise to his father, and of being Sir Thomas hereafter. It
1491 might do very well; she believed she should accept him; and she began
1492 accordingly to interest herself a little about the horse which he had to
1493 run at the B---- races.
1494
1495 These races were to call him away not long after their acquaintance
1496 began; and as it appeared that the family did not, from his usual goings
1497 on, expect him back again for many weeks, it would bring his passion to
1498 an early proof. Much was said on his side to induce her to attend the
1499 races, and schemes were made for a large party to them, with all the
1500 eagerness of inclination, but it would only do to be talked of.
1501
1502 And Fanny, what was _she_ doing and thinking all this while? and what
1503 was _her_ opinion of the newcomers? Few young ladies of eighteen could
1504 be less called on to speak their opinion than Fanny. In a quiet way,
1505 very little attended to, she paid her tribute of admiration to Miss
1506 Crawford's beauty; but as she still continued to think Mr. Crawford
1507 very plain, in spite of her two cousins having repeatedly proved the
1508 contrary, she never mentioned _him_. The notice, which she excited
1509 herself, was to this effect. "I begin now to understand you all,
1510 except Miss Price," said Miss Crawford, as she was walking with the Mr.
1511 Bertrams. "Pray, is she out, or is she not? I am puzzled. She dined at
1512 the Parsonage, with the rest of you, which seemed like being _out_; and
1513 yet she says so little, that I can hardly suppose she _is_."
1514
1515 Edmund, to whom this was chiefly addressed, replied, "I believe I know
1516 what you mean, but I will not undertake to answer the question. My
1517 cousin is grown up. She has the age and sense of a woman, but the outs
1518 and not outs are beyond me."
1519
1520 "And yet, in general, nothing can be more easily ascertained. The
1521 distinction is so broad. Manners as well as appearance are, generally
1522 speaking, so totally different. Till now, I could not have supposed it
1523 possible to be mistaken as to a girl's being out or not. A girl not out
1524 has always the same sort of dress: a close bonnet, for instance; looks
1525 very demure, and never says a word. You may smile, but it is so, I
1526 assure you; and except that it is sometimes carried a little too far,
1527 it is all very proper. Girls should be quiet and modest. The most
1528 objectionable part is, that the alteration of manners on being
1529 introduced into company is frequently too sudden. They sometimes pass in
1530 such very little time from reserve to quite the opposite--to confidence!
1531 _That_ is the faulty part of the present system. One does not like to
1532 see a girl of eighteen or nineteen so immediately up to every thing--and
1533 perhaps when one has seen her hardly able to speak the year before. Mr.
1534 Bertram, I dare say _you_ have sometimes met with such changes."
1535
1536 "I believe I have, but this is hardly fair; I see what you are at. You
1537 are quizzing me and Miss Anderson."
1538
1539 "No, indeed. Miss Anderson! I do not know who or what you mean. I am
1540 quite in the dark. But I _will_ quiz you with a great deal of pleasure,
1541 if you will tell me what about."
1542
1543 "Ah! you carry it off very well, but I cannot be quite so far imposed
1544 on. You must have had Miss Anderson in your eye, in describing an
1545 altered young lady. You paint too accurately for mistake. It was exactly
1546 so. The Andersons of Baker Street. We were speaking of them the other
1547 day, you know. Edmund, you have heard me mention Charles Anderson.
1548 The circumstance was precisely as this lady has represented it. When
1549 Anderson first introduced me to his family, about two years ago, his
1550 sister was not _out_, and I could not get her to speak to me. I sat
1551 there an hour one morning waiting for Anderson, with only her and a
1552 little girl or two in the room, the governess being sick or run away,
1553 and the mother in and out every moment with letters of business, and I
1554 could hardly get a word or a look from the young lady--nothing like a
1555 civil answer--she screwed up her mouth, and turned from me with such an
1556 air! I did not see her again for a twelvemonth. She was then _out_. I
1557 met her at Mrs. Holford's, and did not recollect her. She came up to me,
1558 claimed me as an acquaintance, stared me out of countenance; and talked
1559 and laughed till I did not know which way to look. I felt that I must
1560 be the jest of the room at the time, and Miss Crawford, it is plain, has
1561 heard the story."
1562
1563 "And a very pretty story it is, and with more truth in it, I dare say,
1564 than does credit to Miss Anderson. It is too common a fault. Mothers
1565 certainly have not yet got quite the right way of managing their
1566 daughters. I do not know where the error lies. I do not pretend to set
1567 people right, but I do see that they are often wrong."
1568
1569 "Those who are showing the world what female manners _should_ be," said
1570 Mr. Bertram gallantly, "are doing a great deal to set them right."
1571
1572 "The error is plain enough," said the less courteous Edmund; "such girls
1573 are ill brought up. They are given wrong notions from the beginning.
1574 They are always acting upon motives of vanity, and there is no more
1575 real modesty in their behaviour _before_ they appear in public than
1576 afterwards."
1577
1578 "I do not know," replied Miss Crawford hesitatingly. "Yes, I cannot
1579 agree with you there. It is certainly the modestest part of the
1580 business. It is much worse to have girls not out give themselves the
1581 same airs and take the same liberties as if they were, which I have seen
1582 done. That is worse than anything--quite disgusting!"
1583
1584 "Yes, _that_ is very inconvenient indeed," said Mr. Bertram. "It leads
1585 one astray; one does not know what to do. The close bonnet and demure
1586 air you describe so well (and nothing was ever juster), tell one what
1587 is expected; but I got into a dreadful scrape last year from the want of
1588 them. I went down to Ramsgate for a week with a friend last September,
1589 just after my return from the West Indies. My friend Sneyd--you have
1590 heard me speak of Sneyd, Edmund--his father, and mother, and sisters,
1591 were there, all new to me. When we reached Albion Place they were out;
1592 we went after them, and found them on the pier: Mrs. and the two Miss
1593 Sneyds, with others of their acquaintance. I made my bow in form; and
1594 as Mrs. Sneyd was surrounded by men, attached myself to one of her
1595 daughters, walked by her side all the way home, and made myself as
1596 agreeable as I could; the young lady perfectly easy in her manners, and
1597 as ready to talk as to listen. I had not a suspicion that I could be
1598 doing anything wrong. They looked just the same: both well-dressed, with
1599 veils and parasols like other girls; but I afterwards found that I had
1600 been giving all my attention to the youngest, who was not _out_, and
1601 had most excessively offended the eldest. Miss Augusta ought not to have
1602 been noticed for the next six months; and Miss Sneyd, I believe, has
1603 never forgiven me."
1604
1605 "That was bad indeed. Poor Miss Sneyd. Though I have no younger
1606 sister, I feel for her. To be neglected before one's time must be very
1607 vexatious; but it was entirely the mother's fault. Miss Augusta should
1608 have been with her governess. Such half-and-half doings never prosper.
1609 But now I must be satisfied about Miss Price. Does she go to balls? Does
1610 she dine out every where, as well as at my sister's?"
1611
1612 "No," replied Edmund; "I do not think she has ever been to a ball. My
1613 mother seldom goes into company herself, and dines nowhere but with Mrs.
1614 Grant, and Fanny stays at home with _her_."
1615
1616 "Oh! then the point is clear. Miss Price is not out."
1617
1618
1619
1620 CHAPTER VI
1621
1622 Mr. Bertram set off for--------, and Miss Crawford was prepared to
1623 find a great chasm in their society, and to miss him decidedly in the
1624 meetings which were now becoming almost daily between the families;
1625 and on their all dining together at the Park soon after his going, she
1626 retook her chosen place near the bottom of the table, fully expecting to
1627 feel a most melancholy difference in the change of masters. It would
1628 be a very flat business, she was sure. In comparison with his brother,
1629 Edmund would have nothing to say. The soup would be sent round in a most
1630 spiritless manner, wine drank without any smiles or agreeable trifling,
1631 and the venison cut up without supplying one pleasant anecdote of any
1632 former haunch, or a single entertaining story, about "my friend such a
1633 one." She must try to find amusement in what was passing at the upper
1634 end of the table, and in observing Mr. Rushworth, who was now making his
1635 appearance at Mansfield for the first time since the Crawfords' arrival.
1636 He had been visiting a friend in the neighbouring county, and that
1637 friend having recently had his grounds laid out by an improver, Mr.
1638 Rushworth was returned with his head full of the subject, and very eager
1639 to be improving his own place in the same way; and though not saying
1640 much to the purpose, could talk of nothing else. The subject had
1641 been already handled in the drawing-room; it was revived in the
1642 dining-parlour. Miss Bertram's attention and opinion was evidently his
1643 chief aim; and though her deportment showed rather conscious superiority
1644 than any solicitude to oblige him, the mention of Sotherton Court,
1645 and the ideas attached to it, gave her a feeling of complacency, which
1646 prevented her from being very ungracious.
1647
1648 "I wish you could see Compton," said he; "it is the most complete thing!
1649 I never saw a place so altered in my life. I told Smith I did not know
1650 where I was. The approach _now_, is one of the finest things in the
1651 country: you see the house in the most surprising manner. I declare,
1652 when I got back to Sotherton yesterday, it looked like a prison--quite a
1653 dismal old prison."
1654
1655 "Oh, for shame!" cried Mrs. Norris. "A prison indeed? Sotherton Court is
1656 the noblest old place in the world."
1657
1658 "It wants improvement, ma'am, beyond anything. I never saw a place that
1659 wanted so much improvement in my life; and it is so forlorn that I do
1660 not know what can be done with it."
1661
1662 "No wonder that Mr. Rushworth should think so at present," said Mrs.
1663 Grant to Mrs. Norris, with a smile; "but depend upon it, Sotherton will
1664 have _every_ improvement in time which his heart can desire."
1665
1666 "I must try to do something with it," said Mr. Rushworth, "but I do not
1667 know what. I hope I shall have some good friend to help me."
1668
1669 "Your best friend upon such an occasion," said Miss Bertram calmly,
1670 "would be Mr. Repton, I imagine."
1671
1672 "That is what I was thinking of. As he has done so well by Smith, I
1673 think I had better have him at once. His terms are five guineas a day."
1674
1675 "Well, and if they were _ten_," cried Mrs. Norris, "I am sure _you_ need
1676 not regard it. The expense need not be any impediment. If I were you,
1677 I should not think of the expense. I would have everything done in the
1678 best style, and made as nice as possible. Such a place as Sotherton
1679 Court deserves everything that taste and money can do. You have space to
1680 work upon there, and grounds that will well reward you. For my own part,
1681 if I had anything within the fiftieth part of the size of Sotherton, I
1682 should be always planting and improving, for naturally I am excessively
1683 fond of it. It would be too ridiculous for me to attempt anything where
1684 I am now, with my little half acre. It would be quite a burlesque. But
1685 if I had more room, I should take a prodigious delight in improving and
1686 planting. We did a vast deal in that way at the Parsonage: we made it
1687 quite a different place from what it was when we first had it. You young
1688 ones do not remember much about it, perhaps; but if dear Sir Thomas were
1689 here, he could tell you what improvements we made: and a great deal more
1690 would have been done, but for poor Mr. Norris's sad state of health.
1691 He could hardly ever get out, poor man, to enjoy anything, and _that_
1692 disheartened me from doing several things that Sir Thomas and I used to
1693 talk of. If it had not been for _that_, we should have carried on the
1694 garden wall, and made the plantation to shut out the churchyard, just
1695 as Dr. Grant has done. We were always doing something as it was. It was
1696 only the spring twelvemonth before Mr. Norris's death that we put in the
1697 apricot against the stable wall, which is now grown such a noble tree,
1698 and getting to such perfection, sir," addressing herself then to Dr.
1699 Grant.
1700
1701 "The tree thrives well, beyond a doubt, madam," replied Dr. Grant. "The
1702 soil is good; and I never pass it without regretting that the fruit
1703 should be so little worth the trouble of gathering."
1704
1705 "Sir, it is a Moor Park, we bought it as a Moor Park, and it cost
1706 us--that is, it was a present from Sir Thomas, but I saw the bill--and I
1707 know it cost seven shillings, and was charged as a Moor Park."
1708
1709 "You were imposed on, ma'am," replied Dr. Grant: "these potatoes have as
1710 much the flavour of a Moor Park apricot as the fruit from that tree. It
1711 is an insipid fruit at the best; but a good apricot is eatable, which
1712 none from my garden are."
1713
1714 "The truth is, ma'am," said Mrs. Grant, pretending to whisper across
1715 the table to Mrs. Norris, "that Dr. Grant hardly knows what the natural
1716 taste of our apricot is: he is scarcely ever indulged with one, for it
1717 is so valuable a fruit; with a little assistance, and ours is such a
1718 remarkably large, fair sort, that what with early tarts and preserves,
1719 my cook contrives to get them all."
1720
1721 Mrs. Norris, who had begun to redden, was appeased; and, for a little
1722 while, other subjects took place of the improvements of Sotherton. Dr.
1723 Grant and Mrs. Norris were seldom good friends; their acquaintance had
1724 begun in dilapidations, and their habits were totally dissimilar.
1725
1726 After a short interruption Mr. Rushworth began again. "Smith's place
1727 is the admiration of all the country; and it was a mere nothing before
1728 Repton took it in hand. I think I shall have Repton."
1729
1730 "Mr. Rushworth," said Lady Bertram, "if I were you, I would have a
1731 very pretty shrubbery. One likes to get out into a shrubbery in fine
1732 weather."
1733
1734 Mr. Rushworth was eager to assure her ladyship of his acquiescence, and
1735 tried to make out something complimentary; but, between his submission
1736 to _her_ taste, and his having always intended the same himself, with
1737 the superadded objects of professing attention to the comfort of ladies
1738 in general, and of insinuating that there was one only whom he was
1739 anxious to please, he grew puzzled, and Edmund was glad to put an end
1740 to his speech by a proposal of wine. Mr. Rushworth, however, though not
1741 usually a great talker, had still more to say on the subject next his
1742 heart. "Smith has not much above a hundred acres altogether in his
1743 grounds, which is little enough, and makes it more surprising that the
1744 place can have been so improved. Now, at Sotherton we have a good seven
1745 hundred, without reckoning the water meadows; so that I think, if so
1746 much could be done at Compton, we need not despair. There have been two
1747 or three fine old trees cut down, that grew too near the house, and
1748 it opens the prospect amazingly, which makes me think that Repton, or
1749 anybody of that sort, would certainly have the avenue at Sotherton down:
1750 the avenue that leads from the west front to the top of the hill,
1751 you know," turning to Miss Bertram particularly as he spoke. But Miss
1752 Bertram thought it most becoming to reply--
1753
1754 "The avenue! Oh! I do not recollect it. I really know very little of
1755 Sotherton."
1756
1757 Fanny, who was sitting on the other side of Edmund, exactly opposite
1758 Miss Crawford, and who had been attentively listening, now looked at
1759 him, and said in a low voice--
1760
1761 "Cut down an avenue! What a pity! Does it not make you think of Cowper?
1762 'Ye fallen avenues, once more I mourn your fate unmerited.'"
1763
1764 He smiled as he answered, "I am afraid the avenue stands a bad chance,
1765 Fanny."
1766
1767 "I should like to see Sotherton before it is cut down, to see the place
1768 as it is now, in its old state; but I do not suppose I shall."
1769
1770 "Have you never been there? No, you never can; and, unluckily, it is out
1771 of distance for a ride. I wish we could contrive it."
1772
1773 "Oh! it does not signify. Whenever I do see it, you will tell me how it
1774 has been altered."
1775
1776 "I collect," said Miss Crawford, "that Sotherton is an old place, and a
1777 place of some grandeur. In any particular style of building?"
1778
1779 "The house was built in Elizabeth's time, and is a large, regular, brick
1780 building; heavy, but respectable looking, and has many good rooms. It
1781 is ill placed. It stands in one of the lowest spots of the park; in that
1782 respect, unfavourable for improvement. But the woods are fine, and
1783 there is a stream, which, I dare say, might be made a good deal of. Mr.
1784 Rushworth is quite right, I think, in meaning to give it a modern dress,
1785 and I have no doubt that it will be all done extremely well."
1786
1787 Miss Crawford listened with submission, and said to herself, "He is a
1788 well-bred man; he makes the best of it."
1789
1790 "I do not wish to influence Mr. Rushworth," he continued; "but, had I
1791 a place to new fashion, I should not put myself into the hands of an
1792 improver. I would rather have an inferior degree of beauty, of my own
1793 choice, and acquired progressively. I would rather abide by my own
1794 blunders than by his."
1795
1796 "_You_ would know what you were about, of course; but that would not
1797 suit _me_. I have no eye or ingenuity for such matters, but as they are
1798 before me; and had I a place of my own in the country, I should be most
1799 thankful to any Mr. Repton who would undertake it, and give me as much
1800 beauty as he could for my money; and I should never look at it till it
1801 was complete."
1802
1803 "It would be delightful to _me_ to see the progress of it all," said
1804 Fanny.
1805
1806 "Ay, you have been brought up to it. It was no part of my education; and
1807 the only dose I ever had, being administered by not the first favourite
1808 in the world, has made me consider improvements _in_ _hand_ as the
1809 greatest of nuisances. Three years ago the Admiral, my honoured uncle,
1810 bought a cottage at Twickenham for us all to spend our summers in;
1811 and my aunt and I went down to it quite in raptures; but it being
1812 excessively pretty, it was soon found necessary to be improved, and for
1813 three months we were all dirt and confusion, without a gravel walk to
1814 step on, or a bench fit for use. I would have everything as complete
1815 as possible in the country, shrubberies and flower-gardens, and rustic
1816 seats innumerable: but it must all be done without my care. Henry is
1817 different; he loves to be doing."
1818
1819 Edmund was sorry to hear Miss Crawford, whom he was much disposed to
1820 admire, speak so freely of her uncle. It did not suit his sense of
1821 propriety, and he was silenced, till induced by further smiles and
1822 liveliness to put the matter by for the present.
1823
1824 "Mr. Bertram," said she, "I have tidings of my harp at last. I am
1825 assured that it is safe at Northampton; and there it has probably been
1826 these ten days, in spite of the solemn assurances we have so often
1827 received to the contrary." Edmund expressed his pleasure and surprise.
1828 "The truth is, that our inquiries were too direct; we sent a servant,
1829 we went ourselves: this will not do seventy miles from London; but this
1830 morning we heard of it in the right way. It was seen by some farmer, and
1831 he told the miller, and the miller told the butcher, and the butcher's
1832 son-in-law left word at the shop."
1833
1834 "I am very glad that you have heard of it, by whatever means, and hope
1835 there will be no further delay."
1836
1837 "I am to have it to-morrow; but how do you think it is to be conveyed?
1838 Not by a wagon or cart: oh no! nothing of that kind could be hired in
1839 the village. I might as well have asked for porters and a handbarrow."
1840
1841 "You would find it difficult, I dare say, just now, in the middle of a
1842 very late hay harvest, to hire a horse and cart?"
1843
1844 "I was astonished to find what a piece of work was made of it! To want
1845 a horse and cart in the country seemed impossible, so I told my maid to
1846 speak for one directly; and as I cannot look out of my dressing-closet
1847 without seeing one farmyard, nor walk in the shrubbery without passing
1848 another, I thought it would be only ask and have, and was rather grieved
1849 that I could not give the advantage to all. Guess my surprise, when
1850 I found that I had been asking the most unreasonable, most impossible
1851 thing in the world; had offended all the farmers, all the labourers,
1852 all the hay in the parish! As for Dr. Grant's bailiff, I believe I had
1853 better keep out of _his_ way; and my brother-in-law himself, who is all
1854 kindness in general, looked rather black upon me when he found what I
1855 had been at."
1856
1857 "You could not be expected to have thought on the subject before; but
1858 when you _do_ think of it, you must see the importance of getting in
1859 the grass. The hire of a cart at any time might not be so easy as you
1860 suppose: our farmers are not in the habit of letting them out; but, in
1861 harvest, it must be quite out of their power to spare a horse."
1862
1863 "I shall understand all your ways in time; but, coming down with the
1864 true London maxim, that everything is to be got with money, I was a
1865 little embarrassed at first by the sturdy independence of your country
1866 customs. However, I am to have my harp fetched to-morrow. Henry, who is
1867 good-nature itself, has offered to fetch it in his barouche. Will it not
1868 be honourably conveyed?"
1869
1870 Edmund spoke of the harp as his favourite instrument, and hoped to be
1871 soon allowed to hear her. Fanny had never heard the harp at all, and
1872 wished for it very much.
1873
1874 "I shall be most happy to play to you both," said Miss Crawford; "at
1875 least as long as you can like to listen: probably much longer, for
1876 I dearly love music myself, and where the natural taste is equal the
1877 player must always be best off, for she is gratified in more ways than
1878 one. Now, Mr. Bertram, if you write to your brother, I entreat you to
1879 tell him that my harp is come: he heard so much of my misery about it.
1880 And you may say, if you please, that I shall prepare my most plaintive
1881 airs against his return, in compassion to his feelings, as I know his
1882 horse will lose."
1883
1884 "If I write, I will say whatever you wish me; but I do not, at present,
1885 foresee any occasion for writing."
1886
1887 "No, I dare say, nor if he were to be gone a twelvemonth, would you ever
1888 write to him, nor he to you, if it could be helped. The occasion would
1889 never be foreseen. What strange creatures brothers are! You would not
1890 write to each other but upon the most urgent necessity in the world; and
1891 when obliged to take up the pen to say that such a horse is ill, or such
1892 a relation dead, it is done in the fewest possible words. You have but
1893 one style among you. I know it perfectly. Henry, who is in every other
1894 respect exactly what a brother should be, who loves me, consults me,
1895 confides in me, and will talk to me by the hour together, has never
1896 yet turned the page in a letter; and very often it is nothing more
1897 than--'Dear Mary, I am just arrived. Bath seems full, and everything
1898 as usual. Yours sincerely.' That is the true manly style; that is a
1899 complete brother's letter."
1900
1901 "When they are at a distance from all their family," said Fanny,
1902 colouring for William's sake, "they can write long letters."
1903
1904 "Miss Price has a brother at sea," said Edmund, "whose excellence as a
1905 correspondent makes her think you too severe upon us."
1906
1907 "At sea, has she? In the king's service, of course?"
1908
1909 Fanny would rather have had Edmund tell the story, but his determined
1910 silence obliged her to relate her brother's situation: her voice was
1911 animated in speaking of his profession, and the foreign stations he had
1912 been on; but she could not mention the number of years that he had been
1913 absent without tears in her eyes. Miss Crawford civilly wished him an
1914 early promotion.
1915
1916 "Do you know anything of my cousin's captain?" said Edmund; "Captain
1917 Marshall? You have a large acquaintance in the navy, I conclude?"
1918
1919 "Among admirals, large enough; but," with an air of grandeur, "we know
1920 very little of the inferior ranks. Post-captains may be very good sort
1921 of men, but they do not belong to _us_. Of various admirals I could tell
1922 you a great deal: of them and their flags, and the gradation of their
1923 pay, and their bickerings and jealousies. But, in general, I can assure
1924 you that they are all passed over, and all very ill used. Certainly, my
1925 home at my uncle's brought me acquainted with a circle of admirals. Of
1926 _Rears_ and _Vices_ I saw enough. Now do not be suspecting me of a pun,
1927 I entreat."
1928
1929 Edmund again felt grave, and only replied, "It is a noble profession."
1930
1931 "Yes, the profession is well enough under two circumstances: if it make
1932 the fortune, and there be discretion in spending it; but, in short, it
1933 is not a favourite profession of mine. It has never worn an amiable form
1934 to _me_."
1935
1936 Edmund reverted to the harp, and was again very happy in the prospect of
1937 hearing her play.
1938
1939 The subject of improving grounds, meanwhile, was still under
1940 consideration among the others; and Mrs. Grant could not help addressing
1941 her brother, though it was calling his attention from Miss Julia
1942 Bertram.
1943
1944 "My dear Henry, have _you_ nothing to say? You have been an improver
1945 yourself, and from what I hear of Everingham, it may vie with any place
1946 in England. Its natural beauties, I am sure, are great. Everingham,
1947 as it _used_ to be, was perfect in my estimation: such a happy fall of
1948 ground, and such timber! What would I not give to see it again?"
1949
1950 "Nothing could be so gratifying to me as to hear your opinion of it,"
1951 was his answer; "but I fear there would be some disappointment: you
1952 would not find it equal to your present ideas. In extent, it is a mere
1953 nothing; you would be surprised at its insignificance; and, as for
1954 improvement, there was very little for me to do--too little: I should
1955 like to have been busy much longer."
1956
1957 "You are fond of the sort of thing?" said Julia.
1958
1959 "Excessively; but what with the natural advantages of the ground, which
1960 pointed out, even to a very young eye, what little remained to be done,
1961 and my own consequent resolutions, I had not been of age three
1962 months before Everingham was all that it is now. My plan was laid
1963 at Westminster, a little altered, perhaps, at Cambridge, and at
1964 one-and-twenty executed. I am inclined to envy Mr. Rushworth for having
1965 so much happiness yet before him. I have been a devourer of my own."
1966
1967 "Those who see quickly, will resolve quickly, and act quickly,"
1968 said Julia. "_You_ can never want employment. Instead of envying Mr.
1969 Rushworth, you should assist him with your opinion."
1970
1971 Mrs. Grant, hearing the latter part of this speech, enforced it warmly,
1972 persuaded that no judgment could be equal to her brother's; and as
1973 Miss Bertram caught at the idea likewise, and gave it her full support,
1974 declaring that, in her opinion, it was infinitely better to consult
1975 with friends and disinterested advisers, than immediately to throw the
1976 business into the hands of a professional man, Mr. Rushworth was very
1977 ready to request the favour of Mr. Crawford's assistance; and Mr.
1978 Crawford, after properly depreciating his own abilities, was quite at
1979 his service in any way that could be useful. Mr. Rushworth then began to
1980 propose Mr. Crawford's doing him the honour of coming over to Sotherton,
1981 and taking a bed there; when Mrs. Norris, as if reading in her two
1982 nieces' minds their little approbation of a plan which was to take Mr.
1983 Crawford away, interposed with an amendment.
1984
1985 "There can be no doubt of Mr. Crawford's willingness; but why should not
1986 more of us go? Why should not we make a little party? Here are many that
1987 would be interested in your improvements, my dear Mr. Rushworth, and
1988 that would like to hear Mr. Crawford's opinion on the spot, and that
1989 might be of some small use to you with _their_ opinions; and, for my
1990 own part, I have been long wishing to wait upon your good mother again;
1991 nothing but having no horses of my own could have made me so remiss; but
1992 now I could go and sit a few hours with Mrs. Rushworth, while the rest
1993 of you walked about and settled things, and then we could all return
1994 to a late dinner here, or dine at Sotherton, just as might be most
1995 agreeable to your mother, and have a pleasant drive home by moonlight.
1996 I dare say Mr. Crawford would take my two nieces and me in his barouche,
1997 and Edmund can go on horseback, you know, sister, and Fanny will stay at
1998 home with you."
1999
2000 Lady Bertram made no objection; and every one concerned in the going
2001 was forward in expressing their ready concurrence, excepting Edmund, who
2002 heard it all and said nothing.
2003
2004
2005
2006 CHAPTER VII
2007
2008 "Well, Fanny, and how do you like Miss Crawford _now_?" said Edmund the
2009 next day, after thinking some time on the subject himself. "How did you
2010 like her yesterday?"
2011
2012 "Very well--very much. I like to hear her talk. She entertains me; and
2013 she is so extremely pretty, that I have great pleasure in looking at
2014 her."
2015
2016 "It is her countenance that is so attractive. She has a wonderful play
2017 of feature! But was there nothing in her conversation that struck you,
2018 Fanny, as not quite right?"
2019
2020 "Oh yes! she ought not to have spoken of her uncle as she did. I was
2021 quite astonished. An uncle with whom she has been living so many years,
2022 and who, whatever his faults may be, is so very fond of her brother,
2023 treating him, they say, quite like a son. I could not have believed it!"
2024
2025 "I thought you would be struck. It was very wrong; very indecorous."
2026
2027 "And very ungrateful, I think."
2028
2029 "Ungrateful is a strong word. I do not know that her uncle has any claim
2030 to her _gratitude_; his wife certainly had; and it is the warmth of her
2031 respect for her aunt's memory which misleads her here. She is awkwardly
2032 circumstanced. With such warm feelings and lively spirits it must be
2033 difficult to do justice to her affection for Mrs. Crawford, without
2034 throwing a shade on the Admiral. I do not pretend to know which was most
2035 to blame in their disagreements, though the Admiral's present conduct
2036 might incline one to the side of his wife; but it is natural and amiable
2037 that Miss Crawford should acquit her aunt entirely. I do not censure her
2038 _opinions_; but there certainly _is_ impropriety in making them public."
2039
2040 "Do not you think," said Fanny, after a little consideration, "that this
2041 impropriety is a reflection itself upon Mrs. Crawford, as her niece has
2042 been entirely brought up by her? She cannot have given her right notions
2043 of what was due to the Admiral."
2044
2045 "That is a fair remark. Yes, we must suppose the faults of the niece
2046 to have been those of the aunt; and it makes one more sensible of the
2047 disadvantages she has been under. But I think her present home must
2048 do her good. Mrs. Grant's manners are just what they ought to be. She
2049 speaks of her brother with a very pleasing affection."
2050
2051 "Yes, except as to his writing her such short letters. She made me
2052 almost laugh; but I cannot rate so very highly the love or good-nature
2053 of a brother who will not give himself the trouble of writing anything
2054 worth reading to his sisters, when they are separated. I am sure William
2055 would never have used _me_ so, under any circumstances. And what right
2056 had she to suppose that _you_ would not write long letters when you were
2057 absent?"
2058
2059 "The right of a lively mind, Fanny, seizing whatever may contribute
2060 to its own amusement or that of others; perfectly allowable, when
2061 untinctured by ill-humour or roughness; and there is not a shadow of
2062 either in the countenance or manner of Miss Crawford: nothing sharp, or
2063 loud, or coarse. She is perfectly feminine, except in the instances we
2064 have been speaking of. There she cannot be justified. I am glad you saw
2065 it all as I did."
2066
2067 Having formed her mind and gained her affections, he had a good chance
2068 of her thinking like him; though at this period, and on this subject,
2069 there began now to be some danger of dissimilarity, for he was in a line
2070 of admiration of Miss Crawford, which might lead him where Fanny
2071 could not follow. Miss Crawford's attractions did not lessen. The harp
2072 arrived, and rather added to her beauty, wit, and good-humour; for she
2073 played with the greatest obligingness, with an expression and taste
2074 which were peculiarly becoming, and there was something clever to be
2075 said at the close of every air. Edmund was at the Parsonage every day,
2076 to be indulged with his favourite instrument: one morning secured an
2077 invitation for the next; for the lady could not be unwilling to have a
2078 listener, and every thing was soon in a fair train.
2079
2080 A young woman, pretty, lively, with a harp as elegant as herself, and
2081 both placed near a window, cut down to the ground, and opening on a
2082 little lawn, surrounded by shrubs in the rich foliage of summer, was
2083 enough to catch any man's heart. The season, the scene, the air, were
2084 all favourable to tenderness and sentiment. Mrs. Grant and her tambour
2085 frame were not without their use: it was all in harmony; and as
2086 everything will turn to account when love is once set going, even the
2087 sandwich tray, and Dr. Grant doing the honours of it, were worth looking
2088 at. Without studying the business, however, or knowing what he was
2089 about, Edmund was beginning, at the end of a week of such intercourse,
2090 to be a good deal in love; and to the credit of the lady it may be added
2091 that, without his being a man of the world or an elder brother, without
2092 any of the arts of flattery or the gaieties of small talk, he began to
2093 be agreeable to her. She felt it to be so, though she had not foreseen,
2094 and could hardly understand it; for he was not pleasant by any common
2095 rule: he talked no nonsense; he paid no compliments; his opinions
2096 were unbending, his attentions tranquil and simple. There was a charm,
2097 perhaps, in his sincerity, his steadiness, his integrity, which Miss
2098 Crawford might be equal to feel, though not equal to discuss with
2099 herself. She did not think very much about it, however: he pleased her
2100 for the present; she liked to have him near her; it was enough.
2101
2102 Fanny could not wonder that Edmund was at the Parsonage every morning;
2103 she would gladly have been there too, might she have gone in uninvited
2104 and unnoticed, to hear the harp; neither could she wonder that, when the
2105 evening stroll was over, and the two families parted again, he should
2106 think it right to attend Mrs. Grant and her sister to their home, while
2107 Mr. Crawford was devoted to the ladies of the Park; but she thought it
2108 a very bad exchange; and if Edmund were not there to mix the wine and
2109 water for her, would rather go without it than not. She was a little
2110 surprised that he could spend so many hours with Miss Crawford, and
2111 not see more of the sort of fault which he had already observed, and of
2112 which _she_ was almost always reminded by a something of the same nature
2113 whenever she was in her company; but so it was. Edmund was fond of
2114 speaking to her of Miss Crawford, but he seemed to think it enough that
2115 the Admiral had since been spared; and she scrupled to point out her own
2116 remarks to him, lest it should appear like ill-nature. The first actual
2117 pain which Miss Crawford occasioned her was the consequence of an
2118 inclination to learn to ride, which the former caught, soon after her
2119 being settled at Mansfield, from the example of the young ladies at the
2120 Park, and which, when Edmund's acquaintance with her increased, led to
2121 his encouraging the wish, and the offer of his own quiet mare for the
2122 purpose of her first attempts, as the best fitted for a beginner that
2123 either stable could furnish. No pain, no injury, however, was designed
2124 by him to his cousin in this offer: _she_ was not to lose a day's
2125 exercise by it. The mare was only to be taken down to the Parsonage half
2126 an hour before her ride were to begin; and Fanny, on its being first
2127 proposed, so far from feeling slighted, was almost over-powered with
2128 gratitude that he should be asking her leave for it.
2129
2130 Miss Crawford made her first essay with great credit to herself, and no
2131 inconvenience to Fanny. Edmund, who had taken down the mare and presided
2132 at the whole, returned with it in excellent time, before either Fanny or
2133 the steady old coachman, who always attended her when she rode without
2134 her cousins, were ready to set forward. The second day's trial was not
2135 so guiltless. Miss Crawford's enjoyment of riding was such that she did
2136 not know how to leave off. Active and fearless, and though rather small,
2137 strongly made, she seemed formed for a horsewoman; and to the pure
2138 genuine pleasure of the exercise, something was probably added in
2139 Edmund's attendance and instructions, and something more in the
2140 conviction of very much surpassing her sex in general by her early
2141 progress, to make her unwilling to dismount. Fanny was ready and
2142 waiting, and Mrs. Norris was beginning to scold her for not being gone,
2143 and still no horse was announced, no Edmund appeared. To avoid her aunt,
2144 and look for him, she went out.
2145
2146 The houses, though scarcely half a mile apart, were not within sight of
2147 each other; but, by walking fifty yards from the hall door, she could
2148 look down the park, and command a view of the Parsonage and all its
2149 demesnes, gently rising beyond the village road; and in Dr. Grant's
2150 meadow she immediately saw the group--Edmund and Miss Crawford both on
2151 horse-back, riding side by side, Dr. and Mrs. Grant, and Mr. Crawford,
2152 with two or three grooms, standing about and looking on. A happy party
2153 it appeared to her, all interested in one object: cheerful beyond a
2154 doubt, for the sound of merriment ascended even to her. It was a sound
2155 which did not make _her_ cheerful; she wondered that Edmund should
2156 forget her, and felt a pang. She could not turn her eyes from the
2157 meadow; she could not help watching all that passed. At first Miss
2158 Crawford and her companion made the circuit of the field, which was not
2159 small, at a foot's pace; then, at _her_ apparent suggestion, they rose
2160 into a canter; and to Fanny's timid nature it was most astonishing to
2161 see how well she sat. After a few minutes they stopped entirely. Edmund
2162 was close to her; he was speaking to her; he was evidently directing her
2163 management of the bridle; he had hold of her hand; she saw it, or the
2164 imagination supplied what the eye could not reach. She must not wonder
2165 at all this; what could be more natural than that Edmund should be
2166 making himself useful, and proving his good-nature by any one? She could
2167 not but think, indeed, that Mr. Crawford might as well have saved him
2168 the trouble; that it would have been particularly proper and becoming
2169 in a brother to have done it himself; but Mr. Crawford, with all his
2170 boasted good-nature, and all his coachmanship, probably knew nothing
2171 of the matter, and had no active kindness in comparison of Edmund. She
2172 began to think it rather hard upon the mare to have such double duty; if
2173 she were forgotten, the poor mare should be remembered.
2174
2175 Her feelings for one and the other were soon a little tranquillised
2176 by seeing the party in the meadow disperse, and Miss Crawford still on
2177 horseback, but attended by Edmund on foot, pass through a gate into the
2178 lane, and so into the park, and make towards the spot where she stood.
2179 She began then to be afraid of appearing rude and impatient; and walked
2180 to meet them with a great anxiety to avoid the suspicion.
2181
2182 "My dear Miss Price," said Miss Crawford, as soon as she was at all
2183 within hearing, "I am come to make my own apologies for keeping you
2184 waiting; but I have nothing in the world to say for myself--I knew it
2185 was very late, and that I was behaving extremely ill; and therefore, if
2186 you please, you must forgive me. Selfishness must always be forgiven,
2187 you know, because there is no hope of a cure."
2188
2189 Fanny's answer was extremely civil, and Edmund added his conviction that
2190 she could be in no hurry. "For there is more than time enough for my
2191 cousin to ride twice as far as she ever goes," said he, "and you have
2192 been promoting her comfort by preventing her from setting off half an
2193 hour sooner: clouds are now coming up, and she will not suffer from the
2194 heat as she would have done then. I wish _you_ may not be fatigued by so
2195 much exercise. I wish you had saved yourself this walk home."
2196
2197 "No part of it fatigues me but getting off this horse, I assure you,"
2198 said she, as she sprang down with his help; "I am very strong. Nothing
2199 ever fatigues me but doing what I do not like. Miss Price, I give way to
2200 you with a very bad grace; but I sincerely hope you will have a pleasant
2201 ride, and that I may have nothing but good to hear of this dear,
2202 delightful, beautiful animal."
2203
2204 The old coachman, who had been waiting about with his own horse, now
2205 joining them, Fanny was lifted on hers, and they set off across another
2206 part of the park; her feelings of discomfort not lightened by seeing, as
2207 she looked back, that the others were walking down the hill together to
2208 the village; nor did her attendant do her much good by his comments on
2209 Miss Crawford's great cleverness as a horse-woman, which he had been
2210 watching with an interest almost equal to her own.
2211
2212 "It is a pleasure to see a lady with such a good heart for riding!"
2213 said he. "I never see one sit a horse better. She did not seem to have
2214 a thought of fear. Very different from you, miss, when you first began,
2215 six years ago come next Easter. Lord bless you! how you did tremble when
2216 Sir Thomas first had you put on!"
2217
2218 In the drawing-room Miss Crawford was also celebrated. Her merit in
2219 being gifted by Nature with strength and courage was fully appreciated
2220 by the Miss Bertrams; her delight in riding was like their own; her
2221 early excellence in it was like their own, and they had great pleasure
2222 in praising it.
2223
2224 "I was sure she would ride well," said Julia; "she has the make for it.
2225 Her figure is as neat as her brother's."
2226
2227 "Yes," added Maria, "and her spirits are as good, and she has the same
2228 energy of character. I cannot but think that good horsemanship has a
2229 great deal to do with the mind."
2230
2231 When they parted at night Edmund asked Fanny whether she meant to ride
2232 the next day.
2233
2234 "No, I do not know--not if you want the mare," was her answer.
2235
2236 "I do not want her at all for myself," said he; "but whenever you are
2237 next inclined to stay at home, I think Miss Crawford would be glad to
2238 have her a longer time--for a whole morning, in short. She has a great
2239 desire to get as far as Mansfield Common: Mrs. Grant has been telling
2240 her of its fine views, and I have no doubt of her being perfectly equal
2241 to it. But any morning will do for this. She would be extremely sorry to
2242 interfere with you. It would be very wrong if she did. _She_ rides only
2243 for pleasure; _you_ for health."
2244
2245 "I shall not ride to-morrow, certainly," said Fanny; "I have been out
2246 very often lately, and would rather stay at home. You know I am strong
2247 enough now to walk very well."
2248
2249 Edmund looked pleased, which must be Fanny's comfort, and the ride to
2250 Mansfield Common took place the next morning: the party included all the
2251 young people but herself, and was much enjoyed at the time, and doubly
2252 enjoyed again in the evening discussion. A successful scheme of this
2253 sort generally brings on another; and the having been to Mansfield
2254 Common disposed them all for going somewhere else the day after. There
2255 were many other views to be shewn; and though the weather was hot, there
2256 were shady lanes wherever they wanted to go. A young party is always
2257 provided with a shady lane. Four fine mornings successively were spent
2258 in this manner, in shewing the Crawfords the country, and doing the
2259 honours of its finest spots. Everything answered; it was all gaiety and
2260 good-humour, the heat only supplying inconvenience enough to be talked
2261 of with pleasure--till the fourth day, when the happiness of one of
2262 the party was exceedingly clouded. Miss Bertram was the one. Edmund and
2263 Julia were invited to dine at the Parsonage, and _she_ was excluded.
2264 It was meant and done by Mrs. Grant, with perfect good-humour, on Mr.
2265 Rushworth's account, who was partly expected at the Park that day;
2266 but it was felt as a very grievous injury, and her good manners were
2267 severely taxed to conceal her vexation and anger till she reached home.
2268 As Mr. Rushworth did _not_ come, the injury was increased, and she had
2269 not even the relief of shewing her power over him; she could only be
2270 sullen to her mother, aunt, and cousin, and throw as great a gloom as
2271 possible over their dinner and dessert.
2272
2273 Between ten and eleven Edmund and Julia walked into the drawing-room,
2274 fresh with the evening air, glowing and cheerful, the very reverse
2275 of what they found in the three ladies sitting there, for Maria would
2276 scarcely raise her eyes from her book, and Lady Bertram was half-asleep;
2277 and even Mrs. Norris, discomposed by her niece's ill-humour, and having
2278 asked one or two questions about the dinner, which were not immediately
2279 attended to, seemed almost determined to say no more. For a few minutes
2280 the brother and sister were too eager in their praise of the night and
2281 their remarks on the stars, to think beyond themselves; but when the
2282 first pause came, Edmund, looking around, said, "But where is Fanny? Is
2283 she gone to bed?"
2284
2285 "No, not that I know of," replied Mrs. Norris; "she was here a moment
2286 ago."
2287
2288 Her own gentle voice speaking from the other end of the room, which was
2289 a very long one, told them that she was on the sofa. Mrs. Norris began
2290 scolding.
2291
2292 "That is a very foolish trick, Fanny, to be idling away all the evening
2293 upon a sofa. Why cannot you come and sit here, and employ yourself as
2294 _we_ do? If you have no work of your own, I can supply you from the
2295 poor basket. There is all the new calico, that was bought last week,
2296 not touched yet. I am sure I almost broke my back by cutting it out. You
2297 should learn to think of other people; and, take my word for it, it is a
2298 shocking trick for a young person to be always lolling upon a sofa."
2299
2300 Before half this was said, Fanny was returned to her seat at the table,
2301 and had taken up her work again; and Julia, who was in high good-humour,
2302 from the pleasures of the day, did her the justice of exclaiming, "I
2303 must say, ma'am, that Fanny is as little upon the sofa as anybody in the
2304 house."
2305
2306 "Fanny," said Edmund, after looking at her attentively, "I am sure you
2307 have the headache."
2308
2309 She could not deny it, but said it was not very bad.
2310
2311 "I can hardly believe you," he replied; "I know your looks too well. How
2312 long have you had it?"
2313
2314 "Since a little before dinner. It is nothing but the heat."
2315
2316 "Did you go out in the heat?"
2317
2318 "Go out! to be sure she did," said Mrs. Norris: "would you have her stay
2319 within such a fine day as this? Were not we _all_ out? Even your mother
2320 was out to-day for above an hour."
2321
2322 "Yes, indeed, Edmund," added her ladyship, who had been thoroughly
2323 awakened by Mrs. Norris's sharp reprimand to Fanny; "I was out above an
2324 hour. I sat three-quarters of an hour in the flower-garden, while Fanny
2325 cut the roses; and very pleasant it was, I assure you, but very hot. It
2326 was shady enough in the alcove, but I declare I quite dreaded the coming
2327 home again."
2328
2329 "Fanny has been cutting roses, has she?"
2330
2331 "Yes, and I am afraid they will be the last this year. Poor thing! _She_
2332 found it hot enough; but they were so full-blown that one could not
2333 wait."
2334
2335 "There was no help for it, certainly," rejoined Mrs. Norris, in a rather
2336 softened voice; "but I question whether her headache might not be caught
2337 _then_, sister. There is nothing so likely to give it as standing and
2338 stooping in a hot sun; but I dare say it will be well to-morrow. Suppose
2339 you let her have your aromatic vinegar; I always forget to have mine
2340 filled."
2341
2342 "She has got it," said Lady Bertram; "she has had it ever since she came
2343 back from your house the second time."
2344
2345 "What!" cried Edmund; "has she been walking as well as cutting roses;
2346 walking across the hot park to your house, and doing it twice, ma'am? No
2347 wonder her head aches."
2348
2349 Mrs. Norris was talking to Julia, and did not hear.
2350
2351 "I was afraid it would be too much for her," said Lady Bertram; "but
2352 when the roses were gathered, your aunt wished to have them, and then
2353 you know they must be taken home."
2354
2355 "But were there roses enough to oblige her to go twice?"
2356
2357 "No; but they were to be put into the spare room to dry; and, unluckily,
2358 Fanny forgot to lock the door of the room and bring away the key, so she
2359 was obliged to go again."
2360
2361 Edmund got up and walked about the room, saying, "And could nobody be
2362 employed on such an errand but Fanny? Upon my word, ma'am, it has been a
2363 very ill-managed business."
2364
2365 "I am sure I do not know how it was to have been done better," cried
2366 Mrs. Norris, unable to be longer deaf; "unless I had gone myself,
2367 indeed; but I cannot be in two places at once; and I was talking to Mr.
2368 Green at that very time about your mother's dairymaid, by _her_ desire,
2369 and had promised John Groom to write to Mrs. Jefferies about his son,
2370 and the poor fellow was waiting for me half an hour. I think nobody
2371 can justly accuse me of sparing myself upon any occasion, but really I
2372 cannot do everything at once. And as for Fanny's just stepping down
2373 to my house for me--it is not much above a quarter of a mile--I cannot
2374 think I was unreasonable to ask it. How often do I pace it three times a
2375 day, early and late, ay, and in all weathers too, and say nothing about
2376 it?"
2377
2378 "I wish Fanny had half your strength, ma'am."
2379
2380 "If Fanny would be more regular in her exercise, she would not be
2381 knocked up so soon. She has not been out on horseback now this long
2382 while, and I am persuaded that, when she does not ride, she ought to
2383 walk. If she had been riding before, I should not have asked it of her.
2384 But I thought it would rather do her good after being stooping among the
2385 roses; for there is nothing so refreshing as a walk after a fatigue
2386 of that kind; and though the sun was strong, it was not so very hot.
2387 Between ourselves, Edmund," nodding significantly at his mother, "it was
2388 cutting the roses, and dawdling about in the flower-garden, that did the
2389 mischief."
2390
2391 "I am afraid it was, indeed," said the more candid Lady Bertram, who had
2392 overheard her; "I am very much afraid she caught the headache there,
2393 for the heat was enough to kill anybody. It was as much as I could bear
2394 myself. Sitting and calling to Pug, and trying to keep him from the
2395 flower-beds, was almost too much for me."
2396
2397 Edmund said no more to either lady; but going quietly to another table,
2398 on which the supper-tray yet remained, brought a glass of Madeira to
2399 Fanny, and obliged her to drink the greater part. She wished to be able
2400 to decline it; but the tears, which a variety of feelings created, made
2401 it easier to swallow than to speak.
2402
2403 Vexed as Edmund was with his mother and aunt, he was still more angry
2404 with himself. His own forgetfulness of her was worse than anything which
2405 they had done. Nothing of this would have happened had she been properly
2406 considered; but she had been left four days together without any choice
2407 of companions or exercise, and without any excuse for avoiding whatever
2408 her unreasonable aunts might require. He was ashamed to think that
2409 for four days together she had not had the power of riding, and very
2410 seriously resolved, however unwilling he must be to check a pleasure of
2411 Miss Crawford's, that it should never happen again.
2412
2413 Fanny went to bed with her heart as full as on the first evening of her
2414 arrival at the Park. The state of her spirits had probably had its
2415 share in her indisposition; for she had been feeling neglected, and been
2416 struggling against discontent and envy for some days past. As she leant
2417 on the sofa, to which she had retreated that she might not be seen, the
2418 pain of her mind had been much beyond that in her head; and the sudden
2419 change which Edmund's kindness had then occasioned, made her hardly know
2420 how to support herself.
2421
2422
2423
2424 CHAPTER VIII
2425
2426 Fanny's rides recommenced the very next day; and as it was a pleasant
2427 fresh-feeling morning, less hot than the weather had lately been, Edmund
2428 trusted that her losses, both of health and pleasure, would be soon made
2429 good. While she was gone Mr. Rushworth arrived, escorting his mother,
2430 who came to be civil and to shew her civility especially, in urging the
2431 execution of the plan for visiting Sotherton, which had been started a
2432 fortnight before, and which, in consequence of her subsequent absence
2433 from home, had since lain dormant. Mrs. Norris and her nieces were all
2434 well pleased with its revival, and an early day was named and agreed
2435 to, provided Mr. Crawford should be disengaged: the young ladies did
2436 not forget that stipulation, and though Mrs. Norris would willingly have
2437 answered for his being so, they would neither authorise the liberty nor
2438 run the risk; and at last, on a hint from Miss Bertram, Mr. Rushworth
2439 discovered that the properest thing to be done was for him to walk down
2440 to the Parsonage directly, and call on Mr. Crawford, and inquire whether
2441 Wednesday would suit him or not.
2442
2443 Before his return Mrs. Grant and Miss Crawford came in. Having been out
2444 some time, and taken a different route to the house, they had not met
2445 him. Comfortable hopes, however, were given that he would find Mr.
2446 Crawford at home. The Sotherton scheme was mentioned of course. It was
2447 hardly possible, indeed, that anything else should be talked of,
2448 for Mrs. Norris was in high spirits about it; and Mrs. Rushworth, a
2449 well-meaning, civil, prosing, pompous woman, who thought nothing of
2450 consequence, but as it related to her own and her son's concerns,
2451 had not yet given over pressing Lady Bertram to be of the party. Lady
2452 Bertram constantly declined it; but her placid manner of refusal made
2453 Mrs. Rushworth still think she wished to come, till Mrs. Norris's more
2454 numerous words and louder tone convinced her of the truth.
2455
2456 "The fatigue would be too much for my sister, a great deal too much, I
2457 assure you, my dear Mrs. Rushworth. Ten miles there, and ten back, you
2458 know. You must excuse my sister on this occasion, and accept of our
2459 two dear girls and myself without her. Sotherton is the only place that
2460 could give her a _wish_ to go so far, but it cannot be, indeed. She will
2461 have a companion in Fanny Price, you know, so it will all do very well;
2462 and as for Edmund, as he is not here to speak for himself, I will answer
2463 for his being most happy to join the party. He can go on horseback, you
2464 know."
2465
2466 Mrs. Rushworth being obliged to yield to Lady Bertram's staying at home,
2467 could only be sorry. "The loss of her ladyship's company would be a
2468 great drawback, and she should have been extremely happy to have seen
2469 the young lady too, Miss Price, who had never been at Sotherton yet, and
2470 it was a pity she should not see the place."
2471
2472 "You are very kind, you are all kindness, my dear madam," cried Mrs.
2473 Norris; "but as to Fanny, she will have opportunities in plenty of
2474 seeing Sotherton. She has time enough before her; and her going now is
2475 quite out of the question. Lady Bertram could not possibly spare her."
2476
2477 "Oh no! I cannot do without Fanny."
2478
2479 Mrs. Rushworth proceeded next, under the conviction that everybody must
2480 be wanting to see Sotherton, to include Miss Crawford in the invitation;
2481 and though Mrs. Grant, who had not been at the trouble of visiting Mrs.
2482 Rushworth, on her coming into the neighbourhood, civilly declined it on
2483 her own account, she was glad to secure any pleasure for her sister;
2484 and Mary, properly pressed and persuaded, was not long in accepting
2485 her share of the civility. Mr. Rushworth came back from the Parsonage
2486 successful; and Edmund made his appearance just in time to learn
2487 what had been settled for Wednesday, to attend Mrs. Rushworth to her
2488 carriage, and walk half-way down the park with the two other ladies.
2489
2490 On his return to the breakfast-room, he found Mrs. Norris trying to
2491 make up her mind as to whether Miss Crawford's being of the party were
2492 desirable or not, or whether her brother's barouche would not be full
2493 without her. The Miss Bertrams laughed at the idea, assuring her that
2494 the barouche would hold four perfectly well, independent of the box, on
2495 which _one_ might go with him.
2496
2497 "But why is it necessary," said Edmund, "that Crawford's carriage, or
2498 his _only_, should be employed? Why is no use to be made of my mother's
2499 chaise? I could not, when the scheme was first mentioned the other
2500 day, understand why a visit from the family were not to be made in the
2501 carriage of the family."
2502
2503 "What!" cried Julia: "go boxed up three in a postchaise in this weather,
2504 when we may have seats in a barouche! No, my dear Edmund, that will not
2505 quite do."
2506
2507 "Besides," said Maria, "I know that Mr. Crawford depends upon taking us.
2508 After what passed at first, he would claim it as a promise."
2509
2510 "And, my dear Edmund," added Mrs. Norris, "taking out _two_ carriages
2511 when _one_ will do, would be trouble for nothing; and, between
2512 ourselves, coachman is not very fond of the roads between this and
2513 Sotherton: he always complains bitterly of the narrow lanes scratching
2514 his carriage, and you know one should not like to have dear Sir Thomas,
2515 when he comes home, find all the varnish scratched off."
2516
2517 "That would not be a very handsome reason for using Mr. Crawford's,"
2518 said Maria; "but the truth is, that Wilcox is a stupid old fellow, and
2519 does not know how to drive. I will answer for it that we shall find no
2520 inconvenience from narrow roads on Wednesday."
2521
2522 "There is no hardship, I suppose, nothing unpleasant," said Edmund, "in
2523 going on the barouche box."
2524
2525 "Unpleasant!" cried Maria: "oh dear! I believe it would be generally
2526 thought the favourite seat. There can be no comparison as to one's view
2527 of the country. Probably Miss Crawford will choose the barouche-box
2528 herself."
2529
2530 "There can be no objection, then, to Fanny's going with you; there can
2531 be no doubt of your having room for her."
2532
2533 "Fanny!" repeated Mrs. Norris; "my dear Edmund, there is no idea of her
2534 going with us. She stays with her aunt. I told Mrs. Rushworth so. She is
2535 not expected."
2536
2537 "You can have no reason, I imagine, madam," said he, addressing his
2538 mother, "for wishing Fanny _not_ to be of the party, but as it relates
2539 to yourself, to your own comfort. If you could do without her, you would
2540 not wish to keep her at home?"
2541
2542 "To be sure not, but I _cannot_ do without her."
2543
2544 "You can, if I stay at home with you, as I mean to do."
2545
2546 There was a general cry out at this. "Yes," he continued, "there is no
2547 necessity for my going, and I mean to stay at home. Fanny has a great
2548 desire to see Sotherton. I know she wishes it very much. She has not
2549 often a gratification of the kind, and I am sure, ma'am, you would be
2550 glad to give her the pleasure now?"
2551
2552 "Oh yes! very glad, if your aunt sees no objection."
2553
2554 Mrs. Norris was very ready with the only objection which could
2555 remain--their having positively assured Mrs. Rushworth that Fanny could
2556 not go, and the very strange appearance there would consequently be in
2557 taking her, which seemed to her a difficulty quite impossible to be got
2558 over. It must have the strangest appearance! It would be something so
2559 very unceremonious, so bordering on disrespect for Mrs. Rushworth, whose
2560 own manners were such a pattern of good-breeding and attention, that she
2561 really did not feel equal to it. Mrs. Norris had no affection for Fanny,
2562 and no wish of procuring her pleasure at any time; but her opposition to
2563 Edmund _now_, arose more from partiality for her own scheme, because it
2564 _was_ her own, than from anything else. She felt that she had arranged
2565 everything extremely well, and that any alteration must be for the
2566 worse. When Edmund, therefore, told her in reply, as he did when she
2567 would give him the hearing, that she need not distress herself on Mrs.
2568 Rushworth's account, because he had taken the opportunity, as he walked
2569 with her through the hall, of mentioning Miss Price as one who would
2570 probably be of the party, and had directly received a very sufficient
2571 invitation for his cousin, Mrs. Norris was too much vexed to submit with
2572 a very good grace, and would only say, "Very well, very well, just as
2573 you chuse, settle it your own way, I am sure I do not care about it."
2574
2575 "It seems very odd," said Maria, "that you should be staying at home
2576 instead of Fanny."
2577
2578 "I am sure she ought to be very much obliged to you," added Julia,
2579 hastily leaving the room as she spoke, from a consciousness that she
2580 ought to offer to stay at home herself.
2581
2582 "Fanny will feel quite as grateful as the occasion requires," was
2583 Edmund's only reply, and the subject dropt.
2584
2585 Fanny's gratitude, when she heard the plan, was, in fact, much greater
2586 than her pleasure. She felt Edmund's kindness with all, and more than
2587 all, the sensibility which he, unsuspicious of her fond attachment,
2588 could be aware of; but that he should forego any enjoyment on her
2589 account gave her pain, and her own satisfaction in seeing Sotherton
2590 would be nothing without him.
2591
2592 The next meeting of the two Mansfield families produced another
2593 alteration in the plan, and one that was admitted with general
2594 approbation. Mrs. Grant offered herself as companion for the day to Lady
2595 Bertram in lieu of her son, and Dr. Grant was to join them at dinner.
2596 Lady Bertram was very well pleased to have it so, and the young ladies
2597 were in spirits again. Even Edmund was very thankful for an arrangement
2598 which restored him to his share of the party; and Mrs. Norris thought it
2599 an excellent plan, and had it at her tongue's end, and was on the point
2600 of proposing it, when Mrs. Grant spoke.
2601
2602 Wednesday was fine, and soon after breakfast the barouche arrived, Mr.
2603 Crawford driving his sisters; and as everybody was ready, there was
2604 nothing to be done but for Mrs. Grant to alight and the others to take
2605 their places. The place of all places, the envied seat, the post of
2606 honour, was unappropriated. To whose happy lot was it to fall? While
2607 each of the Miss Bertrams were meditating how best, and with the most
2608 appearance of obliging the others, to secure it, the matter was settled
2609 by Mrs. Grant's saying, as she stepped from the carriage, "As there are
2610 five of you, it will be better that one should sit with Henry; and as
2611 you were saying lately that you wished you could drive, Julia, I think
2612 this will be a good opportunity for you to take a lesson."
2613
2614 Happy Julia! Unhappy Maria! The former was on the barouche-box in a
2615 moment, the latter took her seat within, in gloom and mortification; and
2616 the carriage drove off amid the good wishes of the two remaining ladies,
2617 and the barking of Pug in his mistress's arms.
2618
2619 Their road was through a pleasant country; and Fanny, whose rides had
2620 never been extensive, was soon beyond her knowledge, and was very happy
2621 in observing all that was new, and admiring all that was pretty. She was
2622 not often invited to join in the conversation of the others, nor did
2623 she desire it. Her own thoughts and reflections were habitually her
2624 best companions; and, in observing the appearance of the country, the
2625 bearings of the roads, the difference of soil, the state of the harvest,
2626 the cottages, the cattle, the children, she found entertainment that
2627 could only have been heightened by having Edmund to speak to of what she
2628 felt. That was the only point of resemblance between her and the lady
2629 who sat by her: in everything but a value for Edmund, Miss Crawford was
2630 very unlike her. She had none of Fanny's delicacy of taste, of mind, of
2631 feeling; she saw Nature, inanimate Nature, with little observation;
2632 her attention was all for men and women, her talents for the light
2633 and lively. In looking back after Edmund, however, when there was any
2634 stretch of road behind them, or when he gained on them in ascending a
2635 considerable hill, they were united, and a "there he is" broke at the
2636 same moment from them both, more than once.
2637
2638 For the first seven miles Miss Bertram had very little real comfort:
2639 her prospect always ended in Mr. Crawford and her sister sitting side by
2640 side, full of conversation and merriment; and to see only his expressive
2641 profile as he turned with a smile to Julia, or to catch the laugh of
2642 the other, was a perpetual source of irritation, which her own sense
2643 of propriety could but just smooth over. When Julia looked back, it was
2644 with a countenance of delight, and whenever she spoke to them, it was in
2645 the highest spirits: "her view of the country was charming, she wished
2646 they could all see it," etc.; but her only offer of exchange was
2647 addressed to Miss Crawford, as they gained the summit of a long hill,
2648 and was not more inviting than this: "Here is a fine burst of country. I
2649 wish you had my seat, but I dare say you will not take it, let me press
2650 you ever so much;" and Miss Crawford could hardly answer before they
2651 were moving again at a good pace.
2652
2653 When they came within the influence of Sotherton associations, it was
2654 better for Miss Bertram, who might be said to have two strings to her
2655 bow. She had Rushworth feelings, and Crawford feelings, and in
2656 the vicinity of Sotherton the former had considerable effect. Mr.
2657 Rushworth's consequence was hers. She could not tell Miss Crawford that
2658 "those woods belonged to Sotherton," she could not carelessly observe
2659 that "she believed that it was now all Mr. Rushworth's property on each
2660 side of the road," without elation of heart; and it was a pleasure
2661 to increase with their approach to the capital freehold mansion,
2662 and ancient manorial residence of the family, with all its rights of
2663 court-leet and court-baron.
2664
2665 "Now we shall have no more rough road, Miss Crawford; our difficulties
2666 are over. The rest of the way is such as it ought to be. Mr. Rushworth
2667 has made it since he succeeded to the estate. Here begins the village.
2668 Those cottages are really a disgrace. The church spire is reckoned
2669 remarkably handsome. I am glad the church is not so close to the great
2670 house as often happens in old places. The annoyance of the bells must be
2671 terrible. There is the parsonage: a tidy-looking house, and I understand
2672 the clergyman and his wife are very decent people. Those are almshouses,
2673 built by some of the family. To the right is the steward's house; he
2674 is a very respectable man. Now we are coming to the lodge-gates; but we
2675 have nearly a mile through the park still. It is not ugly, you see, at
2676 this end; there is some fine timber, but the situation of the house is
2677 dreadful. We go down hill to it for half a mile, and it is a pity, for
2678 it would not be an ill-looking place if it had a better approach."
2679
2680 Miss Crawford was not slow to admire; she pretty well guessed Miss
2681 Bertram's feelings, and made it a point of honour to promote her
2682 enjoyment to the utmost. Mrs. Norris was all delight and volubility; and
2683 even Fanny had something to say in admiration, and might be heard with
2684 complacency. Her eye was eagerly taking in everything within her reach;
2685 and after being at some pains to get a view of the house, and observing
2686 that "it was a sort of building which she could not look at but with
2687 respect," she added, "Now, where is the avenue? The house fronts the
2688 east, I perceive. The avenue, therefore, must be at the back of it. Mr.
2689 Rushworth talked of the west front."
2690
2691 "Yes, it is exactly behind the house; begins at a little distance, and
2692 ascends for half a mile to the extremity of the grounds. You may see
2693 something of it here--something of the more distant trees. It is oak
2694 entirely."
2695
2696 Miss Bertram could now speak with decided information of what she had
2697 known nothing about when Mr. Rushworth had asked her opinion; and her
2698 spirits were in as happy a flutter as vanity and pride could furnish,
2699 when they drove up to the spacious stone steps before the principal
2700 entrance.
2701
2702
2703
2704 CHAPTER IX
2705
2706 Mr. Rushworth was at the door to receive his fair lady; and the whole
2707 party were welcomed by him with due attention. In the drawing-room they
2708 were met with equal cordiality by the mother, and Miss Bertram had all
2709 the distinction with each that she could wish. After the business of
2710 arriving was over, it was first necessary to eat, and the doors were
2711 thrown open to admit them through one or two intermediate rooms into the
2712 appointed dining-parlour, where a collation was prepared with abundance
2713 and elegance. Much was said, and much was ate, and all went well. The
2714 particular object of the day was then considered. How would Mr. Crawford
2715 like, in what manner would he chuse, to take a survey of the grounds?
2716 Mr. Rushworth mentioned his curricle. Mr. Crawford suggested the greater
2717 desirableness of some carriage which might convey more than two. "To be
2718 depriving themselves of the advantage of other eyes and other judgments,
2719 might be an evil even beyond the loss of present pleasure."
2720
2721 Mrs. Rushworth proposed that the chaise should be taken also; but this
2722 was scarcely received as an amendment: the young ladies neither smiled
2723 nor spoke. Her next proposition, of shewing the house to such of them
2724 as had not been there before, was more acceptable, for Miss Bertram
2725 was pleased to have its size displayed, and all were glad to be doing
2726 something.
2727
2728 The whole party rose accordingly, and under Mrs. Rushworth's guidance
2729 were shewn through a number of rooms, all lofty, and many large, and
2730 amply furnished in the taste of fifty years back, with shining floors,
2731 solid mahogany, rich damask, marble, gilding, and carving, each handsome
2732 in its way. Of pictures there were abundance, and some few good, but
2733 the larger part were family portraits, no longer anything to anybody
2734 but Mrs. Rushworth, who had been at great pains to learn all that the
2735 housekeeper could teach, and was now almost equally well qualified to
2736 shew the house. On the present occasion she addressed herself chiefly to
2737 Miss Crawford and Fanny, but there was no comparison in the willingness
2738 of their attention; for Miss Crawford, who had seen scores of great
2739 houses, and cared for none of them, had only the appearance of civilly
2740 listening, while Fanny, to whom everything was almost as interesting
2741 as it was new, attended with unaffected earnestness to all that Mrs.
2742 Rushworth could relate of the family in former times, its rise and
2743 grandeur, regal visits and loyal efforts, delighted to connect anything
2744 with history already known, or warm her imagination with scenes of the
2745 past.
2746
2747 The situation of the house excluded the possibility of much prospect
2748 from any of the rooms; and while Fanny and some of the others were
2749 attending Mrs. Rushworth, Henry Crawford was looking grave and shaking
2750 his head at the windows. Every room on the west front looked across
2751 a lawn to the beginning of the avenue immediately beyond tall iron
2752 palisades and gates.
2753
2754 Having visited many more rooms than could be supposed to be of any
2755 other use than to contribute to the window-tax, and find employment for
2756 housemaids, "Now," said Mrs. Rushworth, "we are coming to the chapel,
2757 which properly we ought to enter from above, and look down upon; but
2758 as we are quite among friends, I will take you in this way, if you will
2759 excuse me."
2760
2761 They entered. Fanny's imagination had prepared her for something
2762 grander than a mere spacious, oblong room, fitted up for the purpose of
2763 devotion: with nothing more striking or more solemn than the profusion
2764 of mahogany, and the crimson velvet cushions appearing over the ledge of
2765 the family gallery above. "I am disappointed," said she, in a low voice,
2766 to Edmund. "This is not my idea of a chapel. There is nothing awful
2767 here, nothing melancholy, nothing grand. Here are no aisles, no arches,
2768 no inscriptions, no banners. No banners, cousin, to be 'blown by the
2769 night wind of heaven.' No signs that a 'Scottish monarch sleeps below.'"
2770
2771 "You forget, Fanny, how lately all this has been built, and for how
2772 confined a purpose, compared with the old chapels of castles and
2773 monasteries. It was only for the private use of the family. They have
2774 been buried, I suppose, in the parish church. _There_ you must look for
2775 the banners and the achievements."
2776
2777 "It was foolish of me not to think of all that; but I am disappointed."
2778
2779 Mrs. Rushworth began her relation. "This chapel was fitted up as you see
2780 it, in James the Second's time. Before that period, as I understand,
2781 the pews were only wainscot; and there is some reason to think that
2782 the linings and cushions of the pulpit and family seat were only purple
2783 cloth; but this is not quite certain. It is a handsome chapel, and was
2784 formerly in constant use both morning and evening. Prayers were always
2785 read in it by the domestic chaplain, within the memory of many; but the
2786 late Mr. Rushworth left it off."
2787
2788 "Every generation has its improvements," said Miss Crawford, with a
2789 smile, to Edmund.
2790
2791 Mrs. Rushworth was gone to repeat her lesson to Mr. Crawford; and
2792 Edmund, Fanny, and Miss Crawford remained in a cluster together.
2793
2794 "It is a pity," cried Fanny, "that the custom should have been
2795 discontinued. It was a valuable part of former times. There is something
2796 in a chapel and chaplain so much in character with a great house,
2797 with one's ideas of what such a household should be! A whole family
2798 assembling regularly for the purpose of prayer is fine!"
2799
2800 "Very fine indeed," said Miss Crawford, laughing. "It must do the heads
2801 of the family a great deal of good to force all the poor housemaids and
2802 footmen to leave business and pleasure, and say their prayers here twice
2803 a day, while they are inventing excuses themselves for staying away."
2804
2805 "_That_ is hardly Fanny's idea of a family assembling," said Edmund. "If
2806 the master and mistress do _not_ attend themselves, there must be more
2807 harm than good in the custom."
2808
2809 "At any rate, it is safer to leave people to their own devices on such
2810 subjects. Everybody likes to go their own way--to chuse their own time
2811 and manner of devotion. The obligation of attendance, the formality, the
2812 restraint, the length of time--altogether it is a formidable thing, and
2813 what nobody likes; and if the good people who used to kneel and gape in
2814 that gallery could have foreseen that the time would ever come when men
2815 and women might lie another ten minutes in bed, when they woke with a
2816 headache, without danger of reprobation, because chapel was missed,
2817 they would have jumped with joy and envy. Cannot you imagine with what
2818 unwilling feelings the former belles of the house of Rushworth did
2819 many a time repair to this chapel? The young Mrs. Eleanors and Mrs.
2820 Bridgets--starched up into seeming piety, but with heads full of
2821 something very different--especially if the poor chaplain were not worth
2822 looking at--and, in those days, I fancy parsons were very inferior even
2823 to what they are now."
2824
2825 For a few moments she was unanswered. Fanny coloured and looked
2826 at Edmund, but felt too angry for speech; and he needed a little
2827 recollection before he could say, "Your lively mind can hardly be
2828 serious even on serious subjects. You have given us an amusing sketch,
2829 and human nature cannot say it was not so. We must all feel _at_ _times_
2830 the difficulty of fixing our thoughts as we could wish; but if you are
2831 supposing it a frequent thing, that is to say, a weakness grown into a
2832 habit from neglect, what could be expected from the _private_ devotions
2833 of such persons? Do you think the minds which are suffered, which
2834 are indulged in wanderings in a chapel, would be more collected in a
2835 closet?"
2836
2837 "Yes, very likely. They would have two chances at least in their favour.
2838 There would be less to distract the attention from without, and it would
2839 not be tried so long."
2840
2841 "The mind which does not struggle against itself under _one_
2842 circumstance, would find objects to distract it in the _other_, I
2843 believe; and the influence of the place and of example may often rouse
2844 better feelings than are begun with. The greater length of the service,
2845 however, I admit to be sometimes too hard a stretch upon the mind. One
2846 wishes it were not so; but I have not yet left Oxford long enough to
2847 forget what chapel prayers are."
2848
2849 While this was passing, the rest of the party being scattered about the
2850 chapel, Julia called Mr. Crawford's attention to her sister, by saying,
2851 "Do look at Mr. Rushworth and Maria, standing side by side, exactly as
2852 if the ceremony were going to be performed. Have not they completely the
2853 air of it?"
2854
2855 Mr. Crawford smiled his acquiescence, and stepping forward to Maria,
2856 said, in a voice which she only could hear, "I do not like to see Miss
2857 Bertram so near the altar."
2858
2859 Starting, the lady instinctively moved a step or two, but recovering
2860 herself in a moment, affected to laugh, and asked him, in a tone not
2861 much louder, "If he would give her away?"
2862
2863 "I am afraid I should do it very awkwardly," was his reply, with a look
2864 of meaning.
2865
2866 Julia, joining them at the moment, carried on the joke.
2867
2868 "Upon my word, it is really a pity that it should not take place
2869 directly, if we had but a proper licence, for here we are altogether,
2870 and nothing in the world could be more snug and pleasant." And she
2871 talked and laughed about it with so little caution as to catch the
2872 comprehension of Mr. Rushworth and his mother, and expose her sister to
2873 the whispered gallantries of her lover, while Mrs. Rushworth spoke
2874 with proper smiles and dignity of its being a most happy event to her
2875 whenever it took place.
2876
2877 "If Edmund were but in orders!" cried Julia, and running to where he
2878 stood with Miss Crawford and Fanny: "My dear Edmund, if you were but in
2879 orders now, you might perform the ceremony directly. How unlucky that
2880 you are not ordained; Mr. Rushworth and Maria are quite ready."
2881
2882 Miss Crawford's countenance, as Julia spoke, might have amused a
2883 disinterested observer. She looked almost aghast under the new idea she
2884 was receiving. Fanny pitied her. "How distressed she will be at what she
2885 said just now," passed across her mind.
2886
2887 "Ordained!" said Miss Crawford; "what, are you to be a clergyman?"
2888
2889 "Yes; I shall take orders soon after my father's return--probably at
2890 Christmas."
2891
2892 Miss Crawford, rallying her spirits, and recovering her complexion,
2893 replied only, "If I had known this before, I would have spoken of the
2894 cloth with more respect," and turned the subject.
2895
2896 The chapel was soon afterwards left to the silence and stillness
2897 which reigned in it, with few interruptions, throughout the year. Miss
2898 Bertram, displeased with her sister, led the way, and all seemed to feel
2899 that they had been there long enough.
2900
2901 The lower part of the house had been now entirely shewn, and Mrs.
2902 Rushworth, never weary in the cause, would have proceeded towards the
2903 principal staircase, and taken them through all the rooms above, if her
2904 son had not interposed with a doubt of there being time enough. "For
2905 if," said he, with the sort of self-evident proposition which many a
2906 clearer head does not always avoid, "we are _too_ long going over the
2907 house, we shall not have time for what is to be done out of doors. It is
2908 past two, and we are to dine at five."
2909
2910 Mrs. Rushworth submitted; and the question of surveying the grounds,
2911 with the who and the how, was likely to be more fully agitated, and Mrs.
2912 Norris was beginning to arrange by what junction of carriages and horses
2913 most could be done, when the young people, meeting with an outward door,
2914 temptingly open on a flight of steps which led immediately to turf and
2915 shrubs, and all the sweets of pleasure-grounds, as by one impulse, one
2916 wish for air and liberty, all walked out.
2917
2918 "Suppose we turn down here for the present," said Mrs. Rushworth,
2919 civilly taking the hint and following them. "Here are the greatest
2920 number of our plants, and here are the curious pheasants."
2921
2922 "Query," said Mr. Crawford, looking round him, "whether we may not find
2923 something to employ us here before we go farther? I see walls of great
2924 promise. Mr. Rushworth, shall we summon a council on this lawn?"
2925
2926 "James," said Mrs. Rushworth to her son, "I believe the wilderness
2927 will be new to all the party. The Miss Bertrams have never seen the
2928 wilderness yet."
2929
2930 No objection was made, but for some time there seemed no inclination to
2931 move in any plan, or to any distance. All were attracted at first by the
2932 plants or the pheasants, and all dispersed about in happy independence.
2933 Mr. Crawford was the first to move forward to examine the capabilities
2934 of that end of the house. The lawn, bounded on each side by a high wall,
2935 contained beyond the first planted area a bowling-green, and beyond
2936 the bowling-green a long terrace walk, backed by iron palisades, and
2937 commanding a view over them into the tops of the trees of the wilderness
2938 immediately adjoining. It was a good spot for fault-finding. Mr.
2939 Crawford was soon followed by Miss Bertram and Mr. Rushworth; and when,
2940 after a little time, the others began to form into parties, these three
2941 were found in busy consultation on the terrace by Edmund, Miss Crawford,
2942 and Fanny, who seemed as naturally to unite, and who, after a short
2943 participation of their regrets and difficulties, left them and walked
2944 on. The remaining three, Mrs. Rushworth, Mrs. Norris, and Julia, were
2945 still far behind; for Julia, whose happy star no longer prevailed,
2946 was obliged to keep by the side of Mrs. Rushworth, and restrain her
2947 impatient feet to that lady's slow pace, while her aunt, having fallen
2948 in with the housekeeper, who was come out to feed the pheasants, was
2949 lingering behind in gossip with her. Poor Julia, the only one out of
2950 the nine not tolerably satisfied with their lot, was now in a state of
2951 complete penance, and as different from the Julia of the barouche-box as
2952 could well be imagined. The politeness which she had been brought up to
2953 practise as a duty made it impossible for her to escape; while the
2954 want of that higher species of self-command, that just consideration of
2955 others, that knowledge of her own heart, that principle of right, which
2956 had not formed any essential part of her education, made her miserable
2957 under it.
2958
2959 "This is insufferably hot," said Miss Crawford, when they had taken one
2960 turn on the terrace, and were drawing a second time to the door in the
2961 middle which opened to the wilderness. "Shall any of us object to being
2962 comfortable? Here is a nice little wood, if one can but get into it.
2963 What happiness if the door should not be locked! but of course it is;
2964 for in these great places the gardeners are the only people who can go
2965 where they like."
2966
2967 The door, however, proved not to be locked, and they were all agreed in
2968 turning joyfully through it, and leaving the unmitigated glare of day
2969 behind. A considerable flight of steps landed them in the wilderness,
2970 which was a planted wood of about two acres, and though chiefly of
2971 larch and laurel, and beech cut down, and though laid out with too much
2972 regularity, was darkness and shade, and natural beauty, compared with
2973 the bowling-green and the terrace. They all felt the refreshment of it,
2974 and for some time could only walk and admire. At length, after a short
2975 pause, Miss Crawford began with, "So you are to be a clergyman, Mr.
2976 Bertram. This is rather a surprise to me."
2977
2978 "Why should it surprise you? You must suppose me designed for some
2979 profession, and might perceive that I am neither a lawyer, nor a
2980 soldier, nor a sailor."
2981
2982 "Very true; but, in short, it had not occurred to me. And you know there
2983 is generally an uncle or a grandfather to leave a fortune to the second
2984 son."
2985
2986 "A very praiseworthy practice," said Edmund, "but not quite universal.
2987 I am one of the exceptions, and _being_ one, must do something for
2988 myself."
2989
2990 "But why are you to be a clergyman? I thought _that_ was always the lot
2991 of the youngest, where there were many to chuse before him."
2992
2993 "Do you think the church itself never chosen, then?"
2994
2995 "_Never_ is a black word. But yes, in the _never_ of conversation, which
2996 means _not_ _very_ _often_, I do think it. For what is to be done in the
2997 church? Men love to distinguish themselves, and in either of the other
2998 lines distinction may be gained, but not in the church. A clergyman is
2999 nothing."
3000
3001 "The _nothing_ of conversation has its gradations, I hope, as well as
3002 the _never_. A clergyman cannot be high in state or fashion. He must
3003 not head mobs, or set the ton in dress. But I cannot call that situation
3004 nothing which has the charge of all that is of the first importance
3005 to mankind, individually or collectively considered, temporally and
3006 eternally, which has the guardianship of religion and morals, and
3007 consequently of the manners which result from their influence. No one
3008 here can call the _office_ nothing. If the man who holds it is so, it
3009 is by the neglect of his duty, by foregoing its just importance, and
3010 stepping out of his place to appear what he ought not to appear."
3011
3012 "_You_ assign greater consequence to the clergyman than one has been
3013 used to hear given, or than I can quite comprehend. One does not see
3014 much of this influence and importance in society, and how can it be
3015 acquired where they are so seldom seen themselves? How can two sermons a
3016 week, even supposing them worth hearing, supposing the preacher to have
3017 the sense to prefer Blair's to his own, do all that you speak of? govern
3018 the conduct and fashion the manners of a large congregation for the rest
3019 of the week? One scarcely sees a clergyman out of his pulpit."
3020
3021 "_You_ are speaking of London, _I_ am speaking of the nation at large."
3022
3023 "The metropolis, I imagine, is a pretty fair sample of the rest."
3024
3025 "Not, I should hope, of the proportion of virtue to vice throughout the
3026 kingdom. We do not look in great cities for our best morality. It is not
3027 there that respectable people of any denomination can do most good; and
3028 it certainly is not there that the influence of the clergy can be most
3029 felt. A fine preacher is followed and admired; but it is not in fine
3030 preaching only that a good clergyman will be useful in his parish and
3031 his neighbourhood, where the parish and neighbourhood are of a size
3032 capable of knowing his private character, and observing his general
3033 conduct, which in London can rarely be the case. The clergy are lost
3034 there in the crowds of their parishioners. They are known to the largest
3035 part only as preachers. And with regard to their influencing public
3036 manners, Miss Crawford must not misunderstand me, or suppose I mean to
3037 call them the arbiters of good-breeding, the regulators of refinement
3038 and courtesy, the masters of the ceremonies of life. The _manners_ I
3039 speak of might rather be called _conduct_, perhaps, the result of good
3040 principles; the effect, in short, of those doctrines which it is their
3041 duty to teach and recommend; and it will, I believe, be everywhere
3042 found, that as the clergy are, or are not what they ought to be, so are
3043 the rest of the nation."
3044
3045 "Certainly," said Fanny, with gentle earnestness.
3046
3047 "There," cried Miss Crawford, "you have quite convinced Miss Price
3048 already."
3049
3050 "I wish I could convince Miss Crawford too."
3051
3052 "I do not think you ever will," said she, with an arch smile; "I am just
3053 as much surprised now as I was at first that you should intend to take
3054 orders. You really are fit for something better. Come, do change your
3055 mind. It is not too late. Go into the law."
3056
3057 "Go into the law! With as much ease as I was told to go into this
3058 wilderness."
3059
3060 "Now you are going to say something about law being the worst wilderness
3061 of the two, but I forestall you; remember, I have forestalled you."
3062
3063 "You need not hurry when the object is only to prevent my saying a
3064 _bon_ _mot_, for there is not the least wit in my nature. I am a very
3065 matter-of-fact, plain-spoken being, and may blunder on the borders of a
3066 repartee for half an hour together without striking it out."
3067
3068 A general silence succeeded. Each was thoughtful. Fanny made the first
3069 interruption by saying, "I wonder that I should be tired with only
3070 walking in this sweet wood; but the next time we come to a seat, if it
3071 is not disagreeable to you, I should be glad to sit down for a little
3072 while."
3073
3074 "My dear Fanny," cried Edmund, immediately drawing her arm within his,
3075 "how thoughtless I have been! I hope you are not very tired. Perhaps,"
3076 turning to Miss Crawford, "my other companion may do me the honour of
3077 taking an arm."
3078
3079 "Thank you, but I am not at all tired." She took it, however, as she
3080 spoke, and the gratification of having her do so, of feeling such a
3081 connexion for the first time, made him a little forgetful of Fanny.
3082 "You scarcely touch me," said he. "You do not make me of any use. What a
3083 difference in the weight of a woman's arm from that of a man! At Oxford
3084 I have been a good deal used to have a man lean on me for the length of
3085 a street, and you are only a fly in the comparison."
3086
3087 "I am really not tired, which I almost wonder at; for we must have
3088 walked at least a mile in this wood. Do not you think we have?"
3089
3090 "Not half a mile," was his sturdy answer; for he was not yet so much in
3091 love as to measure distance, or reckon time, with feminine lawlessness.
3092
3093 "Oh! you do not consider how much we have wound about. We have taken
3094 such a very serpentine course, and the wood itself must be half a mile
3095 long in a straight line, for we have never seen the end of it yet since
3096 we left the first great path."
3097
3098 "But if you remember, before we left that first great path, we saw
3099 directly to the end of it. We looked down the whole vista, and saw it
3100 closed by iron gates, and it could not have been more than a furlong in
3101 length."
3102
3103 "Oh! I know nothing of your furlongs, but I am sure it is a very long
3104 wood, and that we have been winding in and out ever since we came into
3105 it; and therefore, when I say that we have walked a mile in it, I must
3106 speak within compass."
3107
3108 "We have been exactly a quarter of an hour here," said Edmund, taking
3109 out his watch. "Do you think we are walking four miles an hour?"
3110
3111 "Oh! do not attack me with your watch. A watch is always too fast or too
3112 slow. I cannot be dictated to by a watch."
3113
3114 A few steps farther brought them out at the bottom of the very walk they
3115 had been talking of; and standing back, well shaded and sheltered, and
3116 looking over a ha-ha into the park, was a comfortable-sized bench, on
3117 which they all sat down.
3118
3119 "I am afraid you are very tired, Fanny," said Edmund, observing her;
3120 "why would not you speak sooner? This will be a bad day's amusement for
3121 you if you are to be knocked up. Every sort of exercise fatigues her so
3122 soon, Miss Crawford, except riding."
3123
3124 "How abominable in you, then, to let me engross her horse as I did all
3125 last week! I am ashamed of you and of myself, but it shall never happen
3126 again."
3127
3128 "_Your_ attentiveness and consideration makes me more sensible of my own
3129 neglect. Fanny's interest seems in safer hands with you than with me."
3130
3131 "That she should be tired now, however, gives me no surprise; for there
3132 is nothing in the course of one's duties so fatiguing as what we have
3133 been doing this morning: seeing a great house, dawdling from one room to
3134 another, straining one's eyes and one's attention, hearing what one does
3135 not understand, admiring what one does not care for. It is generally
3136 allowed to be the greatest bore in the world, and Miss Price has found
3137 it so, though she did not know it."
3138
3139 "I shall soon be rested," said Fanny; "to sit in the shade on a fine
3140 day, and look upon verdure, is the most perfect refreshment."
3141
3142 After sitting a little while Miss Crawford was up again. "I must move,"
3143 said she; "resting fatigues me. I have looked across the ha-ha till I
3144 am weary. I must go and look through that iron gate at the same view,
3145 without being able to see it so well."
3146
3147 Edmund left the seat likewise. "Now, Miss Crawford, if you will look up
3148 the walk, you will convince yourself that it cannot be half a mile long,
3149 or half half a mile."
3150
3151 "It is an immense distance," said she; "I see _that_ with a glance."
3152
3153 He still reasoned with her, but in vain. She would not calculate, she
3154 would not compare. She would only smile and assert. The greatest degree
3155 of rational consistency could not have been more engaging, and they
3156 talked with mutual satisfaction. At last it was agreed that they should
3157 endeavour to determine the dimensions of the wood by walking a little
3158 more about it. They would go to one end of it, in the line they were
3159 then in--for there was a straight green walk along the bottom by
3160 the side of the ha-ha--and perhaps turn a little way in some other
3161 direction, if it seemed likely to assist them, and be back in a few
3162 minutes. Fanny said she was rested, and would have moved too, but this
3163 was not suffered. Edmund urged her remaining where she was with an
3164 earnestness which she could not resist, and she was left on the bench to
3165 think with pleasure of her cousin's care, but with great regret that she
3166 was not stronger. She watched them till they had turned the corner, and
3167 listened till all sound of them had ceased.
3168
3169
3170
3171 CHAPTER X
3172
3173 A quarter of an hour, twenty minutes, passed away, and Fanny was still
3174 thinking of Edmund, Miss Crawford, and herself, without interruption
3175 from any one. She began to be surprised at being left so long, and to
3176 listen with an anxious desire of hearing their steps and their voices
3177 again. She listened, and at length she heard; she heard voices and feet
3178 approaching; but she had just satisfied herself that it was not those
3179 she wanted, when Miss Bertram, Mr. Rushworth, and Mr. Crawford issued
3180 from the same path which she had trod herself, and were before her.
3181
3182 "Miss Price all alone" and "My dear Fanny, how comes this?" were the
3183 first salutations. She told her story. "Poor dear Fanny," cried her
3184 cousin, "how ill you have been used by them! You had better have staid
3185 with us."
3186
3187 Then seating herself with a gentleman on each side, she resumed
3188 the conversation which had engaged them before, and discussed the
3189 possibility of improvements with much animation. Nothing was fixed
3190 on; but Henry Crawford was full of ideas and projects, and, generally
3191 speaking, whatever he proposed was immediately approved, first by her,
3192 and then by Mr. Rushworth, whose principal business seemed to be to
3193 hear the others, and who scarcely risked an original thought of his own
3194 beyond a wish that they had seen his friend Smith's place.
3195
3196 After some minutes spent in this way, Miss Bertram, observing the iron
3197 gate, expressed a wish of passing through it into the park, that their
3198 views and their plans might be more comprehensive. It was the very thing
3199 of all others to be wished, it was the best, it was the only way of
3200 proceeding with any advantage, in Henry Crawford's opinion; and he
3201 directly saw a knoll not half a mile off, which would give them exactly
3202 the requisite command of the house. Go therefore they must to that
3203 knoll, and through that gate; but the gate was locked. Mr. Rushworth
3204 wished he had brought the key; he had been very near thinking whether he
3205 should not bring the key; he was determined he would never come without
3206 the key again; but still this did not remove the present evil. They
3207 could not get through; and as Miss Bertram's inclination for so doing
3208 did by no means lessen, it ended in Mr. Rushworth's declaring outright
3209 that he would go and fetch the key. He set off accordingly.
3210
3211 "It is undoubtedly the best thing we can do now, as we are so far from
3212 the house already," said Mr. Crawford, when he was gone.
3213
3214 "Yes, there is nothing else to be done. But now, sincerely, do not you
3215 find the place altogether worse than you expected?"
3216
3217 "No, indeed, far otherwise. I find it better, grander, more complete in
3218 its style, though that style may not be the best. And to tell you the
3219 truth," speaking rather lower, "I do not think that _I_ shall ever see
3220 Sotherton again with so much pleasure as I do now. Another summer will
3221 hardly improve it to me."
3222
3223 After a moment's embarrassment the lady replied, "You are too much a
3224 man of the world not to see with the eyes of the world. If other people
3225 think Sotherton improved, I have no doubt that you will."
3226
3227 "I am afraid I am not quite so much the man of the world as might be
3228 good for me in some points. My feelings are not quite so evanescent, nor
3229 my memory of the past under such easy dominion as one finds to be the
3230 case with men of the world."
3231
3232 This was followed by a short silence. Miss Bertram began again. "You
3233 seemed to enjoy your drive here very much this morning. I was glad to
3234 see you so well entertained. You and Julia were laughing the whole way."
3235
3236 "Were we? Yes, I believe we were; but I have not the least recollection
3237 at what. Oh! I believe I was relating to her some ridiculous stories of
3238 an old Irish groom of my uncle's. Your sister loves to laugh."
3239
3240 "You think her more light-hearted than I am?"
3241
3242 "More easily amused," he replied; "consequently, you know," smiling,
3243 "better company. I could not have hoped to entertain you with Irish
3244 anecdotes during a ten miles' drive."
3245
3246 "Naturally, I believe, I am as lively as Julia, but I have more to think
3247 of now."
3248
3249 "You have, undoubtedly; and there are situations in which very high
3250 spirits would denote insensibility. Your prospects, however, are too
3251 fair to justify want of spirits. You have a very smiling scene before
3252 you."
3253
3254 "Do you mean literally or figuratively? Literally, I conclude. Yes,
3255 certainly, the sun shines, and the park looks very cheerful. But
3256 unluckily that iron gate, that ha-ha, give me a feeling of restraint and
3257 hardship. 'I cannot get out,' as the starling said." As she spoke, and
3258 it was with expression, she walked to the gate: he followed her. "Mr.
3259 Rushworth is so long fetching this key!"
3260
3261 "And for the world you would not get out without the key and without Mr.
3262 Rushworth's authority and protection, or I think you might with little
3263 difficulty pass round the edge of the gate, here, with my assistance;
3264 I think it might be done, if you really wished to be more at large, and
3265 could allow yourself to think it not prohibited."
3266
3267 "Prohibited! nonsense! I certainly can get out that way, and I will.
3268 Mr. Rushworth will be here in a moment, you know; we shall not be out of
3269 sight."
3270
3271 "Or if we are, Miss Price will be so good as to tell him that he will
3272 find us near that knoll: the grove of oak on the knoll."
3273
3274 Fanny, feeling all this to be wrong, could not help making an effort to
3275 prevent it. "You will hurt yourself, Miss Bertram," she cried; "you will
3276 certainly hurt yourself against those spikes; you will tear your gown;
3277 you will be in danger of slipping into the ha-ha. You had better not
3278 go."
3279
3280 Her cousin was safe on the other side while these words were spoken,
3281 and, smiling with all the good-humour of success, she said, "Thank you,
3282 my dear Fanny, but I and my gown are alive and well, and so good-bye."
3283
3284 Fanny was again left to her solitude, and with no increase of pleasant
3285 feelings, for she was sorry for almost all that she had seen and heard,
3286 astonished at Miss Bertram, and angry with Mr. Crawford. By taking
3287 a circuitous route, and, as it appeared to her, very unreasonable
3288 direction to the knoll, they were soon beyond her eye; and for some
3289 minutes longer she remained without sight or sound of any companion.
3290 She seemed to have the little wood all to herself. She could almost
3291 have thought that Edmund and Miss Crawford had left it, but that it was
3292 impossible for Edmund to forget her so entirely.
3293
3294 She was again roused from disagreeable musings by sudden footsteps:
3295 somebody was coming at a quick pace down the principal walk. She
3296 expected Mr. Rushworth, but it was Julia, who, hot and out of breath,
3297 and with a look of disappointment, cried out on seeing her, "Heyday!
3298 Where are the others? I thought Maria and Mr. Crawford were with you."
3299
3300 Fanny explained.
3301
3302 "A pretty trick, upon my word! I cannot see them anywhere," looking
3303 eagerly into the park. "But they cannot be very far off, and I think I
3304 am equal to as much as Maria, even without help."
3305
3306 "But, Julia, Mr. Rushworth will be here in a moment with the key. Do
3307 wait for Mr. Rushworth."
3308
3309 "Not I, indeed. I have had enough of the family for one morning. Why,
3310 child, I have but this moment escaped from his horrible mother. Such a
3311 penance as I have been enduring, while you were sitting here so composed
3312 and so happy! It might have been as well, perhaps, if you had been in my
3313 place, but you always contrive to keep out of these scrapes."
3314
3315 This was a most unjust reflection, but Fanny could allow for it, and let
3316 it pass: Julia was vexed, and her temper was hasty; but she felt that it
3317 would not last, and therefore, taking no notice, only asked her if she
3318 had not seen Mr. Rushworth.
3319
3320 "Yes, yes, we saw him. He was posting away as if upon life and death,
3321 and could but just spare time to tell us his errand, and where you all
3322 were."
3323
3324 "It is a pity he should have so much trouble for nothing."
3325
3326 "_That_ is Miss Maria's concern. I am not obliged to punish myself for
3327 _her_ sins. The mother I could not avoid, as long as my tiresome aunt
3328 was dancing about with the housekeeper, but the son I _can_ get away
3329 from."
3330
3331 And she immediately scrambled across the fence, and walked away, not
3332 attending to Fanny's last question of whether she had seen anything of
3333 Miss Crawford and Edmund. The sort of dread in which Fanny now sat of
3334 seeing Mr. Rushworth prevented her thinking so much of their continued
3335 absence, however, as she might have done. She felt that he had been
3336 very ill-used, and was quite unhappy in having to communicate what had
3337 passed. He joined her within five minutes after Julia's exit; and
3338 though she made the best of the story, he was evidently mortified and
3339 displeased in no common degree. At first he scarcely said anything; his
3340 looks only expressed his extreme surprise and vexation, and he walked to
3341 the gate and stood there, without seeming to know what to do.
3342
3343 "They desired me to stay--my cousin Maria charged me to say that you
3344 would find them at that knoll, or thereabouts."
3345
3346 "I do not believe I shall go any farther," said he sullenly; "I see
3347 nothing of them. By the time I get to the knoll they may be gone
3348 somewhere else. I have had walking enough."
3349
3350 And he sat down with a most gloomy countenance by Fanny.
3351
3352 "I am very sorry," said she; "it is very unlucky." And she longed to be
3353 able to say something more to the purpose.
3354
3355 After an interval of silence, "I think they might as well have staid for
3356 me," said he.
3357
3358 "Miss Bertram thought you would follow her."
3359
3360 "I should not have had to follow her if she had staid."
3361
3362 This could not be denied, and Fanny was silenced. After another pause,
3363 he went on--"Pray, Miss Price, are you such a great admirer of this Mr.
3364 Crawford as some people are? For my part, I can see nothing in him."
3365
3366 "I do not think him at all handsome."
3367
3368 "Handsome! Nobody can call such an undersized man handsome. He is not
3369 five foot nine. I should not wonder if he is not more than five foot
3370 eight. I think he is an ill-looking fellow. In my opinion, these
3371 Crawfords are no addition at all. We did very well without them."
3372
3373 A small sigh escaped Fanny here, and she did not know how to contradict
3374 him.
3375
3376 "If I had made any difficulty about fetching the key, there might have
3377 been some excuse, but I went the very moment she said she wanted it."
3378
3379 "Nothing could be more obliging than your manner, I am sure, and I dare
3380 say you walked as fast as you could; but still it is some distance, you
3381 know, from this spot to the house, quite into the house; and when people
3382 are waiting, they are bad judges of time, and every half minute seems
3383 like five."
3384
3385 He got up and walked to the gate again, and "wished he had had the key
3386 about him at the time." Fanny thought she discerned in his standing
3387 there an indication of relenting, which encouraged her to another
3388 attempt, and she said, therefore, "It is a pity you should not join
3389 them. They expected to have a better view of the house from that part
3390 of the park, and will be thinking how it may be improved; and nothing of
3391 that sort, you know, can be settled without you."
3392
3393 She found herself more successful in sending away than in retaining a
3394 companion. Mr. Rushworth was worked on. "Well," said he, "if you
3395 really think I had better go: it would be foolish to bring the key
3396 for nothing." And letting himself out, he walked off without farther
3397 ceremony.
3398
3399 Fanny's thoughts were now all engrossed by the two who had left her so
3400 long ago, and getting quite impatient, she resolved to go in search
3401 of them. She followed their steps along the bottom walk, and had just
3402 turned up into another, when the voice and the laugh of Miss Crawford
3403 once more caught her ear; the sound approached, and a few more windings
3404 brought them before her. They were just returned into the wilderness
3405 from the park, to which a sidegate, not fastened, had tempted them very
3406 soon after their leaving her, and they had been across a portion of the
3407 park into the very avenue which Fanny had been hoping the whole morning
3408 to reach at last, and had been sitting down under one of the trees. This
3409 was their history. It was evident that they had been spending their time
3410 pleasantly, and were not aware of the length of their absence. Fanny's
3411 best consolation was in being assured that Edmund had wished for her
3412 very much, and that he should certainly have come back for her, had she
3413 not been tired already; but this was not quite sufficient to do away
3414 with the pain of having been left a whole hour, when he had talked of
3415 only a few minutes, nor to banish the sort of curiosity she felt to know
3416 what they had been conversing about all that time; and the result of
3417 the whole was to her disappointment and depression, as they prepared by
3418 general agreement to return to the house.
3419
3420 On reaching the bottom of the steps to the terrace, Mrs. Rushworth
3421 and Mrs. Norris presented themselves at the top, just ready for the
3422 wilderness, at the end of an hour and a half from their leaving the
3423 house. Mrs. Norris had been too well employed to move faster. Whatever
3424 cross-accidents had occurred to intercept the pleasures of her nieces,
3425 she had found a morning of complete enjoyment; for the housekeeper,
3426 after a great many courtesies on the subject of pheasants, had taken her
3427 to the dairy, told her all about their cows, and given her the receipt
3428 for a famous cream cheese; and since Julia's leaving them they had
3429 been met by the gardener, with whom she had made a most satisfactory
3430 acquaintance, for she had set him right as to his grandson's illness,
3431 convinced him that it was an ague, and promised him a charm for it; and
3432 he, in return, had shewn her all his choicest nursery of plants, and
3433 actually presented her with a very curious specimen of heath.
3434
3435 On this _rencontre_ they all returned to the house together, there
3436 to lounge away the time as they could with sofas, and chit-chat, and
3437 Quarterly Reviews, till the return of the others, and the arrival of
3438 dinner. It was late before the Miss Bertrams and the two gentlemen came
3439 in, and their ramble did not appear to have been more than partially
3440 agreeable, or at all productive of anything useful with regard to the
3441 object of the day. By their own accounts they had been all walking after
3442 each other, and the junction which had taken place at last seemed, to
3443 Fanny's observation, to have been as much too late for re-establishing
3444 harmony, as it confessedly had been for determining on any alteration.
3445 She felt, as she looked at Julia and Mr. Rushworth, that hers was not
3446 the only dissatisfied bosom amongst them: there was gloom on the face of
3447 each. Mr. Crawford and Miss Bertram were much more gay, and she thought
3448 that he was taking particular pains, during dinner, to do away any
3449 little resentment of the other two, and restore general good-humour.
3450
3451 Dinner was soon followed by tea and coffee, a ten miles' drive home
3452 allowed no waste of hours; and from the time of their sitting down to
3453 table, it was a quick succession of busy nothings till the carriage came
3454 to the door, and Mrs. Norris, having fidgeted about, and obtained a
3455 few pheasants' eggs and a cream cheese from the housekeeper, and made
3456 abundance of civil speeches to Mrs. Rushworth, was ready to lead the
3457 way. At the same moment Mr. Crawford, approaching Julia, said, "I hope I
3458 am not to lose my companion, unless she is afraid of the evening air
3459 in so exposed a seat." The request had not been foreseen, but was very
3460 graciously received, and Julia's day was likely to end almost as well as
3461 it began. Miss Bertram had made up her mind to something different, and
3462 was a little disappointed; but her conviction of being really the
3463 one preferred comforted her under it, and enabled her to receive Mr.
3464 Rushworth's parting attentions as she ought. He was certainly better
3465 pleased to hand her into the barouche than to assist her in ascending
3466 the box, and his complacency seemed confirmed by the arrangement.
3467
3468 "Well, Fanny, this has been a fine day for you, upon my word," said
3469 Mrs. Norris, as they drove through the park. "Nothing but pleasure from
3470 beginning to end! I am sure you ought to be very much obliged to your
3471 aunt Bertram and me for contriving to let you go. A pretty good day's
3472 amusement you have had!"
3473
3474 Maria was just discontented enough to say directly, "I think _you_ have
3475 done pretty well yourself, ma'am. Your lap seems full of good things,
3476 and here is a basket of something between us which has been knocking my
3477 elbow unmercifully."
3478
3479 "My dear, it is only a beautiful little heath, which that nice old
3480 gardener would make me take; but if it is in your way, I will have it in
3481 my lap directly. There, Fanny, you shall carry that parcel for me; take
3482 great care of it: do not let it fall; it is a cream cheese, just like
3483 the excellent one we had at dinner. Nothing would satisfy that good old
3484 Mrs. Whitaker, but my taking one of the cheeses. I stood out as long
3485 as I could, till the tears almost came into her eyes, and I knew it was
3486 just the sort that my sister would be delighted with. That Mrs. Whitaker
3487 is a treasure! She was quite shocked when I asked her whether wine was
3488 allowed at the second table, and she has turned away two housemaids for
3489 wearing white gowns. Take care of the cheese, Fanny. Now I can manage
3490 the other parcel and the basket very well."
3491
3492 "What else have you been spunging?" said Maria, half-pleased that
3493 Sotherton should be so complimented.
3494
3495 "Spunging, my dear! It is nothing but four of those beautiful pheasants'
3496 eggs, which Mrs. Whitaker would quite force upon me: she would not take
3497 a denial. She said it must be such an amusement to me, as she understood
3498 I lived quite alone, to have a few living creatures of that sort; and
3499 so to be sure it will. I shall get the dairymaid to set them under the
3500 first spare hen, and if they come to good I can have them moved to my
3501 own house and borrow a coop; and it will be a great delight to me in
3502 my lonely hours to attend to them. And if I have good luck, your mother
3503 shall have some."
3504
3505 It was a beautiful evening, mild and still, and the drive was as
3506 pleasant as the serenity of Nature could make it; but when Mrs. Norris
3507 ceased speaking, it was altogether a silent drive to those within. Their
3508 spirits were in general exhausted; and to determine whether the day had
3509 afforded most pleasure or pain, might occupy the meditations of almost
3510 all.
3511
3512
3513
3514 CHAPTER XI
3515
3516 The day at Sotherton, with all its imperfections, afforded the Miss
3517 Bertrams much more agreeable feelings than were derived from the letters
3518 from Antigua, which soon afterwards reached Mansfield. It was much
3519 pleasanter to think of Henry Crawford than of their father; and to think
3520 of their father in England again within a certain period, which these
3521 letters obliged them to do, was a most unwelcome exercise.
3522
3523 November was the black month fixed for his return. Sir Thomas wrote of
3524 it with as much decision as experience and anxiety could authorise. His
3525 business was so nearly concluded as to justify him in proposing to take
3526 his passage in the September packet, and he consequently looked forward
3527 with the hope of being with his beloved family again early in November.
3528
3529 Maria was more to be pitied than Julia; for to her the father brought a
3530 husband, and the return of the friend most solicitous for her happiness
3531 would unite her to the lover, on whom she had chosen that happiness
3532 should depend. It was a gloomy prospect, and all she could do was to
3533 throw a mist over it, and hope when the mist cleared away she should
3534 see something else. It would hardly be _early_ in November, there
3535 were generally delays, a bad passage or _something_; that favouring
3536 _something_ which everybody who shuts their eyes while they look, or
3537 their understandings while they reason, feels the comfort of. It would
3538 probably be the middle of November at least; the middle of November
3539 was three months off. Three months comprised thirteen weeks. Much might
3540 happen in thirteen weeks.
3541
3542 Sir Thomas would have been deeply mortified by a suspicion of half that
3543 his daughters felt on the subject of his return, and would hardly have
3544 found consolation in a knowledge of the interest it excited in the
3545 breast of another young lady. Miss Crawford, on walking up with her
3546 brother to spend the evening at Mansfield Park, heard the good news; and
3547 though seeming to have no concern in the affair beyond politeness, and
3548 to have vented all her feelings in a quiet congratulation, heard it with
3549 an attention not so easily satisfied. Mrs. Norris gave the particulars
3550 of the letters, and the subject was dropt; but after tea, as Miss
3551 Crawford was standing at an open window with Edmund and Fanny looking
3552 out on a twilight scene, while the Miss Bertrams, Mr. Rushworth,
3553 and Henry Crawford were all busy with candles at the pianoforte, she
3554 suddenly revived it by turning round towards the group, and saying, "How
3555 happy Mr. Rushworth looks! He is thinking of November."
3556
3557 Edmund looked round at Mr. Rushworth too, but had nothing to say.
3558
3559 "Your father's return will be a very interesting event."
3560
3561 "It will, indeed, after such an absence; an absence not only long, but
3562 including so many dangers."
3563
3564 "It will be the forerunner also of other interesting events: your
3565 sister's marriage, and your taking orders."
3566
3567 "Yes."
3568
3569 "Don't be affronted," said she, laughing, "but it does put me in mind of
3570 some of the old heathen heroes, who, after performing great exploits in
3571 a foreign land, offered sacrifices to the gods on their safe return."
3572
3573 "There is no sacrifice in the case," replied Edmund, with a serious
3574 smile, and glancing at the pianoforte again; "it is entirely her own
3575 doing."
3576
3577 "Oh yes I know it is. I was merely joking. She has done no more than
3578 what every young woman would do; and I have no doubt of her being
3579 extremely happy. My other sacrifice, of course, you do not understand."
3580
3581 "My taking orders, I assure you, is quite as voluntary as Maria's
3582 marrying."
3583
3584 "It is fortunate that your inclination and your father's convenience
3585 should accord so well. There is a very good living kept for you, I
3586 understand, hereabouts."
3587
3588 "Which you suppose has biassed me?"
3589
3590 "But _that_ I am sure it has not," cried Fanny.
3591
3592 "Thank you for your good word, Fanny, but it is more than I would affirm
3593 myself. On the contrary, the knowing that there was such a provision for
3594 me probably did bias me. Nor can I think it wrong that it should. There
3595 was no natural disinclination to be overcome, and I see no reason why
3596 a man should make a worse clergyman for knowing that he will have a
3597 competence early in life. I was in safe hands. I hope I should not have
3598 been influenced myself in a wrong way, and I am sure my father was too
3599 conscientious to have allowed it. I have no doubt that I was biased, but
3600 I think it was blamelessly."
3601
3602 "It is the same sort of thing," said Fanny, after a short pause, "as for
3603 the son of an admiral to go into the navy, or the son of a general to be
3604 in the army, and nobody sees anything wrong in that. Nobody wonders that
3605 they should prefer the line where their friends can serve them best, or
3606 suspects them to be less in earnest in it than they appear."
3607
3608 "No, my dear Miss Price, and for reasons good. The profession, either
3609 navy or army, is its own justification. It has everything in its favour:
3610 heroism, danger, bustle, fashion. Soldiers and sailors are always
3611 acceptable in society. Nobody can wonder that men are soldiers and
3612 sailors."
3613
3614 "But the motives of a man who takes orders with the certainty of
3615 preferment may be fairly suspected, you think?" said Edmund. "To be
3616 justified in your eyes, he must do it in the most complete uncertainty
3617 of any provision."
3618
3619 "What! take orders without a living! No; that is madness indeed;
3620 absolute madness."
3621
3622 "Shall I ask you how the church is to be filled, if a man is neither to
3623 take orders with a living nor without? No; for you certainly would not
3624 know what to say. But I must beg some advantage to the clergyman from
3625 your own argument. As he cannot be influenced by those feelings which
3626 you rank highly as temptation and reward to the soldier and sailor in
3627 their choice of a profession, as heroism, and noise, and fashion, are
3628 all against him, he ought to be less liable to the suspicion of wanting
3629 sincerity or good intentions in the choice of his."
3630
3631 "Oh! no doubt he is very sincere in preferring an income ready made,
3632 to the trouble of working for one; and has the best intentions of doing
3633 nothing all the rest of his days but eat, drink, and grow fat. It is
3634 indolence, Mr. Bertram, indeed. Indolence and love of ease; a want of
3635 all laudable ambition, of taste for good company, or of inclination
3636 to take the trouble of being agreeable, which make men clergymen.
3637 A clergyman has nothing to do but be slovenly and selfish--read the
3638 newspaper, watch the weather, and quarrel with his wife. His curate does
3639 all the work, and the business of his own life is to dine."
3640
3641 "There are such clergymen, no doubt, but I think they are not so common
3642 as to justify Miss Crawford in esteeming it their general character. I
3643 suspect that in this comprehensive and (may I say) commonplace censure,
3644 you are not judging from yourself, but from prejudiced persons, whose
3645 opinions you have been in the habit of hearing. It is impossible that
3646 your own observation can have given you much knowledge of the clergy.
3647 You can have been personally acquainted with very few of a set of men
3648 you condemn so conclusively. You are speaking what you have been told at
3649 your uncle's table."
3650
3651 "I speak what appears to me the general opinion; and where an opinion
3652 is general, it is usually correct. Though _I_ have not seen much of
3653 the domestic lives of clergymen, it is seen by too many to leave any
3654 deficiency of information."
3655
3656 "Where any one body of educated men, of whatever denomination, are
3657 condemned indiscriminately, there must be a deficiency of information,
3658 or (smiling) of something else. Your uncle, and his brother admirals,
3659 perhaps knew little of clergymen beyond the chaplains whom, good or bad,
3660 they were always wishing away."
3661
3662 "Poor William! He has met with great kindness from the chaplain of the
3663 Antwerp," was a tender apostrophe of Fanny's, very much to the purpose
3664 of her own feelings if not of the conversation.
3665
3666 "I have been so little addicted to take my opinions from my uncle,"
3667 said Miss Crawford, "that I can hardly suppose--and since you push me so
3668 hard, I must observe, that I am not entirely without the means of seeing
3669 what clergymen are, being at this present time the guest of my own
3670 brother, Dr. Grant. And though Dr. Grant is most kind and obliging to
3671 me, and though he is really a gentleman, and, I dare say, a good scholar
3672 and clever, and often preaches good sermons, and is very respectable,
3673 _I_ see him to be an indolent, selfish _bon_ _vivant_, who must have
3674 his palate consulted in everything; who will not stir a finger for the
3675 convenience of any one; and who, moreover, if the cook makes a blunder,
3676 is out of humour with his excellent wife. To own the truth, Henry and
3677 I were partly driven out this very evening by a disappointment about a
3678 green goose, which he could not get the better of. My poor sister was
3679 forced to stay and bear it."
3680
3681 "I do not wonder at your disapprobation, upon my word. It is a great
3682 defect of temper, made worse by a very faulty habit of self-indulgence;
3683 and to see your sister suffering from it must be exceedingly painful to
3684 such feelings as yours. Fanny, it goes against us. We cannot attempt to
3685 defend Dr. Grant."
3686
3687 "No," replied Fanny, "but we need not give up his profession for all
3688 that; because, whatever profession Dr. Grant had chosen, he would have
3689 taken a--not a good temper into it; and as he must, either in the navy
3690 or army, have had a great many more people under his command than he
3691 has now, I think more would have been made unhappy by him as a sailor or
3692 soldier than as a clergyman. Besides, I cannot but suppose that whatever
3693 there may be to wish otherwise in Dr. Grant would have been in a greater
3694 danger of becoming worse in a more active and worldly profession, where
3695 he would have had less time and obligation--where he might have escaped
3696 that knowledge of himself, the _frequency_, at least, of that knowledge
3697 which it is impossible he should escape as he is now. A man--a sensible
3698 man like Dr. Grant, cannot be in the habit of teaching others their duty
3699 every week, cannot go to church twice every Sunday, and preach such very
3700 good sermons in so good a manner as he does, without being the better
3701 for it himself. It must make him think; and I have no doubt that he
3702 oftener endeavours to restrain himself than he would if he had been
3703 anything but a clergyman."
3704
3705 "We cannot prove to the contrary, to be sure; but I wish you a better
3706 fate, Miss Price, than to be the wife of a man whose amiableness
3707 depends upon his own sermons; for though he may preach himself into a
3708 good-humour every Sunday, it will be bad enough to have him quarrelling
3709 about green geese from Monday morning till Saturday night."
3710
3711 "I think the man who could often quarrel with Fanny," said Edmund
3712 affectionately, "must be beyond the reach of any sermons."
3713
3714 Fanny turned farther into the window; and Miss Crawford had only time
3715 to say, in a pleasant manner, "I fancy Miss Price has been more used to
3716 deserve praise than to hear it"; when, being earnestly invited by the
3717 Miss Bertrams to join in a glee, she tripped off to the instrument,
3718 leaving Edmund looking after her in an ecstasy of admiration of all her
3719 many virtues, from her obliging manners down to her light and graceful
3720 tread.
3721
3722 "There goes good-humour, I am sure," said he presently. "There goes a
3723 temper which would never give pain! How well she walks! and how readily
3724 she falls in with the inclination of others! joining them the moment she
3725 is asked. What a pity," he added, after an instant's reflection, "that
3726 she should have been in such hands!"
3727
3728 Fanny agreed to it, and had the pleasure of seeing him continue at the
3729 window with her, in spite of the expected glee; and of having his eyes
3730 soon turned, like hers, towards the scene without, where all that was
3731 solemn, and soothing, and lovely, appeared in the brilliancy of an
3732 unclouded night, and the contrast of the deep shade of the woods. Fanny
3733 spoke her feelings. "Here's harmony!" said she; "here's repose! Here's
3734 what may leave all painting and all music behind, and what poetry only
3735 can attempt to describe! Here's what may tranquillise every care, and
3736 lift the heart to rapture! When I look out on such a night as this, I
3737 feel as if there could be neither wickedness nor sorrow in the world;
3738 and there certainly would be less of both if the sublimity of Nature
3739 were more attended to, and people were carried more out of themselves by
3740 contemplating such a scene."
3741
3742 "I like to hear your enthusiasm, Fanny. It is a lovely night, and they
3743 are much to be pitied who have not been taught to feel, in some degree,
3744 as you do; who have not, at least, been given a taste for Nature in
3745 early life. They lose a great deal."
3746
3747 "_You_ taught me to think and feel on the subject, cousin."
3748
3749 "I had a very apt scholar. There's Arcturus looking very bright."
3750
3751 "Yes, and the Bear. I wish I could see Cassiopeia."
3752
3753 "We must go out on the lawn for that. Should you be afraid?"
3754
3755 "Not in the least. It is a great while since we have had any
3756 star-gazing."
3757
3758 "Yes; I do not know how it has happened." The glee began. "We will stay
3759 till this is finished, Fanny," said he, turning his back on the window;
3760 and as it advanced, she had the mortification of seeing him advance too,
3761 moving forward by gentle degrees towards the instrument, and when it
3762 ceased, he was close by the singers, among the most urgent in requesting
3763 to hear the glee again.
3764
3765 Fanny sighed alone at the window till scolded away by Mrs. Norris's
3766 threats of catching cold.
3767
3768
3769
3770 CHAPTER XII
3771
3772 Sir Thomas was to return in November, and his eldest son had duties to
3773 call him earlier home. The approach of September brought tidings of Mr.
3774 Bertram, first in a letter to the gamekeeper and then in a letter
3775 to Edmund; and by the end of August he arrived himself, to be gay,
3776 agreeable, and gallant again as occasion served, or Miss Crawford
3777 demanded; to tell of races and Weymouth, and parties and friends, to
3778 which she might have listened six weeks before with some interest, and
3779 altogether to give her the fullest conviction, by the power of actual
3780 comparison, of her preferring his younger brother.
3781
3782 It was very vexatious, and she was heartily sorry for it; but so it was;
3783 and so far from now meaning to marry the elder, she did not even want
3784 to attract him beyond what the simplest claims of conscious beauty
3785 required: his lengthened absence from Mansfield, without anything but
3786 pleasure in view, and his own will to consult, made it perfectly clear
3787 that he did not care about her; and his indifference was so much more
3788 than equalled by her own, that were he now to step forth the owner of
3789 Mansfield Park, the Sir Thomas complete, which he was to be in time, she
3790 did not believe she could accept him.
3791
3792 The season and duties which brought Mr. Bertram back to Mansfield took
3793 Mr. Crawford into Norfolk. Everingham could not do without him in the
3794 beginning of September. He went for a fortnight--a fortnight of such
3795 dullness to the Miss Bertrams as ought to have put them both on their
3796 guard, and made even Julia admit, in her jealousy of her sister, the
3797 absolute necessity of distrusting his attentions, and wishing him not
3798 to return; and a fortnight of sufficient leisure, in the intervals of
3799 shooting and sleeping, to have convinced the gentleman that he ought
3800 to keep longer away, had he been more in the habit of examining his own
3801 motives, and of reflecting to what the indulgence of his idle vanity was
3802 tending; but, thoughtless and selfish from prosperity and bad example,
3803 he would not look beyond the present moment. The sisters, handsome,
3804 clever, and encouraging, were an amusement to his sated mind; and
3805 finding nothing in Norfolk to equal the social pleasures of Mansfield,
3806 he gladly returned to it at the time appointed, and was welcomed thither
3807 quite as gladly by those whom he came to trifle with further.
3808
3809 Maria, with only Mr. Rushworth to attend to her, and doomed to the
3810 repeated details of his day's sport, good or bad, his boast of his dogs,
3811 his jealousy of his neighbours, his doubts of their qualifications,
3812 and his zeal after poachers, subjects which will not find their way to
3813 female feelings without some talent on one side or some attachment on
3814 the other, had missed Mr. Crawford grievously; and Julia, unengaged and
3815 unemployed, felt all the right of missing him much more. Each sister
3816 believed herself the favourite. Julia might be justified in so doing by
3817 the hints of Mrs. Grant, inclined to credit what she wished, and Maria
3818 by the hints of Mr. Crawford himself. Everything returned into the same
3819 channel as before his absence; his manners being to each so animated and
3820 agreeable as to lose no ground with either, and just stopping short of
3821 the consistence, the steadiness, the solicitude, and the warmth which
3822 might excite general notice.
3823
3824 Fanny was the only one of the party who found anything to dislike; but
3825 since the day at Sotherton, she could never see Mr. Crawford with either
3826 sister without observation, and seldom without wonder or censure; and
3827 had her confidence in her own judgment been equal to her exercise of it
3828 in every other respect, had she been sure that she was seeing clearly,
3829 and judging candidly, she would probably have made some important
3830 communications to her usual confidant. As it was, however, she only
3831 hazarded a hint, and the hint was lost. "I am rather surprised," said
3832 she, "that Mr. Crawford should come back again so soon, after being here
3833 so long before, full seven weeks; for I had understood he was so
3834 very fond of change and moving about, that I thought something would
3835 certainly occur, when he was once gone, to take him elsewhere. He is
3836 used to much gayer places than Mansfield."
3837
3838 "It is to his credit," was Edmund's answer; "and I dare say it gives his
3839 sister pleasure. She does not like his unsettled habits."
3840
3841 "What a favourite he is with my cousins!"
3842
3843 "Yes, his manners to women are such as must please. Mrs. Grant, I
3844 believe, suspects him of a preference for Julia; I have never seen much
3845 symptom of it, but I wish it may be so. He has no faults but what a
3846 serious attachment would remove."
3847
3848 "If Miss Bertram were not engaged," said Fanny cautiously, "I could
3849 sometimes almost think that he admired her more than Julia."
3850
3851 "Which is, perhaps, more in favour of his liking Julia best, than you,
3852 Fanny, may be aware; for I believe it often happens that a man, before
3853 he has quite made up his own mind, will distinguish the sister or
3854 intimate friend of the woman he is really thinking of more than the
3855 woman herself. Crawford has too much sense to stay here if he found
3856 himself in any danger from Maria; and I am not at all afraid for her,
3857 after such a proof as she has given that her feelings are not strong."
3858
3859 Fanny supposed she must have been mistaken, and meant to think
3860 differently in future; but with all that submission to Edmund could
3861 do, and all the help of the coinciding looks and hints which she
3862 occasionally noticed in some of the others, and which seemed to say that
3863 Julia was Mr. Crawford's choice, she knew not always what to think. She
3864 was privy, one evening, to the hopes of her aunt Norris on the subject,
3865 as well as to her feelings, and the feelings of Mrs. Rushworth, on a
3866 point of some similarity, and could not help wondering as she listened;
3867 and glad would she have been not to be obliged to listen, for it was
3868 while all the other young people were dancing, and she sitting,
3869 most unwillingly, among the chaperons at the fire, longing for the
3870 re-entrance of her elder cousin, on whom all her own hopes of a partner
3871 then depended. It was Fanny's first ball, though without the preparation
3872 or splendour of many a young lady's first ball, being the thought only
3873 of the afternoon, built on the late acquisition of a violin player in
3874 the servants' hall, and the possibility of raising five couple with
3875 the help of Mrs. Grant and a new intimate friend of Mr. Bertram's just
3876 arrived on a visit. It had, however, been a very happy one to Fanny
3877 through four dances, and she was quite grieved to be losing even a
3878 quarter of an hour. While waiting and wishing, looking now at
3879 the dancers and now at the door, this dialogue between the two
3880 above-mentioned ladies was forced on her--
3881
3882 "I think, ma'am," said Mrs. Norris, her eyes directed towards Mr.
3883 Rushworth and Maria, who were partners for the second time, "we shall
3884 see some happy faces again now."
3885
3886 "Yes, ma'am, indeed," replied the other, with a stately simper, "there
3887 will be some satisfaction in looking on _now_, and I think it was rather
3888 a pity they should have been obliged to part. Young folks in their
3889 situation should be excused complying with the common forms. I wonder my
3890 son did not propose it."
3891
3892 "I dare say he did, ma'am. Mr. Rushworth is never remiss. But dear Maria
3893 has such a strict sense of propriety, so much of that true delicacy
3894 which one seldom meets with nowadays, Mrs. Rushworth--that wish of
3895 avoiding particularity! Dear ma'am, only look at her face at this
3896 moment; how different from what it was the two last dances!"
3897
3898 Miss Bertram did indeed look happy, her eyes were sparkling with
3899 pleasure, and she was speaking with great animation, for Julia and her
3900 partner, Mr. Crawford, were close to her; they were all in a cluster
3901 together. How she had looked before, Fanny could not recollect, for she
3902 had been dancing with Edmund herself, and had not thought about her.
3903
3904 Mrs. Norris continued, "It is quite delightful, ma'am, to see young
3905 people so properly happy, so well suited, and so much the thing! I
3906 cannot but think of dear Sir Thomas's delight. And what do you say,
3907 ma'am, to the chance of another match? Mr. Rushworth has set a good
3908 example, and such things are very catching."
3909
3910 Mrs. Rushworth, who saw nothing but her son, was quite at a loss.
3911
3912 "The couple above, ma'am. Do you see no symptoms there?"
3913
3914 "Oh dear! Miss Julia and Mr. Crawford. Yes, indeed, a very pretty match.
3915 What is his property?"
3916
3917 "Four thousand a year."
3918
3919 "Very well. Those who have not more must be satisfied with what they
3920 have. Four thousand a year is a pretty estate, and he seems a very
3921 genteel, steady young man, so I hope Miss Julia will be very happy."
3922
3923 "It is not a settled thing, ma'am, yet. We only speak of it among
3924 friends. But I have very little doubt it _will_ be. He is growing
3925 extremely particular in his attentions."
3926
3927 Fanny could listen no farther. Listening and wondering were all
3928 suspended for a time, for Mr. Bertram was in the room again; and though
3929 feeling it would be a great honour to be asked by him, she thought it
3930 must happen. He came towards their little circle; but instead of asking
3931 her to dance, drew a chair near her, and gave her an account of the
3932 present state of a sick horse, and the opinion of the groom, from
3933 whom he had just parted. Fanny found that it was not to be, and in the
3934 modesty of her nature immediately felt that she had been unreasonable
3935 in expecting it. When he had told of his horse, he took a newspaper from
3936 the table, and looking over it, said in a languid way, "If you want to
3937 dance, Fanny, I will stand up with you." With more than equal civility
3938 the offer was declined; she did not wish to dance. "I am glad of it,"
3939 said he, in a much brisker tone, and throwing down the newspaper again,
3940 "for I am tired to death. I only wonder how the good people can keep
3941 it up so long. They had need be _all_ in love, to find any amusement in
3942 such folly; and so they are, I fancy. If you look at them you may see
3943 they are so many couple of lovers--all but Yates and Mrs. Grant--and,
3944 between ourselves, she, poor woman, must want a lover as much as any one
3945 of them. A desperate dull life hers must be with the doctor," making
3946 a sly face as he spoke towards the chair of the latter, who proving,
3947 however, to be close at his elbow, made so instantaneous a change of
3948 expression and subject necessary, as Fanny, in spite of everything,
3949 could hardly help laughing at. "A strange business this in America, Dr.
3950 Grant! What is your opinion? I always come to you to know what I am to
3951 think of public matters."
3952
3953 "My dear Tom," cried his aunt soon afterwards, "as you are not dancing,
3954 I dare say you will have no objection to join us in a rubber; shall
3955 you?" Then leaving her seat, and coming to him to enforce the proposal,
3956 added in a whisper, "We want to make a table for Mrs. Rushworth, you
3957 know. Your mother is quite anxious about it, but cannot very well spare
3958 time to sit down herself, because of her fringe. Now, you and I and Dr.
3959 Grant will just do; and though _we_ play but half-crowns, you know, you
3960 may bet half-guineas with _him_."
3961
3962 "I should be most happy," replied he aloud, and jumping up with
3963 alacrity, "it would give me the greatest pleasure; but that I am
3964 this moment going to dance." Come, Fanny, taking her hand, "do not be
3965 dawdling any longer, or the dance will be over."
3966
3967 Fanny was led off very willingly, though it was impossible for her to
3968 feel much gratitude towards her cousin, or distinguish, as he certainly
3969 did, between the selfishness of another person and his own.
3970
3971 "A pretty modest request upon my word," he indignantly exclaimed as they
3972 walked away. "To want to nail me to a card-table for the next two hours
3973 with herself and Dr. Grant, who are always quarrelling, and that poking
3974 old woman, who knows no more of whist than of algebra. I wish my good
3975 aunt would be a little less busy! And to ask me in such a way too!
3976 without ceremony, before them all, so as to leave me no possibility
3977 of refusing. _That_ is what I dislike most particularly. It raises my
3978 spleen more than anything, to have the pretence of being asked, of
3979 being given a choice, and at the same time addressed in such a way as
3980 to oblige one to do the very thing, whatever it be! If I had not luckily
3981 thought of standing up with you I could not have got out of it. It is
3982 a great deal too bad. But when my aunt has got a fancy in her head,
3983 nothing can stop her."
3984
3985
3986
3987 CHAPTER XIII
3988
3989 The Honourable John Yates, this new friend, had not much to recommend
3990 him beyond habits of fashion and expense, and being the younger son of
3991 a lord with a tolerable independence; and Sir Thomas would probably
3992 have thought his introduction at Mansfield by no means desirable. Mr.
3993 Bertram's acquaintance with him had begun at Weymouth, where they had
3994 spent ten days together in the same society, and the friendship, if
3995 friendship it might be called, had been proved and perfected by Mr.
3996 Yates's being invited to take Mansfield in his way, whenever he could,
3997 and by his promising to come; and he did come rather earlier than had
3998 been expected, in consequence of the sudden breaking-up of a large party
3999 assembled for gaiety at the house of another friend, which he had left
4000 Weymouth to join. He came on the wings of disappointment, and with his
4001 head full of acting, for it had been a theatrical party; and the play
4002 in which he had borne a part was within two days of representation,
4003 when the sudden death of one of the nearest connexions of the family
4004 had destroyed the scheme and dispersed the performers. To be so near
4005 happiness, so near fame, so near the long paragraph in praise of the
4006 private theatricals at Ecclesford, the seat of the Right Hon. Lord
4007 Ravenshaw, in Cornwall, which would of course have immortalised the
4008 whole party for at least a twelvemonth! and being so near, to lose
4009 it all, was an injury to be keenly felt, and Mr. Yates could talk of
4010 nothing else. Ecclesford and its theatre, with its arrangements and
4011 dresses, rehearsals and jokes, was his never-failing subject, and to
4012 boast of the past his only consolation.
4013
4014 Happily for him, a love of the theatre is so general, an itch for acting
4015 so strong among young people, that he could hardly out-talk the interest
4016 of his hearers. From the first casting of the parts to the epilogue it
4017 was all bewitching, and there were few who did not wish to have been a
4018 party concerned, or would have hesitated to try their skill. The play
4019 had been Lovers' Vows, and Mr. Yates was to have been Count Cassel. "A
4020 trifling part," said he, "and not at all to my taste, and such a one
4021 as I certainly would not accept again; but I was determined to make no
4022 difficulties. Lord Ravenshaw and the duke had appropriated the only two
4023 characters worth playing before I reached Ecclesford; and though Lord
4024 Ravenshaw offered to resign his to me, it was impossible to take it, you
4025 know. I was sorry for _him_ that he should have so mistaken his powers,
4026 for he was no more equal to the Baron--a little man with a weak voice,
4027 always hoarse after the first ten minutes. It must have injured the
4028 piece materially; but _I_ was resolved to make no difficulties. Sir
4029 Henry thought the duke not equal to Frederick, but that was because
4030 Sir Henry wanted the part himself; whereas it was certainly in the best
4031 hands of the two. I was surprised to see Sir Henry such a stick. Luckily
4032 the strength of the piece did not depend upon him. Our Agatha was
4033 inimitable, and the duke was thought very great by many. And upon the
4034 whole, it would certainly have gone off wonderfully."
4035
4036 "It was a hard case, upon my word"; and, "I do think you were very much
4037 to be pitied," were the kind responses of listening sympathy.
4038
4039 "It is not worth complaining about; but to be sure the poor old dowager
4040 could not have died at a worse time; and it is impossible to help
4041 wishing that the news could have been suppressed for just the three days
4042 we wanted. It was but three days; and being only a grandmother, and all
4043 happening two hundred miles off, I think there would have been no great
4044 harm, and it was suggested, I know; but Lord Ravenshaw, who I suppose is
4045 one of the most correct men in England, would not hear of it."
4046
4047 "An afterpiece instead of a comedy," said Mr. Bertram. "Lovers' Vows
4048 were at an end, and Lord and Lady Ravenshaw left to act My Grandmother
4049 by themselves. Well, the jointure may comfort _him_; and perhaps,
4050 between friends, he began to tremble for his credit and his lungs in the
4051 Baron, and was not sorry to withdraw; and to make _you_ amends, Yates, I
4052 think we must raise a little theatre at Mansfield, and ask you to be our
4053 manager."
4054
4055 This, though the thought of the moment, did not end with the moment; for
4056 the inclination to act was awakened, and in no one more strongly than in
4057 him who was now master of the house; and who, having so much leisure as
4058 to make almost any novelty a certain good, had likewise such a degree of
4059 lively talents and comic taste, as were exactly adapted to the novelty
4060 of acting. The thought returned again and again. "Oh for the Ecclesford
4061 theatre and scenery to try something with." Each sister could echo the
4062 wish; and Henry Crawford, to whom, in all the riot of his gratifications
4063 it was yet an untasted pleasure, was quite alive at the idea. "I really
4064 believe," said he, "I could be fool enough at this moment to undertake
4065 any character that ever was written, from Shylock or Richard III down to
4066 the singing hero of a farce in his scarlet coat and cocked hat. I feel
4067 as if I could be anything or everything; as if I could rant and storm,
4068 or sigh or cut capers, in any tragedy or comedy in the English language.
4069 Let us be doing something. Be it only half a play, an act, a scene; what
4070 should prevent us? Not these countenances, I am sure," looking towards
4071 the Miss Bertrams; "and for a theatre, what signifies a theatre? We
4072 shall be only amusing ourselves. Any room in this house might suffice."
4073
4074 "We must have a curtain," said Tom Bertram; "a few yards of green baize
4075 for a curtain, and perhaps that may be enough."
4076
4077 "Oh, quite enough," cried Mr. Yates, "with only just a side wing or two
4078 run up, doors in flat, and three or four scenes to be let down; nothing
4079 more would be necessary on such a plan as this. For mere amusement among
4080 ourselves we should want nothing more."
4081
4082 "I believe we must be satisfied with _less_," said Maria. "There would
4083 not be time, and other difficulties would arise. We must rather adopt
4084 Mr. Crawford's views, and make the _performance_, not the _theatre_, our
4085 object. Many parts of our best plays are independent of scenery."
4086
4087 "Nay," said Edmund, who began to listen with alarm. "Let us do nothing
4088 by halves. If we are to act, let it be in a theatre completely fitted
4089 up with pit, boxes, and gallery, and let us have a play entire from
4090 beginning to end; so as it be a German play, no matter what, with a good
4091 tricking, shifting afterpiece, and a figure-dance, and a hornpipe, and a
4092 song between the acts. If we do not outdo Ecclesford, we do nothing."
4093
4094 "Now, Edmund, do not be disagreeable," said Julia. "Nobody loves a play
4095 better than you do, or can have gone much farther to see one."
4096
4097 "True, to see real acting, good hardened real acting; but I would hardly
4098 walk from this room to the next to look at the raw efforts of those who
4099 have not been bred to the trade: a set of gentlemen and ladies, who have
4100 all the disadvantages of education and decorum to struggle through."
4101
4102 After a short pause, however, the subject still continued, and was
4103 discussed with unabated eagerness, every one's inclination increasing
4104 by the discussion, and a knowledge of the inclination of the rest; and
4105 though nothing was settled but that Tom Bertram would prefer a comedy,
4106 and his sisters and Henry Crawford a tragedy, and that nothing in the
4107 world could be easier than to find a piece which would please them all,
4108 the resolution to act something or other seemed so decided as to
4109 make Edmund quite uncomfortable. He was determined to prevent it, if
4110 possible, though his mother, who equally heard the conversation which
4111 passed at table, did not evince the least disapprobation.
4112
4113 The same evening afforded him an opportunity of trying his strength.
4114 Maria, Julia, Henry Crawford, and Mr. Yates were in the billiard-room.
4115 Tom, returning from them into the drawing-room, where Edmund was
4116 standing thoughtfully by the fire, while Lady Bertram was on the sofa at
4117 a little distance, and Fanny close beside her arranging her work, thus
4118 began as he entered--"Such a horribly vile billiard-table as ours is not
4119 to be met with, I believe, above ground. I can stand it no longer, and I
4120 think, I may say, that nothing shall ever tempt me to it again; but one
4121 good thing I have just ascertained: it is the very room for a theatre,
4122 precisely the shape and length for it; and the doors at the farther
4123 end, communicating with each other, as they may be made to do in five
4124 minutes, by merely moving the bookcase in my father's room, is the very
4125 thing we could have desired, if we had sat down to wish for it; and
4126 my father's room will be an excellent greenroom. It seems to join the
4127 billiard-room on purpose."
4128
4129 "You are not serious, Tom, in meaning to act?" said Edmund, in a low
4130 voice, as his brother approached the fire.
4131
4132 "Not serious! never more so, I assure you. What is there to surprise you
4133 in it?"
4134
4135 "I think it would be very wrong. In a _general_ light, private
4136 theatricals are open to some objections, but as _we_ are circumstanced,
4137 I must think it would be highly injudicious, and more than injudicious
4138 to attempt anything of the kind. It would shew great want of feeling
4139 on my father's account, absent as he is, and in some degree of constant
4140 danger; and it would be imprudent, I think, with regard to Maria, whose
4141 situation is a very delicate one, considering everything, extremely
4142 delicate."
4143
4144 "You take up a thing so seriously! as if we were going to act three
4145 times a week till my father's return, and invite all the country. But
4146 it is not to be a display of that sort. We mean nothing but a little
4147 amusement among ourselves, just to vary the scene, and exercise our
4148 powers in something new. We want no audience, no publicity. We may be
4149 trusted, I think, in chusing some play most perfectly unexceptionable;
4150 and I can conceive no greater harm or danger to any of us in conversing
4151 in the elegant written language of some respectable author than in
4152 chattering in words of our own. I have no fears and no scruples. And
4153 as to my father's being absent, it is so far from an objection, that I
4154 consider it rather as a motive; for the expectation of his return must
4155 be a very anxious period to my mother; and if we can be the means of
4156 amusing that anxiety, and keeping up her spirits for the next few weeks,
4157 I shall think our time very well spent, and so, I am sure, will he. It
4158 is a _very_ anxious period for her."
4159
4160 As he said this, each looked towards their mother. Lady Bertram, sunk
4161 back in one corner of the sofa, the picture of health, wealth, ease,
4162 and tranquillity, was just falling into a gentle doze, while Fanny was
4163 getting through the few difficulties of her work for her.
4164
4165 Edmund smiled and shook his head.
4166
4167 "By Jove! this won't do," cried Tom, throwing himself into a chair with
4168 a hearty laugh. "To be sure, my dear mother, your anxiety--I was unlucky
4169 there."
4170
4171 "What is the matter?" asked her ladyship, in the heavy tone of one
4172 half-roused; "I was not asleep."
4173
4174 "Oh dear, no, ma'am, nobody suspected you! Well, Edmund," he continued,
4175 returning to the former subject, posture, and voice, as soon as Lady
4176 Bertram began to nod again, "but _this_ I _will_ maintain, that we shall
4177 be doing no harm."
4178
4179 "I cannot agree with you; I am convinced that my father would totally
4180 disapprove it."
4181
4182 "And I am convinced to the contrary. Nobody is fonder of the exercise
4183 of talent in young people, or promotes it more, than my father, and for
4184 anything of the acting, spouting, reciting kind, I think he has always a
4185 decided taste. I am sure he encouraged it in us as boys. How many a time
4186 have we mourned over the dead body of Julius Caesar, and to _be'd_ and
4187 not _to_ _be'd_, in this very room, for his amusement? And I am sure,
4188 _my_ _name_ _was_ _Norval_, every evening of my life through one
4189 Christmas holidays."
4190
4191 "It was a very different thing. You must see the difference yourself. My
4192 father wished us, as schoolboys, to speak well, but he would never
4193 wish his grown-up daughters to be acting plays. His sense of decorum is
4194 strict."
4195
4196 "I know all that," said Tom, displeased. "I know my father as well as
4197 you do; and I'll take care that his daughters do nothing to distress
4198 him. Manage your own concerns, Edmund, and I'll take care of the rest of
4199 the family."
4200
4201 "If you are resolved on acting," replied the persevering Edmund, "I must
4202 hope it will be in a very small and quiet way; and I think a theatre
4203 ought not to be attempted. It would be taking liberties with my father's
4204 house in his absence which could not be justified."
4205
4206 "For everything of that nature I will be answerable," said Tom, in a
4207 decided tone. "His house shall not be hurt. I have quite as great an
4208 interest in being careful of his house as you can have; and as to such
4209 alterations as I was suggesting just now, such as moving a bookcase, or
4210 unlocking a door, or even as using the billiard-room for the space of a
4211 week without playing at billiards in it, you might just as well suppose
4212 he would object to our sitting more in this room, and less in the
4213 breakfast-room, than we did before he went away, or to my sister's
4214 pianoforte being moved from one side of the room to the other. Absolute
4215 nonsense!"
4216
4217 "The innovation, if not wrong as an innovation, will be wrong as an
4218 expense."
4219
4220 "Yes, the expense of such an undertaking would be prodigious! Perhaps
4221 it might cost a whole twenty pounds. Something of a theatre we must have
4222 undoubtedly, but it will be on the simplest plan: a green curtain and a
4223 little carpenter's work, and that's all; and as the carpenter's work
4224 may be all done at home by Christopher Jackson himself, it will be
4225 too absurd to talk of expense; and as long as Jackson is employed,
4226 everything will be right with Sir Thomas. Don't imagine that nobody in
4227 this house can see or judge but yourself. Don't act yourself, if you do
4228 not like it, but don't expect to govern everybody else."
4229
4230 "No, as to acting myself," said Edmund, "_that_ I absolutely protest
4231 against."
4232
4233 Tom walked out of the room as he said it, and Edmund was left to sit
4234 down and stir the fire in thoughtful vexation.
4235
4236 Fanny, who had heard it all, and borne Edmund company in every feeling
4237 throughout the whole, now ventured to say, in her anxiety to suggest
4238 some comfort, "Perhaps they may not be able to find any play to suit
4239 them. Your brother's taste and your sisters' seem very different."
4240
4241 "I have no hope there, Fanny. If they persist in the scheme, they will
4242 find something. I shall speak to my sisters and try to dissuade _them_,
4243 and that is all I can do."
4244
4245 "I should think my aunt Norris would be on your side."
4246
4247 "I dare say she would, but she has no influence with either Tom or my
4248 sisters that could be of any use; and if I cannot convince them myself,
4249 I shall let things take their course, without attempting it through
4250 her. Family squabbling is the greatest evil of all, and we had better do
4251 anything than be altogether by the ears."
4252
4253 His sisters, to whom he had an opportunity of speaking the next morning,
4254 were quite as impatient of his advice, quite as unyielding to his
4255 representation, quite as determined in the cause of pleasure, as Tom.
4256 Their mother had no objection to the plan, and they were not in the
4257 least afraid of their father's disapprobation. There could be no harm in
4258 what had been done in so many respectable families, and by so many women
4259 of the first consideration; and it must be scrupulousness run mad that
4260 could see anything to censure in a plan like theirs, comprehending only
4261 brothers and sisters and intimate friends, and which would never be
4262 heard of beyond themselves. Julia _did_ seem inclined to admit that
4263 Maria's situation might require particular caution and delicacy--but
4264 that could not extend to _her_--she was at liberty; and Maria evidently
4265 considered her engagement as only raising her so much more above
4266 restraint, and leaving her less occasion than Julia to consult either
4267 father or mother. Edmund had little to hope, but he was still urging the
4268 subject when Henry Crawford entered the room, fresh from the Parsonage,
4269 calling out, "No want of hands in our theatre, Miss Bertram. No want
4270 of understrappers: my sister desires her love, and hopes to be admitted
4271 into the company, and will be happy to take the part of any old duenna
4272 or tame confidante, that you may not like to do yourselves."
4273
4274 Maria gave Edmund a glance, which meant, "What say you now? Can we
4275 be wrong if Mary Crawford feels the same?" And Edmund, silenced,
4276 was obliged to acknowledge that the charm of acting might well carry
4277 fascination to the mind of genius; and with the ingenuity of love, to
4278 dwell more on the obliging, accommodating purport of the message than on
4279 anything else.
4280
4281 The scheme advanced. Opposition was vain; and as to Mrs. Norris, he
4282 was mistaken in supposing she would wish to make any. She started no
4283 difficulties that were not talked down in five minutes by her eldest
4284 nephew and niece, who were all-powerful with her; and as the whole
4285 arrangement was to bring very little expense to anybody, and none at all
4286 to herself, as she foresaw in it all the comforts of hurry, bustle,
4287 and importance, and derived the immediate advantage of fancying herself
4288 obliged to leave her own house, where she had been living a month at
4289 her own cost, and take up her abode in theirs, that every hour might be
4290 spent in their service, she was, in fact, exceedingly delighted with the
4291 project.
4292
4293
4294
4295 CHAPTER XIV
4296
4297 Fanny seemed nearer being right than Edmund had supposed. The business
4298 of finding a play that would suit everybody proved to be no trifle; and
4299 the carpenter had received his orders and taken his measurements, had
4300 suggested and removed at least two sets of difficulties, and having made
4301 the necessity of an enlargement of plan and expense fully evident, was
4302 already at work, while a play was still to seek. Other preparations
4303 were also in hand. An enormous roll of green baize had arrived from
4304 Northampton, and been cut out by Mrs. Norris (with a saving by her good
4305 management of full three-quarters of a yard), and was actually forming
4306 into a curtain by the housemaids, and still the play was wanting; and
4307 as two or three days passed away in this manner, Edmund began almost to
4308 hope that none might ever be found.
4309
4310 There were, in fact, so many things to be attended to, so many people
4311 to be pleased, so many best characters required, and, above all, such a
4312 need that the play should be at once both tragedy and comedy, that there
4313 did seem as little chance of a decision as anything pursued by youth and
4314 zeal could hold out.
4315
4316 On the tragic side were the Miss Bertrams, Henry Crawford, and Mr.
4317 Yates; on the comic, Tom Bertram, not _quite_ alone, because it was
4318 evident that Mary Crawford's wishes, though politely kept back, inclined
4319 the same way: but his determinateness and his power seemed to make
4320 allies unnecessary; and, independent of this great irreconcilable
4321 difference, they wanted a piece containing very few characters in the
4322 whole, but every character first-rate, and three principal women. All
4323 the best plays were run over in vain. Neither Hamlet, nor Macbeth, nor
4324 Othello, nor Douglas, nor The Gamester, presented anything that could
4325 satisfy even the tragedians; and The Rivals, The School for Scandal,
4326 Wheel of Fortune, Heir at Law, and a long et cetera, were successively
4327 dismissed with yet warmer objections. No piece could be proposed that
4328 did not supply somebody with a difficulty, and on one side or the other
4329 it was a continual repetition of, "Oh no, _that_ will never do! Let us
4330 have no ranting tragedies. Too many characters. Not a tolerable
4331 woman's part in the play. Anything but _that_, my dear Tom. It would be
4332 impossible to fill it up. One could not expect anybody to take such a
4333 part. Nothing but buffoonery from beginning to end. _That_ might do,
4334 perhaps, but for the low parts. If I _must_ give my opinion, I have
4335 always thought it the most insipid play in the English language. _I_ do
4336 not wish to make objections; I shall be happy to be of any use, but I
4337 think we could not chuse worse."
4338
4339 Fanny looked on and listened, not unamused to observe the selfishness
4340 which, more or less disguised, seemed to govern them all, and wondering
4341 how it would end. For her own gratification she could have wished that
4342 something might be acted, for she had never seen even half a play, but
4343 everything of higher consequence was against it.
4344
4345 "This will never do," said Tom Bertram at last. "We are wasting time
4346 most abominably. Something must be fixed on. No matter what, so that
4347 something is chosen. We must not be so nice. A few characters too many
4348 must not frighten us. We must _double_ them. We must descend a little.
4349 If a part is insignificant, the greater our credit in making anything of
4350 it. From this moment I make no difficulties. I take any part you chuse
4351 to give me, so as it be comic. Let it but be comic, I condition for
4352 nothing more."
4353
4354 For about the fifth time he then proposed the Heir at Law, doubting only
4355 whether to prefer Lord Duberley or Dr. Pangloss for himself; and very
4356 earnestly, but very unsuccessfully, trying to persuade the others that
4357 there were some fine tragic parts in the rest of the dramatis personae.
4358
4359 The pause which followed this fruitless effort was ended by the same
4360 speaker, who, taking up one of the many volumes of plays that lay on the
4361 table, and turning it over, suddenly exclaimed--"Lovers' Vows! And why
4362 should not Lovers' Vows do for _us_ as well as for the Ravenshaws? How
4363 came it never to be thought of before? It strikes me as if it would do
4364 exactly. What say you all? Here are two capital tragic parts for Yates
4365 and Crawford, and here is the rhyming Butler for me, if nobody else
4366 wants it; a trifling part, but the sort of thing I should not dislike,
4367 and, as I said before, I am determined to take anything and do my best.
4368 And as for the rest, they may be filled up by anybody. It is only Count
4369 Cassel and Anhalt."
4370
4371 The suggestion was generally welcome. Everybody was growing weary of
4372 indecision, and the first idea with everybody was, that nothing had been
4373 proposed before so likely to suit them all. Mr. Yates was particularly
4374 pleased: he had been sighing and longing to do the Baron at Ecclesford,
4375 had grudged every rant of Lord Ravenshaw's, and been forced to re-rant
4376 it all in his own room. The storm through Baron Wildenheim was the
4377 height of his theatrical ambition; and with the advantage of knowing
4378 half the scenes by heart already, he did now, with the greatest
4379 alacrity, offer his services for the part. To do him justice, however,
4380 he did not resolve to appropriate it; for remembering that there was
4381 some very good ranting-ground in Frederick, he professed an equal
4382 willingness for that. Henry Crawford was ready to take either. Whichever
4383 Mr. Yates did not chuse would perfectly satisfy him, and a short parley
4384 of compliment ensued. Miss Bertram, feeling all the interest of an
4385 Agatha in the question, took on her to decide it, by observing to Mr.
4386 Yates that this was a point in which height and figure ought to
4387 be considered, and that _his_ being the tallest, seemed to fit him
4388 peculiarly for the Baron. She was acknowledged to be quite right, and
4389 the two parts being accepted accordingly, she was certain of the proper
4390 Frederick. Three of the characters were now cast, besides Mr. Rushworth,
4391 who was always answered for by Maria as willing to do anything; when
4392 Julia, meaning, like her sister, to be Agatha, began to be scrupulous on
4393 Miss Crawford's account.
4394
4395 "This is not behaving well by the absent," said she. "Here are not women
4396 enough. Amelia and Agatha may do for Maria and me, but here is nothing
4397 for your sister, Mr. Crawford."
4398
4399 Mr. Crawford desired _that_ might not be thought of: he was very sure
4400 his sister had no wish of acting but as she might be useful, and that
4401 she would not allow herself to be considered in the present case. But
4402 this was immediately opposed by Tom Bertram, who asserted the part of
4403 Amelia to be in every respect the property of Miss Crawford, if she
4404 would accept it. "It falls as naturally, as necessarily to her,"
4405 said he, "as Agatha does to one or other of my sisters. It can be no
4406 sacrifice on their side, for it is highly comic."
4407
4408 A short silence followed. Each sister looked anxious; for each felt the
4409 best claim to Agatha, and was hoping to have it pressed on her by the
4410 rest. Henry Crawford, who meanwhile had taken up the play, and with
4411 seeming carelessness was turning over the first act, soon settled the
4412 business.
4413
4414 "I must entreat Miss _Julia_ Bertram," said he, "not to engage in the
4415 part of Agatha, or it will be the ruin of all my solemnity. You must
4416 not, indeed you must not" (turning to her). "I could not stand your
4417 countenance dressed up in woe and paleness. The many laughs we have had
4418 together would infallibly come across me, and Frederick and his knapsack
4419 would be obliged to run away."
4420
4421 Pleasantly, courteously, it was spoken; but the manner was lost in the
4422 matter to Julia's feelings. She saw a glance at Maria which confirmed
4423 the injury to herself: it was a scheme, a trick; she was slighted, Maria
4424 was preferred; the smile of triumph which Maria was trying to suppress
4425 shewed how well it was understood; and before Julia could command
4426 herself enough to speak, her brother gave his weight against her too,
4427 by saying, "Oh yes! Maria must be Agatha. Maria will be the best Agatha.
4428 Though Julia fancies she prefers tragedy, I would not trust her in it.
4429 There is nothing of tragedy about her. She has not the look of it. Her
4430 features are not tragic features, and she walks too quick, and speaks
4431 too quick, and would not keep her countenance. She had better do the old
4432 countrywoman: the Cottager's wife; you had, indeed, Julia. Cottager's
4433 wife is a very pretty part, I assure you. The old lady relieves the
4434 high-flown benevolence of her husband with a good deal of spirit. You
4435 shall be Cottager's wife."
4436
4437 "Cottager's wife!" cried Mr. Yates. "What are you talking of? The most
4438 trivial, paltry, insignificant part; the merest commonplace; not a
4439 tolerable speech in the whole. Your sister do that! It is an insult
4440 to propose it. At Ecclesford the governess was to have done it. We
4441 all agreed that it could not be offered to anybody else. A little more
4442 justice, Mr. Manager, if you please. You do not deserve the office, if
4443 you cannot appreciate the talents of your company a little better."
4444
4445 "Why, as to _that_, my good friend, till I and my company have really
4446 acted there must be some guesswork; but I mean no disparagement to
4447 Julia. We cannot have two Agathas, and we must have one Cottager's
4448 wife; and I am sure I set her the example of moderation myself in being
4449 satisfied with the old Butler. If the part is trifling she will have
4450 more credit in making something of it; and if she is so desperately bent
4451 against everything humorous, let her take Cottager's speeches instead of
4452 Cottager's wife's, and so change the parts all through; _he_ is solemn
4453 and pathetic enough, I am sure. It could make no difference in the play,
4454 and as for Cottager himself, when he has got his wife's speeches, _I_
4455 would undertake him with all my heart."
4456
4457 "With all your partiality for Cottager's wife," said Henry Crawford, "it
4458 will be impossible to make anything of it fit for your sister, and we
4459 must not suffer her good-nature to be imposed on. We must not _allow_
4460 her to accept the part. She must not be left to her own complaisance.
4461 Her talents will be wanted in Amelia. Amelia is a character more
4462 difficult to be well represented than even Agatha. I consider Amelia
4463 is the most difficult character in the whole piece. It requires great
4464 powers, great nicety, to give her playfulness and simplicity without
4465 extravagance. I have seen good actresses fail in the part. Simplicity,
4466 indeed, is beyond the reach of almost every actress by profession.
4467 It requires a delicacy of feeling which they have not. It requires a
4468 gentlewoman--a Julia Bertram. You _will_ undertake it, I hope?" turning
4469 to her with a look of anxious entreaty, which softened her a little; but
4470 while she hesitated what to say, her brother again interposed with Miss
4471 Crawford's better claim.
4472
4473 "No, no, Julia must not be Amelia. It is not at all the part for her.
4474 She would not like it. She would not do well. She is too tall and
4475 robust. Amelia should be a small, light, girlish, skipping figure. It is
4476 fit for Miss Crawford, and Miss Crawford only. She looks the part, and I
4477 am persuaded will do it admirably."
4478
4479 Without attending to this, Henry Crawford continued his supplication.
4480 "You must oblige us," said he, "indeed you must. When you have studied
4481 the character, I am sure you will feel it suit you. Tragedy may be your
4482 choice, but it will certainly appear that comedy chuses _you_. You
4483 will be to visit me in prison with a basket of provisions; you will
4484 not refuse to visit me in prison? I think I see you coming in with your
4485 basket."
4486
4487 The influence of his voice was felt. Julia wavered; but was he only
4488 trying to soothe and pacify her, and make her overlook the previous
4489 affront? She distrusted him. The slight had been most determined. He
4490 was, perhaps, but at treacherous play with her. She looked suspiciously
4491 at her sister; Maria's countenance was to decide it: if she were vexed
4492 and alarmed--but Maria looked all serenity and satisfaction, and Julia
4493 well knew that on this ground Maria could not be happy but at her
4494 expense. With hasty indignation, therefore, and a tremulous voice, she
4495 said to him, "You do not seem afraid of not keeping your countenance
4496 when I come in with a basket of provisions--though one might have
4497 supposed--but it is only as Agatha that I was to be so overpowering!"
4498 She stopped--Henry Crawford looked rather foolish, and as if he did not
4499 know what to say. Tom Bertram began again--
4500
4501 "Miss Crawford must be Amelia. She will be an excellent Amelia."
4502
4503 "Do not be afraid of _my_ wanting the character," cried Julia, with
4504 angry quickness: "I am _not_ to be Agatha, and I am sure I will do
4505 nothing else; and as to Amelia, it is of all parts in the world the
4506 most disgusting to me. I quite detest her. An odious, little, pert,
4507 unnatural, impudent girl. I have always protested against comedy, and
4508 this is comedy in its worst form." And so saying, she walked hastily
4509 out of the room, leaving awkward feelings to more than one, but exciting
4510 small compassion in any except Fanny, who had been a quiet auditor of
4511 the whole, and who could not think of her as under the agitations of
4512 _jealousy_ without great pity.
4513
4514 A short silence succeeded her leaving them; but her brother soon
4515 returned to business and Lovers' Vows, and was eagerly looking over
4516 the play, with Mr. Yates's help, to ascertain what scenery would be
4517 necessary--while Maria and Henry Crawford conversed together in an
4518 under-voice, and the declaration with which she began of, "I am sure I
4519 would give up the part to Julia most willingly, but that though I shall
4520 probably do it very ill, I feel persuaded _she_ would do it worse," was
4521 doubtless receiving all the compliments it called for.
4522
4523 When this had lasted some time, the division of the party was completed
4524 by Tom Bertram and Mr. Yates walking off together to consult farther in
4525 the room now beginning to be called _the_ _Theatre_, and Miss Bertram's
4526 resolving to go down to the Parsonage herself with the offer of Amelia
4527 to Miss Crawford; and Fanny remained alone.
4528
4529 The first use she made of her solitude was to take up the volume which
4530 had been left on the table, and begin to acquaint herself with the play
4531 of which she had heard so much. Her curiosity was all awake, and she ran
4532 through it with an eagerness which was suspended only by intervals of
4533 astonishment, that it could be chosen in the present instance, that it
4534 could be proposed and accepted in a private theatre! Agatha and Amelia
4535 appeared to her in their different ways so totally improper for home
4536 representation--the situation of one, and the language of the other,
4537 so unfit to be expressed by any woman of modesty, that she could hardly
4538 suppose her cousins could be aware of what they were engaging in; and
4539 longed to have them roused as soon as possible by the remonstrance which
4540 Edmund would certainly make.
4541
4542
4543
4544 CHAPTER XV
4545
4546 Miss Crawford accepted the part very readily; and soon after Miss
4547 Bertram's return from the Parsonage, Mr. Rushworth arrived, and another
4548 character was consequently cast. He had the offer of Count Cassel
4549 and Anhalt, and at first did not know which to chuse, and wanted Miss
4550 Bertram to direct him; but upon being made to understand the different
4551 style of the characters, and which was which, and recollecting that he
4552 had once seen the play in London, and had thought Anhalt a very stupid
4553 fellow, he soon decided for the Count. Miss Bertram approved the
4554 decision, for the less he had to learn the better; and though she could
4555 not sympathise in his wish that the Count and Agatha might be to act
4556 together, nor wait very patiently while he was slowly turning over the
4557 leaves with the hope of still discovering such a scene, she very kindly
4558 took his part in hand, and curtailed every speech that admitted being
4559 shortened; besides pointing out the necessity of his being very much
4560 dressed, and chusing his colours. Mr. Rushworth liked the idea of his
4561 finery very well, though affecting to despise it; and was too much
4562 engaged with what his own appearance would be to think of the others,
4563 or draw any of those conclusions, or feel any of that displeasure which
4564 Maria had been half prepared for.
4565
4566 Thus much was settled before Edmund, who had been out all the morning,
4567 knew anything of the matter; but when he entered the drawing-room before
4568 dinner, the buzz of discussion was high between Tom, Maria, and Mr.
4569 Yates; and Mr. Rushworth stepped forward with great alacrity to tell him
4570 the agreeable news.
4571
4572 "We have got a play," said he. "It is to be Lovers' Vows; and I am to be
4573 Count Cassel, and am to come in first with a blue dress and a pink satin
4574 cloak, and afterwards am to have another fine fancy suit, by way of a
4575 shooting-dress. I do not know how I shall like it."
4576
4577 Fanny's eyes followed Edmund, and her heart beat for him as she heard
4578 this speech, and saw his look, and felt what his sensations must be.
4579
4580 "Lovers' Vows!" in a tone of the greatest amazement, was his only reply
4581 to Mr. Rushworth, and he turned towards his brother and sisters as if
4582 hardly doubting a contradiction.
4583
4584 "Yes," cried Mr. Yates. "After all our debatings and difficulties, we
4585 find there is nothing that will suit us altogether so well, nothing so
4586 unexceptionable, as Lovers' Vows. The wonder is that it should not have
4587 been thought of before. My stupidity was abominable, for here we have
4588 all the advantage of what I saw at Ecclesford; and it is so useful to
4589 have anything of a model! We have cast almost every part."
4590
4591 "But what do you do for women?" said Edmund gravely, and looking at
4592 Maria.
4593
4594 Maria blushed in spite of herself as she answered, "I take the part
4595 which Lady Ravenshaw was to have done, and" (with a bolder eye) "Miss
4596 Crawford is to be Amelia."
4597
4598 "I should not have thought it the sort of play to be so easily filled
4599 up, with _us_," replied Edmund, turning away to the fire, where sat
4600 his mother, aunt, and Fanny, and seating himself with a look of great
4601 vexation.
4602
4603 Mr. Rushworth followed him to say, "I come in three times, and have
4604 two-and-forty speeches. That's something, is not it? But I do not much
4605 like the idea of being so fine. I shall hardly know myself in a blue
4606 dress and a pink satin cloak."
4607
4608 Edmund could not answer him. In a few minutes Mr. Bertram was called
4609 out of the room to satisfy some doubts of the carpenter; and being
4610 accompanied by Mr. Yates, and followed soon afterwards by Mr. Rushworth,
4611 Edmund almost immediately took the opportunity of saying, "I cannot,
4612 before Mr. Yates, speak what I feel as to this play, without reflecting
4613 on his friends at Ecclesford; but I must now, my dear Maria, tell _you_,
4614 that I think it exceedingly unfit for private representation, and that I
4615 hope you will give it up. I cannot but suppose you _will_ when you have
4616 read it carefully over. Read only the first act aloud to either your
4617 mother or aunt, and see how you can approve it. It will not be necessary
4618 to send you to your _father's_ judgment, I am convinced."
4619
4620 "We see things very differently," cried Maria. "I am perfectly
4621 acquainted with the play, I assure you; and with a very few omissions,
4622 and so forth, which will be made, of course, I can see nothing
4623 objectionable in it; and _I_ am not the _only_ young woman you find who
4624 thinks it very fit for private representation."
4625
4626 "I am sorry for it," was his answer; "but in this matter it is _you_ who
4627 are to lead. _You_ must set the example. If others have blundered, it
4628 is your place to put them right, and shew them what true delicacy is.
4629 In all points of decorum _your_ conduct must be law to the rest of the
4630 party."
4631
4632 This picture of her consequence had some effect, for no one loved better
4633 to lead than Maria; and with far more good-humour she answered, "I am
4634 much obliged to you, Edmund; you mean very well, I am sure: but I still
4635 think you see things too strongly; and I really cannot undertake to
4636 harangue all the rest upon a subject of this kind. _There_ would be the
4637 greatest indecorum, I think."
4638
4639 "Do you imagine that I could have such an idea in my head? No; let your
4640 conduct be the only harangue. Say that, on examining the part, you feel
4641 yourself unequal to it; that you find it requiring more exertion and
4642 confidence than you can be supposed to have. Say this with firmness, and
4643 it will be quite enough. All who can distinguish will understand your
4644 motive. The play will be given up, and your delicacy honoured as it
4645 ought."
4646
4647 "Do not act anything improper, my dear," said Lady Bertram. "Sir Thomas
4648 would not like it.--Fanny, ring the bell; I must have my dinner.--To be
4649 sure, Julia is dressed by this time."
4650
4651 "I am convinced, madam," said Edmund, preventing Fanny, "that Sir Thomas
4652 would not like it."
4653
4654 "There, my dear, do you hear what Edmund says?"
4655
4656 "If I were to decline the part," said Maria, with renewed zeal, "Julia
4657 would certainly take it."
4658
4659 "What!" cried Edmund, "if she knew your reasons!"
4660
4661 "Oh! she might think the difference between us--the difference in our
4662 situations--that _she_ need not be so scrupulous as _I_ might feel
4663 necessary. I am sure she would argue so. No; you must excuse me; I
4664 cannot retract my consent; it is too far settled, everybody would be so
4665 disappointed, Tom would be quite angry; and if we are so very nice, we
4666 shall never act anything."
4667
4668 "I was just going to say the very same thing," said Mrs. Norris.
4669 "If every play is to be objected to, you will act nothing, and the
4670 preparations will be all so much money thrown away, and I am sure _that_
4671 would be a discredit to us all. I do not know the play; but, as Maria
4672 says, if there is anything a little too warm (and it is so with most of
4673 them) it can be easily left out. We must not be over-precise, Edmund. As
4674 Mr. Rushworth is to act too, there can be no harm. I only wish Tom had
4675 known his own mind when the carpenters began, for there was the loss
4676 of half a day's work about those side-doors. The curtain will be a good
4677 job, however. The maids do their work very well, and I think we shall be
4678 able to send back some dozens of the rings. There is no occasion to put
4679 them so very close together. I _am_ of some use, I hope, in preventing
4680 waste and making the most of things. There should always be one
4681 steady head to superintend so many young ones. I forgot to tell Tom of
4682 something that happened to me this very day. I had been looking about me
4683 in the poultry-yard, and was just coming out, when who should I see but
4684 Dick Jackson making up to the servants' hall-door with two bits of deal
4685 board in his hand, bringing them to father, you may be sure; mother had
4686 chanced to send him of a message to father, and then father had bid
4687 him bring up them two bits of board, for he could not no how do without
4688 them. I knew what all this meant, for the servants' dinner-bell
4689 was ringing at the very moment over our heads; and as I hate such
4690 encroaching people (the Jacksons are very encroaching, I have always
4691 said so: just the sort of people to get all they can), I said to the boy
4692 directly (a great lubberly fellow of ten years old, you know, who ought
4693 to be ashamed of himself), '_I'll_ take the boards to your father, Dick,
4694 so get you home again as fast as you can.' The boy looked very silly,
4695 and turned away without offering a word, for I believe I might speak
4696 pretty sharp; and I dare say it will cure him of coming marauding about
4697 the house for one while. I hate such greediness--so good as your father
4698 is to the family, employing the man all the year round!"
4699
4700 Nobody was at the trouble of an answer; the others soon returned; and
4701 Edmund found that to have endeavoured to set them right must be his only
4702 satisfaction.
4703
4704 Dinner passed heavily. Mrs. Norris related again her triumph over Dick
4705 Jackson, but neither play nor preparation were otherwise much talked
4706 of, for Edmund's disapprobation was felt even by his brother, though
4707 he would not have owned it. Maria, wanting Henry Crawford's animating
4708 support, thought the subject better avoided. Mr. Yates, who was trying
4709 to make himself agreeable to Julia, found her gloom less impenetrable on
4710 any topic than that of his regret at her secession from their company;
4711 and Mr. Rushworth, having only his own part and his own dress in his
4712 head, had soon talked away all that could be said of either.
4713
4714 But the concerns of the theatre were suspended only for an hour or two:
4715 there was still a great deal to be settled; and the spirits of evening
4716 giving fresh courage, Tom, Maria, and Mr. Yates, soon after their being
4717 reassembled in the drawing-room, seated themselves in committee at a
4718 separate table, with the play open before them, and were just getting
4719 deep in the subject when a most welcome interruption was given by the
4720 entrance of Mr. and Miss Crawford, who, late and dark and dirty as it
4721 was, could not help coming, and were received with the most grateful
4722 joy.
4723
4724 "Well, how do you go on?" and "What have you settled?" and "Oh! we
4725 can do nothing without you," followed the first salutations; and Henry
4726 Crawford was soon seated with the other three at the table, while his
4727 sister made her way to Lady Bertram, and with pleasant attention was
4728 complimenting _her_. "I must really congratulate your ladyship," said
4729 she, "on the play being chosen; for though you have borne it with
4730 exemplary patience, I am sure you must be sick of all our noise and
4731 difficulties. The actors may be glad, but the bystanders must be
4732 infinitely more thankful for a decision; and I do sincerely give you
4733 joy, madam, as well as Mrs. Norris, and everybody else who is in the
4734 same predicament," glancing half fearfully, half slyly, beyond Fanny to
4735 Edmund.
4736
4737 She was very civilly answered by Lady Bertram, but Edmund said nothing.
4738 His being only a bystander was not disclaimed. After continuing in chat
4739 with the party round the fire a few minutes, Miss Crawford returned
4740 to the party round the table; and standing by them, seemed to
4741 interest herself in their arrangements till, as if struck by a sudden
4742 recollection, she exclaimed, "My good friends, you are most composedly
4743 at work upon these cottages and alehouses, inside and out; but pray let
4744 me know my fate in the meanwhile. Who is to be Anhalt? What gentleman
4745 among you am I to have the pleasure of making love to?"
4746
4747 For a moment no one spoke; and then many spoke together to tell the same
4748 melancholy truth, that they had not yet got any Anhalt. "Mr. Rushworth
4749 was to be Count Cassel, but no one had yet undertaken Anhalt."
4750
4751 "I had my choice of the parts," said Mr. Rushworth; "but I thought I
4752 should like the Count best, though I do not much relish the finery I am
4753 to have."
4754
4755 "You chose very wisely, I am sure," replied Miss Crawford, with a
4756 brightened look; "Anhalt is a heavy part."
4757
4758 "_The_ _Count_ has two-and-forty speeches," returned Mr. Rushworth,
4759 "which is no trifle."
4760
4761 "I am not at all surprised," said Miss Crawford, after a short pause,
4762 "at this want of an Anhalt. Amelia deserves no better. Such a forward
4763 young lady may well frighten the men."
4764
4765 "I should be but too happy in taking the part, if it were possible,"
4766 cried Tom; "but, unluckily, the Butler and Anhalt are in together. I
4767 will not entirely give it up, however; I will try what can be done--I
4768 will look it over again."
4769
4770 "Your _brother_ should take the part," said Mr. Yates, in a low voice.
4771 "Do not you think he would?"
4772
4773 "_I_ shall not ask him," replied Tom, in a cold, determined manner.
4774
4775 Miss Crawford talked of something else, and soon afterwards rejoined the
4776 party at the fire.
4777
4778 "They do not want me at all," said she, seating herself. "I only puzzle
4779 them, and oblige them to make civil speeches. Mr. Edmund Bertram, as
4780 you do not act yourself, you will be a disinterested adviser; and,
4781 therefore, I apply to _you_. What shall we do for an Anhalt? Is it
4782 practicable for any of the others to double it? What is your advice?"
4783
4784 "My advice," said he calmly, "is that you change the play."
4785
4786 "_I_ should have no objection," she replied; "for though I should not
4787 particularly dislike the part of Amelia if well supported, that is, if
4788 everything went well, I shall be sorry to be an inconvenience; but
4789 as they do not chuse to hear your advice at _that_ _table_" (looking
4790 round), "it certainly will not be taken."
4791
4792 Edmund said no more.
4793
4794 "If _any_ part could tempt _you_ to act, I suppose it would be Anhalt,"
4795 observed the lady archly, after a short pause; "for he is a clergyman,
4796 you know."
4797
4798 "_That_ circumstance would by no means tempt me," he replied, "for I
4799 should be sorry to make the character ridiculous by bad acting. It
4800 must be very difficult to keep Anhalt from appearing a formal, solemn
4801 lecturer; and the man who chuses the profession itself is, perhaps, one
4802 of the last who would wish to represent it on the stage."
4803
4804 Miss Crawford was silenced, and with some feelings of resentment and
4805 mortification, moved her chair considerably nearer the tea-table, and
4806 gave all her attention to Mrs. Norris, who was presiding there.
4807
4808 "Fanny," cried Tom Bertram, from the other table, where the conference
4809 was eagerly carrying on, and the conversation incessant, "we want your
4810 services."
4811
4812 Fanny was up in a moment, expecting some errand; for the habit of
4813 employing her in that way was not yet overcome, in spite of all that
4814 Edmund could do.
4815
4816 "Oh! we do not want to disturb you from your seat. We do not want your
4817 _present_ services. We shall only want you in our play. You must be
4818 Cottager's wife."
4819
4820 "Me!" cried Fanny, sitting down again with a most frightened look.
4821 "Indeed you must excuse me. I could not act anything if you were to give
4822 me the world. No, indeed, I cannot act."
4823
4824 "Indeed, but you must, for we cannot excuse you. It need not frighten
4825 you: it is a nothing of a part, a mere nothing, not above half a dozen
4826 speeches altogether, and it will not much signify if nobody hears a word
4827 you say; so you may be as creep-mouse as you like, but we must have you
4828 to look at."
4829
4830 "If you are afraid of half a dozen speeches," cried Mr. Rushworth, "what
4831 would you do with such a part as mine? I have forty-two to learn."
4832
4833 "It is not that I am afraid of learning by heart," said Fanny, shocked
4834 to find herself at that moment the only speaker in the room, and to feel
4835 that almost every eye was upon her; "but I really cannot act."
4836
4837 "Yes, yes, you can act well enough for _us_. Learn your part, and we
4838 will teach you all the rest. You have only two scenes, and as I shall
4839 be Cottager, I'll put you in and push you about, and you will do it very
4840 well, I'll answer for it."
4841
4842 "No, indeed, Mr. Bertram, you must excuse me. You cannot have an idea.
4843 It would be absolutely impossible for me. If I were to undertake it, I
4844 should only disappoint you."
4845
4846 "Phoo! Phoo! Do not be so shamefaced. You'll do it very well. Every
4847 allowance will be made for you. We do not expect perfection. You must
4848 get a brown gown, and a white apron, and a mob cap, and we must make
4849 you a few wrinkles, and a little of the crowsfoot at the corner of your
4850 eyes, and you will be a very proper, little old woman."
4851
4852 "You must excuse me, indeed you must excuse me," cried Fanny, growing
4853 more and more red from excessive agitation, and looking distressfully
4854 at Edmund, who was kindly observing her; but unwilling to exasperate
4855 his brother by interference, gave her only an encouraging smile. Her
4856 entreaty had no effect on Tom: he only said again what he had said
4857 before; and it was not merely Tom, for the requisition was now backed by
4858 Maria, and Mr. Crawford, and Mr. Yates, with an urgency which differed
4859 from his but in being more gentle or more ceremonious, and which
4860 altogether was quite overpowering to Fanny; and before she could breathe
4861 after it, Mrs. Norris completed the whole by thus addressing her in a
4862 whisper at once angry and audible--"What a piece of work here is about
4863 nothing: I am quite ashamed of you, Fanny, to make such a difficulty of
4864 obliging your cousins in a trifle of this sort--so kind as they are to
4865 you! Take the part with a good grace, and let us hear no more of the
4866 matter, I entreat."
4867
4868 "Do not urge her, madam," said Edmund. "It is not fair to urge her
4869 in this manner. You see she does not like to act. Let her chuse for
4870 herself, as well as the rest of us. Her judgment may be quite as safely
4871 trusted. Do not urge her any more."
4872
4873 "I am not going to urge her," replied Mrs. Norris sharply; "but I shall
4874 think her a very obstinate, ungrateful girl, if she does not do what her
4875 aunt and cousins wish her--very ungrateful, indeed, considering who and
4876 what she is."
4877
4878 Edmund was too angry to speak; but Miss Crawford, looking for a moment
4879 with astonished eyes at Mrs. Norris, and then at Fanny, whose tears were
4880 beginning to shew themselves, immediately said, with some keenness, "I
4881 do not like my situation: this _place_ is too hot for me," and moved
4882 away her chair to the opposite side of the table, close to Fanny, saying
4883 to her, in a kind, low whisper, as she placed herself, "Never mind,
4884 my dear Miss Price, this is a cross evening: everybody is cross and
4885 teasing, but do not let us mind them"; and with pointed attention
4886 continued to talk to her and endeavour to raise her spirits, in spite of
4887 being out of spirits herself. By a look at her brother she prevented any
4888 farther entreaty from the theatrical board, and the really good feelings
4889 by which she was almost purely governed were rapidly restoring her to
4890 all the little she had lost in Edmund's favour.
4891
4892 Fanny did not love Miss Crawford; but she felt very much obliged to her
4893 for her present kindness; and when, from taking notice of her work,
4894 and wishing _she_ could work as well, and begging for the pattern, and
4895 supposing Fanny was now preparing for her _appearance_, as of course she
4896 would come out when her cousin was married, Miss Crawford proceeded to
4897 inquire if she had heard lately from her brother at sea, and said that
4898 she had quite a curiosity to see him, and imagined him a very fine young
4899 man, and advised Fanny to get his picture drawn before he went to sea
4900 again--she could not help admitting it to be very agreeable flattery, or
4901 help listening, and answering with more animation than she had intended.
4902
4903 The consultation upon the play still went on, and Miss Crawford's
4904 attention was first called from Fanny by Tom Bertram's telling her,
4905 with infinite regret, that he found it absolutely impossible for him to
4906 undertake the part of Anhalt in addition to the Butler: he had been most
4907 anxiously trying to make it out to be feasible, but it would not do;
4908 he must give it up. "But there will not be the smallest difficulty in
4909 filling it," he added. "We have but to speak the word; we may pick and
4910 chuse. I could name, at this moment, at least six young men within six
4911 miles of us, who are wild to be admitted into our company, and there are
4912 one or two that would not disgrace us: I should not be afraid to trust
4913 either of the Olivers or Charles Maddox. Tom Oliver is a very clever
4914 fellow, and Charles Maddox is as gentlemanlike a man as you will see
4915 anywhere, so I will take my horse early to-morrow morning and ride over
4916 to Stoke, and settle with one of them."
4917
4918 While he spoke, Maria was looking apprehensively round at Edmund in full
4919 expectation that he must oppose such an enlargement of the plan as this:
4920 so contrary to all their first protestations; but Edmund said nothing.
4921 After a moment's thought, Miss Crawford calmly replied, "As far as I
4922 am concerned, I can have no objection to anything that you all think
4923 eligible. Have I ever seen either of the gentlemen? Yes, Mr. Charles
4924 Maddox dined at my sister's one day, did not he, Henry? A quiet-looking
4925 young man. I remember him. Let _him_ be applied to, if you please, for
4926 it will be less unpleasant to me than to have a perfect stranger."
4927
4928 Charles Maddox was to be the man. Tom repeated his resolution of going
4929 to him early on the morrow; and though Julia, who had scarcely opened
4930 her lips before, observed, in a sarcastic manner, and with a glance
4931 first at Maria and then at Edmund, that "the Mansfield theatricals would
4932 enliven the whole neighbourhood exceedingly," Edmund still held his
4933 peace, and shewed his feelings only by a determined gravity.
4934
4935 "I am not very sanguine as to our play," said Miss Crawford, in an
4936 undervoice to Fanny, after some consideration; "and I can tell Mr.
4937 Maddox that I shall shorten some of _his_ speeches, and a great many of
4938 _my_ _own_, before we rehearse together. It will be very disagreeable,
4939 and by no means what I expected."
4940
4941
4942
4943 CHAPTER XVI
4944
4945 It was not in Miss Crawford's power to talk Fanny into any real
4946 forgetfulness of what had passed. When the evening was over, she went to
4947 bed full of it, her nerves still agitated by the shock of such an attack
4948 from her cousin Tom, so public and so persevered in, and her spirits
4949 sinking under her aunt's unkind reflection and reproach. To be called
4950 into notice in such a manner, to hear that it was but the prelude to
4951 something so infinitely worse, to be told that she must do what was
4952 so impossible as to act; and then to have the charge of obstinacy and
4953 ingratitude follow it, enforced with such a hint at the dependence
4954 of her situation, had been too distressing at the time to make the
4955 remembrance when she was alone much less so, especially with the
4956 superadded dread of what the morrow might produce in continuation of the
4957 subject. Miss Crawford had protected her only for the time; and if
4958 she were applied to again among themselves with all the authoritative
4959 urgency that Tom and Maria were capable of, and Edmund perhaps away,
4960 what should she do? She fell asleep before she could answer the
4961 question, and found it quite as puzzling when she awoke the next
4962 morning. The little white attic, which had continued her sleeping-room
4963 ever since her first entering the family, proving incompetent to suggest
4964 any reply, she had recourse, as soon as she was dressed, to another
4965 apartment more spacious and more meet for walking about in and thinking,
4966 and of which she had now for some time been almost equally mistress. It
4967 had been their school-room; so called till the Miss Bertrams would not
4968 allow it to be called so any longer, and inhabited as such to a later
4969 period. There Miss Lee had lived, and there they had read and written,
4970 and talked and laughed, till within the last three years, when she had
4971 quitted them. The room had then become useless, and for some time was
4972 quite deserted, except by Fanny, when she visited her plants, or wanted
4973 one of the books, which she was still glad to keep there, from the
4974 deficiency of space and accommodation in her little chamber above: but
4975 gradually, as her value for the comforts of it increased, she had added
4976 to her possessions, and spent more of her time there; and having nothing
4977 to oppose her, had so naturally and so artlessly worked herself into it,
4978 that it was now generally admitted to be hers. The East room, as it had
4979 been called ever since Maria Bertram was sixteen, was now considered
4980 Fanny's, almost as decidedly as the white attic: the smallness of the
4981 one making the use of the other so evidently reasonable that the Miss
4982 Bertrams, with every superiority in their own apartments which their own
4983 sense of superiority could demand, were entirely approving it; and Mrs.
4984 Norris, having stipulated for there never being a fire in it on Fanny's
4985 account, was tolerably resigned to her having the use of what nobody
4986 else wanted, though the terms in which she sometimes spoke of the
4987 indulgence seemed to imply that it was the best room in the house.
4988
4989 The aspect was so favourable that even without a fire it was habitable
4990 in many an early spring and late autumn morning to such a willing mind
4991 as Fanny's; and while there was a gleam of sunshine she hoped not to be
4992 driven from it entirely, even when winter came. The comfort of it in
4993 her hours of leisure was extreme. She could go there after anything
4994 unpleasant below, and find immediate consolation in some pursuit, or
4995 some train of thought at hand. Her plants, her books--of which she had
4996 been a collector from the first hour of her commanding a shilling--her
4997 writing-desk, and her works of charity and ingenuity, were all within
4998 her reach; or if indisposed for employment, if nothing but musing would
4999 do, she could scarcely see an object in that room which had not an
5000 interesting remembrance connected with it. Everything was a friend, or
5001 bore her thoughts to a friend; and though there had been sometimes much
5002 of suffering to her; though her motives had often been misunderstood,
5003 her feelings disregarded, and her comprehension undervalued; though she
5004 had known the pains of tyranny, of ridicule, and neglect, yet almost
5005 every recurrence of either had led to something consolatory: her aunt
5006 Bertram had spoken for her, or Miss Lee had been encouraging, or, what
5007 was yet more frequent or more dear, Edmund had been her champion and her
5008 friend: he had supported her cause or explained her meaning, he had told
5009 her not to cry, or had given her some proof of affection which made
5010 her tears delightful; and the whole was now so blended together, so
5011 harmonised by distance, that every former affliction had its charm. The
5012 room was most dear to her, and she would not have changed its furniture
5013 for the handsomest in the house, though what had been originally plain
5014 had suffered all the ill-usage of children; and its greatest elegancies
5015 and ornaments were a faded footstool of Julia's work, too ill done
5016 for the drawing-room, three transparencies, made in a rage for
5017 transparencies, for the three lower panes of one window, where Tintern
5018 Abbey held its station between a cave in Italy and a moonlight lake in
5019 Cumberland, a collection of family profiles, thought unworthy of being
5020 anywhere else, over the mantelpiece, and by their side, and pinned
5021 against the wall, a small sketch of a ship sent four years ago from the
5022 Mediterranean by William, with H.M.S. Antwerp at the bottom, in letters
5023 as tall as the mainmast.
5024
5025 To this nest of comforts Fanny now walked down to try its influence on
5026 an agitated, doubting spirit, to see if by looking at Edmund's profile
5027 she could catch any of his counsel, or by giving air to her geraniums
5028 she might inhale a breeze of mental strength herself. But she had more
5029 than fears of her own perseverance to remove: she had begun to feel
5030 undecided as to what she _ought_ _to_ _do_; and as she walked round the
5031 room her doubts were increasing. Was she _right_ in refusing what was
5032 so warmly asked, so strongly wished for--what might be so essential to a
5033 scheme on which some of those to whom she owed the greatest complaisance
5034 had set their hearts? Was it not ill-nature, selfishness, and a fear of
5035 exposing herself? And would Edmund's judgment, would his persuasion of
5036 Sir Thomas's disapprobation of the whole, be enough to justify her in a
5037 determined denial in spite of all the rest? It would be so horrible to
5038 her to act that she was inclined to suspect the truth and purity of her
5039 own scruples; and as she looked around her, the claims of her cousins
5040 to being obliged were strengthened by the sight of present upon present
5041 that she had received from them. The table between the windows was
5042 covered with work-boxes and netting-boxes which had been given her at
5043 different times, principally by Tom; and she grew bewildered as to the
5044 amount of the debt which all these kind remembrances produced. A tap at
5045 the door roused her in the midst of this attempt to find her way to her
5046 duty, and her gentle "Come in" was answered by the appearance of one,
5047 before whom all her doubts were wont to be laid. Her eyes brightened at
5048 the sight of Edmund.
5049
5050 "Can I speak with you, Fanny, for a few minutes?" said he.
5051
5052 "Yes, certainly."
5053
5054 "I want to consult. I want your opinion."
5055
5056 "My opinion!" she cried, shrinking from such a compliment, highly as it
5057 gratified her.
5058
5059 "Yes, your advice and opinion. I do not know what to do. This acting
5060 scheme gets worse and worse, you see. They have chosen almost as bad a
5061 play as they could, and now, to complete the business, are going to ask
5062 the help of a young man very slightly known to any of us. This is the
5063 end of all the privacy and propriety which was talked about at first.
5064 I know no harm of Charles Maddox; but the excessive intimacy which
5065 must spring from his being admitted among us in this manner is highly
5066 objectionable, the _more_ than intimacy--the familiarity. I cannot
5067 think of it with any patience; and it does appear to me an evil of such
5068 magnitude as must, _if_ _possible_, be prevented. Do not you see it in
5069 the same light?"
5070
5071 "Yes; but what can be done? Your brother is so determined."
5072
5073 "There is but _one_ thing to be done, Fanny. I must take Anhalt myself.
5074 I am well aware that nothing else will quiet Tom."
5075
5076 Fanny could not answer him.
5077
5078 "It is not at all what I like," he continued. "No man can like being
5079 driven into the _appearance_ of such inconsistency. After being known to
5080 oppose the scheme from the beginning, there is absurdity in the face of
5081 my joining them _now_, when they are exceeding their first plan in every
5082 respect; but I can think of no other alternative. Can you, Fanny?"
5083
5084 "No," said Fanny slowly, "not immediately, but--"
5085
5086 "But what? I see your judgment is not with me. Think it a little over.
5087 Perhaps you are not so much aware as I am of the mischief that _may_, of
5088 the unpleasantness that _must_ arise from a young man's being received
5089 in this manner: domesticated among us; authorised to come at all hours,
5090 and placed suddenly on a footing which must do away all restraints. To
5091 think only of the licence which every rehearsal must tend to create. It
5092 is all very bad! Put yourself in Miss Crawford's place, Fanny. Consider
5093 what it would be to act Amelia with a stranger. She has a right to be
5094 felt for, because she evidently feels for herself. I heard enough of
5095 what she said to you last night to understand her unwillingness to be
5096 acting with a stranger; and as she probably engaged in the part with
5097 different expectations--perhaps without considering the subject enough
5098 to know what was likely to be--it would be ungenerous, it would be
5099 really wrong to expose her to it. Her feelings ought to be respected.
5100 Does it not strike you so, Fanny? You hesitate."
5101
5102 "I am sorry for Miss Crawford; but I am more sorry to see you drawn in
5103 to do what you had resolved against, and what you are known to think
5104 will be disagreeable to my uncle. It will be such a triumph to the
5105 others!"
5106
5107 "They will not have much cause of triumph when they see how infamously I
5108 act. But, however, triumph there certainly will be, and I must brave it.
5109 But if I can be the means of restraining the publicity of the business,
5110 of limiting the exhibition, of concentrating our folly, I shall be
5111 well repaid. As I am now, I have no influence, I can do nothing: I have
5112 offended them, and they will not hear me; but when I have put them in
5113 good-humour by this concession, I am not without hopes of persuading
5114 them to confine the representation within a much smaller circle than
5115 they are now in the high road for. This will be a material gain. My
5116 object is to confine it to Mrs. Rushworth and the Grants. Will not this
5117 be worth gaining?"
5118
5119 "Yes, it will be a great point."
5120
5121 "But still it has not your approbation. Can you mention any other
5122 measure by which I have a chance of doing equal good?"
5123
5124 "No, I cannot think of anything else."
5125
5126 "Give me your approbation, then, Fanny. I am not comfortable without
5127 it."
5128
5129 "Oh, cousin!"
5130
5131 "If you are against me, I ought to distrust myself, and yet--But it is
5132 absolutely impossible to let Tom go on in this way, riding about the
5133 country in quest of anybody who can be persuaded to act--no matter whom:
5134 the look of a gentleman is to be enough. I thought _you_ would have
5135 entered more into Miss Crawford's feelings."
5136
5137 "No doubt she will be very glad. It must be a great relief to her," said
5138 Fanny, trying for greater warmth of manner.
5139
5140 "She never appeared more amiable than in her behaviour to you last
5141 night. It gave her a very strong claim on my goodwill."
5142
5143 "She _was_ very kind, indeed, and I am glad to have her spared"...
5144
5145 She could not finish the generous effusion. Her conscience stopt her in
5146 the middle, but Edmund was satisfied.
5147
5148 "I shall walk down immediately after breakfast," said he, "and am sure
5149 of giving pleasure there. And now, dear Fanny, I will not interrupt you
5150 any longer. You want to be reading. But I could not be easy till I had
5151 spoken to you, and come to a decision. Sleeping or waking, my head has
5152 been full of this matter all night. It is an evil, but I am certainly
5153 making it less than it might be. If Tom is up, I shall go to him
5154 directly and get it over, and when we meet at breakfast we shall be all
5155 in high good-humour at the prospect of acting the fool together with
5156 such unanimity. _You_, in the meanwhile, will be taking a trip into
5157 China, I suppose. How does Lord Macartney go on?"--opening a volume on
5158 the table and then taking up some others. "And here are Crabbe's Tales,
5159 and the Idler, at hand to relieve you, if you tire of your great book. I
5160 admire your little establishment exceedingly; and as soon as I am
5161 gone, you will empty your head of all this nonsense of acting, and sit
5162 comfortably down to your table. But do not stay here to be cold."
5163
5164 He went; but there was no reading, no China, no composure for Fanny. He
5165 had told her the most extraordinary, the most inconceivable, the most
5166 unwelcome news; and she could think of nothing else. To be acting! After
5167 all his objections--objections so just and so public! After all that she
5168 had heard him say, and seen him look, and known him to be feeling. Could
5169 it be possible? Edmund so inconsistent! Was he not deceiving himself?
5170 Was he not wrong? Alas! it was all Miss Crawford's doing. She had seen
5171 her influence in every speech, and was miserable. The doubts and alarms
5172 as to her own conduct, which had previously distressed her, and
5173 which had all slept while she listened to him, were become of little
5174 consequence now. This deeper anxiety swallowed them up. Things should
5175 take their course; she cared not how it ended. Her cousins might attack,
5176 but could hardly tease her. She was beyond their reach; and if at last
5177 obliged to yield--no matter--it was all misery now.
5178
5179
5180
5181 CHAPTER XVII
5182
5183 It was, indeed, a triumphant day to Mr. Bertram and Maria. Such a
5184 victory over Edmund's discretion had been beyond their hopes, and was
5185 most delightful. There was no longer anything to disturb them in their
5186 darling project, and they congratulated each other in private on the
5187 jealous weakness to which they attributed the change, with all the glee
5188 of feelings gratified in every way. Edmund might still look grave, and
5189 say he did not like the scheme in general, and must disapprove the play
5190 in particular; their point was gained: he was to act, and he was driven
5191 to it by the force of selfish inclinations only. Edmund had descended
5192 from that moral elevation which he had maintained before, and they were
5193 both as much the better as the happier for the descent.
5194
5195 They behaved very well, however, to _him_ on the occasion, betraying no
5196 exultation beyond the lines about the corners of the mouth, and seemed
5197 to think it as great an escape to be quit of the intrusion of Charles
5198 Maddox, as if they had been forced into admitting him against their
5199 inclination. "To have it quite in their own family circle was what
5200 they had particularly wished. A stranger among them would have been the
5201 destruction of all their comfort"; and when Edmund, pursuing that idea,
5202 gave a hint of his hope as to the limitation of the audience, they were
5203 ready, in the complaisance of the moment, to promise anything. It was
5204 all good-humour and encouragement. Mrs. Norris offered to contrive his
5205 dress, Mr. Yates assured him that Anhalt's last scene with the Baron
5206 admitted a good deal of action and emphasis, and Mr. Rushworth undertook
5207 to count his speeches.
5208
5209 "Perhaps," said Tom, "Fanny may be more disposed to oblige us now.
5210 Perhaps you may persuade _her_."
5211
5212 "No, she is quite determined. She certainly will not act."
5213
5214 "Oh! very well." And not another word was said; but Fanny felt herself
5215 again in danger, and her indifference to the danger was beginning to
5216 fail her already.
5217
5218 There were not fewer smiles at the Parsonage than at the Park on this
5219 change in Edmund; Miss Crawford looked very lovely in hers, and entered
5220 with such an instantaneous renewal of cheerfulness into the whole
5221 affair as could have but one effect on him. "He was certainly right in
5222 respecting such feelings; he was glad he had determined on it." And the
5223 morning wore away in satisfactions very sweet, if not very sound. One
5224 advantage resulted from it to Fanny: at the earnest request of Miss
5225 Crawford, Mrs. Grant had, with her usual good-humour, agreed to
5226 undertake the part for which Fanny had been wanted; and this was all
5227 that occurred to gladden _her_ heart during the day; and even this, when
5228 imparted by Edmund, brought a pang with it, for it was Miss Crawford to
5229 whom she was obliged--it was Miss Crawford whose kind exertions were to
5230 excite her gratitude, and whose merit in making them was spoken of
5231 with a glow of admiration. She was safe; but peace and safety were
5232 unconnected here. Her mind had been never farther from peace. She could
5233 not feel that she had done wrong herself, but she was disquieted
5234 in every other way. Her heart and her judgment were equally against
5235 Edmund's decision: she could not acquit his unsteadiness, and his
5236 happiness under it made her wretched. She was full of jealousy and
5237 agitation. Miss Crawford came with looks of gaiety which seemed an
5238 insult, with friendly expressions towards herself which she could hardly
5239 answer calmly. Everybody around her was gay and busy, prosperous and
5240 important; each had their object of interest, their part, their dress,
5241 their favourite scene, their friends and confederates: all were finding
5242 employment in consultations and comparisons, or diversion in the playful
5243 conceits they suggested. She alone was sad and insignificant: she had
5244 no share in anything; she might go or stay; she might be in the midst
5245 of their noise, or retreat from it to the solitude of the East room,
5246 without being seen or missed. She could almost think anything would
5247 have been preferable to this. Mrs. Grant was of consequence: _her_
5248 good-nature had honourable mention; her taste and her time were
5249 considered; her presence was wanted; she was sought for, and attended,
5250 and praised; and Fanny was at first in some danger of envying her the
5251 character she had accepted. But reflection brought better feelings, and
5252 shewed her that Mrs. Grant was entitled to respect, which could never
5253 have belonged to _her_; and that, had she received even the greatest,
5254 she could never have been easy in joining a scheme which, considering
5255 only her uncle, she must condemn altogether.
5256
5257 Fanny's heart was not absolutely the only saddened one amongst them,
5258 as she soon began to acknowledge to herself. Julia was a sufferer too,
5259 though not quite so blamelessly.
5260
5261 Henry Crawford had trifled with her feelings; but she had very long
5262 allowed and even sought his attentions, with a jealousy of her sister so
5263 reasonable as ought to have been their cure; and now that the conviction
5264 of his preference for Maria had been forced on her, she submitted to it
5265 without any alarm for Maria's situation, or any endeavour at rational
5266 tranquillity for herself. She either sat in gloomy silence, wrapt in
5267 such gravity as nothing could subdue, no curiosity touch, no wit amuse;
5268 or allowing the attentions of Mr. Yates, was talking with forced gaiety
5269 to him alone, and ridiculing the acting of the others.
5270
5271 For a day or two after the affront was given, Henry Crawford had
5272 endeavoured to do it away by the usual attack of gallantry and
5273 compliment, but he had not cared enough about it to persevere against a
5274 few repulses; and becoming soon too busy with his play to have time for
5275 more than one flirtation, he grew indifferent to the quarrel, or rather
5276 thought it a lucky occurrence, as quietly putting an end to what might
5277 ere long have raised expectations in more than Mrs. Grant. She was not
5278 pleased to see Julia excluded from the play, and sitting by disregarded;
5279 but as it was not a matter which really involved her happiness, as Henry
5280 must be the best judge of his own, and as he did assure her, with a
5281 most persuasive smile, that neither he nor Julia had ever had a serious
5282 thought of each other, she could only renew her former caution as to
5283 the elder sister, entreat him not to risk his tranquillity by too
5284 much admiration there, and then gladly take her share in anything that
5285 brought cheerfulness to the young people in general, and that did so
5286 particularly promote the pleasure of the two so dear to her.
5287
5288 "I rather wonder Julia is not in love with Henry," was her observation
5289 to Mary.
5290
5291 "I dare say she is," replied Mary coldly. "I imagine both sisters are."
5292
5293 "Both! no, no, that must not be. Do not give him a hint of it. Think of
5294 Mr. Rushworth!"
5295
5296 "You had better tell Miss Bertram to think of Mr. Rushworth. It may
5297 do _her_ some good. I often think of Mr. Rushworth's property and
5298 independence, and wish them in other hands; but I never think of him. A
5299 man might represent the county with such an estate; a man might escape a
5300 profession and represent the county."
5301
5302 "I dare say he _will_ be in parliament soon. When Sir Thomas comes, I
5303 dare say he will be in for some borough, but there has been nobody to
5304 put him in the way of doing anything yet."
5305
5306 "Sir Thomas is to achieve many mighty things when he comes home," said
5307 Mary, after a pause. "Do you remember Hawkins Browne's 'Address to
5308 Tobacco,' in imitation of Pope?--
5309
5310 Blest leaf! whose aromatic gales dispense
5311 To Templars modesty, to Parsons sense.
5312
5313 I will parody them--
5314
5315 Blest Knight! whose dictatorial looks dispense
5316 To Children affluence, to Rushworth sense.
5317
5318 Will not that do, Mrs. Grant? Everything seems to depend upon Sir
5319 Thomas's return."
5320
5321 "You will find his consequence very just and reasonable when you see him
5322 in his family, I assure you. I do not think we do so well without him.
5323 He has a fine dignified manner, which suits the head of such a house,
5324 and keeps everybody in their place. Lady Bertram seems more of a cipher
5325 now than when he is at home; and nobody else can keep Mrs. Norris in
5326 order. But, Mary, do not fancy that Maria Bertram cares for Henry. I
5327 am sure _Julia_ does not, or she would not have flirted as she did last
5328 night with Mr. Yates; and though he and Maria are very good friends, I
5329 think she likes Sotherton too well to be inconstant."
5330
5331 "I would not give much for Mr. Rushworth's chance if Henry stept in
5332 before the articles were signed."
5333
5334 "If you have such a suspicion, something must be done; and as soon as
5335 the play is all over, we will talk to him seriously and make him know
5336 his own mind; and if he means nothing, we will send him off, though he
5337 is Henry, for a time."
5338
5339 Julia _did_ suffer, however, though Mrs. Grant discerned it not, and
5340 though it escaped the notice of many of her own family likewise. She had
5341 loved, she did love still, and she had all the suffering which a warm
5342 temper and a high spirit were likely to endure under the disappointment
5343 of a dear, though irrational hope, with a strong sense of ill-usage.
5344 Her heart was sore and angry, and she was capable only of angry
5345 consolations. The sister with whom she was used to be on easy terms was
5346 now become her greatest enemy: they were alienated from each other;
5347 and Julia was not superior to the hope of some distressing end to the
5348 attentions which were still carrying on there, some punishment to
5349 Maria for conduct so shameful towards herself as well as towards Mr.
5350 Rushworth. With no material fault of temper, or difference of opinion,
5351 to prevent their being very good friends while their interests were
5352 the same, the sisters, under such a trial as this, had not affection or
5353 principle enough to make them merciful or just, to give them honour or
5354 compassion. Maria felt her triumph, and pursued her purpose, careless of
5355 Julia; and Julia could never see Maria distinguished by Henry Crawford
5356 without trusting that it would create jealousy, and bring a public
5357 disturbance at last.
5358
5359 Fanny saw and pitied much of this in Julia; but there was no outward
5360 fellowship between them. Julia made no communication, and Fanny took
5361 no liberties. They were two solitary sufferers, or connected only by
5362 Fanny's consciousness.
5363
5364 The inattention of the two brothers and the aunt to Julia's
5365 discomposure, and their blindness to its true cause, must be imputed to
5366 the fullness of their own minds. They were totally preoccupied. Tom was
5367 engrossed by the concerns of his theatre, and saw nothing that did not
5368 immediately relate to it. Edmund, between his theatrical and his real
5369 part, between Miss Crawford's claims and his own conduct, between love
5370 and consistency, was equally unobservant; and Mrs. Norris was too busy
5371 in contriving and directing the general little matters of the company,
5372 superintending their various dresses with economical expedient, for
5373 which nobody thanked her, and saving, with delighted integrity, half
5374 a crown here and there to the absent Sir Thomas, to have leisure for
5375 watching the behaviour, or guarding the happiness of his daughters.
5376
5377
5378
5379 CHAPTER XVIII
5380
5381 Everything was now in a regular train: theatre, actors, actresses, and
5382 dresses, were all getting forward; but though no other great impediments
5383 arose, Fanny found, before many days were past, that it was not all
5384 uninterrupted enjoyment to the party themselves, and that she had not to
5385 witness the continuance of such unanimity and delight as had been almost
5386 too much for her at first. Everybody began to have their vexation.
5387 Edmund had many. Entirely against _his_ judgment, a scene-painter
5388 arrived from town, and was at work, much to the increase of the
5389 expenses, and, what was worse, of the eclat of their proceedings; and
5390 his brother, instead of being really guided by him as to the privacy of
5391 the representation, was giving an invitation to every family who came
5392 in his way. Tom himself began to fret over the scene-painter's slow
5393 progress, and to feel the miseries of waiting. He had learned his
5394 part--all his parts, for he took every trifling one that could be united
5395 with the Butler, and began to be impatient to be acting; and every day
5396 thus unemployed was tending to increase his sense of the insignificance
5397 of all his parts together, and make him more ready to regret that some
5398 other play had not been chosen.
5399
5400 Fanny, being always a very courteous listener, and often the only
5401 listener at hand, came in for the complaints and the distresses of
5402 most of them. _She_ knew that Mr. Yates was in general thought to rant
5403 dreadfully; that Mr. Yates was disappointed in Henry Crawford; that
5404 Tom Bertram spoke so quick he would be unintelligible; that Mrs. Grant
5405 spoiled everything by laughing; that Edmund was behindhand with his
5406 part, and that it was misery to have anything to do with Mr. Rushworth,
5407 who was wanting a prompter through every speech. She knew, also, that
5408 poor Mr. Rushworth could seldom get anybody to rehearse with him: _his_
5409 complaint came before her as well as the rest; and so decided to her
5410 eye was her cousin Maria's avoidance of him, and so needlessly often the
5411 rehearsal of the first scene between her and Mr. Crawford, that she had
5412 soon all the terror of other complaints from _him_. So far from being
5413 all satisfied and all enjoying, she found everybody requiring something
5414 they had not, and giving occasion of discontent to the others. Everybody
5415 had a part either too long or too short; nobody would attend as they
5416 ought; nobody would remember on which side they were to come in; nobody
5417 but the complainer would observe any directions.
5418
5419 Fanny believed herself to derive as much innocent enjoyment from the
5420 play as any of them; Henry Crawford acted well, and it was a pleasure to
5421 _her_ to creep into the theatre, and attend the rehearsal of the first
5422 act, in spite of the feelings it excited in some speeches for Maria.
5423 Maria, she also thought, acted well, too well; and after the first
5424 rehearsal or two, Fanny began to be their only audience; and sometimes
5425 as prompter, sometimes as spectator, was often very useful. As far as
5426 she could judge, Mr. Crawford was considerably the best actor of all: he
5427 had more confidence than Edmund, more judgment than Tom, more talent and
5428 taste than Mr. Yates. She did not like him as a man, but she must admit
5429 him to be the best actor, and on this point there were not many who
5430 differed from her. Mr. Yates, indeed, exclaimed against his tameness and
5431 insipidity; and the day came at last, when Mr. Rushworth turned to her
5432 with a black look, and said, "Do you think there is anything so very
5433 fine in all this? For the life and soul of me, I cannot admire him; and,
5434 between ourselves, to see such an undersized, little, mean-looking man,
5435 set up for a fine actor, is very ridiculous in my opinion."
5436
5437 From this moment there was a return of his former jealousy, which Maria,
5438 from increasing hopes of Crawford, was at little pains to remove; and
5439 the chances of Mr. Rushworth's ever attaining to the knowledge of his
5440 two-and-forty speeches became much less. As to his ever making anything
5441 _tolerable_ of them, nobody had the smallest idea of that except
5442 his mother; _she_, indeed, regretted that his part was not more
5443 considerable, and deferred coming over to Mansfield till they were
5444 forward enough in their rehearsal to comprehend all his scenes; but the
5445 others aspired at nothing beyond his remembering the catchword, and the
5446 first line of his speech, and being able to follow the prompter through
5447 the rest. Fanny, in her pity and kindheartedness, was at great pains to
5448 teach him how to learn, giving him all the helps and directions in her
5449 power, trying to make an artificial memory for him, and learning every
5450 word of his part herself, but without his being much the forwarder.
5451
5452 Many uncomfortable, anxious, apprehensive feelings she certainly had;
5453 but with all these, and other claims on her time and attention, she was
5454 as far from finding herself without employment or utility amongst them,
5455 as without a companion in uneasiness; quite as far from having no
5456 demand on her leisure as on her compassion. The gloom of her first
5457 anticipations was proved to have been unfounded. She was occasionally
5458 useful to all; she was perhaps as much at peace as any.
5459
5460 There was a great deal of needlework to be done, moreover, in which her
5461 help was wanted; and that Mrs. Norris thought her quite as well off
5462 as the rest, was evident by the manner in which she claimed it--"Come,
5463 Fanny," she cried, "these are fine times for you, but you must not be
5464 always walking from one room to the other, and doing the lookings-on at
5465 your ease, in this way; I want you here. I have been slaving myself till
5466 I can hardly stand, to contrive Mr. Rushworth's cloak without sending
5467 for any more satin; and now I think you may give me your help in putting
5468 it together. There are but three seams; you may do them in a trice. It
5469 would be lucky for me if I had nothing but the executive part to do.
5470 _You_ are best off, I can tell you: but if nobody did more than _you_,
5471 we should not get on very fast."
5472
5473 Fanny took the work very quietly, without attempting any defence; but
5474 her kinder aunt Bertram observed on her behalf--
5475
5476 "One cannot wonder, sister, that Fanny _should_ be delighted: it is
5477 all new to her, you know; you and I used to be very fond of a play
5478 ourselves, and so am I still; and as soon as I am a little more at
5479 leisure, _I_ mean to look in at their rehearsals too. What is the play
5480 about, Fanny? you have never told me."
5481
5482 "Oh! sister, pray do not ask her now; for Fanny is not one of those who
5483 can talk and work at the same time. It is about Lovers' Vows."
5484
5485 "I believe," said Fanny to her aunt Bertram, "there will be three acts
5486 rehearsed to-morrow evening, and that will give you an opportunity of
5487 seeing all the actors at once."
5488
5489 "You had better stay till the curtain is hung," interposed Mrs. Norris;
5490 "the curtain will be hung in a day or two--there is very little sense in
5491 a play without a curtain--and I am much mistaken if you do not find it
5492 draw up into very handsome festoons."
5493
5494 Lady Bertram seemed quite resigned to waiting. Fanny did not share her
5495 aunt's composure: she thought of the morrow a great deal, for if the
5496 three acts were rehearsed, Edmund and Miss Crawford would then be acting
5497 together for the first time; the third act would bring a scene between
5498 them which interested her most particularly, and which she was longing
5499 and dreading to see how they would perform. The whole subject of it was
5500 love--a marriage of love was to be described by the gentleman, and very
5501 little short of a declaration of love be made by the lady.
5502
5503 She had read and read the scene again with many painful, many wondering
5504 emotions, and looked forward to their representation of it as a
5505 circumstance almost too interesting. She did not _believe_ they had yet
5506 rehearsed it, even in private.
5507
5508 The morrow came, the plan for the evening continued, and Fanny's
5509 consideration of it did not become less agitated. She worked very
5510 diligently under her aunt's directions, but her diligence and her
5511 silence concealed a very absent, anxious mind; and about noon she
5512 made her escape with her work to the East room, that she might have no
5513 concern in another, and, as she deemed it, most unnecessary rehearsal of
5514 the first act, which Henry Crawford was just proposing, desirous at
5515 once of having her time to herself, and of avoiding the sight of Mr.
5516 Rushworth. A glimpse, as she passed through the hall, of the two ladies
5517 walking up from the Parsonage made no change in her wish of retreat, and
5518 she worked and meditated in the East room, undisturbed, for a quarter of
5519 an hour, when a gentle tap at the door was followed by the entrance of
5520 Miss Crawford.
5521
5522 "Am I right? Yes; this is the East room. My dear Miss Price, I beg your
5523 pardon, but I have made my way to you on purpose to entreat your help."
5524
5525 Fanny, quite surprised, endeavoured to shew herself mistress of the room
5526 by her civilities, and looked at the bright bars of her empty grate with
5527 concern.
5528
5529 "Thank you; I am quite warm, very warm. Allow me to stay here a little
5530 while, and do have the goodness to hear me my third act. I have brought
5531 my book, and if you would but rehearse it with me, I should be _so_
5532 obliged! I came here to-day intending to rehearse it with Edmund--by
5533 ourselves--against the evening, but he is not in the way; and if he
5534 _were_, I do not think I could go through it with _him_, till I have
5535 hardened myself a little; for really there is a speech or two. You will
5536 be so good, won't you?"
5537
5538 Fanny was most civil in her assurances, though she could not give them
5539 in a very steady voice.
5540
5541 "Have you ever happened to look at the part I mean?" continued Miss
5542 Crawford, opening her book. "Here it is. I did not think much of it at
5543 first--but, upon my word. There, look at _that_ speech, and _that_, and
5544 _that_. How am I ever to look him in the face and say such things? Could
5545 you do it? But then he is your cousin, which makes all the difference.
5546 You must rehearse it with me, that I may fancy _you_ him, and get on by
5547 degrees. You _have_ a look of _his_ sometimes."
5548
5549 "Have I? I will do my best with the greatest readiness; but I must
5550 _read_ the part, for I can say very little of it."
5551
5552 "_None_ of it, I suppose. You are to have the book, of course. Now for
5553 it. We must have two chairs at hand for you to bring forward to the
5554 front of the stage. There--very good school-room chairs, not made for a
5555 theatre, I dare say; much more fitted for little girls to sit and kick
5556 their feet against when they are learning a lesson. What would your
5557 governess and your uncle say to see them used for such a purpose? Could
5558 Sir Thomas look in upon us just now, he would bless himself, for we
5559 are rehearsing all over the house. Yates is storming away in the
5560 dining-room. I heard him as I came upstairs, and the theatre is engaged
5561 of course by those indefatigable rehearsers, Agatha and Frederick. If
5562 _they_ are not perfect, I _shall_ be surprised. By the bye, I looked in
5563 upon them five minutes ago, and it happened to be exactly at one of the
5564 times when they were trying _not_ to embrace, and Mr. Rushworth was with
5565 me. I thought he began to look a little queer, so I turned it off as
5566 well as I could, by whispering to him, 'We shall have an excellent
5567 Agatha; there is something so _maternal_ in her manner, so completely
5568 _maternal_ in her voice and countenance.' Was not that well done of me?
5569 He brightened up directly. Now for my soliloquy."
5570
5571 She began, and Fanny joined in with all the modest feeling which the
5572 idea of representing Edmund was so strongly calculated to inspire; but
5573 with looks and voice so truly feminine as to be no very good picture of
5574 a man. With such an Anhalt, however, Miss Crawford had courage enough;
5575 and they had got through half the scene, when a tap at the door brought
5576 a pause, and the entrance of Edmund, the next moment, suspended it all.
5577
5578 Surprise, consciousness, and pleasure appeared in each of the three
5579 on this unexpected meeting; and as Edmund was come on the very same
5580 business that had brought Miss Crawford, consciousness and pleasure were
5581 likely to be more than momentary in _them_. He too had his book, and was
5582 seeking Fanny, to ask her to rehearse with him, and help him to prepare
5583 for the evening, without knowing Miss Crawford to be in the house;
5584 and great was the joy and animation of being thus thrown together, of
5585 comparing schemes, and sympathising in praise of Fanny's kind offices.
5586
5587 _She_ could not equal them in their warmth. _Her_ spirits sank under the
5588 glow of theirs, and she felt herself becoming too nearly nothing to
5589 both to have any comfort in having been sought by either. They must now
5590 rehearse together. Edmund proposed, urged, entreated it, till the lady,
5591 not very unwilling at first, could refuse no longer, and Fanny was
5592 wanted only to prompt and observe them. She was invested, indeed, with
5593 the office of judge and critic, and earnestly desired to exercise it and
5594 tell them all their faults; but from doing so every feeling within her
5595 shrank--she could not, would not, dared not attempt it: had she been
5596 otherwise qualified for criticism, her conscience must have restrained
5597 her from venturing at disapprobation. She believed herself to feel too
5598 much of it in the aggregate for honesty or safety in particulars. To
5599 prompt them must be enough for her; and it was sometimes _more_ than
5600 enough; for she could not always pay attention to the book. In watching
5601 them she forgot herself; and, agitated by the increasing spirit of
5602 Edmund's manner, had once closed the page and turned away exactly as he
5603 wanted help. It was imputed to very reasonable weariness, and she was
5604 thanked and pitied; but she deserved their pity more than she hoped they
5605 would ever surmise. At last the scene was over, and Fanny forced herself
5606 to add her praise to the compliments each was giving the other; and when
5607 again alone and able to recall the whole, she was inclined to believe
5608 their performance would, indeed, have such nature and feeling in it as
5609 must ensure their credit, and make it a very suffering exhibition to
5610 herself. Whatever might be its effect, however, she must stand the brunt
5611 of it again that very day.
5612
5613 The first regular rehearsal of the three first acts was certainly to
5614 take place in the evening: Mrs. Grant and the Crawfords were engaged to
5615 return for that purpose as soon as they could after dinner; and every
5616 one concerned was looking forward with eagerness. There seemed a general
5617 diffusion of cheerfulness on the occasion. Tom was enjoying such an
5618 advance towards the end; Edmund was in spirits from the morning's
5619 rehearsal, and little vexations seemed everywhere smoothed away. All
5620 were alert and impatient; the ladies moved soon, the gentlemen soon
5621 followed them, and with the exception of Lady Bertram, Mrs. Norris, and
5622 Julia, everybody was in the theatre at an early hour; and having lighted
5623 it up as well as its unfinished state admitted, were waiting only the
5624 arrival of Mrs. Grant and the Crawfords to begin.
5625
5626 They did not wait long for the Crawfords, but there was no Mrs. Grant.
5627 She could not come. Dr. Grant, professing an indisposition, for which he
5628 had little credit with his fair sister-in-law, could not spare his wife.
5629
5630 "Dr. Grant is ill," said she, with mock solemnity. "He has been ill ever
5631 since he did not eat any of the pheasant today. He fancied it tough,
5632 sent away his plate, and has been suffering ever since".
5633
5634 Here was disappointment! Mrs. Grant's non-attendance was sad indeed.
5635 Her pleasant manners and cheerful conformity made her always valuable
5636 amongst them; but _now_ she was absolutely necessary. They could not
5637 act, they could not rehearse with any satisfaction without her. The
5638 comfort of the whole evening was destroyed. What was to be done? Tom, as
5639 Cottager, was in despair. After a pause of perplexity, some eyes began
5640 to be turned towards Fanny, and a voice or two to say, "If Miss Price
5641 would be so good as to _read_ the part." She was immediately surrounded
5642 by supplications; everybody asked it; even Edmund said, "Do, Fanny, if
5643 it is not _very_ disagreeable to you."
5644
5645 But Fanny still hung back. She could not endure the idea of it. Why was
5646 not Miss Crawford to be applied to as well? Or why had not she rather
5647 gone to her own room, as she had felt to be safest, instead of attending
5648 the rehearsal at all? She had known it would irritate and distress her;
5649 she had known it her duty to keep away. She was properly punished.
5650
5651 "You have only to _read_ the part," said Henry Crawford, with renewed
5652 entreaty.
5653
5654 "And I do believe she can say every word of it," added Maria, "for she
5655 could put Mrs. Grant right the other day in twenty places. Fanny, I am
5656 sure you know the part."
5657
5658 Fanny could not say she did _not_; and as they all persevered, as
5659 Edmund repeated his wish, and with a look of even fond dependence on
5660 her good-nature, she must yield. She would do her best. Everybody was
5661 satisfied; and she was left to the tremors of a most palpitating heart,
5662 while the others prepared to begin.
5663
5664 They _did_ begin; and being too much engaged in their own noise to be
5665 struck by an unusual noise in the other part of the house, had proceeded
5666 some way when the door of the room was thrown open, and Julia, appearing
5667 at it, with a face all aghast, exclaimed, "My father is come! He is in
5668 the hall at this moment."
5669
5670
5671
5672 CHAPTER XIX
5673
5674 How is the consternation of the party to be described? To the greater
5675 number it was a moment of absolute horror. Sir Thomas in the house! All
5676 felt the instantaneous conviction. Not a hope of imposition or mistake
5677 was harboured anywhere. Julia's looks were an evidence of the fact that
5678 made it indisputable; and after the first starts and exclamations, not a
5679 word was spoken for half a minute: each with an altered countenance was
5680 looking at some other, and almost each was feeling it a stroke the most
5681 unwelcome, most ill-timed, most appalling! Mr. Yates might consider
5682 it only as a vexatious interruption for the evening, and Mr. Rushworth
5683 might imagine it a blessing; but every other heart was sinking under
5684 some degree of self-condemnation or undefined alarm, every other heart
5685 was suggesting, "What will become of us? what is to be done now?" It
5686 was a terrible pause; and terrible to every ear were the corroborating
5687 sounds of opening doors and passing footsteps.
5688
5689 Julia was the first to move and speak again. Jealousy and bitterness
5690 had been suspended: selfishness was lost in the common cause; but at the
5691 moment of her appearance, Frederick was listening with looks of devotion
5692 to Agatha's narrative, and pressing her hand to his heart; and as soon
5693 as she could notice this, and see that, in spite of the shock of her
5694 words, he still kept his station and retained her sister's hand, her
5695 wounded heart swelled again with injury, and looking as red as she had
5696 been white before, she turned out of the room, saying, "_I_ need not be
5697 afraid of appearing before him."
5698
5699 Her going roused the rest; and at the same moment the two brothers
5700 stepped forward, feeling the necessity of doing something. A very few
5701 words between them were sufficient. The case admitted no difference of
5702 opinion: they must go to the drawing-room directly. Maria joined them
5703 with the same intent, just then the stoutest of the three; for the
5704 very circumstance which had driven Julia away was to her the sweetest
5705 support. Henry Crawford's retaining her hand at such a moment, a moment
5706 of such peculiar proof and importance, was worth ages of doubt and
5707 anxiety. She hailed it as an earnest of the most serious determination,
5708 and was equal even to encounter her father. They walked off, utterly
5709 heedless of Mr. Rushworth's repeated question of, "Shall I go too? Had
5710 not I better go too? Will not it be right for me to go too?" but they
5711 were no sooner through the door than Henry Crawford undertook to answer
5712 the anxious inquiry, and, encouraging him by all means to pay his
5713 respects to Sir Thomas without delay, sent him after the others with
5714 delighted haste.
5715
5716 Fanny was left with only the Crawfords and Mr. Yates. She had been quite
5717 overlooked by her cousins; and as her own opinion of her claims on Sir
5718 Thomas's affection was much too humble to give her any idea of classing
5719 herself with his children, she was glad to remain behind and gain a
5720 little breathing-time. Her agitation and alarm exceeded all that was
5721 endured by the rest, by the right of a disposition which not even
5722 innocence could keep from suffering. She was nearly fainting: all her
5723 former habitual dread of her uncle was returning, and with it compassion
5724 for him and for almost every one of the party on the development before
5725 him, with solicitude on Edmund's account indescribable. She had found
5726 a seat, where in excessive trembling she was enduring all these fearful
5727 thoughts, while the other three, no longer under any restraint, were
5728 giving vent to their feelings of vexation, lamenting over such an
5729 unlooked-for premature arrival as a most untoward event, and without
5730 mercy wishing poor Sir Thomas had been twice as long on his passage, or
5731 were still in Antigua.
5732
5733 The Crawfords were more warm on the subject than Mr. Yates, from better
5734 understanding the family, and judging more clearly of the mischief that
5735 must ensue. The ruin of the play was to them a certainty: they felt
5736 the total destruction of the scheme to be inevitably at hand; while Mr.
5737 Yates considered it only as a temporary interruption, a disaster for the
5738 evening, and could even suggest the possibility of the rehearsal being
5739 renewed after tea, when the bustle of receiving Sir Thomas were over,
5740 and he might be at leisure to be amused by it. The Crawfords laughed
5741 at the idea; and having soon agreed on the propriety of their walking
5742 quietly home and leaving the family to themselves, proposed Mr. Yates's
5743 accompanying them and spending the evening at the Parsonage. But Mr.
5744 Yates, having never been with those who thought much of parental claims,
5745 or family confidence, could not perceive that anything of the kind was
5746 necessary; and therefore, thanking them, said, "he preferred remaining
5747 where he was, that he might pay his respects to the old gentleman
5748 handsomely since he _was_ come; and besides, he did not think it would
5749 be fair by the others to have everybody run away."
5750
5751 Fanny was just beginning to collect herself, and to feel that if she
5752 staid longer behind it might seem disrespectful, when this point was
5753 settled, and being commissioned with the brother and sister's apology,
5754 saw them preparing to go as she quitted the room herself to perform the
5755 dreadful duty of appearing before her uncle.
5756
5757 Too soon did she find herself at the drawing-room door; and after
5758 pausing a moment for what she knew would not come, for a courage which
5759 the outside of no door had ever supplied to her, she turned the lock in
5760 desperation, and the lights of the drawing-room, and all the collected
5761 family, were before her. As she entered, her own name caught her ear.
5762 Sir Thomas was at that moment looking round him, and saying, "But where
5763 is Fanny? Why do not I see my little Fanny?"--and on perceiving her,
5764 came forward with a kindness which astonished and penetrated her,
5765 calling her his dear Fanny, kissing her affectionately, and observing
5766 with decided pleasure how much she was grown! Fanny knew not how to
5767 feel, nor where to look. She was quite oppressed. He had never been so
5768 kind, so _very_ kind to her in his life. His manner seemed changed, his
5769 voice was quick from the agitation of joy; and all that had been awful
5770 in his dignity seemed lost in tenderness. He led her nearer the light
5771 and looked at her again--inquired particularly after her health, and
5772 then, correcting himself, observed that he need not inquire, for
5773 her appearance spoke sufficiently on that point. A fine blush having
5774 succeeded the previous paleness of her face, he was justified in his
5775 belief of her equal improvement in health and beauty. He inquired next
5776 after her family, especially William: and his kindness altogether was
5777 such as made her reproach herself for loving him so little, and thinking
5778 his return a misfortune; and when, on having courage to lift her eyes to
5779 his face, she saw that he was grown thinner, and had the burnt, fagged,
5780 worn look of fatigue and a hot climate, every tender feeling was
5781 increased, and she was miserable in considering how much unsuspected
5782 vexation was probably ready to burst on him.
5783
5784 Sir Thomas was indeed the life of the party, who at his suggestion
5785 now seated themselves round the fire. He had the best right to be the
5786 talker; and the delight of his sensations in being again in his own
5787 house, in the centre of his family, after such a separation, made him
5788 communicative and chatty in a very unusual degree; and he was ready to
5789 give every information as to his voyage, and answer every question
5790 of his two sons almost before it was put. His business in Antigua had
5791 latterly been prosperously rapid, and he came directly from Liverpool,
5792 having had an opportunity of making his passage thither in a private
5793 vessel, instead of waiting for the packet; and all the little
5794 particulars of his proceedings and events, his arrivals and departures,
5795 were most promptly delivered, as he sat by Lady Bertram and looked with
5796 heartfelt satisfaction on the faces around him--interrupting himself
5797 more than once, however, to remark on his good fortune in finding them
5798 all at home--coming unexpectedly as he did--all collected together
5799 exactly as he could have wished, but dared not depend on. Mr. Rushworth
5800 was not forgotten: a most friendly reception and warmth of hand-shaking
5801 had already met him, and with pointed attention he was now included in
5802 the objects most intimately connected with Mansfield. There was nothing
5803 disagreeable in Mr. Rushworth's appearance, and Sir Thomas was liking
5804 him already.
5805
5806 By not one of the circle was he listened to with such unbroken,
5807 unalloyed enjoyment as by his wife, who was really extremely happy to
5808 see him, and whose feelings were so warmed by his sudden arrival as to
5809 place her nearer agitation than she had been for the last twenty years.
5810 She had been _almost_ fluttered for a few minutes, and still remained so
5811 sensibly animated as to put away her work, move Pug from her side, and
5812 give all her attention and all the rest of her sofa to her husband. She
5813 had no anxieties for anybody to cloud _her_ pleasure: her own time had
5814 been irreproachably spent during his absence: she had done a great
5815 deal of carpet-work, and made many yards of fringe; and she would have
5816 answered as freely for the good conduct and useful pursuits of all
5817 the young people as for her own. It was so agreeable to her to see
5818 him again, and hear him talk, to have her ear amused and her whole
5819 comprehension filled by his narratives, that she began particularly
5820 to feel how dreadfully she must have missed him, and how impossible it
5821 would have been for her to bear a lengthened absence.
5822
5823 Mrs. Norris was by no means to be compared in happiness to her
5824 sister. Not that _she_ was incommoded by many fears of Sir Thomas's
5825 disapprobation when the present state of his house should be known, for
5826 her judgment had been so blinded that, except by the instinctive caution
5827 with which she had whisked away Mr. Rushworth's pink satin cloak as her
5828 brother-in-law entered, she could hardly be said to shew any sign of
5829 alarm; but she was vexed by the _manner_ of his return. It had left her
5830 nothing to do. Instead of being sent for out of the room, and seeing
5831 him first, and having to spread the happy news through the house, Sir
5832 Thomas, with a very reasonable dependence, perhaps, on the nerves of his
5833 wife and children, had sought no confidant but the butler, and had been
5834 following him almost instantaneously into the drawing-room. Mrs. Norris
5835 felt herself defrauded of an office on which she had always depended,
5836 whether his arrival or his death were to be the thing unfolded; and was
5837 now trying to be in a bustle without having anything to bustle about,
5838 and labouring to be important where nothing was wanted but tranquillity
5839 and silence. Would Sir Thomas have consented to eat, she might have gone
5840 to the housekeeper with troublesome directions, and insulted the footmen
5841 with injunctions of despatch; but Sir Thomas resolutely declined all
5842 dinner: he would take nothing, nothing till tea came--he would rather
5843 wait for tea. Still Mrs. Norris was at intervals urging something
5844 different; and in the most interesting moment of his passage to England,
5845 when the alarm of a French privateer was at the height, she burst
5846 through his recital with the proposal of soup. "Sure, my dear Sir
5847 Thomas, a basin of soup would be a much better thing for you than tea.
5848 Do have a basin of soup."
5849
5850 Sir Thomas could not be provoked. "Still the same anxiety for
5851 everybody's comfort, my dear Mrs. Norris," was his answer. "But indeed I
5852 would rather have nothing but tea."
5853
5854 "Well, then, Lady Bertram, suppose you speak for tea directly; suppose
5855 you hurry Baddeley a little; he seems behindhand to-night." She carried
5856 this point, and Sir Thomas's narrative proceeded.
5857
5858 At length there was a pause. His immediate communications were
5859 exhausted, and it seemed enough to be looking joyfully around him, now
5860 at one, now at another of the beloved circle; but the pause was not
5861 long: in the elation of her spirits Lady Bertram became talkative, and
5862 what were the sensations of her children upon hearing her say, "How
5863 do you think the young people have been amusing themselves lately, Sir
5864 Thomas? They have been acting. We have been all alive with acting."
5865
5866 "Indeed! and what have you been acting?"
5867
5868 "Oh! they'll tell you all about it."
5869
5870 "The _all_ will soon be told," cried Tom hastily, and with affected
5871 unconcern; "but it is not worth while to bore my father with it now. You
5872 will hear enough of it to-morrow, sir. We have just been trying, by way
5873 of doing something, and amusing my mother, just within the last week,
5874 to get up a few scenes, a mere trifle. We have had such incessant rains
5875 almost since October began, that we have been nearly confined to the
5876 house for days together. I have hardly taken out a gun since the 3rd.
5877 Tolerable sport the first three days, but there has been no attempting
5878 anything since. The first day I went over Mansfield Wood, and Edmund
5879 took the copses beyond Easton, and we brought home six brace between
5880 us, and might each have killed six times as many, but we respect your
5881 pheasants, sir, I assure you, as much as you could desire. I do not
5882 think you will find your woods by any means worse stocked than they
5883 were. _I_ never saw Mansfield Wood so full of pheasants in my life
5884 as this year. I hope you will take a day's sport there yourself, sir,
5885 soon."
5886
5887 For the present the danger was over, and Fanny's sick feelings subsided;
5888 but when tea was soon afterwards brought in, and Sir Thomas, getting up,
5889 said that he found that he could not be any longer in the house without
5890 just looking into his own dear room, every agitation was returning. He
5891 was gone before anything had been said to prepare him for the change he
5892 must find there; and a pause of alarm followed his disappearance. Edmund
5893 was the first to speak--
5894
5895 "Something must be done," said he.
5896
5897 "It is time to think of our visitors," said Maria, still feeling her
5898 hand pressed to Henry Crawford's heart, and caring little for anything
5899 else. "Where did you leave Miss Crawford, Fanny?"
5900
5901 Fanny told of their departure, and delivered their message.
5902
5903 "Then poor Yates is all alone," cried Tom. "I will go and fetch him. He
5904 will be no bad assistant when it all comes out."
5905
5906 To the theatre he went, and reached it just in time to witness the first
5907 meeting of his father and his friend. Sir Thomas had been a good deal
5908 surprised to find candles burning in his room; and on casting his eye
5909 round it, to see other symptoms of recent habitation and a general air
5910 of confusion in the furniture. The removal of the bookcase from before
5911 the billiard-room door struck him especially, but he had scarcely more
5912 than time to feel astonished at all this, before there were sounds from
5913 the billiard-room to astonish him still farther. Some one was talking
5914 there in a very loud accent; he did not know the voice--more than
5915 talking--almost hallooing. He stepped to the door, rejoicing at that
5916 moment in having the means of immediate communication, and, opening it,
5917 found himself on the stage of a theatre, and opposed to a ranting young
5918 man, who appeared likely to knock him down backwards. At the very moment
5919 of Yates perceiving Sir Thomas, and giving perhaps the very best start
5920 he had ever given in the whole course of his rehearsals, Tom Bertram
5921 entered at the other end of the room; and never had he found greater
5922 difficulty in keeping his countenance. His father's looks of solemnity
5923 and amazement on this his first appearance on any stage, and the gradual
5924 metamorphosis of the impassioned Baron Wildenheim into the well-bred and
5925 easy Mr. Yates, making his bow and apology to Sir Thomas Bertram, was
5926 such an exhibition, such a piece of true acting, as he would not have
5927 lost upon any account. It would be the last--in all probability--the
5928 last scene on that stage; but he was sure there could not be a finer.
5929 The house would close with the greatest eclat.
5930
5931 There was little time, however, for the indulgence of any images of
5932 merriment. It was necessary for him to step forward, too, and assist
5933 the introduction, and with many awkward sensations he did his best. Sir
5934 Thomas received Mr. Yates with all the appearance of cordiality which
5935 was due to his own character, but was really as far from pleased
5936 with the necessity of the acquaintance as with the manner of its
5937 commencement. Mr. Yates's family and connexions were sufficiently known
5938 to him to render his introduction as the "particular friend," another of
5939 the hundred particular friends of his son, exceedingly unwelcome; and it
5940 needed all the felicity of being again at home, and all the forbearance
5941 it could supply, to save Sir Thomas from anger on finding himself thus
5942 bewildered in his own house, making part of a ridiculous exhibition in
5943 the midst of theatrical nonsense, and forced in so untoward a moment to
5944 admit the acquaintance of a young man whom he felt sure of disapproving,
5945 and whose easy indifference and volubility in the course of the first
5946 five minutes seemed to mark him the most at home of the two.
5947
5948 Tom understood his father's thoughts, and heartily wishing he might be
5949 always as well disposed to give them but partial expression, began to
5950 see, more clearly than he had ever done before, that there might be some
5951 ground of offence, that there might be some reason for the glance his
5952 father gave towards the ceiling and stucco of the room; and that when he
5953 inquired with mild gravity after the fate of the billiard-table, he was
5954 not proceeding beyond a very allowable curiosity. A few minutes were
5955 enough for such unsatisfactory sensations on each side; and Sir
5956 Thomas having exerted himself so far as to speak a few words of
5957 calm approbation in reply to an eager appeal of Mr. Yates, as to the
5958 happiness of the arrangement, the three gentlemen returned to the
5959 drawing-room together, Sir Thomas with an increase of gravity which was
5960 not lost on all.
5961
5962 "I come from your theatre," said he composedly, as he sat down; "I found
5963 myself in it rather unexpectedly. Its vicinity to my own room--but in
5964 every respect, indeed, it took me by surprise, as I had not the smallest
5965 suspicion of your acting having assumed so serious a character. It
5966 appears a neat job, however, as far as I could judge by candlelight,
5967 and does my friend Christopher Jackson credit." And then he would
5968 have changed the subject, and sipped his coffee in peace over domestic
5969 matters of a calmer hue; but Mr. Yates, without discernment to catch Sir
5970 Thomas's meaning, or diffidence, or delicacy, or discretion enough to
5971 allow him to lead the discourse while he mingled among the others with
5972 the least obtrusiveness himself, would keep him on the topic of the
5973 theatre, would torment him with questions and remarks relative to it,
5974 and finally would make him hear the whole history of his disappointment
5975 at Ecclesford. Sir Thomas listened most politely, but found much to
5976 offend his ideas of decorum, and confirm his ill-opinion of Mr. Yates's
5977 habits of thinking, from the beginning to the end of the story; and when
5978 it was over, could give him no other assurance of sympathy than what a
5979 slight bow conveyed.
5980
5981 "This was, in fact, the origin of _our_ acting," said Tom, after
5982 a moment's thought. "My friend Yates brought the infection from
5983 Ecclesford, and it spread--as those things always spread, you know,
5984 sir--the faster, probably, from _your_ having so often encouraged the
5985 sort of thing in us formerly. It was like treading old ground again."
5986
5987 Mr. Yates took the subject from his friend as soon as possible, and
5988 immediately gave Sir Thomas an account of what they had done and were
5989 doing: told him of the gradual increase of their views, the happy
5990 conclusion of their first difficulties, and present promising state of
5991 affairs; relating everything with so blind an interest as made him not
5992 only totally unconscious of the uneasy movements of many of his
5993 friends as they sat, the change of countenance, the fidget, the hem! of
5994 unquietness, but prevented him even from seeing the expression of the
5995 face on which his own eyes were fixed--from seeing Sir Thomas's dark
5996 brow contract as he looked with inquiring earnestness at his daughters
5997 and Edmund, dwelling particularly on the latter, and speaking a
5998 language, a remonstrance, a reproof, which _he_ felt at his heart. Not
5999 less acutely was it felt by Fanny, who had edged back her chair behind
6000 her aunt's end of the sofa, and, screened from notice herself, saw all
6001 that was passing before her. Such a look of reproach at Edmund from his
6002 father she could never have expected to witness; and to feel that it
6003 was in any degree deserved was an aggravation indeed. Sir Thomas's
6004 look implied, "On your judgment, Edmund, I depended; what have you
6005 been about?" She knelt in spirit to her uncle, and her bosom swelled to
6006 utter, "Oh, not to _him_! Look so to all the others, but not to _him_!"
6007
6008 Mr. Yates was still talking. "To own the truth, Sir Thomas, we were in
6009 the middle of a rehearsal when you arrived this evening. We were going
6010 through the three first acts, and not unsuccessfully upon the whole. Our
6011 company is now so dispersed, from the Crawfords being gone home, that
6012 nothing more can be done to-night; but if you will give us the honour of
6013 your company to-morrow evening, I should not be afraid of the result. We
6014 bespeak your indulgence, you understand, as young performers; we bespeak
6015 your indulgence."
6016
6017 "My indulgence shall be given, sir," replied Sir Thomas gravely, "but
6018 without any other rehearsal." And with a relenting smile, he added, "I
6019 come home to be happy and indulgent." Then turning away towards any
6020 or all of the rest, he tranquilly said, "Mr. and Miss Crawford were
6021 mentioned in my last letters from Mansfield. Do you find them agreeable
6022 acquaintance?"
6023
6024 Tom was the only one at all ready with an answer, but he being entirely
6025 without particular regard for either, without jealousy either in love
6026 or acting, could speak very handsomely of both. "Mr. Crawford was a
6027 most pleasant, gentleman-like man; his sister a sweet, pretty, elegant,
6028 lively girl."
6029
6030 Mr. Rushworth could be silent no longer. "I do not say he is not
6031 gentleman-like, considering; but you should tell your father he is not
6032 above five feet eight, or he will be expecting a well-looking man."
6033
6034 Sir Thomas did not quite understand this, and looked with some surprise
6035 at the speaker.
6036
6037 "If I must say what I think," continued Mr. Rushworth, "in my opinion it
6038 is very disagreeable to be always rehearsing. It is having too much of a
6039 good thing. I am not so fond of acting as I was at first. I think we are
6040 a great deal better employed, sitting comfortably here among ourselves,
6041 and doing nothing."
6042
6043 Sir Thomas looked again, and then replied with an approving smile, "I am
6044 happy to find our sentiments on this subject so much the same. It gives
6045 me sincere satisfaction. That I should be cautious and quick-sighted,
6046 and feel many scruples which my children do _not_ feel, is perfectly
6047 natural; and equally so that my value for domestic tranquillity, for a
6048 home which shuts out noisy pleasures, should much exceed theirs. But at
6049 your time of life to feel all this, is a most favourable circumstance
6050 for yourself, and for everybody connected with you; and I am sensible of
6051 the importance of having an ally of such weight."
6052
6053 Sir Thomas meant to be giving Mr. Rushworth's opinion in better words
6054 than he could find himself. He was aware that he must not expect a
6055 genius in Mr. Rushworth; but as a well-judging, steady young man, with
6056 better notions than his elocution would do justice to, he intended to
6057 value him very highly. It was impossible for many of the others not to
6058 smile. Mr. Rushworth hardly knew what to do with so much meaning; but by
6059 looking, as he really felt, most exceedingly pleased with Sir Thomas's
6060 good opinion, and saying scarcely anything, he did his best towards
6061 preserving that good opinion a little longer.
6062
6063
6064
6065 CHAPTER XX
6066
6067 Edmund's first object the next morning was to see his father alone, and
6068 give him a fair statement of the whole acting scheme, defending his own
6069 share in it as far only as he could then, in a soberer moment, feel his
6070 motives to deserve, and acknowledging, with perfect ingenuousness, that
6071 his concession had been attended with such partial good as to make his
6072 judgment in it very doubtful. He was anxious, while vindicating himself,
6073 to say nothing unkind of the others: but there was only one amongst
6074 them whose conduct he could mention without some necessity of defence
6075 or palliation. "We have all been more or less to blame," said he, "every
6076 one of us, excepting Fanny. Fanny is the only one who has judged rightly
6077 throughout; who has been consistent. _Her_ feelings have been steadily
6078 against it from first to last. She never ceased to think of what was due
6079 to you. You will find Fanny everything you could wish."
6080
6081 Sir Thomas saw all the impropriety of such a scheme among such a party,
6082 and at such a time, as strongly as his son had ever supposed he must; he
6083 felt it too much, indeed, for many words; and having shaken hands with
6084 Edmund, meant to try to lose the disagreeable impression, and forget how
6085 much he had been forgotten himself as soon as he could, after the house
6086 had been cleared of every object enforcing the remembrance, and restored
6087 to its proper state. He did not enter into any remonstrance with his
6088 other children: he was more willing to believe they felt their error
6089 than to run the risk of investigation. The reproof of an immediate
6090 conclusion of everything, the sweep of every preparation, would be
6091 sufficient.
6092
6093 There was one person, however, in the house, whom he could not leave
6094 to learn his sentiments merely through his conduct. He could not help
6095 giving Mrs. Norris a hint of his having hoped that her advice might
6096 have been interposed to prevent what her judgment must certainly have
6097 disapproved. The young people had been very inconsiderate in forming the
6098 plan; they ought to have been capable of a better decision themselves;
6099 but they were young; and, excepting Edmund, he believed, of unsteady
6100 characters; and with greater surprise, therefore, he must regard her
6101 acquiescence in their wrong measures, her countenance of their unsafe
6102 amusements, than that such measures and such amusements should have
6103 been suggested. Mrs. Norris was a little confounded and as nearly
6104 being silenced as ever she had been in her life; for she was ashamed to
6105 confess having never seen any of the impropriety which was so glaring
6106 to Sir Thomas, and would not have admitted that her influence was
6107 insufficient--that she might have talked in vain. Her only resource was
6108 to get out of the subject as fast as possible, and turn the current
6109 of Sir Thomas's ideas into a happier channel. She had a great deal to
6110 insinuate in her own praise as to _general_ attention to the interest
6111 and comfort of his family, much exertion and many sacrifices to glance
6112 at in the form of hurried walks and sudden removals from her own
6113 fireside, and many excellent hints of distrust and economy to Lady
6114 Bertram and Edmund to detail, whereby a most considerable saving had
6115 always arisen, and more than one bad servant been detected. But her
6116 chief strength lay in Sotherton. Her greatest support and glory was
6117 in having formed the connexion with the Rushworths. _There_ she
6118 was impregnable. She took to herself all the credit of bringing Mr.
6119 Rushworth's admiration of Maria to any effect. "If I had not been
6120 active," said she, "and made a point of being introduced to his mother,
6121 and then prevailed on my sister to pay the first visit, I am as certain
6122 as I sit here that nothing would have come of it; for Mr. Rushworth
6123 is the sort of amiable modest young man who wants a great deal of
6124 encouragement, and there were girls enough on the catch for him if we
6125 had been idle. But I left no stone unturned. I was ready to move heaven
6126 and earth to persuade my sister, and at last I did persuade her. You
6127 know the distance to Sotherton; it was in the middle of winter, and the
6128 roads almost impassable, but I did persuade her."
6129
6130 "I know how great, how justly great, your influence is with Lady Bertram
6131 and her children, and am the more concerned that it should not have
6132 been."
6133
6134 "My dear Sir Thomas, if you had seen the state of the roads _that_ day!
6135 I thought we should never have got through them, though we had the four
6136 horses of course; and poor old coachman would attend us, out of his
6137 great love and kindness, though he was hardly able to sit the box on
6138 account of the rheumatism which I had been doctoring him for ever since
6139 Michaelmas. I cured him at last; but he was very bad all the winter--and
6140 this was such a day, I could not help going to him up in his room before
6141 we set off to advise him not to venture: he was putting on his wig; so
6142 I said, 'Coachman, you had much better not go; your Lady and I shall be
6143 very safe; you know how steady Stephen is, and Charles has been upon the
6144 leaders so often now, that I am sure there is no fear.' But, however, I
6145 soon found it would not do; he was bent upon going, and as I hate to be
6146 worrying and officious, I said no more; but my heart quite ached for him
6147 at every jolt, and when we got into the rough lanes about Stoke, where,
6148 what with frost and snow upon beds of stones, it was worse than anything
6149 you can imagine, I was quite in an agony about him. And then the poor
6150 horses too! To see them straining away! You know how I always feel for
6151 the horses. And when we got to the bottom of Sandcroft Hill, what do you
6152 think I did? You will laugh at me; but I got out and walked up. I did
6153 indeed. It might not be saving them much, but it was something, and I
6154 could not bear to sit at my ease and be dragged up at the expense of
6155 those noble animals. I caught a dreadful cold, but _that_ I did not
6156 regard. My object was accomplished in the visit."
6157
6158 "I hope we shall always think the acquaintance worth any trouble that
6159 might be taken to establish it. There is nothing very striking in Mr.
6160 Rushworth's manners, but I was pleased last night with what appeared to
6161 be his opinion on one subject: his decided preference of a quiet family
6162 party to the bustle and confusion of acting. He seemed to feel exactly
6163 as one could wish."
6164
6165 "Yes, indeed, and the more you know of him the better you will like him.
6166 He is not a shining character, but he has a thousand good qualities; and
6167 is so disposed to look up to you, that I am quite laughed at about it,
6168 for everybody considers it as my doing. 'Upon my word, Mrs. Norris,'
6169 said Mrs. Grant the other day, 'if Mr. Rushworth were a son of your own,
6170 he could not hold Sir Thomas in greater respect.'"
6171
6172 Sir Thomas gave up the point, foiled by her evasions, disarmed by her
6173 flattery; and was obliged to rest satisfied with the conviction that
6174 where the present pleasure of those she loved was at stake, her kindness
6175 did sometimes overpower her judgment.
6176
6177 It was a busy morning with him. Conversation with any of them occupied
6178 but a small part of it. He had to reinstate himself in all the wonted
6179 concerns of his Mansfield life: to see his steward and his bailiff; to
6180 examine and compute, and, in the intervals of business, to walk into
6181 his stables and his gardens, and nearest plantations; but active and
6182 methodical, he had not only done all this before he resumed his seat as
6183 master of the house at dinner, he had also set the carpenter to work in
6184 pulling down what had been so lately put up in the billiard-room,
6185 and given the scene-painter his dismissal long enough to justify the
6186 pleasing belief of his being then at least as far off as Northampton.
6187 The scene-painter was gone, having spoilt only the floor of one room,
6188 ruined all the coachman's sponges, and made five of the under-servants
6189 idle and dissatisfied; and Sir Thomas was in hopes that another day or
6190 two would suffice to wipe away every outward memento of what had been,
6191 even to the destruction of every unbound copy of Lovers' Vows in the
6192 house, for he was burning all that met his eye.
6193
6194 Mr. Yates was beginning now to understand Sir Thomas's intentions,
6195 though as far as ever from understanding their source. He and his friend
6196 had been out with their guns the chief of the morning, and Tom had taken
6197 the opportunity of explaining, with proper apologies for his father's
6198 particularity, what was to be expected. Mr. Yates felt it as acutely as
6199 might be supposed. To be a second time disappointed in the same way was
6200 an instance of very severe ill-luck; and his indignation was such,
6201 that had it not been for delicacy towards his friend, and his friend's
6202 youngest sister, he believed he should certainly attack the baronet
6203 on the absurdity of his proceedings, and argue him into a little more
6204 rationality. He believed this very stoutly while he was in Mansfield
6205 Wood, and all the way home; but there was a something in Sir Thomas,
6206 when they sat round the same table, which made Mr. Yates think it
6207 wiser to let him pursue his own way, and feel the folly of it without
6208 opposition. He had known many disagreeable fathers before, and often
6209 been struck with the inconveniences they occasioned, but never, in
6210 the whole course of his life, had he seen one of that class so
6211 unintelligibly moral, so infamously tyrannical as Sir Thomas. He was
6212 not a man to be endured but for his children's sake, and he might be
6213 thankful to his fair daughter Julia that Mr. Yates did yet mean to stay
6214 a few days longer under his roof.
6215
6216 The evening passed with external smoothness, though almost every
6217 mind was ruffled; and the music which Sir Thomas called for from his
6218 daughters helped to conceal the want of real harmony. Maria was in a
6219 good deal of agitation. It was of the utmost consequence to her that
6220 Crawford should now lose no time in declaring himself, and she was
6221 disturbed that even a day should be gone by without seeming to advance
6222 that point. She had been expecting to see him the whole morning, and
6223 all the evening, too, was still expecting him. Mr. Rushworth had set off
6224 early with the great news for Sotherton; and she had fondly hoped for
6225 such an immediate _eclaircissement_ as might save him the trouble of
6226 ever coming back again. But they had seen no one from the Parsonage,
6227 not a creature, and had heard no tidings beyond a friendly note of
6228 congratulation and inquiry from Mrs. Grant to Lady Bertram. It was the
6229 first day for many, many weeks, in which the families had been wholly
6230 divided. Four-and-twenty hours had never passed before, since August
6231 began, without bringing them together in some way or other. It was a
6232 sad, anxious day; and the morrow, though differing in the sort of evil,
6233 did by no means bring less. A few moments of feverish enjoyment were
6234 followed by hours of acute suffering. Henry Crawford was again in the
6235 house: he walked up with Dr. Grant, who was anxious to pay his respects
6236 to Sir Thomas, and at rather an early hour they were ushered into the
6237 breakfast-room, where were most of the family. Sir Thomas soon appeared,
6238 and Maria saw with delight and agitation the introduction of the man she
6239 loved to her father. Her sensations were indefinable, and so were they
6240 a few minutes afterwards upon hearing Henry Crawford, who had a chair
6241 between herself and Tom, ask the latter in an undervoice whether
6242 there were any plans for resuming the play after the present happy
6243 interruption (with a courteous glance at Sir Thomas), because, in that
6244 case, he should make a point of returning to Mansfield at any time
6245 required by the party: he was going away immediately, being to meet his
6246 uncle at Bath without delay; but if there were any prospect of a renewal
6247 of Lovers' Vows, he should hold himself positively engaged, he should
6248 break through every other claim, he should absolutely condition with his
6249 uncle for attending them whenever he might be wanted. The play should
6250 not be lost by _his_ absence.
6251
6252 "From Bath, Norfolk, London, York, wherever I may be," said he; "I will
6253 attend you from any place in England, at an hour's notice."
6254
6255 It was well at that moment that Tom had to speak, and not his sister. He
6256 could immediately say with easy fluency, "I am sorry you are going;
6257 but as to our play, _that_ is all over--entirely at an end" (looking
6258 significantly at his father). "The painter was sent off yesterday, and
6259 very little will remain of the theatre to-morrow. I knew how _that_
6260 would be from the first. It is early for Bath. You will find nobody
6261 there."
6262
6263 "It is about my uncle's usual time."
6264
6265 "When do you think of going?"
6266
6267 "I may, perhaps, get as far as Banbury to-day."
6268
6269 "Whose stables do you use at Bath?" was the next question; and while
6270 this branch of the subject was under discussion, Maria, who wanted
6271 neither pride nor resolution, was preparing to encounter her share of it
6272 with tolerable calmness.
6273
6274 To her he soon turned, repeating much of what he had already said, with
6275 only a softened air and stronger expressions of regret. But what availed
6276 his expressions or his air? He was going, and, if not voluntarily going,
6277 voluntarily intending to stay away; for, excepting what might be due
6278 to his uncle, his engagements were all self-imposed. He might talk of
6279 necessity, but she knew his independence. The hand which had so pressed
6280 hers to his heart! the hand and the heart were alike motionless and
6281 passive now! Her spirit supported her, but the agony of her mind was
6282 severe. She had not long to endure what arose from listening to language
6283 which his actions contradicted, or to bury the tumult of her feelings
6284 under the restraint of society; for general civilities soon called
6285 his notice from her, and the farewell visit, as it then became openly
6286 acknowledged, was a very short one. He was gone--he had touched her
6287 hand for the last time, he had made his parting bow, and she might seek
6288 directly all that solitude could do for her. Henry Crawford was gone,
6289 gone from the house, and within two hours afterwards from the parish;
6290 and so ended all the hopes his selfish vanity had raised in Maria and
6291 Julia Bertram.
6292
6293 Julia could rejoice that he was gone. His presence was beginning to be
6294 odious to her; and if Maria gained him not, she was now cool enough to
6295 dispense with any other revenge. She did not want exposure to be added
6296 to desertion. Henry Crawford gone, she could even pity her sister.
6297
6298 With a purer spirit did Fanny rejoice in the intelligence. She heard it
6299 at dinner, and felt it a blessing. By all the others it was mentioned
6300 with regret; and his merits honoured with due gradation of feeling--from
6301 the sincerity of Edmund's too partial regard, to the unconcern of his
6302 mother speaking entirely by rote. Mrs. Norris began to look about her,
6303 and wonder that his falling in love with Julia had come to nothing; and
6304 could almost fear that she had been remiss herself in forwarding it; but
6305 with so many to care for, how was it possible for even _her_ activity to
6306 keep pace with her wishes?
6307
6308 Another day or two, and Mr. Yates was gone likewise. In _his_ departure
6309 Sir Thomas felt the chief interest: wanting to be alone with his family,
6310 the presence of a stranger superior to Mr. Yates must have been irksome;
6311 but of him, trifling and confident, idle and expensive, it was every way
6312 vexatious. In himself he was wearisome, but as the friend of Tom and
6313 the admirer of Julia he became offensive. Sir Thomas had been quite
6314 indifferent to Mr. Crawford's going or staying: but his good wishes
6315 for Mr. Yates's having a pleasant journey, as he walked with him to the
6316 hall-door, were given with genuine satisfaction. Mr. Yates had staid to
6317 see the destruction of every theatrical preparation at Mansfield, the
6318 removal of everything appertaining to the play: he left the house in all
6319 the soberness of its general character; and Sir Thomas hoped, in seeing
6320 him out of it, to be rid of the worst object connected with the scheme,
6321 and the last that must be inevitably reminding him of its existence.
6322
6323 Mrs. Norris contrived to remove one article from his sight that might
6324 have distressed him. The curtain, over which she had presided with such
6325 talent and such success, went off with her to her cottage, where she
6326 happened to be particularly in want of green baize.
6327
6328
6329
6330 CHAPTER XXI
6331
6332 Sir Thomas's return made a striking change in the ways of the family,
6333 independent of Lovers' Vows. Under his government, Mansfield was an
6334 altered place. Some members of their society sent away, and the spirits
6335 of many others saddened--it was all sameness and gloom compared with
6336 the past--a sombre family party rarely enlivened. There was little
6337 intercourse with the Parsonage. Sir Thomas, drawing back from intimacies
6338 in general, was particularly disinclined, at this time, for any
6339 engagements but in one quarter. The Rushworths were the only addition to
6340 his own domestic circle which he could solicit.
6341
6342 Edmund did not wonder that such should be his father's feelings, nor
6343 could he regret anything but the exclusion of the Grants. "But they," he
6344 observed to Fanny, "have a claim. They seem to belong to us; they seem
6345 to be part of ourselves. I could wish my father were more sensible of
6346 their very great attention to my mother and sisters while he was away. I
6347 am afraid they may feel themselves neglected. But the truth is, that my
6348 father hardly knows them. They had not been here a twelvemonth when he
6349 left England. If he knew them better, he would value their society as it
6350 deserves; for they are in fact exactly the sort of people he would
6351 like. We are sometimes a little in want of animation among ourselves: my
6352 sisters seem out of spirits, and Tom is certainly not at his ease. Dr.
6353 and Mrs. Grant would enliven us, and make our evenings pass away with
6354 more enjoyment even to my father."
6355
6356 "Do you think so?" said Fanny: "in my opinion, my uncle would not like
6357 _any_ addition. I think he values the very quietness you speak of, and
6358 that the repose of his own family circle is all he wants. And it does
6359 not appear to me that we are more serious than we used to be--I mean
6360 before my uncle went abroad. As well as I can recollect, it was always
6361 much the same. There was never much laughing in his presence; or, if
6362 there is any difference, it is not more, I think, than such an absence
6363 has a tendency to produce at first. There must be a sort of shyness; but
6364 I cannot recollect that our evenings formerly were ever merry, except
6365 when my uncle was in town. No young people's are, I suppose, when those
6366 they look up to are at home".
6367
6368 "I believe you are right, Fanny," was his reply, after a short
6369 consideration. "I believe our evenings are rather returned to what they
6370 were, than assuming a new character. The novelty was in their being
6371 lively. Yet, how strong the impression that only a few weeks will give!
6372 I have been feeling as if we had never lived so before."
6373
6374 "I suppose I am graver than other people," said Fanny. "The evenings do
6375 not appear long to me. I love to hear my uncle talk of the West Indies.
6376 I could listen to him for an hour together. It entertains _me_ more than
6377 many other things have done; but then I am unlike other people, I dare
6378 say."
6379
6380 "Why should you dare say _that_?" (smiling). "Do you want to be told
6381 that you are only unlike other people in being more wise and discreet?
6382 But when did you, or anybody, ever get a compliment from me, Fanny? Go
6383 to my father if you want to be complimented. He will satisfy you. Ask
6384 your uncle what he thinks, and you will hear compliments enough: and
6385 though they may be chiefly on your person, you must put up with it, and
6386 trust to his seeing as much beauty of mind in time."
6387
6388 Such language was so new to Fanny that it quite embarrassed her.
6389
6390 "Your uncle thinks you very pretty, dear Fanny--and that is the long and
6391 the short of the matter. Anybody but myself would have made something
6392 more of it, and anybody but you would resent that you had not been
6393 thought very pretty before; but the truth is, that your uncle never
6394 did admire you till now--and now he does. Your complexion is so
6395 improved!--and you have gained so much countenance!--and your
6396 figure--nay, Fanny, do not turn away about it--it is but an uncle. If
6397 you cannot bear an uncle's admiration, what is to become of you? You
6398 must really begin to harden yourself to the idea of being worth looking
6399 at. You must try not to mind growing up into a pretty woman."
6400
6401 "Oh! don't talk so, don't talk so," cried Fanny, distressed by more
6402 feelings than he was aware of; but seeing that she was distressed, he
6403 had done with the subject, and only added more seriously--
6404
6405 "Your uncle is disposed to be pleased with you in every respect; and I
6406 only wish you would talk to him more. You are one of those who are too
6407 silent in the evening circle."
6408
6409 "But I do talk to him more than I used. I am sure I do. Did not you hear
6410 me ask him about the slave-trade last night?"
6411
6412 "I did--and was in hopes the question would be followed up by others. It
6413 would have pleased your uncle to be inquired of farther."
6414
6415 "And I longed to do it--but there was such a dead silence! And while
6416 my cousins were sitting by without speaking a word, or seeming at all
6417 interested in the subject, I did not like--I thought it would appear as
6418 if I wanted to set myself off at their expense, by shewing a curiosity
6419 and pleasure in his information which he must wish his own daughters to
6420 feel."
6421
6422 "Miss Crawford was very right in what she said of you the other day:
6423 that you seemed almost as fearful of notice and praise as other women
6424 were of neglect. We were talking of you at the Parsonage, and those were
6425 her words. She has great discernment. I know nobody who distinguishes
6426 characters better. For so young a woman it is remarkable! She certainly
6427 understands _you_ better than you are understood by the greater part of
6428 those who have known you so long; and with regard to some others, I can
6429 perceive, from occasional lively hints, the unguarded expressions of
6430 the moment, that she could define _many_ as accurately, did not delicacy
6431 forbid it. I wonder what she thinks of my father! She must admire him
6432 as a fine-looking man, with most gentlemanlike, dignified, consistent
6433 manners; but perhaps, having seen him so seldom, his reserve may be
6434 a little repulsive. Could they be much together, I feel sure of their
6435 liking each other. He would enjoy her liveliness and she has talents to
6436 value his powers. I wish they met more frequently! I hope she does not
6437 suppose there is any dislike on his side."
6438
6439 "She must know herself too secure of the regard of all the rest of you,"
6440 said Fanny, with half a sigh, "to have any such apprehension. And Sir
6441 Thomas's wishing just at first to be only with his family, is so very
6442 natural, that she can argue nothing from that. After a little while, I
6443 dare say, we shall be meeting again in the same sort of way, allowing
6444 for the difference of the time of year."
6445
6446 "This is the first October that she has passed in the country since her
6447 infancy. I do not call Tunbridge or Cheltenham the country; and November
6448 is a still more serious month, and I can see that Mrs. Grant is very
6449 anxious for her not finding Mansfield dull as winter comes on."
6450
6451 Fanny could have said a great deal, but it was safer to say nothing, and
6452 leave untouched all Miss Crawford's resources--her accomplishments, her
6453 spirits, her importance, her friends, lest it should betray her into
6454 any observations seemingly unhandsome. Miss Crawford's kind opinion of
6455 herself deserved at least a grateful forbearance, and she began to talk
6456 of something else.
6457
6458 "To-morrow, I think, my uncle dines at Sotherton, and you and Mr.
6459 Bertram too. We shall be quite a small party at home. I hope my uncle
6460 may continue to like Mr. Rushworth."
6461
6462 "That is impossible, Fanny. He must like him less after to-morrow's
6463 visit, for we shall be five hours in his company. I should dread
6464 the stupidity of the day, if there were not a much greater evil to
6465 follow--the impression it must leave on Sir Thomas. He cannot much
6466 longer deceive himself. I am sorry for them all, and would give
6467 something that Rushworth and Maria had never met."
6468
6469 In this quarter, indeed, disappointment was impending over Sir Thomas.
6470 Not all his good-will for Mr. Rushworth, not all Mr. Rushworth's
6471 deference for him, could prevent him from soon discerning some part of
6472 the truth--that Mr. Rushworth was an inferior young man, as ignorant
6473 in business as in books, with opinions in general unfixed, and without
6474 seeming much aware of it himself.
6475
6476 He had expected a very different son-in-law; and beginning to feel
6477 grave on Maria's account, tried to understand _her_ feelings. Little
6478 observation there was necessary to tell him that indifference was the
6479 most favourable state they could be in. Her behaviour to Mr. Rushworth
6480 was careless and cold. She could not, did not like him. Sir Thomas
6481 resolved to speak seriously to her. Advantageous as would be the
6482 alliance, and long standing and public as was the engagement, her
6483 happiness must not be sacrificed to it. Mr. Rushworth had, perhaps, been
6484 accepted on too short an acquaintance, and, on knowing him better, she
6485 was repenting.
6486
6487 With solemn kindness Sir Thomas addressed her: told her his fears,
6488 inquired into her wishes, entreated her to be open and sincere, and
6489 assured her that every inconvenience should be braved, and the connexion
6490 entirely given up, if she felt herself unhappy in the prospect of it. He
6491 would act for her and release her. Maria had a moment's struggle as she
6492 listened, and only a moment's: when her father ceased, she was able to
6493 give her answer immediately, decidedly, and with no apparent agitation.
6494 She thanked him for his great attention, his paternal kindness, but he
6495 was quite mistaken in supposing she had the smallest desire of breaking
6496 through her engagement, or was sensible of any change of opinion or
6497 inclination since her forming it. She had the highest esteem for Mr.
6498 Rushworth's character and disposition, and could not have a doubt of her
6499 happiness with him.
6500
6501 Sir Thomas was satisfied; too glad to be satisfied, perhaps, to urge the
6502 matter quite so far as his judgment might have dictated to others. It
6503 was an alliance which he could not have relinquished without pain;
6504 and thus he reasoned. Mr. Rushworth was young enough to improve. Mr.
6505 Rushworth must and would improve in good society; and if Maria could now
6506 speak so securely of her happiness with him, speaking certainly without
6507 the prejudice, the blindness of love, she ought to be believed. Her
6508 feelings, probably, were not acute; he had never supposed them to be
6509 so; but her comforts might not be less on that account; and if she could
6510 dispense with seeing her husband a leading, shining character, there
6511 would certainly be everything else in her favour. A well-disposed young
6512 woman, who did not marry for love, was in general but the more attached
6513 to her own family; and the nearness of Sotherton to Mansfield
6514 must naturally hold out the greatest temptation, and would, in all
6515 probability, be a continual supply of the most amiable and innocent
6516 enjoyments. Such and such-like were the reasonings of Sir Thomas,
6517 happy to escape the embarrassing evils of a rupture, the wonder,
6518 the reflections, the reproach that must attend it; happy to secure a
6519 marriage which would bring him such an addition of respectability
6520 and influence, and very happy to think anything of his daughter's
6521 disposition that was most favourable for the purpose.
6522
6523 To her the conference closed as satisfactorily as to him. She was in a
6524 state of mind to be glad that she had secured her fate beyond recall:
6525 that she had pledged herself anew to Sotherton; that she was safe from
6526 the possibility of giving Crawford the triumph of governing her actions,
6527 and destroying her prospects; and retired in proud resolve, determined
6528 only to behave more cautiously to Mr. Rushworth in future, that her
6529 father might not be again suspecting her.
6530
6531 Had Sir Thomas applied to his daughter within the first three or four
6532 days after Henry Crawford's leaving Mansfield, before her feelings were
6533 at all tranquillised, before she had given up every hope of him, or
6534 absolutely resolved on enduring his rival, her answer might have been
6535 different; but after another three or four days, when there was no
6536 return, no letter, no message, no symptom of a softened heart, no hope
6537 of advantage from separation, her mind became cool enough to seek all
6538 the comfort that pride and self revenge could give.
6539
6540 Henry Crawford had destroyed her happiness, but he should not know that
6541 he had done it; he should not destroy her credit, her appearance, her
6542 prosperity, too. He should not have to think of her as pining in the
6543 retirement of Mansfield for _him_, rejecting Sotherton and London,
6544 independence and splendour, for _his_ sake. Independence was more
6545 needful than ever; the want of it at Mansfield more sensibly felt. She
6546 was less and less able to endure the restraint which her father imposed.
6547 The liberty which his absence had given was now become absolutely
6548 necessary. She must escape from him and Mansfield as soon as possible,
6549 and find consolation in fortune and consequence, bustle and the world,
6550 for a wounded spirit. Her mind was quite determined, and varied not.
6551
6552 To such feelings delay, even the delay of much preparation, would have
6553 been an evil, and Mr. Rushworth could hardly be more impatient for the
6554 marriage than herself. In all the important preparations of the mind
6555 she was complete: being prepared for matrimony by an hatred of home,
6556 restraint, and tranquillity; by the misery of disappointed affection,
6557 and contempt of the man she was to marry. The rest might wait. The
6558 preparations of new carriages and furniture might wait for London and
6559 spring, when her own taste could have fairer play.
6560
6561 The principals being all agreed in this respect, it soon appeared that a
6562 very few weeks would be sufficient for such arrangements as must precede
6563 the wedding.
6564
6565 Mrs. Rushworth was quite ready to retire, and make way for the fortunate
6566 young woman whom her dear son had selected; and very early in November
6567 removed herself, her maid, her footman, and her chariot, with true
6568 dowager propriety, to Bath, there to parade over the wonders of
6569 Sotherton in her evening parties; enjoying them as thoroughly, perhaps,
6570 in the animation of a card-table, as she had ever done on the spot; and
6571 before the middle of the same month the ceremony had taken place which
6572 gave Sotherton another mistress.
6573
6574 It was a very proper wedding. The bride was elegantly dressed; the two
6575 bridesmaids were duly inferior; her father gave her away; her mother
6576 stood with salts in her hand, expecting to be agitated; her aunt tried
6577 to cry; and the service was impressively read by Dr. Grant. Nothing
6578 could be objected to when it came under the discussion of the
6579 neighbourhood, except that the carriage which conveyed the bride and
6580 bridegroom and Julia from the church-door to Sotherton was the same
6581 chaise which Mr. Rushworth had used for a twelvemonth before. In
6582 everything else the etiquette of the day might stand the strictest
6583 investigation.
6584
6585 It was done, and they were gone. Sir Thomas felt as an anxious father
6586 must feel, and was indeed experiencing much of the agitation which his
6587 wife had been apprehensive of for herself, but had fortunately escaped.
6588 Mrs. Norris, most happy to assist in the duties of the day, by spending
6589 it at the Park to support her sister's spirits, and drinking the health
6590 of Mr. and Mrs. Rushworth in a supernumerary glass or two, was all
6591 joyous delight; for she had made the match; she had done everything;
6592 and no one would have supposed, from her confident triumph, that she
6593 had ever heard of conjugal infelicity in her life, or could have the
6594 smallest insight into the disposition of the niece who had been brought
6595 up under her eye.
6596
6597 The plan of the young couple was to proceed, after a few days, to
6598 Brighton, and take a house there for some weeks. Every public place was
6599 new to Maria, and Brighton is almost as gay in winter as in summer. When
6600 the novelty of amusement there was over, it would be time for the wider
6601 range of London.
6602
6603 Julia was to go with them to Brighton. Since rivalry between the sisters
6604 had ceased, they had been gradually recovering much of their former good
6605 understanding; and were at least sufficiently friends to make each of
6606 them exceedingly glad to be with the other at such a time. Some other
6607 companion than Mr. Rushworth was of the first consequence to his lady;
6608 and Julia was quite as eager for novelty and pleasure as Maria, though
6609 she might not have struggled through so much to obtain them, and could
6610 better bear a subordinate situation.
6611
6612 Their departure made another material change at Mansfield, a chasm
6613 which required some time to fill up. The family circle became greatly
6614 contracted; and though the Miss Bertrams had latterly added little to
6615 its gaiety, they could not but be missed. Even their mother missed them;
6616 and how much more their tenderhearted cousin, who wandered about
6617 the house, and thought of them, and felt for them, with a degree of
6618 affectionate regret which they had never done much to deserve!
6619
6620
6621
6622 CHAPTER XXII
6623
6624 Fanny's consequence increased on the departure of her cousins. Becoming,
6625 as she then did, the only young woman in the drawing-room, the only
6626 occupier of that interesting division of a family in which she had
6627 hitherto held so humble a third, it was impossible for her not to be
6628 more looked at, more thought of and attended to, than she had ever been
6629 before; and "Where is Fanny?" became no uncommon question, even without
6630 her being wanted for any one's convenience.
6631
6632 Not only at home did her value increase, but at the Parsonage too. In
6633 that house, which she had hardly entered twice a year since Mr. Norris's
6634 death, she became a welcome, an invited guest, and in the gloom and dirt
6635 of a November day, most acceptable to Mary Crawford. Her visits there,
6636 beginning by chance, were continued by solicitation. Mrs. Grant,
6637 really eager to get any change for her sister, could, by the easiest
6638 self-deceit, persuade herself that she was doing the kindest thing by
6639 Fanny, and giving her the most important opportunities of improvement in
6640 pressing her frequent calls.
6641
6642 Fanny, having been sent into the village on some errand by her aunt
6643 Norris, was overtaken by a heavy shower close to the Parsonage; and
6644 being descried from one of the windows endeavouring to find shelter
6645 under the branches and lingering leaves of an oak just beyond their
6646 premises, was forced, though not without some modest reluctance on her
6647 part, to come in. A civil servant she had withstood; but when Dr. Grant
6648 himself went out with an umbrella, there was nothing to be done but to
6649 be very much ashamed, and to get into the house as fast as possible; and
6650 to poor Miss Crawford, who had just been contemplating the dismal rain
6651 in a very desponding state of mind, sighing over the ruin of all her
6652 plan of exercise for that morning, and of every chance of seeing a
6653 single creature beyond themselves for the next twenty-four hours, the
6654 sound of a little bustle at the front door, and the sight of Miss Price
6655 dripping with wet in the vestibule, was delightful. The value of an
6656 event on a wet day in the country was most forcibly brought before her.
6657 She was all alive again directly, and among the most active in being
6658 useful to Fanny, in detecting her to be wetter than she would at first
6659 allow, and providing her with dry clothes; and Fanny, after being
6660 obliged to submit to all this attention, and to being assisted and
6661 waited on by mistresses and maids, being also obliged, on returning
6662 downstairs, to be fixed in their drawing-room for an hour while the rain
6663 continued, the blessing of something fresh to see and think of was thus
6664 extended to Miss Crawford, and might carry on her spirits to the period
6665 of dressing and dinner.
6666
6667 The two sisters were so kind to her, and so pleasant, that Fanny might
6668 have enjoyed her visit could she have believed herself not in the way,
6669 and could she have foreseen that the weather would certainly clear at
6670 the end of the hour, and save her from the shame of having Dr. Grant's
6671 carriage and horses out to take her home, with which she was threatened.
6672 As to anxiety for any alarm that her absence in such weather might
6673 occasion at home, she had nothing to suffer on that score; for as her
6674 being out was known only to her two aunts, she was perfectly aware that
6675 none would be felt, and that in whatever cottage aunt Norris might chuse
6676 to establish her during the rain, her being in such cottage would be
6677 indubitable to aunt Bertram.
6678
6679 It was beginning to look brighter, when Fanny, observing a harp in the
6680 room, asked some questions about it, which soon led to an acknowledgment
6681 of her wishing very much to hear it, and a confession, which could
6682 hardly be believed, of her having never yet heard it since its being
6683 in Mansfield. To Fanny herself it appeared a very simple and natural
6684 circumstance. She had scarcely ever been at the Parsonage since the
6685 instrument's arrival, there had been no reason that she should; but Miss
6686 Crawford, calling to mind an early expressed wish on the subject, was
6687 concerned at her own neglect; and "Shall I play to you now?" and "What
6688 will you have?" were questions immediately following with the readiest
6689 good-humour.
6690
6691 She played accordingly; happy to have a new listener, and a listener who
6692 seemed so much obliged, so full of wonder at the performance, and who
6693 shewed herself not wanting in taste. She played till Fanny's eyes,
6694 straying to the window on the weather's being evidently fair, spoke what
6695 she felt must be done.
6696
6697 "Another quarter of an hour," said Miss Crawford, "and we shall see how
6698 it will be. Do not run away the first moment of its holding up. Those
6699 clouds look alarming."
6700
6701 "But they are passed over," said Fanny. "I have been watching them. This
6702 weather is all from the south."
6703
6704 "South or north, I know a black cloud when I see it; and you must not
6705 set forward while it is so threatening. And besides, I want to play
6706 something more to you--a very pretty piece--and your cousin Edmund's
6707 prime favourite. You must stay and hear your cousin's favourite."
6708
6709 Fanny felt that she must; and though she had not waited for that
6710 sentence to be thinking of Edmund, such a memento made her particularly
6711 awake to his idea, and she fancied him sitting in that room again
6712 and again, perhaps in the very spot where she sat now, listening with
6713 constant delight to the favourite air, played, as it appeared to her,
6714 with superior tone and expression; and though pleased with it herself,
6715 and glad to like whatever was liked by him, she was more sincerely
6716 impatient to go away at the conclusion of it than she had been before;
6717 and on this being evident, she was so kindly asked to call again, to
6718 take them in her walk whenever she could, to come and hear more of the
6719 harp, that she felt it necessary to be done, if no objection arose at
6720 home.
6721
6722 Such was the origin of the sort of intimacy which took place between
6723 them within the first fortnight after the Miss Bertrams' going away--an
6724 intimacy resulting principally from Miss Crawford's desire of something
6725 new, and which had little reality in Fanny's feelings. Fanny went to her
6726 every two or three days: it seemed a kind of fascination: she could not
6727 be easy without going, and yet it was without loving her, without ever
6728 thinking like her, without any sense of obligation for being sought
6729 after now when nobody else was to be had; and deriving no higher
6730 pleasure from her conversation than occasional amusement, and _that_
6731 often at the expense of her judgment, when it was raised by pleasantry
6732 on people or subjects which she wished to be respected. She went,
6733 however, and they sauntered about together many an half-hour in Mrs.
6734 Grant's shrubbery, the weather being unusually mild for the time of
6735 year, and venturing sometimes even to sit down on one of the benches now
6736 comparatively unsheltered, remaining there perhaps till, in the midst
6737 of some tender ejaculation of Fanny's on the sweets of so protracted
6738 an autumn, they were forced, by the sudden swell of a cold gust shaking
6739 down the last few yellow leaves about them, to jump up and walk for
6740 warmth.
6741
6742 "This is pretty, very pretty," said Fanny, looking around her as
6743 they were thus sitting together one day; "every time I come into this
6744 shrubbery I am more struck with its growth and beauty. Three years ago,
6745 this was nothing but a rough hedgerow along the upper side of the field,
6746 never thought of as anything, or capable of becoming anything; and now
6747 it is converted into a walk, and it would be difficult to say whether
6748 most valuable as a convenience or an ornament; and perhaps, in another
6749 three years, we may be forgetting--almost forgetting what it was before.
6750 How wonderful, how very wonderful the operations of time, and the
6751 changes of the human mind!" And following the latter train of thought,
6752 she soon afterwards added: "If any one faculty of our nature may be
6753 called _more_ wonderful than the rest, I do think it is memory. There
6754 seems something more speakingly incomprehensible in the powers,
6755 the failures, the inequalities of memory, than in any other of our
6756 intelligences. The memory is sometimes so retentive, so serviceable, so
6757 obedient; at others, so bewildered and so weak; and at others again, so
6758 tyrannic, so beyond control! We are, to be sure, a miracle every way;
6759 but our powers of recollecting and of forgetting do seem peculiarly past
6760 finding out."
6761
6762 Miss Crawford, untouched and inattentive, had nothing to say; and
6763 Fanny, perceiving it, brought back her own mind to what she thought must
6764 interest.
6765
6766 "It may seem impertinent in _me_ to praise, but I must admire the taste
6767 Mrs. Grant has shewn in all this. There is such a quiet simplicity in
6768 the plan of the walk! Not too much attempted!"
6769
6770 "Yes," replied Miss Crawford carelessly, "it does very well for a
6771 place of this sort. One does not think of extent _here_; and between
6772 ourselves, till I came to Mansfield, I had not imagined a country parson
6773 ever aspired to a shrubbery, or anything of the kind."
6774
6775 "I am so glad to see the evergreens thrive!" said Fanny, in reply. "My
6776 uncle's gardener always says the soil here is better than his own, and
6777 so it appears from the growth of the laurels and evergreens in general.
6778 The evergreen! How beautiful, how welcome, how wonderful the evergreen!
6779 When one thinks of it, how astonishing a variety of nature! In some
6780 countries we know the tree that sheds its leaf is the variety, but that
6781 does not make it less amazing that the same soil and the same sun should
6782 nurture plants differing in the first rule and law of their existence.
6783 You will think me rhapsodising; but when I am out of doors, especially
6784 when I am sitting out of doors, I am very apt to get into this sort of
6785 wondering strain. One cannot fix one's eyes on the commonest natural
6786 production without finding food for a rambling fancy."
6787
6788 "To say the truth," replied Miss Crawford, "I am something like the
6789 famous Doge at the court of Lewis XIV.; and may declare that I see no
6790 wonder in this shrubbery equal to seeing myself in it. If anybody had
6791 told me a year ago that this place would be my home, that I should be
6792 spending month after month here, as I have done, I certainly should
6793 not have believed them. I have now been here nearly five months; and,
6794 moreover, the quietest five months I ever passed."
6795
6796 "_Too_ quiet for you, I believe."
6797
6798 "I should have thought so _theoretically_ myself, but," and her eyes
6799 brightened as she spoke, "take it all and all, I never spent so happy a
6800 summer. But then," with a more thoughtful air and lowered voice, "there
6801 is no saying what it may lead to."
6802
6803 Fanny's heart beat quick, and she felt quite unequal to surmising
6804 or soliciting anything more. Miss Crawford, however, with renewed
6805 animation, soon went on--
6806
6807 "I am conscious of being far better reconciled to a country residence
6808 than I had ever expected to be. I can even suppose it pleasant to
6809 spend _half_ the year in the country, under certain circumstances,
6810 very pleasant. An elegant, moderate-sized house in the centre of family
6811 connexions; continual engagements among them; commanding the first
6812 society in the neighbourhood; looked up to, perhaps, as leading it even
6813 more than those of larger fortune, and turning from the cheerful round
6814 of such amusements to nothing worse than a _tete-a-tete_ with the person
6815 one feels most agreeable in the world. There is nothing frightful in
6816 such a picture, is there, Miss Price? One need not envy the new Mrs.
6817 Rushworth with such a home as _that_."
6818
6819 "Envy Mrs. Rushworth!" was all that Fanny attempted to say. "Come, come,
6820 it would be very un-handsome in us to be severe on Mrs. Rushworth, for I
6821 look forward to our owing her a great many gay, brilliant, happy hours.
6822 I expect we shall be all very much at Sotherton another year. Such
6823 a match as Miss Bertram has made is a public blessing; for the first
6824 pleasures of Mr. Rushworth's wife must be to fill her house, and give
6825 the best balls in the country."
6826
6827 Fanny was silent, and Miss Crawford relapsed into thoughtfulness, till
6828 suddenly looking up at the end of a few minutes, she exclaimed, "Ah!
6829 here he is." It was not Mr. Rushworth, however, but Edmund, who then
6830 appeared walking towards them with Mrs. Grant. "My sister and Mr.
6831 Bertram. I am so glad your eldest cousin is gone, that he may be Mr.
6832 Bertram again. There is something in the sound of Mr. _Edmund_ Bertram
6833 so formal, so pitiful, so younger-brother-like, that I detest it."
6834
6835 "How differently we feel!" cried Fanny. "To me, the sound of _Mr._
6836 Bertram is so cold and nothing-meaning, so entirely without warmth or
6837 character! It just stands for a gentleman, and that's all. But there is
6838 nobleness in the name of Edmund. It is a name of heroism and renown; of
6839 kings, princes, and knights; and seems to breathe the spirit of chivalry
6840 and warm affections."
6841
6842 "I grant you the name is good in itself, and _Lord_ Edmund or _Sir_
6843 Edmund sound delightfully; but sink it under the chill, the annihilation
6844 of a Mr., and Mr. Edmund is no more than Mr. John or Mr. Thomas. Well,
6845 shall we join and disappoint them of half their lecture upon sitting
6846 down out of doors at this time of year, by being up before they can
6847 begin?"
6848
6849 Edmund met them with particular pleasure. It was the first time of his
6850 seeing them together since the beginning of that better acquaintance
6851 which he had been hearing of with great satisfaction. A friendship
6852 between two so very dear to him was exactly what he could have wished:
6853 and to the credit of the lover's understanding, be it stated, that he
6854 did not by any means consider Fanny as the only, or even as the greater
6855 gainer by such a friendship.
6856
6857 "Well," said Miss Crawford, "and do you not scold us for our imprudence?
6858 What do you think we have been sitting down for but to be talked to
6859 about it, and entreated and supplicated never to do so again?"
6860
6861 "Perhaps I might have scolded," said Edmund, "if either of you had been
6862 sitting down alone; but while you do wrong together, I can overlook a
6863 great deal."
6864
6865 "They cannot have been sitting long," cried Mrs. Grant, "for when I went
6866 up for my shawl I saw them from the staircase window, and then they were
6867 walking."
6868
6869 "And really," added Edmund, "the day is so mild, that your sitting down
6870 for a few minutes can be hardly thought imprudent. Our weather must
6871 not always be judged by the calendar. We may sometimes take greater
6872 liberties in November than in May."
6873
6874 "Upon my word," cried Miss Crawford, "you are two of the most
6875 disappointing and unfeeling kind friends I ever met with! There is no
6876 giving you a moment's uneasiness. You do not know how much we have been
6877 suffering, nor what chills we have felt! But I have long thought Mr.
6878 Bertram one of the worst subjects to work on, in any little manoeuvre
6879 against common sense, that a woman could be plagued with. I had very
6880 little hope of _him_ from the first; but you, Mrs. Grant, my sister, my
6881 own sister, I think I had a right to alarm you a little."
6882
6883 "Do not flatter yourself, my dearest Mary. You have not the smallest
6884 chance of moving me. I have my alarms, but they are quite in a different
6885 quarter; and if I could have altered the weather, you would have had a
6886 good sharp east wind blowing on you the whole time--for here are some of
6887 my plants which Robert _will_ leave out because the nights are so mild,
6888 and I know the end of it will be, that we shall have a sudden change of
6889 weather, a hard frost setting in all at once, taking everybody (at least
6890 Robert) by surprise, and I shall lose every one; and what is worse, cook
6891 has just been telling me that the turkey, which I particularly wished
6892 not to be dressed till Sunday, because I know how much more Dr. Grant
6893 would enjoy it on Sunday after the fatigues of the day, will not keep
6894 beyond to-morrow. These are something like grievances, and make me think
6895 the weather most unseasonably close."
6896
6897 "The sweets of housekeeping in a country village!" said Miss Crawford
6898 archly. "Commend me to the nurseryman and the poulterer."
6899
6900 "My dear child, commend Dr. Grant to the deanery of Westminster or St.
6901 Paul's, and I should be as glad of your nurseryman and poulterer as you
6902 could be. But we have no such people in Mansfield. What would you have
6903 me do?"
6904
6905 "Oh! you can do nothing but what you do already: be plagued very often,
6906 and never lose your temper."
6907
6908 "Thank you; but there is no escaping these little vexations, Mary, live
6909 where we may; and when you are settled in town and I come to see you, I
6910 dare say I shall find you with yours, in spite of the nurseryman and
6911 the poulterer, perhaps on their very account. Their remoteness and
6912 unpunctuality, or their exorbitant charges and frauds, will be drawing
6913 forth bitter lamentations."
6914
6915 "I mean to be too rich to lament or to feel anything of the sort.
6916 A large income is the best recipe for happiness I ever heard of. It
6917 certainly may secure all the myrtle and turkey part of it."
6918
6919 "You intend to be very rich?" said Edmund, with a look which, to Fanny's
6920 eye, had a great deal of serious meaning.
6921
6922 "To be sure. Do not you? Do not we all?"
6923
6924 "I cannot intend anything which it must be so completely beyond my power
6925 to command. Miss Crawford may chuse her degree of wealth. She has only
6926 to fix on her number of thousands a year, and there can be no doubt of
6927 their coming. My intentions are only not to be poor."
6928
6929 "By moderation and economy, and bringing down your wants to your income,
6930 and all that. I understand you--and a very proper plan it is for a
6931 person at your time of life, with such limited means and indifferent
6932 connexions. What can _you_ want but a decent maintenance? You have
6933 not much time before you; and your relations are in no situation to do
6934 anything for you, or to mortify you by the contrast of their own wealth
6935 and consequence. Be honest and poor, by all means--but I shall not envy
6936 you; I do not much think I shall even respect you. I have a much greater
6937 respect for those that are honest and rich."
6938
6939 "Your degree of respect for honesty, rich or poor, is precisely what
6940 I have no manner of concern with. I do not mean to be poor. Poverty
6941 is exactly what I have determined against. Honesty, in the something
6942 between, in the middle state of worldly circumstances, is all that I am
6943 anxious for your not looking down on."
6944
6945 "But I do look down upon it, if it might have been higher. I must
6946 look down upon anything contented with obscurity when it might rise to
6947 distinction."
6948
6949 "But how may it rise? How may my honesty at least rise to any
6950 distinction?"
6951
6952 This was not so very easy a question to answer, and occasioned an "Oh!"
6953 of some length from the fair lady before she could add, "You ought to be
6954 in parliament, or you should have gone into the army ten years ago."
6955
6956 "_That_ is not much to the purpose now; and as to my being in
6957 parliament, I believe I must wait till there is an especial assembly for
6958 the representation of younger sons who have little to live on. No, Miss
6959 Crawford," he added, in a more serious tone, "there _are_ distinctions
6960 which I should be miserable if I thought myself without any
6961 chance--absolutely without chance or possibility of obtaining--but they
6962 are of a different character."
6963
6964 A look of consciousness as he spoke, and what seemed a consciousness
6965 of manner on Miss Crawford's side as she made some laughing answer,
6966 was sorrowfull food for Fanny's observation; and finding herself quite
6967 unable to attend as she ought to Mrs. Grant, by whose side she was now
6968 following the others, she had nearly resolved on going home immediately,
6969 and only waited for courage to say so, when the sound of the great clock
6970 at Mansfield Park, striking three, made her feel that she had
6971 really been much longer absent than usual, and brought the previous
6972 self-inquiry of whether she should take leave or not just then, and how,
6973 to a very speedy issue. With undoubting decision she directly began her
6974 adieus; and Edmund began at the same time to recollect that his mother
6975 had been inquiring for her, and that he had walked down to the Parsonage
6976 on purpose to bring her back.
6977
6978 Fanny's hurry increased; and without in the least expecting Edmund's
6979 attendance, she would have hastened away alone; but the general pace was
6980 quickened, and they all accompanied her into the house, through which it
6981 was necessary to pass. Dr. Grant was in the vestibule, and as they stopt
6982 to speak to him she found, from Edmund's manner, that he _did_ mean to
6983 go with her. He too was taking leave. She could not but be thankful. In
6984 the moment of parting, Edmund was invited by Dr. Grant to eat his mutton
6985 with him the next day; and Fanny had barely time for an unpleasant
6986 feeling on the occasion, when Mrs. Grant, with sudden recollection,
6987 turned to her and asked for the pleasure of her company too. This was
6988 so new an attention, so perfectly new a circumstance in the events of
6989 Fanny's life, that she was all surprise and embarrassment; and while
6990 stammering out her great obligation, and her "but she did not suppose it
6991 would be in her power," was looking at Edmund for his opinion and help.
6992 But Edmund, delighted with her having such an happiness offered, and
6993 ascertaining with half a look, and half a sentence, that she had no
6994 objection but on her aunt's account, could not imagine that his mother
6995 would make any difficulty of sparing her, and therefore gave his decided
6996 open advice that the invitation should be accepted; and though Fanny
6997 would not venture, even on his encouragement, to such a flight of
6998 audacious independence, it was soon settled, that if nothing were heard
6999 to the contrary, Mrs. Grant might expect her.
7000
7001 "And you know what your dinner will be," said Mrs. Grant, smiling--"the
7002 turkey, and I assure you a very fine one; for, my dear," turning to her
7003 husband, "cook insists upon the turkey's being dressed to-morrow."
7004
7005 "Very well, very well," cried Dr. Grant, "all the better; I am glad
7006 to hear you have anything so good in the house. But Miss Price and Mr.
7007 Edmund Bertram, I dare say, would take their chance. We none of us want
7008 to hear the bill of fare. A friendly meeting, and not a fine dinner,
7009 is all we have in view. A turkey, or a goose, or a leg of mutton, or
7010 whatever you and your cook chuse to give us."
7011
7012 The two cousins walked home together; and, except in the immediate
7013 discussion of this engagement, which Edmund spoke of with the warmest
7014 satisfaction, as so particularly desirable for her in the intimacy which
7015 he saw with so much pleasure established, it was a silent walk; for
7016 having finished that subject, he grew thoughtful and indisposed for any
7017 other.
7018
7019
7020
7021 CHAPTER XXIII
7022
7023 "But why should Mrs. Grant ask Fanny?" said Lady Bertram. "How came she
7024 to think of asking Fanny? Fanny never dines there, you know, in this
7025 sort of way. I cannot spare her, and I am sure she does not want to go.
7026 Fanny, you do not want to go, do you?"
7027
7028 "If you put such a question to her," cried Edmund, preventing his
7029 cousin's speaking, "Fanny will immediately say No; but I am sure, my
7030 dear mother, she would like to go; and I can see no reason why she
7031 should not."
7032
7033 "I cannot imagine why Mrs. Grant should think of asking her? She never
7034 did before. She used to ask your sisters now and then, but she never
7035 asked Fanny."
7036
7037 "If you cannot do without me, ma'am--" said Fanny, in a self-denying
7038 tone.
7039
7040 "But my mother will have my father with her all the evening."
7041
7042 "To be sure, so I shall."
7043
7044 "Suppose you take my father's opinion, ma'am."
7045
7046 "That's well thought of. So I will, Edmund. I will ask Sir Thomas, as
7047 soon as he comes in, whether I can do without her."
7048
7049 "As you please, ma'am, on that head; but I meant my father's opinion
7050 as to the _propriety_ of the invitation's being accepted or not; and
7051 I think he will consider it a right thing by Mrs. Grant, as well as by
7052 Fanny, that being the _first_ invitation it should be accepted."
7053
7054 "I do not know. We will ask him. But he will be very much surprised that
7055 Mrs. Grant should ask Fanny at all."
7056
7057 There was nothing more to be said, or that could be said to any purpose,
7058 till Sir Thomas were present; but the subject involving, as it did,
7059 her own evening's comfort for the morrow, was so much uppermost in Lady
7060 Bertram's mind, that half an hour afterwards, on his looking in for a
7061 minute in his way from his plantation to his dressing-room, she called
7062 him back again, when he had almost closed the door, with "Sir Thomas,
7063 stop a moment--I have something to say to you."
7064
7065 Her tone of calm languor, for she never took the trouble of raising her
7066 voice, was always heard and attended to; and Sir Thomas came back. Her
7067 story began; and Fanny immediately slipped out of the room; for to hear
7068 herself the subject of any discussion with her uncle was more than her
7069 nerves could bear. She was anxious, she knew--more anxious perhaps than
7070 she ought to be--for what was it after all whether she went or staid?
7071 but if her uncle were to be a great while considering and deciding, and
7072 with very grave looks, and those grave looks directed to her, and
7073 at last decide against her, she might not be able to appear properly
7074 submissive and indifferent. Her cause, meanwhile, went on well. It
7075 began, on Lady Bertram's part, with--"I have something to tell you that
7076 will surprise you. Mrs. Grant has asked Fanny to dinner."
7077
7078 "Well," said Sir Thomas, as if waiting more to accomplish the surprise.
7079
7080 "Edmund wants her to go. But how can I spare her?"
7081
7082 "She will be late," said Sir Thomas, taking out his watch; "but what is
7083 your difficulty?"
7084
7085 Edmund found himself obliged to speak and fill up the blanks in his
7086 mother's story. He told the whole; and she had only to add, "So strange!
7087 for Mrs. Grant never used to ask her."
7088
7089 "But is it not very natural," observed Edmund, "that Mrs. Grant should
7090 wish to procure so agreeable a visitor for her sister?"
7091
7092 "Nothing can be more natural," said Sir Thomas, after a short
7093 deliberation; "nor, were there no sister in the case, could anything,
7094 in my opinion, be more natural. Mrs. Grant's shewing civility to Miss
7095 Price, to Lady Bertram's niece, could never want explanation. The only
7096 surprise I can feel is, that this should be the _first_ time of its
7097 being paid. Fanny was perfectly right in giving only a conditional
7098 answer. She appears to feel as she ought. But as I conclude that she
7099 must wish to go, since all young people like to be together, I can see
7100 no reason why she should be denied the indulgence."
7101
7102 "But can I do without her, Sir Thomas?"
7103
7104 "Indeed I think you may."
7105
7106 "She always makes tea, you know, when my sister is not here."
7107
7108 "Your sister, perhaps, may be prevailed on to spend the day with us, and
7109 I shall certainly be at home."
7110
7111 "Very well, then, Fanny may go, Edmund."
7112
7113 The good news soon followed her. Edmund knocked at her door in his way
7114 to his own.
7115
7116 "Well, Fanny, it is all happily settled, and without the smallest
7117 hesitation on your uncle's side. He had but one opinion. You are to go."
7118
7119 "Thank you, I am _so_ glad," was Fanny's instinctive reply; though when
7120 she had turned from him and shut the door, she could not help feeling,
7121 "And yet why should I be glad? for am I not certain of seeing or hearing
7122 something there to pain me?"
7123
7124 In spite of this conviction, however, she was glad. Simple as such an
7125 engagement might appear in other eyes, it had novelty and importance in
7126 hers, for excepting the day at Sotherton, she had scarcely ever dined
7127 out before; and though now going only half a mile, and only to three
7128 people, still it was dining out, and all the little interests of
7129 preparation were enjoyments in themselves. She had neither sympathy nor
7130 assistance from those who ought to have entered into her feelings and
7131 directed her taste; for Lady Bertram never thought of being useful to
7132 anybody, and Mrs. Norris, when she came on the morrow, in consequence of
7133 an early call and invitation from Sir Thomas, was in a very ill humour,
7134 and seemed intent only on lessening her niece's pleasure, both present
7135 and future, as much as possible.
7136
7137 "Upon my word, Fanny, you are in high luck to meet with such attention
7138 and indulgence! You ought to be very much obliged to Mrs. Grant for
7139 thinking of you, and to your aunt for letting you go, and you ought to
7140 look upon it as something extraordinary; for I hope you are aware that
7141 there is no real occasion for your going into company in this sort of
7142 way, or ever dining out at all; and it is what you must not depend upon
7143 ever being repeated. Nor must you be fancying that the invitation is
7144 meant as any particular compliment to _you_; the compliment is intended
7145 to your uncle and aunt and me. Mrs. Grant thinks it a civility due to
7146 _us_ to take a little notice of you, or else it would never have come
7147 into her head, and you may be very certain that, if your cousin Julia
7148 had been at home, you would not have been asked at all."
7149
7150 Mrs. Norris had now so ingeniously done away all Mrs. Grant's part of
7151 the favour, that Fanny, who found herself expected to speak, could only
7152 say that she was very much obliged to her aunt Bertram for sparing her,
7153 and that she was endeavouring to put her aunt's evening work in such a
7154 state as to prevent her being missed.
7155
7156 "Oh! depend upon it, your aunt can do very well without you, or you
7157 would not be allowed to go. _I_ shall be here, so you may be quite easy
7158 about your aunt. And I hope you will have a very _agreeable_ day, and
7159 find it all mighty _delightful_. But I must observe that five is the
7160 very awkwardest of all possible numbers to sit down to table; and I
7161 cannot but be surprised that such an _elegant_ lady as Mrs. Grant should
7162 not contrive better! And round their enormous great wide table, too,
7163 which fills up the room so dreadfully! Had the doctor been contented to
7164 take my dining-table when I came away, as anybody in their senses would
7165 have done, instead of having that absurd new one of his own, which is
7166 wider, literally wider than the dinner-table here, how infinitely better
7167 it would have been! and how much more he would have been respected! for
7168 people are never respected when they step out of their proper sphere.
7169 Remember that, Fanny. Five--only five to be sitting round that table.
7170 However, you will have dinner enough on it for ten, I dare say."
7171
7172 Mrs. Norris fetched breath, and went on again.
7173
7174 "The nonsense and folly of people's stepping out of their rank and
7175 trying to appear above themselves, makes me think it right to give _you_
7176 a hint, Fanny, now that you are going into company without any of us;
7177 and I do beseech and entreat you not to be putting yourself forward, and
7178 talking and giving your opinion as if you were one of your cousins--as
7179 if you were dear Mrs. Rushworth or Julia. _That_ will never do, believe
7180 me. Remember, wherever you are, you must be the lowest and last; and
7181 though Miss Crawford is in a manner at home at the Parsonage, you are
7182 not to be taking place of her. And as to coming away at night, you are
7183 to stay just as long as Edmund chuses. Leave him to settle _that_."
7184
7185 "Yes, ma'am, I should not think of anything else."
7186
7187 "And if it should rain, which I think exceedingly likely, for I never
7188 saw it more threatening for a wet evening in my life, you must manage as
7189 well as you can, and not be expecting the carriage to be sent for you. I
7190 certainly do not go home to-night, and, therefore, the carriage will not
7191 be out on my account; so you must make up your mind to what may happen,
7192 and take your things accordingly."
7193
7194 Her niece thought it perfectly reasonable. She rated her own claims
7195 to comfort as low even as Mrs. Norris could; and when Sir Thomas soon
7196 afterwards, just opening the door, said, "Fanny, at what time would you
7197 have the carriage come round?" she felt a degree of astonishment which
7198 made it impossible for her to speak.
7199
7200 "My dear Sir Thomas!" cried Mrs. Norris, red with anger, "Fanny can
7201 walk."
7202
7203 "Walk!" repeated Sir Thomas, in a tone of most unanswerable dignity, and
7204 coming farther into the room. "My niece walk to a dinner engagement at
7205 this time of the year! Will twenty minutes after four suit you?"
7206
7207 "Yes, sir," was Fanny's humble answer, given with the feelings almost
7208 of a criminal towards Mrs. Norris; and not bearing to remain with her
7209 in what might seem a state of triumph, she followed her uncle out of
7210 the room, having staid behind him only long enough to hear these words
7211 spoken in angry agitation--
7212
7213 "Quite unnecessary! a great deal too kind! But Edmund goes; true, it is
7214 upon Edmund's account. I observed he was hoarse on Thursday night."
7215
7216 But this could not impose on Fanny. She felt that the carriage was for
7217 herself, and herself alone: and her uncle's consideration of her, coming
7218 immediately after such representations from her aunt, cost her some
7219 tears of gratitude when she was alone.
7220
7221 The coachman drove round to a minute; another minute brought down the
7222 gentleman; and as the lady had, with a most scrupulous fear of being
7223 late, been many minutes seated in the drawing-room, Sir Thomas saw them
7224 off in as good time as his own correctly punctual habits required.
7225
7226 "Now I must look at you, Fanny," said Edmund, with the kind smile of an
7227 affectionate brother, "and tell you how I like you; and as well as I can
7228 judge by this light, you look very nicely indeed. What have you got on?"
7229
7230 "The new dress that my uncle was so good as to give me on my cousin's
7231 marriage. I hope it is not too fine; but I thought I ought to wear it as
7232 soon as I could, and that I might not have such another opportunity all
7233 the winter. I hope you do not think me too fine."
7234
7235 "A woman can never be too fine while she is all in white. No, I see no
7236 finery about you; nothing but what is perfectly proper. Your gown seems
7237 very pretty. I like these glossy spots. Has not Miss Crawford a gown
7238 something the same?"
7239
7240 In approaching the Parsonage they passed close by the stable-yard and
7241 coach-house.
7242
7243 "Heyday!" said Edmund, "here's company, here's a carriage! who have they
7244 got to meet us?" And letting down the side-glass to distinguish, "'Tis
7245 Crawford's, Crawford's barouche, I protest! There are his own two men
7246 pushing it back into its old quarters. He is here, of course. This is
7247 quite a surprise, Fanny. I shall be very glad to see him."
7248
7249 There was no occasion, there was no time for Fanny to say how very
7250 differently she felt; but the idea of having such another to observe
7251 her was a great increase of the trepidation with which she performed the
7252 very awful ceremony of walking into the drawing-room.
7253
7254 In the drawing-room Mr. Crawford certainly was, having been just long
7255 enough arrived to be ready for dinner; and the smiles and pleased looks
7256 of the three others standing round him, shewed how welcome was his
7257 sudden resolution of coming to them for a few days on leaving Bath.
7258 A very cordial meeting passed between him and Edmund; and with the
7259 exception of Fanny, the pleasure was general; and even to _her_ there
7260 might be some advantage in his presence, since every addition to the
7261 party must rather forward her favourite indulgence of being suffered to
7262 sit silent and unattended to. She was soon aware of this herself; for
7263 though she must submit, as her own propriety of mind directed, in spite
7264 of her aunt Norris's opinion, to being the principal lady in company,
7265 and to all the little distinctions consequent thereon, she found, while
7266 they were at table, such a happy flow of conversation prevailing, in
7267 which she was not required to take any part--there was so much to be
7268 said between the brother and sister about Bath, so much between the two
7269 young men about hunting, so much of politics between Mr. Crawford and
7270 Dr. Grant, and of everything and all together between Mr. Crawford
7271 and Mrs. Grant, as to leave her the fairest prospect of having only
7272 to listen in quiet, and of passing a very agreeable day. She could not
7273 compliment the newly arrived gentleman, however, with any appearance of
7274 interest, in a scheme for extending his stay at Mansfield, and sending
7275 for his hunters from Norfolk, which, suggested by Dr. Grant, advised by
7276 Edmund, and warmly urged by the two sisters, was soon in possession of
7277 his mind, and which he seemed to want to be encouraged even by her to
7278 resolve on. Her opinion was sought as to the probable continuance of the
7279 open weather, but her answers were as short and indifferent as civility
7280 allowed. She could not wish him to stay, and would much rather not have
7281 him speak to her.
7282
7283 Her two absent cousins, especially Maria, were much in her thoughts on
7284 seeing him; but no embarrassing remembrance affected _his_ spirits.
7285 Here he was again on the same ground where all had passed before, and
7286 apparently as willing to stay and be happy without the Miss Bertrams,
7287 as if he had never known Mansfield in any other state. She heard them
7288 spoken of by him only in a general way, till they were all re-assembled
7289 in the drawing-room, when Edmund, being engaged apart in some matter of
7290 business with Dr. Grant, which seemed entirely to engross them, and
7291 Mrs. Grant occupied at the tea-table, he began talking of them with more
7292 particularity to his other sister. With a significant smile, which made
7293 Fanny quite hate him, he said, "So! Rushworth and his fair bride are at
7294 Brighton, I understand; happy man!"
7295
7296 "Yes, they have been there about a fortnight, Miss Price, have they not?
7297 And Julia is with them."
7298
7299 "And Mr. Yates, I presume, is not far off."
7300
7301 "Mr. Yates! Oh! we hear nothing of Mr. Yates. I do not imagine he
7302 figures much in the letters to Mansfield Park; do you, Miss Price? I
7303 think my friend Julia knows better than to entertain her father with Mr.
7304 Yates."
7305
7306 "Poor Rushworth and his two-and-forty speeches!" continued Crawford.
7307 "Nobody can ever forget them. Poor fellow! I see him now--his toil and
7308 his despair. Well, I am much mistaken if his lovely Maria will ever want
7309 him to make two-and-forty speeches to her"; adding, with a momentary
7310 seriousness, "She is too good for him--much too good." And then changing
7311 his tone again to one of gentle gallantry, and addressing Fanny, he
7312 said, "You were Mr. Rushworth's best friend. Your kindness and patience
7313 can never be forgotten, your indefatigable patience in trying to make it
7314 possible for him to learn his part--in trying to give him a brain
7315 which nature had denied--to mix up an understanding for him out of the
7316 superfluity of your own! _He_ might not have sense enough himself to
7317 estimate your kindness, but I may venture to say that it had honour from
7318 all the rest of the party."
7319
7320 Fanny coloured, and said nothing.
7321
7322 "It is as a dream, a pleasant dream!" he exclaimed, breaking forth
7323 again, after a few minutes' musing. "I shall always look back on our
7324 theatricals with exquisite pleasure. There was such an interest, such an
7325 animation, such a spirit diffused. Everybody felt it. We were all alive.
7326 There was employment, hope, solicitude, bustle, for every hour of
7327 the day. Always some little objection, some little doubt, some little
7328 anxiety to be got over. I never was happier."
7329
7330 With silent indignation Fanny repeated to herself, "Never
7331 happier!--never happier than when doing what you must know was not
7332 justifiable!--never happier than when behaving so dishonourably and
7333 unfeelingly! Oh! what a corrupted mind!"
7334
7335 "We were unlucky, Miss Price," he continued, in a lower tone, to avoid
7336 the possibility of being heard by Edmund, and not at all aware of her
7337 feelings, "we certainly were very unlucky. Another week, only one other
7338 week, would have been enough for us. I think if we had had the disposal
7339 of events--if Mansfield Park had had the government of the winds
7340 just for a week or two, about the equinox, there would have been
7341 a difference. Not that we would have endangered his safety by any
7342 tremendous weather--but only by a steady contrary wind, or a calm. I
7343 think, Miss Price, we would have indulged ourselves with a week's calm
7344 in the Atlantic at that season."
7345
7346 He seemed determined to be answered; and Fanny, averting her face, said,
7347 with a firmer tone than usual, "As far as _I_ am concerned, sir, I would
7348 not have delayed his return for a day. My uncle disapproved it all so
7349 entirely when he did arrive, that in my opinion everything had gone
7350 quite far enough."
7351
7352 She had never spoken so much at once to him in her life before, and
7353 never so angrily to any one; and when her speech was over, she trembled
7354 and blushed at her own daring. He was surprised; but after a few
7355 moments' silent consideration of her, replied in a calmer, graver tone,
7356 and as if the candid result of conviction, "I believe you are right.
7357 It was more pleasant than prudent. We were getting too noisy." And
7358 then turning the conversation, he would have engaged her on some other
7359 subject, but her answers were so shy and reluctant that he could not
7360 advance in any.
7361
7362 Miss Crawford, who had been repeatedly eyeing Dr. Grant and Edmund,
7363 now observed, "Those gentlemen must have some very interesting point to
7364 discuss."
7365
7366 "The most interesting in the world," replied her brother--"how to make
7367 money; how to turn a good income into a better. Dr. Grant is giving
7368 Bertram instructions about the living he is to step into so soon. I find
7369 he takes orders in a few weeks. They were at it in the dining-parlour. I
7370 am glad to hear Bertram will be so well off. He will have a very pretty
7371 income to make ducks and drakes with, and earned without much trouble. I
7372 apprehend he will not have less than seven hundred a year. Seven hundred
7373 a year is a fine thing for a younger brother; and as of course he will
7374 still live at home, it will be all for his _menus_ _plaisirs_; and a
7375 sermon at Christmas and Easter, I suppose, will be the sum total of
7376 sacrifice."
7377
7378 His sister tried to laugh off her feelings by saying, "Nothing amuses me
7379 more than the easy manner with which everybody settles the abundance of
7380 those who have a great deal less than themselves. You would look rather
7381 blank, Henry, if your _menus_ _plaisirs_ were to be limited to seven
7382 hundred a year."
7383
7384 "Perhaps I might; but all _that_ you know is entirely comparative.
7385 Birthright and habit must settle the business. Bertram is certainly well
7386 off for a cadet of even a baronet's family. By the time he is four or
7387 five and twenty he will have seven hundred a year, and nothing to do for
7388 it."
7389
7390 Miss Crawford _could_ have said that there would be a something to do
7391 and to suffer for it, which she could not think lightly of; but she
7392 checked herself and let it pass; and tried to look calm and unconcerned
7393 when the two gentlemen shortly afterwards joined them.
7394
7395 "Bertram," said Henry Crawford, "I shall make a point of coming to
7396 Mansfield to hear you preach your first sermon. I shall come on purpose
7397 to encourage a young beginner. When is it to be? Miss Price, will not
7398 you join me in encouraging your cousin? Will not you engage to attend
7399 with your eyes steadily fixed on him the whole time--as I shall do--not
7400 to lose a word; or only looking off just to note down any sentence
7401 preeminently beautiful? We will provide ourselves with tablets and a
7402 pencil. When will it be? You must preach at Mansfield, you know, that
7403 Sir Thomas and Lady Bertram may hear you."
7404
7405 "I shall keep clear of you, Crawford, as long as I can," said Edmund;
7406 "for you would be more likely to disconcert me, and I should be more
7407 sorry to see you trying at it than almost any other man."
7408
7409 "Will he not feel this?" thought Fanny. "No, he can feel nothing as he
7410 ought."
7411
7412 The party being now all united, and the chief talkers attracting each
7413 other, she remained in tranquillity; and as a whist-table was formed
7414 after tea--formed really for the amusement of Dr. Grant, by his
7415 attentive wife, though it was not to be supposed so--and Miss Crawford
7416 took her harp, she had nothing to do but to listen; and her tranquillity
7417 remained undisturbed the rest of the evening, except when Mr. Crawford
7418 now and then addressed to her a question or observation, which she could
7419 not avoid answering. Miss Crawford was too much vexed by what had passed
7420 to be in a humour for anything but music. With that she soothed herself
7421 and amused her friend.
7422
7423 The assurance of Edmund's being so soon to take orders, coming upon her
7424 like a blow that had been suspended, and still hoped uncertain and at a
7425 distance, was felt with resentment and mortification. She was very angry
7426 with him. She had thought her influence more. She _had_ begun to think
7427 of him; she felt that she had, with great regard, with almost decided
7428 intentions; but she would now meet him with his own cool feelings. It
7429 was plain that he could have no serious views, no true attachment, by
7430 fixing himself in a situation which he must know she would never
7431 stoop to. She would learn to match him in his indifference. She would
7432 henceforth admit his attentions without any idea beyond immediate
7433 amusement. If _he_ could so command his affections, _hers_ should do her
7434 no harm.
7435
7436
7437
7438 CHAPTER XXIV
7439
7440 Henry Crawford had quite made up his mind by the next morning to give
7441 another fortnight to Mansfield, and having sent for his hunters, and
7442 written a few lines of explanation to the Admiral, he looked round at
7443 his sister as he sealed and threw the letter from him, and seeing the
7444 coast clear of the rest of the family, said, with a smile, "And how do
7445 you think I mean to amuse myself, Mary, on the days that I do not hunt?
7446 I am grown too old to go out more than three times a week; but I have a
7447 plan for the intermediate days, and what do you think it is?"
7448
7449 "To walk and ride with me, to be sure."
7450
7451 "Not exactly, though I shall be happy to do both, but _that_ would be
7452 exercise only to my body, and I must take care of my mind. Besides,
7453 _that_ would be all recreation and indulgence, without the wholesome
7454 alloy of labour, and I do not like to eat the bread of idleness. No, my
7455 plan is to make Fanny Price in love with me."
7456
7457 "Fanny Price! Nonsense! No, no. You ought to be satisfied with her two
7458 cousins."
7459
7460 "But I cannot be satisfied without Fanny Price, without making a small
7461 hole in Fanny Price's heart. You do not seem properly aware of her
7462 claims to notice. When we talked of her last night, you none of you
7463 seemed sensible of the wonderful improvement that has taken place in her
7464 looks within the last six weeks. You see her every day, and therefore do
7465 not notice it; but I assure you she is quite a different creature from
7466 what she was in the autumn. She was then merely a quiet, modest, not
7467 plain-looking girl, but she is now absolutely pretty. I used to think
7468 she had neither complexion nor countenance; but in that soft skin of
7469 hers, so frequently tinged with a blush as it was yesterday, there is
7470 decided beauty; and from what I observed of her eyes and mouth, I do
7471 not despair of their being capable of expression enough when she
7472 has anything to express. And then, her air, her manner, her _tout_
7473 _ensemble_, is so indescribably improved! She must be grown two inches,
7474 at least, since October."
7475
7476 "Phoo! phoo! This is only because there were no tall women to compare
7477 her with, and because she has got a new gown, and you never saw her so
7478 well dressed before. She is just what she was in October, believe me.
7479 The truth is, that she was the only girl in company for you to notice,
7480 and you must have a somebody. I have always thought her pretty--not
7481 strikingly pretty--but 'pretty enough,' as people say; a sort of beauty
7482 that grows on one. Her eyes should be darker, but she has a sweet smile;
7483 but as for this wonderful degree of improvement, I am sure it may all
7484 be resolved into a better style of dress, and your having nobody else to
7485 look at; and therefore, if you do set about a flirtation with her, you
7486 never will persuade me that it is in compliment to her beauty, or that
7487 it proceeds from anything but your own idleness and folly."
7488
7489 Her brother gave only a smile to this accusation, and soon afterwards
7490 said, "I do not quite know what to make of Miss Fanny. I do not
7491 understand her. I could not tell what she would be at yesterday. What is
7492 her character? Is she solemn? Is she queer? Is she prudish? Why did she
7493 draw back and look so grave at me? I could hardly get her to speak. I
7494 never was so long in company with a girl in my life, trying to entertain
7495 her, and succeed so ill! Never met with a girl who looked so grave on
7496 me! I must try to get the better of this. Her looks say, 'I will not
7497 like you, I am determined not to like you'; and I say she shall."
7498
7499 "Foolish fellow! And so this is her attraction after all! This it is,
7500 her not caring about you, which gives her such a soft skin, and makes
7501 her so much taller, and produces all these charms and graces! I do
7502 desire that you will not be making her really unhappy; a _little_ love,
7503 perhaps, may animate and do her good, but I will not have you plunge
7504 her deep, for she is as good a little creature as ever lived, and has a
7505 great deal of feeling."
7506
7507 "It can be but for a fortnight," said Henry; "and if a fortnight can
7508 kill her, she must have a constitution which nothing could save. No, I
7509 will not do her any harm, dear little soul! only want her to look kindly
7510 on me, to give me smiles as well as blushes, to keep a chair for me by
7511 herself wherever we are, and be all animation when I take it and talk
7512 to her; to think as I think, be interested in all my possessions and
7513 pleasures, try to keep me longer at Mansfield, and feel when I go away
7514 that she shall be never happy again. I want nothing more."
7515
7516 "Moderation itself!" said Mary. "I can have no scruples now. Well, you
7517 will have opportunities enough of endeavouring to recommend yourself,
7518 for we are a great deal together."
7519
7520 And without attempting any farther remonstrance, she left Fanny to
7521 her fate, a fate which, had not Fanny's heart been guarded in a way
7522 unsuspected by Miss Crawford, might have been a little harder than she
7523 deserved; for although there doubtless are such unconquerable young
7524 ladies of eighteen (or one should not read about them) as are never
7525 to be persuaded into love against their judgment by all that talent,
7526 manner, attention, and flattery can do, I have no inclination to
7527 believe Fanny one of them, or to think that with so much tenderness
7528 of disposition, and so much taste as belonged to her, she could have
7529 escaped heart-whole from the courtship (though the courtship only of
7530 a fortnight) of such a man as Crawford, in spite of there being some
7531 previous ill opinion of him to be overcome, had not her affection been
7532 engaged elsewhere. With all the security which love of another and
7533 disesteem of him could give to the peace of mind he was attacking,
7534 his continued attentions--continued, but not obtrusive, and adapting
7535 themselves more and more to the gentleness and delicacy of her
7536 character--obliged her very soon to dislike him less than formerly. She
7537 had by no means forgotten the past, and she thought as ill of him as
7538 ever; but she felt his powers: he was entertaining; and his manners were
7539 so improved, so polite, so seriously and blamelessly polite, that it was
7540 impossible not to be civil to him in return.
7541
7542 A very few days were enough to effect this; and at the end of those few
7543 days, circumstances arose which had a tendency rather to forward his
7544 views of pleasing her, inasmuch as they gave her a degree of happiness
7545 which must dispose her to be pleased with everybody. William, her
7546 brother, the so long absent and dearly loved brother, was in England
7547 again. She had a letter from him herself, a few hurried happy lines,
7548 written as the ship came up Channel, and sent into Portsmouth with
7549 the first boat that left the Antwerp at anchor in Spithead; and when
7550 Crawford walked up with the newspaper in his hand, which he had hoped
7551 would bring the first tidings, he found her trembling with joy over this
7552 letter, and listening with a glowing, grateful countenance to the kind
7553 invitation which her uncle was most collectedly dictating in reply.
7554
7555 It was but the day before that Crawford had made himself thoroughly
7556 master of the subject, or had in fact become at all aware of her having
7557 such a brother, or his being in such a ship, but the interest then
7558 excited had been very properly lively, determining him on his return to
7559 town to apply for information as to the probable period of the Antwerp's
7560 return from the Mediterranean, etc.; and the good luck which attended
7561 his early examination of ship news the next morning seemed the reward of
7562 his ingenuity in finding out such a method of pleasing her, as well as
7563 of his dutiful attention to the Admiral, in having for many years
7564 taken in the paper esteemed to have the earliest naval intelligence. He
7565 proved, however, to be too late. All those fine first feelings, of which
7566 he had hoped to be the exciter, were already given. But his intention,
7567 the kindness of his intention, was thankfully acknowledged: quite
7568 thankfully and warmly, for she was elevated beyond the common timidity
7569 of her mind by the flow of her love for William.
7570
7571 This dear William would soon be amongst them. There could be no doubt
7572 of his obtaining leave of absence immediately, for he was still only a
7573 midshipman; and as his parents, from living on the spot, must already
7574 have seen him, and be seeing him perhaps daily, his direct holidays
7575 might with justice be instantly given to the sister, who had been his
7576 best correspondent through a period of seven years, and the uncle who
7577 had done most for his support and advancement; and accordingly the reply
7578 to her reply, fixing a very early day for his arrival, came as soon as
7579 possible; and scarcely ten days had passed since Fanny had been in
7580 the agitation of her first dinner-visit, when she found herself in an
7581 agitation of a higher nature, watching in the hall, in the lobby, on
7582 the stairs, for the first sound of the carriage which was to bring her a
7583 brother.
7584
7585 It came happily while she was thus waiting; and there being neither
7586 ceremony nor fearfulness to delay the moment of meeting, she was with
7587 him as he entered the house, and the first minutes of exquisite feeling
7588 had no interruption and no witnesses, unless the servants chiefly intent
7589 upon opening the proper doors could be called such. This was exactly
7590 what Sir Thomas and Edmund had been separately conniving at, as each
7591 proved to the other by the sympathetic alacrity with which they both
7592 advised Mrs. Norris's continuing where she was, instead of rushing out
7593 into the hall as soon as the noises of the arrival reached them.
7594
7595 William and Fanny soon shewed themselves; and Sir Thomas had the
7596 pleasure of receiving, in his protege, certainly a very different person
7597 from the one he had equipped seven years ago, but a young man of an
7598 open, pleasant countenance, and frank, unstudied, but feeling and
7599 respectful manners, and such as confirmed him his friend.
7600
7601 It was long before Fanny could recover from the agitating happiness of
7602 such an hour as was formed by the last thirty minutes of expectation,
7603 and the first of fruition; it was some time even before her happiness
7604 could be said to make her happy, before the disappointment inseparable
7605 from the alteration of person had vanished, and she could see in him the
7606 same William as before, and talk to him, as her heart had been yearning
7607 to do through many a past year. That time, however, did gradually come,
7608 forwarded by an affection on his side as warm as her own, and much less
7609 encumbered by refinement or self-distrust. She was the first object
7610 of his love, but it was a love which his stronger spirits, and bolder
7611 temper, made it as natural for him to express as to feel. On the
7612 morrow they were walking about together with true enjoyment, and every
7613 succeeding morrow renewed a _tete-a-tete_ which Sir Thomas could not but
7614 observe with complacency, even before Edmund had pointed it out to him.
7615
7616 Excepting the moments of peculiar delight, which any marked or
7617 unlooked-for instance of Edmund's consideration of her in the last few
7618 months had excited, Fanny had never known so much felicity in her life,
7619 as in this unchecked, equal, fearless intercourse with the brother and
7620 friend who was opening all his heart to her, telling her all his hopes
7621 and fears, plans, and solicitudes respecting that long thought of,
7622 dearly earned, and justly valued blessing of promotion; who could give
7623 her direct and minute information of the father and mother, brothers and
7624 sisters, of whom she very seldom heard; who was interested in all the
7625 comforts and all the little hardships of her home at Mansfield; ready to
7626 think of every member of that home as she directed, or differing only
7627 by a less scrupulous opinion, and more noisy abuse of their aunt Norris,
7628 and with whom (perhaps the dearest indulgence of the whole) all the evil
7629 and good of their earliest years could be gone over again, and every
7630 former united pain and pleasure retraced with the fondest recollection.
7631 An advantage this, a strengthener of love, in which even the conjugal
7632 tie is beneath the fraternal. Children of the same family, the same
7633 blood, with the same first associations and habits, have some means of
7634 enjoyment in their power, which no subsequent connexions can supply; and
7635 it must be by a long and unnatural estrangement, by a divorce which
7636 no subsequent connexion can justify, if such precious remains of the
7637 earliest attachments are ever entirely outlived. Too often, alas! it is
7638 so. Fraternal love, sometimes almost everything, is at others worse than
7639 nothing. But with William and Fanny Price it was still a sentiment
7640 in all its prime and freshness, wounded by no opposition of interest,
7641 cooled by no separate attachment, and feeling the influence of time and
7642 absence only in its increase.
7643
7644 An affection so amiable was advancing each in the opinion of all who had
7645 hearts to value anything good. Henry Crawford was as much struck with
7646 it as any. He honoured the warm-hearted, blunt fondness of the young
7647 sailor, which led him to say, with his hands stretched towards Fanny's
7648 head, "Do you know, I begin to like that queer fashion already, though
7649 when I first heard of such things being done in England, I could
7650 not believe it; and when Mrs. Brown, and the other women at the
7651 Commissioner's at Gibraltar, appeared in the same trim, I thought they
7652 were mad; but Fanny can reconcile me to anything"; and saw, with lively
7653 admiration, the glow of Fanny's cheek, the brightness of her eye, the
7654 deep interest, the absorbed attention, while her brother was describing
7655 any of the imminent hazards, or terrific scenes, which such a period at
7656 sea must supply.
7657
7658 It was a picture which Henry Crawford had moral taste enough to value.
7659 Fanny's attractions increased--increased twofold; for the sensibility
7660 which beautified her complexion and illumined her countenance was an
7661 attraction in itself. He was no longer in doubt of the capabilities of
7662 her heart. She had feeling, genuine feeling. It would be something to
7663 be loved by such a girl, to excite the first ardours of her young
7664 unsophisticated mind! She interested him more than he had foreseen. A
7665 fortnight was not enough. His stay became indefinite.
7666
7667 William was often called on by his uncle to be the talker. His recitals
7668 were amusing in themselves to Sir Thomas, but the chief object in
7669 seeking them was to understand the reciter, to know the young man by his
7670 histories; and he listened to his clear, simple, spirited details
7671 with full satisfaction, seeing in them the proof of good principles,
7672 professional knowledge, energy, courage, and cheerfulness, everything
7673 that could deserve or promise well. Young as he was, William had already
7674 seen a great deal. He had been in the Mediterranean; in the West Indies;
7675 in the Mediterranean again; had been often taken on shore by the favour
7676 of his captain, and in the course of seven years had known every variety
7677 of danger which sea and war together could offer. With such means in
7678 his power he had a right to be listened to; and though Mrs. Norris could
7679 fidget about the room, and disturb everybody in quest of two needlefuls
7680 of thread or a second-hand shirt button, in the midst of her nephew's
7681 account of a shipwreck or an engagement, everybody else was attentive;
7682 and even Lady Bertram could not hear of such horrors unmoved, or
7683 without sometimes lifting her eyes from her work to say, "Dear me! how
7684 disagreeable! I wonder anybody can ever go to sea."
7685
7686 To Henry Crawford they gave a different feeling. He longed to have been
7687 at sea, and seen and done and suffered as much. His heart was warmed,
7688 his fancy fired, and he felt the highest respect for a lad who, before
7689 he was twenty, had gone through such bodily hardships and given such
7690 proofs of mind. The glory of heroism, of usefulness, of exertion, of
7691 endurance, made his own habits of selfish indulgence appear in shameful
7692 contrast; and he wished he had been a William Price, distinguishing
7693 himself and working his way to fortune and consequence with so much
7694 self-respect and happy ardour, instead of what he was!
7695
7696 The wish was rather eager than lasting. He was roused from the reverie
7697 of retrospection and regret produced by it, by some inquiry from Edmund
7698 as to his plans for the next day's hunting; and he found it was as well
7699 to be a man of fortune at once with horses and grooms at his command.
7700 In one respect it was better, as it gave him the means of conferring a
7701 kindness where he wished to oblige. With spirits, courage, and curiosity
7702 up to anything, William expressed an inclination to hunt; and Crawford
7703 could mount him without the slightest inconvenience to himself, and with
7704 only some scruples to obviate in Sir Thomas, who knew better than his
7705 nephew the value of such a loan, and some alarms to reason away in
7706 Fanny. She feared for William; by no means convinced by all that he
7707 could relate of his own horsemanship in various countries, of the
7708 scrambling parties in which he had been engaged, the rough horses and
7709 mules he had ridden, or his many narrow escapes from dreadful falls,
7710 that he was at all equal to the management of a high-fed hunter in an
7711 English fox-chase; nor till he returned safe and well, without accident
7712 or discredit, could she be reconciled to the risk, or feel any of that
7713 obligation to Mr. Crawford for lending the horse which he had fully
7714 intended it should produce. When it was proved, however, to have done
7715 William no harm, she could allow it to be a kindness, and even reward
7716 the owner with a smile when the animal was one minute tendered to his
7717 use again; and the next, with the greatest cordiality, and in a manner
7718 not to be resisted, made over to his use entirely so long as he remained
7719 in Northamptonshire.
7720
7721 [End volume one of this edition.
7722 Printed by T. and A. Constable,
7723 Printers to Her Majesty at
7724 the Edinburgh University Press]
7725
7726
7727
7728 CHAPTER XXV
7729
7730 The intercourse of the two families was at this period more nearly
7731 restored to what it had been in the autumn, than any member of the
7732 old intimacy had thought ever likely to be again. The return of Henry
7733 Crawford, and the arrival of William Price, had much to do with it,
7734 but much was still owing to Sir Thomas's more than toleration of the
7735 neighbourly attempts at the Parsonage. His mind, now disengaged from
7736 the cares which had pressed on him at first, was at leisure to find
7737 the Grants and their young inmates really worth visiting; and though
7738 infinitely above scheming or contriving for any the most advantageous
7739 matrimonial establishment that could be among the apparent possibilities
7740 of any one most dear to him, and disdaining even as a littleness the
7741 being quick-sighted on such points, he could not avoid perceiving, in
7742 a grand and careless way, that Mr. Crawford was somewhat distinguishing
7743 his niece--nor perhaps refrain (though unconsciously) from giving a more
7744 willing assent to invitations on that account.
7745
7746 His readiness, however, in agreeing to dine at the Parsonage, when the
7747 general invitation was at last hazarded, after many debates and many
7748 doubts as to whether it were worth while, "because Sir Thomas seemed
7749 so ill inclined, and Lady Bertram was so indolent!" proceeded from
7750 good-breeding and goodwill alone, and had nothing to do with Mr.
7751 Crawford, but as being one in an agreeable group: for it was in the
7752 course of that very visit that he first began to think that any one in
7753 the habit of such idle observations _would_ _have_ _thought_ that Mr.
7754 Crawford was the admirer of Fanny Price.
7755
7756 The meeting was generally felt to be a pleasant one, being composed in a
7757 good proportion of those who would talk and those who would listen;
7758 and the dinner itself was elegant and plentiful, according to the usual
7759 style of the Grants, and too much according to the usual habits of
7760 all to raise any emotion except in Mrs. Norris, who could never behold
7761 either the wide table or the number of dishes on it with patience, and
7762 who did always contrive to experience some evil from the passing of the
7763 servants behind her chair, and to bring away some fresh conviction of
7764 its being impossible among so many dishes but that some must be cold.
7765
7766 In the evening it was found, according to the predetermination of Mrs.
7767 Grant and her sister, that after making up the whist-table there would
7768 remain sufficient for a round game, and everybody being as perfectly
7769 complying and without a choice as on such occasions they always are,
7770 speculation was decided on almost as soon as whist; and Lady Bertram
7771 soon found herself in the critical situation of being applied to for her
7772 own choice between the games, and being required either to draw a card
7773 for whist or not. She hesitated. Luckily Sir Thomas was at hand.
7774
7775 "What shall I do, Sir Thomas? Whist and speculation; which will amuse me
7776 most?"
7777
7778 Sir Thomas, after a moment's thought, recommended speculation. He was
7779 a whist player himself, and perhaps might feel that it would not much
7780 amuse him to have her for a partner.
7781
7782 "Very well," was her ladyship's contented answer; "then speculation, if
7783 you please, Mrs. Grant. I know nothing about it, but Fanny must teach
7784 me."
7785
7786 Here Fanny interposed, however, with anxious protestations of her own
7787 equal ignorance; she had never played the game nor seen it played in
7788 her life; and Lady Bertram felt a moment's indecision again; but upon
7789 everybody's assuring her that nothing could be so easy, that it was the
7790 easiest game on the cards, and Henry Crawford's stepping forward with a
7791 most earnest request to be allowed to sit between her ladyship and Miss
7792 Price, and teach them both, it was so settled; and Sir Thomas, Mrs.
7793 Norris, and Dr. and Mrs. Grant being seated at the table of prime
7794 intellectual state and dignity, the remaining six, under Miss Crawford's
7795 direction, were arranged round the other. It was a fine arrangement
7796 for Henry Crawford, who was close to Fanny, and with his hands full of
7797 business, having two persons' cards to manage as well as his own; for
7798 though it was impossible for Fanny not to feel herself mistress of the
7799 rules of the game in three minutes, he had yet to inspirit her play,
7800 sharpen her avarice, and harden her heart, which, especially in any
7801 competition with William, was a work of some difficulty; and as for Lady
7802 Bertram, he must continue in charge of all her fame and fortune through
7803 the whole evening; and if quick enough to keep her from looking at her
7804 cards when the deal began, must direct her in whatever was to be done
7805 with them to the end of it.
7806
7807 He was in high spirits, doing everything with happy ease, and preeminent
7808 in all the lively turns, quick resources, and playful impudence that
7809 could do honour to the game; and the round table was altogether a very
7810 comfortable contrast to the steady sobriety and orderly silence of the
7811 other.
7812
7813 Twice had Sir Thomas inquired into the enjoyment and success of his
7814 lady, but in vain; no pause was long enough for the time his measured
7815 manner needed; and very little of her state could be known till Mrs.
7816 Grant was able, at the end of the first rubber, to go to her and pay her
7817 compliments.
7818
7819 "I hope your ladyship is pleased with the game."
7820
7821 "Oh dear, yes! very entertaining indeed. A very odd game. I do not know
7822 what it is all about. I am never to see my cards; and Mr. Crawford does
7823 all the rest."
7824
7825 "Bertram," said Crawford, some time afterwards, taking the opportunity
7826 of a little languor in the game, "I have never told you what happened to
7827 me yesterday in my ride home." They had been hunting together, and were
7828 in the midst of a good run, and at some distance from Mansfield, when
7829 his horse being found to have flung a shoe, Henry Crawford had been
7830 obliged to give up, and make the best of his way back. "I told you I
7831 lost my way after passing that old farmhouse with the yew-trees, because
7832 I can never bear to ask; but I have not told you that, with my usual
7833 luck--for I never do wrong without gaining by it--I found myself in due
7834 time in the very place which I had a curiosity to see. I was suddenly,
7835 upon turning the corner of a steepish downy field, in the midst of
7836 a retired little village between gently rising hills; a small stream
7837 before me to be forded, a church standing on a sort of knoll to my
7838 right--which church was strikingly large and handsome for the place, and
7839 not a gentleman or half a gentleman's house to be seen excepting one--to
7840 be presumed the Parsonage--within a stone's throw of the said knoll and
7841 church. I found myself, in short, in Thornton Lacey."
7842
7843 "It sounds like it," said Edmund; "but which way did you turn after
7844 passing Sewell's farm?"
7845
7846 "I answer no such irrelevant and insidious questions; though were I to
7847 answer all that you could put in the course of an hour, you would never
7848 be able to prove that it was _not_ Thornton Lacey--for such it certainly
7849 was."
7850
7851 "You inquired, then?"
7852
7853 "No, I never inquire. But I _told_ a man mending a hedge that it was
7854 Thornton Lacey, and he agreed to it."
7855
7856 "You have a good memory. I had forgotten having ever told you half so
7857 much of the place."
7858
7859 Thornton Lacey was the name of his impending living, as Miss Crawford
7860 well knew; and her interest in a negotiation for William Price's knave
7861 increased.
7862
7863 "Well," continued Edmund, "and how did you like what you saw?"
7864
7865 "Very much indeed. You are a lucky fellow. There will be work for five
7866 summers at least before the place is liveable."
7867
7868 "No, no, not so bad as that. The farmyard must be moved, I grant you;
7869 but I am not aware of anything else. The house is by no means bad, and
7870 when the yard is removed, there may be a very tolerable approach to it."
7871
7872 "The farmyard must be cleared away entirely, and planted up to shut
7873 out the blacksmith's shop. The house must be turned to front the east
7874 instead of the north--the entrance and principal rooms, I mean, must be
7875 on that side, where the view is really very pretty; I am sure it may be
7876 done. And _there_ must be your approach, through what is at present the
7877 garden. You must make a new garden at what is now the back of the house;
7878 which will be giving it the best aspect in the world, sloping to the
7879 south-east. The ground seems precisely formed for it. I rode fifty yards
7880 up the lane, between the church and the house, in order to look about
7881 me; and saw how it might all be. Nothing can be easier. The meadows
7882 beyond what _will_ _be_ the garden, as well as what now _is_, sweeping
7883 round from the lane I stood in to the north-east, that is, to the
7884 principal road through the village, must be all laid together, of
7885 course; very pretty meadows they are, finely sprinkled with timber. They
7886 belong to the living, I suppose; if not, you must purchase them. Then
7887 the stream--something must be done with the stream; but I could not
7888 quite determine what. I had two or three ideas."
7889
7890 "And I have two or three ideas also," said Edmund, "and one of them is,
7891 that very little of your plan for Thornton Lacey will ever be put in
7892 practice. I must be satisfied with rather less ornament and beauty. I
7893 think the house and premises may be made comfortable, and given the air
7894 of a gentleman's residence, without any very heavy expense, and that
7895 must suffice me; and, I hope, may suffice all who care about me."
7896
7897 Miss Crawford, a little suspicious and resentful of a certain tone of
7898 voice, and a certain half-look attending the last expression of his
7899 hope, made a hasty finish of her dealings with William Price; and
7900 securing his knave at an exorbitant rate, exclaimed, "There, I will
7901 stake my last like a woman of spirit. No cold prudence for me. I am not
7902 born to sit still and do nothing. If I lose the game, it shall not be
7903 from not striving for it."
7904
7905 The game was hers, and only did not pay her for what she had given
7906 to secure it. Another deal proceeded, and Crawford began again about
7907 Thornton Lacey.
7908
7909 "My plan may not be the best possible: I had not many minutes to form
7910 it in; but you must do a good deal. The place deserves it, and you
7911 will find yourself not satisfied with much less than it is capable of.
7912 (Excuse me, your ladyship must not see your cards. There, let them lie
7913 just before you.) The place deserves it, Bertram. You talk of giving it
7914 the air of a gentleman's residence. _That_ will be done by the removal
7915 of the farmyard; for, independent of that terrible nuisance, I never saw
7916 a house of the kind which had in itself so much the air of a
7917 gentleman's residence, so much the look of a something above a mere
7918 parsonage-house--above the expenditure of a few hundreds a year. It is
7919 not a scrambling collection of low single rooms, with as many roofs
7920 as windows; it is not cramped into the vulgar compactness of a square
7921 farmhouse: it is a solid, roomy, mansion-like looking house, such as
7922 one might suppose a respectable old country family had lived in from
7923 generation to generation, through two centuries at least, and were now
7924 spending from two to three thousand a year in." Miss Crawford listened,
7925 and Edmund agreed to this. "The air of a gentleman's residence,
7926 therefore, you cannot but give it, if you do anything. But it is capable
7927 of much more. (Let me see, Mary; Lady Bertram bids a dozen for that
7928 queen; no, no, a dozen is more than it is worth. Lady Bertram does not
7929 bid a dozen. She will have nothing to say to it. Go on, go on.) By some
7930 such improvements as I have suggested (I do not really require you to
7931 proceed upon my plan, though, by the bye, I doubt anybody's striking out
7932 a better) you may give it a higher character. You may raise it into
7933 a _place_. From being the mere gentleman's residence, it becomes, by
7934 judicious improvement, the residence of a man of education, taste,
7935 modern manners, good connexions. All this may be stamped on it; and that
7936 house receive such an air as to make its owner be set down as the
7937 great landholder of the parish by every creature travelling the road;
7938 especially as there is no real squire's house to dispute the point--a
7939 circumstance, between ourselves, to enhance the value of such a
7940 situation in point of privilege and independence beyond all calculation.
7941 _You_ think with me, I hope" (turning with a softened voice to Fanny).
7942 "Have you ever seen the place?"
7943
7944 Fanny gave a quick negative, and tried to hide her interest in the
7945 subject by an eager attention to her brother, who was driving as hard a
7946 bargain, and imposing on her as much as he could; but Crawford pursued
7947 with "No, no, you must not part with the queen. You have bought her too
7948 dearly, and your brother does not offer half her value. No, no, sir,
7949 hands off, hands off. Your sister does not part with the queen. She is
7950 quite determined. The game will be yours," turning to her again; "it
7951 will certainly be yours."
7952
7953 "And Fanny had much rather it were William's," said Edmund, smiling at
7954 her. "Poor Fanny! not allowed to cheat herself as she wishes!"
7955
7956 "Mr. Bertram," said Miss Crawford, a few minutes afterwards, "you know
7957 Henry to be such a capital improver, that you cannot possibly engage in
7958 anything of the sort at Thornton Lacey without accepting his help. Only
7959 think how useful he was at Sotherton! Only think what grand things were
7960 produced there by our all going with him one hot day in August to drive
7961 about the grounds, and see his genius take fire. There we went, and
7962 there we came home again; and what was done there is not to be told!"
7963
7964 Fanny's eyes were turned on Crawford for a moment with an expression
7965 more than grave--even reproachful; but on catching his, were instantly
7966 withdrawn. With something of consciousness he shook his head at his
7967 sister, and laughingly replied, "I cannot say there was much done at
7968 Sotherton; but it was a hot day, and we were all walking after each
7969 other, and bewildered." As soon as a general buzz gave him shelter, he
7970 added, in a low voice, directed solely at Fanny, "I should be sorry to
7971 have my powers of _planning_ judged of by the day at Sotherton. I see
7972 things very differently now. Do not think of me as I appeared then."
7973
7974 Sotherton was a word to catch Mrs. Norris, and being just then in the
7975 happy leisure which followed securing the odd trick by Sir Thomas's
7976 capital play and her own against Dr. and Mrs. Grant's great hands,
7977 she called out, in high good-humour, "Sotherton! Yes, that is a place,
7978 indeed, and we had a charming day there. William, you are quite out of
7979 luck; but the next time you come, I hope dear Mr. and Mrs. Rushworth
7980 will be at home, and I am sure I can answer for your being kindly
7981 received by both. Your cousins are not of a sort to forget their
7982 relations, and Mr. Rushworth is a most amiable man. They are at Brighton
7983 now, you know; in one of the best houses there, as Mr. Rushworth's fine
7984 fortune gives them a right to be. I do not exactly know the distance,
7985 but when you get back to Portsmouth, if it is not very far off, you
7986 ought to go over and pay your respects to them; and I could send a
7987 little parcel by you that I want to get conveyed to your cousins."
7988
7989 "I should be very happy, aunt; but Brighton is almost by Beachey Head;
7990 and if I could get so far, I could not expect to be welcome in such a
7991 smart place as that--poor scrubby midshipman as I am."
7992
7993 Mrs. Norris was beginning an eager assurance of the affability he might
7994 depend on, when she was stopped by Sir Thomas's saying with authority,
7995 "I do not advise your going to Brighton, William, as I trust you may
7996 soon have more convenient opportunities of meeting; but my daughters
7997 would be happy to see their cousins anywhere; and you will find Mr.
7998 Rushworth most sincerely disposed to regard all the connexions of our
7999 family as his own."
8000
8001 "I would rather find him private secretary to the First Lord than
8002 anything else," was William's only answer, in an undervoice, not meant
8003 to reach far, and the subject dropped.
8004
8005 As yet Sir Thomas had seen nothing to remark in Mr. Crawford's
8006 behaviour; but when the whist-table broke up at the end of the second
8007 rubber, and leaving Dr. Grant and Mrs. Norris to dispute over their last
8008 play, he became a looker-on at the other, he found his niece the
8009 object of attentions, or rather of professions, of a somewhat pointed
8010 character.
8011
8012 Henry Crawford was in the first glow of another scheme about Thornton
8013 Lacey; and not being able to catch Edmund's ear, was detailing it to his
8014 fair neighbour with a look of considerable earnestness. His scheme was
8015 to rent the house himself the following winter, that he might have a
8016 home of his own in that neighbourhood; and it was not merely for the use
8017 of it in the hunting-season (as he was then telling her), though _that_
8018 consideration had certainly some weight, feeling as he did that, in
8019 spite of all Dr. Grant's very great kindness, it was impossible for him
8020 and his horses to be accommodated where they now were without material
8021 inconvenience; but his attachment to that neighbourhood did not depend
8022 upon one amusement or one season of the year: he had set his heart upon
8023 having a something there that he could come to at any time, a little
8024 homestall at his command, where all the holidays of his year might be
8025 spent, and he might find himself continuing, improving, and _perfecting_
8026 that friendship and intimacy with the Mansfield Park family which was
8027 increasing in value to him every day. Sir Thomas heard and was not
8028 offended. There was no want of respect in the young man's address;
8029 and Fanny's reception of it was so proper and modest, so calm and
8030 uninviting, that he had nothing to censure in her. She said little,
8031 assented only here and there, and betrayed no inclination either of
8032 appropriating any part of the compliment to herself, or of strengthening
8033 his views in favour of Northamptonshire. Finding by whom he was
8034 observed, Henry Crawford addressed himself on the same subject to Sir
8035 Thomas, in a more everyday tone, but still with feeling.
8036
8037 "I want to be your neighbour, Sir Thomas, as you have, perhaps, heard me
8038 telling Miss Price. May I hope for your acquiescence, and for your not
8039 influencing your son against such a tenant?"
8040
8041 Sir Thomas, politely bowing, replied, "It is the only way, sir, in which
8042 I could _not_ wish you established as a permanent neighbour; but I hope,
8043 and believe, that Edmund will occupy his own house at Thornton Lacey.
8044 Edmund, am I saying too much?"
8045
8046 Edmund, on this appeal, had first to hear what was going on; but, on
8047 understanding the question, was at no loss for an answer.
8048
8049 "Certainly, sir, I have no idea but of residence. But, Crawford, though
8050 I refuse you as a tenant, come to me as a friend. Consider the house as
8051 half your own every winter, and we will add to the stables on your own
8052 improved plan, and with all the improvements of your improved plan that
8053 may occur to you this spring."
8054
8055 "We shall be the losers," continued Sir Thomas. "His going, though only
8056 eight miles, will be an unwelcome contraction of our family circle; but
8057 I should have been deeply mortified if any son of mine could reconcile
8058 himself to doing less. It is perfectly natural that you should not have
8059 thought much on the subject, Mr. Crawford. But a parish has wants and
8060 claims which can be known only by a clergyman constantly resident, and
8061 which no proxy can be capable of satisfying to the same extent. Edmund
8062 might, in the common phrase, do the duty of Thornton, that is, he might
8063 read prayers and preach, without giving up Mansfield Park: he might ride
8064 over every Sunday, to a house nominally inhabited, and go through divine
8065 service; he might be the clergyman of Thornton Lacey every seventh day,
8066 for three or four hours, if that would content him. But it will not.
8067 He knows that human nature needs more lessons than a weekly sermon can
8068 convey; and that if he does not live among his parishioners, and prove
8069 himself, by constant attention, their well-wisher and friend, he does
8070 very little either for their good or his own."
8071
8072 Mr. Crawford bowed his acquiescence.
8073
8074 "I repeat again," added Sir Thomas, "that Thornton Lacey is the only
8075 house in the neighbourhood in which I should _not_ be happy to wait on
8076 Mr. Crawford as occupier."
8077
8078 Mr. Crawford bowed his thanks.
8079
8080 "Sir Thomas," said Edmund, "undoubtedly understands the duty of a parish
8081 priest. We must hope his son may prove that _he_ knows it too."
8082
8083 Whatever effect Sir Thomas's little harangue might really produce on Mr.
8084 Crawford, it raised some awkward sensations in two of the others, two
8085 of his most attentive listeners--Miss Crawford and Fanny. One of
8086 whom, having never before understood that Thornton was so soon and so
8087 completely to be his home, was pondering with downcast eyes on what it
8088 would be _not_ to see Edmund every day; and the other, startled from the
8089 agreeable fancies she had been previously indulging on the strength of
8090 her brother's description, no longer able, in the picture she had
8091 been forming of a future Thornton, to shut out the church, sink the
8092 clergyman, and see only the respectable, elegant, modernised, and
8093 occasional residence of a man of independent fortune, was considering
8094 Sir Thomas, with decided ill-will, as the destroyer of all this, and
8095 suffering the more from that involuntary forbearance which his character
8096 and manner commanded, and from not daring to relieve herself by a single
8097 attempt at throwing ridicule on his cause.
8098
8099 All the agreeable of _her_ speculation was over for that hour. It was
8100 time to have done with cards, if sermons prevailed; and she was glad to
8101 find it necessary to come to a conclusion, and be able to refresh her
8102 spirits by a change of place and neighbour.
8103
8104 The chief of the party were now collected irregularly round the
8105 fire, and waiting the final break-up. William and Fanny were the most
8106 detached. They remained together at the otherwise deserted card-table,
8107 talking very comfortably, and not thinking of the rest, till some of the
8108 rest began to think of them. Henry Crawford's chair was the first to be
8109 given a direction towards them, and he sat silently observing them for a
8110 few minutes; himself, in the meanwhile, observed by Sir Thomas, who was
8111 standing in chat with Dr. Grant.
8112
8113 "This is the assembly night," said William. "If I were at Portsmouth I
8114 should be at it, perhaps."
8115
8116 "But you do not wish yourself at Portsmouth, William?"
8117
8118 "No, Fanny, that I do not. I shall have enough of Portsmouth and of
8119 dancing too, when I cannot have you. And I do not know that there would
8120 be any good in going to the assembly, for I might not get a partner.
8121 The Portsmouth girls turn up their noses at anybody who has not a
8122 commission. One might as well be nothing as a midshipman. One _is_
8123 nothing, indeed. You remember the Gregorys; they are grown up amazing
8124 fine girls, but they will hardly speak to _me_, because Lucy is courted
8125 by a lieutenant."
8126
8127 "Oh! shame, shame! But never mind it, William" (her own cheeks in a
8128 glow of indignation as she spoke). "It is not worth minding. It is no
8129 reflection on _you_; it is no more than what the greatest admirals have
8130 all experienced, more or less, in their time. You must think of that,
8131 you must try to make up your mind to it as one of the hardships which
8132 fall to every sailor's share, like bad weather and hard living, only
8133 with this advantage, that there will be an end to it, that there will
8134 come a time when you will have nothing of that sort to endure. When you
8135 are a lieutenant! only think, William, when you are a lieutenant, how
8136 little you will care for any nonsense of this kind."
8137
8138 "I begin to think I shall never be a lieutenant, Fanny. Everybody gets
8139 made but me."
8140
8141 "Oh! my dear William, do not talk so; do not be so desponding. My uncle
8142 says nothing, but I am sure he will do everything in his power to get
8143 you made. He knows, as well as you do, of what consequence it is."
8144
8145 She was checked by the sight of her uncle much nearer to them than she
8146 had any suspicion of, and each found it necessary to talk of something
8147 else.
8148
8149 "Are you fond of dancing, Fanny?"
8150
8151 "Yes, very; only I am soon tired."
8152
8153 "I should like to go to a ball with you and see you dance. Have you
8154 never any balls at Northampton? I should like to see you dance, and I'd
8155 dance with you if you _would_, for nobody would know who I was here,
8156 and I should like to be your partner once more. We used to jump about
8157 together many a time, did not we? when the hand-organ was in the street?
8158 I am a pretty good dancer in my way, but I dare say you are a better."
8159 And turning to his uncle, who was now close to them, "Is not Fanny a
8160 very good dancer, sir?"
8161
8162 Fanny, in dismay at such an unprecedented question, did not know which
8163 way to look, or how to be prepared for the answer. Some very grave
8164 reproof, or at least the coldest expression of indifference, must be
8165 coming to distress her brother, and sink her to the ground. But, on the
8166 contrary, it was no worse than, "I am sorry to say that I am unable
8167 to answer your question. I have never seen Fanny dance since she was a
8168 little girl; but I trust we shall both think she acquits herself like
8169 a gentlewoman when we do see her, which, perhaps, we may have an
8170 opportunity of doing ere long."
8171
8172 "I have had the pleasure of seeing your sister dance, Mr. Price,"
8173 said Henry Crawford, leaning forward, "and will engage to answer every
8174 inquiry which you can make on the subject, to your entire satisfaction.
8175 But I believe" (seeing Fanny looked distressed) "it must be at some
8176 other time. There is _one_ person in company who does not like to have
8177 Miss Price spoken of."
8178
8179 True enough, he had once seen Fanny dance; and it was equally true
8180 that he would now have answered for her gliding about with quiet, light
8181 elegance, and in admirable time; but, in fact, he could not for the life
8182 of him recall what her dancing had been, and rather took it for granted
8183 that she had been present than remembered anything about her.
8184
8185 He passed, however, for an admirer of her dancing; and Sir Thomas, by no
8186 means displeased, prolonged the conversation on dancing in general, and
8187 was so well engaged in describing the balls of Antigua, and listening to
8188 what his nephew could relate of the different modes of dancing which
8189 had fallen within his observation, that he had not heard his carriage
8190 announced, and was first called to the knowledge of it by the bustle of
8191 Mrs. Norris.
8192
8193 "Come, Fanny, Fanny, what are you about? We are going. Do not you see
8194 your aunt is going? Quick, quick! I cannot bear to keep good old Wilcox
8195 waiting. You should always remember the coachman and horses. My dear Sir
8196 Thomas, we have settled it that the carriage should come back for you,
8197 and Edmund and William."
8198
8199 Sir Thomas could not dissent, as it had been his own arrangement,
8200 previously communicated to his wife and sister; but _that_ seemed
8201 forgotten by Mrs. Norris, who must fancy that she settled it all
8202 herself.
8203
8204 Fanny's last feeling in the visit was disappointment: for the shawl
8205 which Edmund was quietly taking from the servant to bring and put round
8206 her shoulders was seized by Mr. Crawford's quicker hand, and she was
8207 obliged to be indebted to his more prominent attention.
8208
8209
8210
8211 CHAPTER XXVI
8212
8213 William's desire of seeing Fanny dance made more than a momentary
8214 impression on his uncle. The hope of an opportunity, which Sir Thomas
8215 had then given, was not given to be thought of no more. He remained
8216 steadily inclined to gratify so amiable a feeling; to gratify anybody
8217 else who might wish to see Fanny dance, and to give pleasure to the
8218 young people in general; and having thought the matter over, and taken
8219 his resolution in quiet independence, the result of it appeared the
8220 next morning at breakfast, when, after recalling and commending what
8221 his nephew had said, he added, "I do not like, William, that you
8222 should leave Northamptonshire without this indulgence. It would give me
8223 pleasure to see you both dance. You spoke of the balls at Northampton.
8224 Your cousins have occasionally attended them; but they would not
8225 altogether suit us now. The fatigue would be too much for your aunt. I
8226 believe we must not think of a Northampton ball. A dance at home would
8227 be more eligible; and if--"
8228
8229 "Ah, my dear Sir Thomas!" interrupted Mrs. Norris, "I knew what was
8230 coming. I knew what you were going to say. If dear Julia were at home,
8231 or dearest Mrs. Rushworth at Sotherton, to afford a reason, an occasion
8232 for such a thing, you would be tempted to give the young people a dance
8233 at Mansfield. I know you would. If _they_ were at home to grace the
8234 ball, a ball you would have this very Christmas. Thank your uncle,
8235 William, thank your uncle!"
8236
8237 "My daughters," replied Sir Thomas, gravely interposing, "have their
8238 pleasures at Brighton, and I hope are very happy; but the dance which I
8239 think of giving at Mansfield will be for their cousins. Could we be all
8240 assembled, our satisfaction would undoubtedly be more complete, but the
8241 absence of some is not to debar the others of amusement."
8242
8243 Mrs. Norris had not another word to say. She saw decision in his looks,
8244 and her surprise and vexation required some minutes' silence to be
8245 settled into composure. A ball at such a time! His daughters absent and
8246 herself not consulted! There was comfort, however, soon at hand. _She_
8247 must be the doer of everything: Lady Bertram would of course be spared
8248 all thought and exertion, and it would all fall upon _her_. She should
8249 have to do the honours of the evening; and this reflection quickly
8250 restored so much of her good-humour as enabled her to join in with the
8251 others, before their happiness and thanks were all expressed.
8252
8253 Edmund, William, and Fanny did, in their different ways, look and speak
8254 as much grateful pleasure in the promised ball as Sir Thomas could
8255 desire. Edmund's feelings were for the other two. His father had never
8256 conferred a favour or shewn a kindness more to his satisfaction.
8257
8258 Lady Bertram was perfectly quiescent and contented, and had no
8259 objections to make. Sir Thomas engaged for its giving her very little
8260 trouble; and she assured him "that she was not at all afraid of the
8261 trouble; indeed, she could not imagine there would be any."
8262
8263 Mrs. Norris was ready with her suggestions as to the rooms he would
8264 think fittest to be used, but found it all prearranged; and when she
8265 would have conjectured and hinted about the day, it appeared that the
8266 day was settled too. Sir Thomas had been amusing himself with shaping a
8267 very complete outline of the business; and as soon as she would listen
8268 quietly, could read his list of the families to be invited, from whom
8269 he calculated, with all necessary allowance for the shortness of the
8270 notice, to collect young people enough to form twelve or fourteen
8271 couple: and could detail the considerations which had induced him to
8272 fix on the 22nd as the most eligible day. William was required to be at
8273 Portsmouth on the 24th; the 22nd would therefore be the last day of his
8274 visit; but where the days were so few it would be unwise to fix on any
8275 earlier. Mrs. Norris was obliged to be satisfied with thinking just the
8276 same, and with having been on the point of proposing the 22nd herself,
8277 as by far the best day for the purpose.
8278
8279 The ball was now a settled thing, and before the evening a proclaimed
8280 thing to all whom it concerned. Invitations were sent with despatch,
8281 and many a young lady went to bed that night with her head full of happy
8282 cares as well as Fanny. To her the cares were sometimes almost beyond
8283 the happiness; for young and inexperienced, with small means of choice
8284 and no confidence in her own taste, the "how she should be dressed" was
8285 a point of painful solicitude; and the almost solitary ornament in her
8286 possession, a very pretty amber cross which William had brought her from
8287 Sicily, was the greatest distress of all, for she had nothing but a bit
8288 of ribbon to fasten it to; and though she had worn it in that manner
8289 once, would it be allowable at such a time in the midst of all the rich
8290 ornaments which she supposed all the other young ladies would appear in?
8291 And yet not to wear it! William had wanted to buy her a gold chain too,
8292 but the purchase had been beyond his means, and therefore not to wear
8293 the cross might be mortifying him. These were anxious considerations;
8294 enough to sober her spirits even under the prospect of a ball given
8295 principally for her gratification.
8296
8297 The preparations meanwhile went on, and Lady Bertram continued to sit on
8298 her sofa without any inconvenience from them. She had some extra visits
8299 from the housekeeper, and her maid was rather hurried in making up a new
8300 dress for her: Sir Thomas gave orders, and Mrs. Norris ran about; but
8301 all this gave _her_ no trouble, and as she had foreseen, "there was, in
8302 fact, no trouble in the business."
8303
8304 Edmund was at this time particularly full of cares: his mind being
8305 deeply occupied in the consideration of two important events now
8306 at hand, which were to fix his fate in life--ordination and
8307 matrimony--events of such a serious character as to make the ball, which
8308 would be very quickly followed by one of them, appear of less moment in
8309 his eyes than in those of any other person in the house. On the 23rd
8310 he was going to a friend near Peterborough, in the same situation
8311 as himself, and they were to receive ordination in the course of the
8312 Christmas week. Half his destiny would then be determined, but the
8313 other half might not be so very smoothly wooed. His duties would be
8314 established, but the wife who was to share, and animate, and reward
8315 those duties, might yet be unattainable. He knew his own mind, but he
8316 was not always perfectly assured of knowing Miss Crawford's. There were
8317 points on which they did not quite agree; there were moments in which
8318 she did not seem propitious; and though trusting altogether to her
8319 affection, so far as to be resolved--almost resolved--on bringing it to
8320 a decision within a very short time, as soon as the variety of business
8321 before him were arranged, and he knew what he had to offer her, he
8322 had many anxious feelings, many doubting hours as to the result. His
8323 conviction of her regard for him was sometimes very strong; he could
8324 look back on a long course of encouragement, and she was as perfect in
8325 disinterested attachment as in everything else. But at other times
8326 doubt and alarm intermingled with his hopes; and when he thought of
8327 her acknowledged disinclination for privacy and retirement, her decided
8328 preference of a London life, what could he expect but a determined
8329 rejection? unless it were an acceptance even more to be deprecated,
8330 demanding such sacrifices of situation and employment on his side as
8331 conscience must forbid.
8332
8333 The issue of all depended on one question. Did she love him well enough
8334 to forego what had used to be essential points? Did she love him well
8335 enough to make them no longer essential? And this question, which he was
8336 continually repeating to himself, though oftenest answered with a "Yes,"
8337 had sometimes its "No."
8338
8339 Miss Crawford was soon to leave Mansfield, and on this circumstance the
8340 "no" and the "yes" had been very recently in alternation. He had seen
8341 her eyes sparkle as she spoke of the dear friend's letter, which claimed
8342 a long visit from her in London, and of the kindness of Henry, in
8343 engaging to remain where he was till January, that he might convey her
8344 thither; he had heard her speak of the pleasure of such a journey with
8345 an animation which had "no" in every tone. But this had occurred on the
8346 first day of its being settled, within the first hour of the burst of
8347 such enjoyment, when nothing but the friends she was to visit was before
8348 her. He had since heard her express herself differently, with other
8349 feelings, more chequered feelings: he had heard her tell Mrs. Grant that
8350 she should leave her with regret; that she began to believe neither the
8351 friends nor the pleasures she was going to were worth those she left
8352 behind; and that though she felt she must go, and knew she should enjoy
8353 herself when once away, she was already looking forward to being at
8354 Mansfield again. Was there not a "yes" in all this?
8355
8356 With such matters to ponder over, and arrange, and re-arrange, Edmund
8357 could not, on his own account, think very much of the evening which the
8358 rest of the family were looking forward to with a more equal degree of
8359 strong interest. Independent of his two cousins' enjoyment in it, the
8360 evening was to him of no higher value than any other appointed meeting
8361 of the two families might be. In every meeting there was a hope of
8362 receiving farther confirmation of Miss Crawford's attachment; but the
8363 whirl of a ballroom, perhaps, was not particularly favourable to the
8364 excitement or expression of serious feelings. To engage her early for
8365 the two first dances was all the command of individual happiness which
8366 he felt in his power, and the only preparation for the ball which he
8367 could enter into, in spite of all that was passing around him on the
8368 subject, from morning till night.
8369
8370 Thursday was the day of the ball; and on Wednesday morning Fanny, still
8371 unable to satisfy herself as to what she ought to wear, determined to
8372 seek the counsel of the more enlightened, and apply to Mrs. Grant and
8373 her sister, whose acknowledged taste would certainly bear her blameless;
8374 and as Edmund and William were gone to Northampton, and she had reason
8375 to think Mr. Crawford likewise out, she walked down to the Parsonage
8376 without much fear of wanting an opportunity for private discussion;
8377 and the privacy of such a discussion was a most important part of it to
8378 Fanny, being more than half-ashamed of her own solicitude.
8379
8380 She met Miss Crawford within a few yards of the Parsonage, just setting
8381 out to call on her, and as it seemed to her that her friend, though
8382 obliged to insist on turning back, was unwilling to lose her walk, she
8383 explained her business at once, and observed, that if she would be so
8384 kind as to give her opinion, it might be all talked over as well without
8385 doors as within. Miss Crawford appeared gratified by the application,
8386 and after a moment's thought, urged Fanny's returning with her in a much
8387 more cordial manner than before, and proposed their going up into her
8388 room, where they might have a comfortable coze, without disturbing Dr.
8389 and Mrs. Grant, who were together in the drawing-room. It was just the
8390 plan to suit Fanny; and with a great deal of gratitude on her side for
8391 such ready and kind attention, they proceeded indoors, and upstairs, and
8392 were soon deep in the interesting subject. Miss Crawford, pleased with
8393 the appeal, gave her all her best judgment and taste, made everything
8394 easy by her suggestions, and tried to make everything agreeable by her
8395 encouragement. The dress being settled in all its grander parts--"But
8396 what shall you have by way of necklace?" said Miss Crawford. "Shall not
8397 you wear your brother's cross?" And as she spoke she was undoing a
8398 small parcel, which Fanny had observed in her hand when they met. Fanny
8399 acknowledged her wishes and doubts on this point: she did not know
8400 how either to wear the cross, or to refrain from wearing it. She was
8401 answered by having a small trinket-box placed before her, and being
8402 requested to chuse from among several gold chains and necklaces. Such
8403 had been the parcel with which Miss Crawford was provided, and such the
8404 object of her intended visit: and in the kindest manner she now urged
8405 Fanny's taking one for the cross and to keep for her sake, saying
8406 everything she could think of to obviate the scruples which were making
8407 Fanny start back at first with a look of horror at the proposal.
8408
8409 "You see what a collection I have," said she; "more by half than I ever
8410 use or think of. I do not offer them as new. I offer nothing but an old
8411 necklace. You must forgive the liberty, and oblige me."
8412
8413 Fanny still resisted, and from her heart. The gift was too valuable. But
8414 Miss Crawford persevered, and argued the case with so much affectionate
8415 earnestness through all the heads of William and the cross, and the
8416 ball, and herself, as to be finally successful. Fanny found
8417 herself obliged to yield, that she might not be accused of pride
8418 or indifference, or some other littleness; and having with modest
8419 reluctance given her consent, proceeded to make the selection. She
8420 looked and looked, longing to know which might be least valuable; and
8421 was determined in her choice at last, by fancying there was one necklace
8422 more frequently placed before her eyes than the rest. It was of gold,
8423 prettily worked; and though Fanny would have preferred a longer and a
8424 plainer chain as more adapted for her purpose, she hoped, in fixing
8425 on this, to be chusing what Miss Crawford least wished to keep. Miss
8426 Crawford smiled her perfect approbation; and hastened to complete the
8427 gift by putting the necklace round her, and making her see how well
8428 it looked. Fanny had not a word to say against its becomingness, and,
8429 excepting what remained of her scruples, was exceedingly pleased with
8430 an acquisition so very apropos. She would rather, perhaps, have been
8431 obliged to some other person. But this was an unworthy feeling. Miss
8432 Crawford had anticipated her wants with a kindness which proved her a
8433 real friend. "When I wear this necklace I shall always think of you,"
8434 said she, "and feel how very kind you were."
8435
8436 "You must think of somebody else too, when you wear that necklace,"
8437 replied Miss Crawford. "You must think of Henry, for it was his choice
8438 in the first place. He gave it to me, and with the necklace I make over
8439 to you all the duty of remembering the original giver. It is to be
8440 a family remembrancer. The sister is not to be in your mind without
8441 bringing the brother too."
8442
8443 Fanny, in great astonishment and confusion, would have returned the
8444 present instantly. To take what had been the gift of another person,
8445 of a brother too, impossible! it must not be! and with an eagerness
8446 and embarrassment quite diverting to her companion, she laid down the
8447 necklace again on its cotton, and seemed resolved either to take another
8448 or none at all. Miss Crawford thought she had never seen a prettier
8449 consciousness. "My dear child," said she, laughing, "what are you afraid
8450 of? Do you think Henry will claim the necklace as mine, and fancy you
8451 did not come honestly by it? or are you imagining he would be too much
8452 flattered by seeing round your lovely throat an ornament which his money
8453 purchased three years ago, before he knew there was such a throat in the
8454 world? or perhaps"--looking archly--"you suspect a confederacy between
8455 us, and that what I am now doing is with his knowledge and at his
8456 desire?"
8457
8458 With the deepest blushes Fanny protested against such a thought.
8459
8460 "Well, then," replied Miss Crawford more seriously, but without at all
8461 believing her, "to convince me that you suspect no trick, and are as
8462 unsuspicious of compliment as I have always found you, take the necklace
8463 and say no more about it. Its being a gift of my brother's need not make
8464 the smallest difference in your accepting it, as I assure you it makes
8465 none in my willingness to part with it. He is always giving me something
8466 or other. I have such innumerable presents from him that it is quite
8467 impossible for me to value or for him to remember half. And as for this
8468 necklace, I do not suppose I have worn it six times: it is very pretty,
8469 but I never think of it; and though you would be most heartily welcome
8470 to any other in my trinket-box, you have happened to fix on the very
8471 one which, if I have a choice, I would rather part with and see in your
8472 possession than any other. Say no more against it, I entreat you. Such a
8473 trifle is not worth half so many words."
8474
8475 Fanny dared not make any farther opposition; and with renewed but less
8476 happy thanks accepted the necklace again, for there was an expression in
8477 Miss Crawford's eyes which she could not be satisfied with.
8478
8479 It was impossible for her to be insensible of Mr. Crawford's change of
8480 manners. She had long seen it. He evidently tried to please her: he was
8481 gallant, he was attentive, he was something like what he had been to her
8482 cousins: he wanted, she supposed, to cheat her of her tranquillity as
8483 he had cheated them; and whether he might not have some concern in this
8484 necklace--she could not be convinced that he had not, for Miss Crawford,
8485 complaisant as a sister, was careless as a woman and a friend.
8486
8487 Reflecting and doubting, and feeling that the possession of what she had
8488 so much wished for did not bring much satisfaction, she now walked
8489 home again, with a change rather than a diminution of cares since her
8490 treading that path before.
8491
8492
8493
8494 CHAPTER XXVII
8495
8496 On reaching home Fanny went immediately upstairs to deposit this
8497 unexpected acquisition, this doubtful good of a necklace, in some
8498 favourite box in the East room, which held all her smaller treasures;
8499 but on opening the door, what was her surprise to find her cousin Edmund
8500 there writing at the table! Such a sight having never occurred before,
8501 was almost as wonderful as it was welcome.
8502
8503 "Fanny," said he directly, leaving his seat and his pen, and meeting her
8504 with something in his hand, "I beg your pardon for being here. I came
8505 to look for you, and after waiting a little while in hope of your coming
8506 in, was making use of your inkstand to explain my errand. You will find
8507 the beginning of a note to yourself; but I can now speak my business,
8508 which is merely to beg your acceptance of this little trifle--a chain
8509 for William's cross. You ought to have had it a week ago, but there has
8510 been a delay from my brother's not being in town by several days so soon
8511 as I expected; and I have only just now received it at Northampton. I
8512 hope you will like the chain itself, Fanny. I endeavoured to consult the
8513 simplicity of your taste; but, at any rate, I know you will be kind to
8514 my intentions, and consider it, as it really is, a token of the love of
8515 one of your oldest friends."
8516
8517 And so saying, he was hurrying away, before Fanny, overpowered by a
8518 thousand feelings of pain and pleasure, could attempt to speak; but
8519 quickened by one sovereign wish, she then called out, "Oh! cousin, stop
8520 a moment, pray stop!"
8521
8522 He turned back.
8523
8524 "I cannot attempt to thank you," she continued, in a very agitated
8525 manner; "thanks are out of the question. I feel much more than I can
8526 possibly express. Your goodness in thinking of me in such a way is
8527 beyond--"
8528
8529 "If that is all you have to say, Fanny" smiling and turning away again.
8530
8531 "No, no, it is not. I want to consult you."
8532
8533 Almost unconsciously she had now undone the parcel he had just put
8534 into her hand, and seeing before her, in all the niceness of jewellers'
8535 packing, a plain gold chain, perfectly simple and neat, she could not
8536 help bursting forth again, "Oh, this is beautiful indeed! This is the
8537 very thing, precisely what I wished for! This is the only ornament I
8538 have ever had a desire to possess. It will exactly suit my cross. They
8539 must and shall be worn together. It comes, too, in such an acceptable
8540 moment. Oh, cousin, you do not know how acceptable it is."
8541
8542 "My dear Fanny, you feel these things a great deal too much. I am most
8543 happy that you like the chain, and that it should be here in time for
8544 to-morrow; but your thanks are far beyond the occasion. Believe me, I
8545 have no pleasure in the world superior to that of contributing to yours.
8546 No, I can safely say, I have no pleasure so complete, so unalloyed. It
8547 is without a drawback."
8548
8549 Upon such expressions of affection Fanny could have lived an hour
8550 without saying another word; but Edmund, after waiting a moment, obliged
8551 her to bring down her mind from its heavenly flight by saying, "But what
8552 is it that you want to consult me about?"
8553
8554 It was about the necklace, which she was now most earnestly longing to
8555 return, and hoped to obtain his approbation of her doing. She gave the
8556 history of her recent visit, and now her raptures might well be over;
8557 for Edmund was so struck with the circumstance, so delighted with what
8558 Miss Crawford had done, so gratified by such a coincidence of conduct
8559 between them, that Fanny could not but admit the superior power of one
8560 pleasure over his own mind, though it might have its drawback. It was
8561 some time before she could get his attention to her plan, or any answer
8562 to her demand of his opinion: he was in a reverie of fond reflection,
8563 uttering only now and then a few half-sentences of praise; but when
8564 he did awake and understand, he was very decided in opposing what she
8565 wished.
8566
8567 "Return the necklace! No, my dear Fanny, upon no account. It would be
8568 mortifying her severely. There can hardly be a more unpleasant sensation
8569 than the having anything returned on our hands which we have given with
8570 a reasonable hope of its contributing to the comfort of a friend. Why
8571 should she lose a pleasure which she has shewn herself so deserving of?"
8572
8573 "If it had been given to me in the first instance," said Fanny, "I
8574 should not have thought of returning it; but being her brother's
8575 present, is not it fair to suppose that she would rather not part with
8576 it, when it is not wanted?"
8577
8578 "She must not suppose it not wanted, not acceptable, at least: and its
8579 having been originally her brother's gift makes no difference; for as
8580 she was not prevented from offering, nor you from taking it on that
8581 account, it ought not to prevent you from keeping it. No doubt it is
8582 handsomer than mine, and fitter for a ballroom."
8583
8584 "No, it is not handsomer, not at all handsomer in its way, and, for
8585 my purpose, not half so fit. The chain will agree with William's cross
8586 beyond all comparison better than the necklace."
8587
8588 "For one night, Fanny, for only one night, if it _be_ a sacrifice; I am
8589 sure you will, upon consideration, make that sacrifice rather than give
8590 pain to one who has been so studious of your comfort. Miss Crawford's
8591 attentions to you have been--not more than you were justly entitled
8592 to--I am the last person to think that _could_ _be_, but they have been
8593 invariable; and to be returning them with what must have something the
8594 _air_ of ingratitude, though I know it could never have the _meaning_,
8595 is not in your nature, I am sure. Wear the necklace, as you are engaged
8596 to do, to-morrow evening, and let the chain, which was not ordered with
8597 any reference to the ball, be kept for commoner occasions. This is my
8598 advice. I would not have the shadow of a coolness between the two whose
8599 intimacy I have been observing with the greatest pleasure, and in whose
8600 characters there is so much general resemblance in true generosity
8601 and natural delicacy as to make the few slight differences, resulting
8602 principally from situation, no reasonable hindrance to a perfect
8603 friendship. I would not have the shadow of a coolness arise," he
8604 repeated, his voice sinking a little, "between the two dearest objects I
8605 have on earth."
8606
8607 He was gone as he spoke; and Fanny remained to tranquillise herself as
8608 she could. She was one of his two dearest--that must support her. But
8609 the other: the first! She had never heard him speak so openly before,
8610 and though it told her no more than what she had long perceived, it was
8611 a stab, for it told of his own convictions and views. They were
8612 decided. He would marry Miss Crawford. It was a stab, in spite of every
8613 long-standing expectation; and she was obliged to repeat again and
8614 again, that she was one of his two dearest, before the words gave her
8615 any sensation. Could she believe Miss Crawford to deserve him, it would
8616 be--oh, how different would it be--how far more tolerable! But he was
8617 deceived in her: he gave her merits which she had not; her faults were
8618 what they had ever been, but he saw them no longer. Till she had shed
8619 many tears over this deception, Fanny could not subdue her agitation;
8620 and the dejection which followed could only be relieved by the influence
8621 of fervent prayers for his happiness.
8622
8623 It was her intention, as she felt it to be her duty, to try to overcome
8624 all that was excessive, all that bordered on selfishness, in her
8625 affection for Edmund. To call or to fancy it a loss, a disappointment,
8626 would be a presumption for which she had not words strong enough to
8627 satisfy her own humility. To think of him as Miss Crawford might be
8628 justified in thinking, would in her be insanity. To her he could be
8629 nothing under any circumstances; nothing dearer than a friend. Why did
8630 such an idea occur to her even enough to be reprobated and forbidden? It
8631 ought not to have touched on the confines of her imagination. She would
8632 endeavour to be rational, and to deserve the right of judging of Miss
8633 Crawford's character, and the privilege of true solicitude for him by a
8634 sound intellect and an honest heart.
8635
8636 She had all the heroism of principle, and was determined to do her duty;
8637 but having also many of the feelings of youth and nature, let her not
8638 be much wondered at, if, after making all these good resolutions on the
8639 side of self-government, she seized the scrap of paper on which Edmund
8640 had begun writing to her, as a treasure beyond all her hopes, and
8641 reading with the tenderest emotion these words, "My very dear Fanny,
8642 you must do me the favour to accept" locked it up with the chain, as the
8643 dearest part of the gift. It was the only thing approaching to a letter
8644 which she had ever received from him; she might never receive another;
8645 it was impossible that she ever should receive another so perfectly
8646 gratifying in the occasion and the style. Two lines more prized had
8647 never fallen from the pen of the most distinguished author--never
8648 more completely blessed the researches of the fondest biographer. The
8649 enthusiasm of a woman's love is even beyond the biographer's. To her,
8650 the handwriting itself, independent of anything it may convey, is a
8651 blessedness. Never were such characters cut by any other human being as
8652 Edmund's commonest handwriting gave! This specimen, written in haste
8653 as it was, had not a fault; and there was a felicity in the flow of the
8654 first four words, in the arrangement of "My very dear Fanny," which she
8655 could have looked at for ever.
8656
8657 Having regulated her thoughts and comforted her feelings by this happy
8658 mixture of reason and weakness, she was able in due time to go down
8659 and resume her usual employments near her aunt Bertram, and pay her the
8660 usual observances without any apparent want of spirits.
8661
8662 Thursday, predestined to hope and enjoyment, came; and opened with
8663 more kindness to Fanny than such self-willed, unmanageable days often
8664 volunteer, for soon after breakfast a very friendly note was brought
8665 from Mr. Crawford to William, stating that as he found himself obliged
8666 to go to London on the morrow for a few days, he could not help trying
8667 to procure a companion; and therefore hoped that if William could
8668 make up his mind to leave Mansfield half a day earlier than had been
8669 proposed, he would accept a place in his carriage. Mr. Crawford meant to
8670 be in town by his uncle's accustomary late dinner-hour, and William
8671 was invited to dine with him at the Admiral's. The proposal was a very
8672 pleasant one to William himself, who enjoyed the idea of travelling post
8673 with four horses, and such a good-humoured, agreeable friend; and, in
8674 likening it to going up with despatches, was saying at once everything
8675 in favour of its happiness and dignity which his imagination could
8676 suggest; and Fanny, from a different motive, was exceedingly pleased;
8677 for the original plan was that William should go up by the mail from
8678 Northampton the following night, which would not have allowed him an
8679 hour's rest before he must have got into a Portsmouth coach; and though
8680 this offer of Mr. Crawford's would rob her of many hours of his company,
8681 she was too happy in having William spared from the fatigue of such
8682 a journey, to think of anything else. Sir Thomas approved of it for
8683 another reason. His nephew's introduction to Admiral Crawford might be
8684 of service. The Admiral, he believed, had interest. Upon the whole, it
8685 was a very joyous note. Fanny's spirits lived on it half the morning,
8686 deriving some accession of pleasure from its writer being himself to go
8687 away.
8688
8689 As for the ball, so near at hand, she had too many agitations and fears
8690 to have half the enjoyment in anticipation which she ought to have had,
8691 or must have been supposed to have by the many young ladies looking
8692 forward to the same event in situations more at ease, but under
8693 circumstances of less novelty, less interest, less peculiar
8694 gratification, than would be attributed to her. Miss Price, known
8695 only by name to half the people invited, was now to make her first
8696 appearance, and must be regarded as the queen of the evening. Who could
8697 be happier than Miss Price? But Miss Price had not been brought up to
8698 the trade of _coming_ _out_; and had she known in what light this ball
8699 was, in general, considered respecting her, it would very much have
8700 lessened her comfort by increasing the fears she already had of doing
8701 wrong and being looked at. To dance without much observation or any
8702 extraordinary fatigue, to have strength and partners for about half the
8703 evening, to dance a little with Edmund, and not a great deal with Mr.
8704 Crawford, to see William enjoy himself, and be able to keep away
8705 from her aunt Norris, was the height of her ambition, and seemed to
8706 comprehend her greatest possibility of happiness. As these were the best
8707 of her hopes, they could not always prevail; and in the course of a long
8708 morning, spent principally with her two aunts, she was often under the
8709 influence of much less sanguine views. William, determined to make this
8710 last day a day of thorough enjoyment, was out snipe-shooting; Edmund,
8711 she had too much reason to suppose, was at the Parsonage; and left
8712 alone to bear the worrying of Mrs. Norris, who was cross because the
8713 housekeeper would have her own way with the supper, and whom _she_ could
8714 not avoid though the housekeeper might, Fanny was worn down at last to
8715 think everything an evil belonging to the ball, and when sent off with
8716 a parting worry to dress, moved as languidly towards her own room, and
8717 felt as incapable of happiness as if she had been allowed no share in
8718 it.
8719
8720 As she walked slowly upstairs she thought of yesterday; it had been
8721 about the same hour that she had returned from the Parsonage, and
8722 found Edmund in the East room. "Suppose I were to find him there again
8723 to-day!" said she to herself, in a fond indulgence of fancy.
8724
8725 "Fanny," said a voice at that moment near her. Starting and looking up,
8726 she saw, across the lobby she had just reached, Edmund himself, standing
8727 at the head of a different staircase. He came towards her. "You look
8728 tired and fagged, Fanny. You have been walking too far."
8729
8730 "No, I have not been out at all."
8731
8732 "Then you have had fatigues within doors, which are worse. You had
8733 better have gone out."
8734
8735 Fanny, not liking to complain, found it easiest to make no answer; and
8736 though he looked at her with his usual kindness, she believed he had
8737 soon ceased to think of her countenance. He did not appear in spirits:
8738 something unconnected with her was probably amiss. They proceeded
8739 upstairs together, their rooms being on the same floor above.
8740
8741 "I come from Dr. Grant's," said Edmund presently. "You may guess my
8742 errand there, Fanny." And he looked so conscious, that Fanny could think
8743 but of one errand, which turned her too sick for speech. "I wished to
8744 engage Miss Crawford for the two first dances," was the explanation that
8745 followed, and brought Fanny to life again, enabling her, as she found
8746 she was expected to speak, to utter something like an inquiry as to the
8747 result.
8748
8749 "Yes," he answered, "she is engaged to me; but" (with a smile that did
8750 not sit easy) "she says it is to be the last time that she ever will
8751 dance with me. She is not serious. I think, I hope, I am sure she is
8752 not serious; but I would rather not hear it. She never has danced with a
8753 clergyman, she says, and she never _will_. For my own sake, I could wish
8754 there had been no ball just at--I mean not this very week, this very
8755 day; to-morrow I leave home."
8756
8757 Fanny struggled for speech, and said, "I am very sorry that anything has
8758 occurred to distress you. This ought to be a day of pleasure. My uncle
8759 meant it so."
8760
8761 "Oh yes, yes! and it will be a day of pleasure. It will all end right. I
8762 am only vexed for a moment. In fact, it is not that I consider the ball
8763 as ill-timed; what does it signify? But, Fanny," stopping her, by taking
8764 her hand, and speaking low and seriously, "you know what all this means.
8765 You see how it is; and could tell me, perhaps better than I could tell
8766 you, how and why I am vexed. Let me talk to you a little. You are a
8767 kind, kind listener. I have been pained by her manner this morning, and
8768 cannot get the better of it. I know her disposition to be as sweet and
8769 faultless as your own, but the influence of her former companions
8770 makes her seem--gives to her conversation, to her professed opinions,
8771 sometimes a tinge of wrong. She does not _think_ evil, but she speaks
8772 it, speaks it in playfulness; and though I know it to be playfulness, it
8773 grieves me to the soul."
8774
8775 "The effect of education," said Fanny gently.
8776
8777 Edmund could not but agree to it. "Yes, that uncle and aunt! They have
8778 injured the finest mind; for sometimes, Fanny, I own to you, it does
8779 appear more than manner: it appears as if the mind itself was tainted."
8780
8781 Fanny imagined this to be an appeal to her judgment, and therefore,
8782 after a moment's consideration, said, "If you only want me as a
8783 listener, cousin, I will be as useful as I can; but I am not qualified
8784 for an adviser. Do not ask advice of _me_. I am not competent."
8785
8786 "You are right, Fanny, to protest against such an office, but you need
8787 not be afraid. It is a subject on which I should never ask advice; it
8788 is the sort of subject on which it had better never be asked; and few,
8789 I imagine, do ask it, but when they want to be influenced against their
8790 conscience. I only want to talk to you."
8791
8792 "One thing more. Excuse the liberty; but take care _how_ you talk to me.
8793 Do not tell me anything now, which hereafter you may be sorry for. The
8794 time may come--"
8795
8796 The colour rushed into her cheeks as she spoke.
8797
8798 "Dearest Fanny!" cried Edmund, pressing her hand to his lips with
8799 almost as much warmth as if it had been Miss Crawford's, "you are all
8800 considerate thought! But it is unnecessary here. The time will never
8801 come. No such time as you allude to will ever come. I begin to think it
8802 most improbable: the chances grow less and less; and even if it should,
8803 there will be nothing to be remembered by either you or me that we need
8804 be afraid of, for I can never be ashamed of my own scruples; and if they
8805 are removed, it must be by changes that will only raise her character
8806 the more by the recollection of the faults she once had. You are the
8807 only being upon earth to whom I should say what I have said; but you
8808 have always known my opinion of her; you can bear me witness, Fanny,
8809 that I have never been blinded. How many a time have we talked over
8810 her little errors! You need not fear me; I have almost given up every
8811 serious idea of her; but I must be a blockhead indeed, if, whatever
8812 befell me, I could think of your kindness and sympathy without the
8813 sincerest gratitude."
8814
8815 He had said enough to shake the experience of eighteen. He had said
8816 enough to give Fanny some happier feelings than she had lately known,
8817 and with a brighter look, she answered, "Yes, cousin, I am convinced
8818 that _you_ would be incapable of anything else, though perhaps some
8819 might not. I cannot be afraid of hearing anything you wish to say. Do
8820 not check yourself. Tell me whatever you like."
8821
8822 They were now on the second floor, and the appearance of a housemaid
8823 prevented any farther conversation. For Fanny's present comfort it was
8824 concluded, perhaps, at the happiest moment: had he been able to talk
8825 another five minutes, there is no saying that he might not have talked
8826 away all Miss Crawford's faults and his own despondence. But as it was,
8827 they parted with looks on his side of grateful affection, and with
8828 some very precious sensations on hers. She had felt nothing like it for
8829 hours. Since the first joy from Mr. Crawford's note to William had worn
8830 away, she had been in a state absolutely the reverse; there had been
8831 no comfort around, no hope within her. Now everything was smiling.
8832 William's good fortune returned again upon her mind, and seemed of
8833 greater value than at first. The ball, too--such an evening of pleasure
8834 before her! It was now a real animation; and she began to dress for it
8835 with much of the happy flutter which belongs to a ball. All went well:
8836 she did not dislike her own looks; and when she came to the necklaces
8837 again, her good fortune seemed complete, for upon trial the one given
8838 her by Miss Crawford would by no means go through the ring of the cross.
8839 She had, to oblige Edmund, resolved to wear it; but it was too large for
8840 the purpose. His, therefore, must be worn; and having, with delightful
8841 feelings, joined the chain and the cross--those memorials of the two
8842 most beloved of her heart, those dearest tokens so formed for each other
8843 by everything real and imaginary--and put them round her neck, and seen
8844 and felt how full of William and Edmund they were, she was able, without
8845 an effort, to resolve on wearing Miss Crawford's necklace too. She
8846 acknowledged it to be right. Miss Crawford had a claim; and when it was
8847 no longer to encroach on, to interfere with the stronger claims, the
8848 truer kindness of another, she could do her justice even with pleasure
8849 to herself. The necklace really looked very well; and Fanny left her
8850 room at last, comfortably satisfied with herself and all about her.
8851
8852 Her aunt Bertram had recollected her on this occasion with an unusual
8853 degree of wakefulness. It had really occurred to her, unprompted, that
8854 Fanny, preparing for a ball, might be glad of better help than the upper
8855 housemaid's, and when dressed herself, she actually sent her own maid to
8856 assist her; too late, of course, to be of any use. Mrs. Chapman had just
8857 reached the attic floor, when Miss Price came out of her room completely
8858 dressed, and only civilities were necessary; but Fanny felt her aunt's
8859 attention almost as much as Lady Bertram or Mrs. Chapman could do
8860 themselves.
8861
8862
8863
8864 CHAPTER XXVIII
8865
8866 Her uncle and both her aunts were in the drawing-room when Fanny went
8867 down. To the former she was an interesting object, and he saw with
8868 pleasure the general elegance of her appearance, and her being in
8869 remarkably good looks. The neatness and propriety of her dress was all
8870 that he would allow himself to commend in her presence, but upon her
8871 leaving the room again soon afterwards, he spoke of her beauty with very
8872 decided praise.
8873
8874 "Yes," said Lady Bertram, "she looks very well. I sent Chapman to her."
8875
8876 "Look well! Oh, yes!" cried Mrs. Norris, "she has good reason to look
8877 well with all her advantages: brought up in this family as she has been,
8878 with all the benefit of her cousins' manners before her. Only think, my
8879 dear Sir Thomas, what extraordinary advantages you and I have been the
8880 means of giving her. The very gown you have been taking notice of is
8881 your own generous present to her when dear Mrs. Rushworth married. What
8882 would she have been if we had not taken her by the hand?"
8883
8884 Sir Thomas said no more; but when they sat down to table the eyes of
8885 the two young men assured him that the subject might be gently touched
8886 again, when the ladies withdrew, with more success. Fanny saw that she
8887 was approved; and the consciousness of looking well made her look still
8888 better. From a variety of causes she was happy, and she was soon made
8889 still happier; for in following her aunts out of the room, Edmund, who
8890 was holding open the door, said, as she passed him, "You must dance
8891 with me, Fanny; you must keep two dances for me; any two that you like,
8892 except the first." She had nothing more to wish for. She had hardly
8893 ever been in a state so nearly approaching high spirits in her life. Her
8894 cousins' former gaiety on the day of a ball was no longer surprising to
8895 her; she felt it to be indeed very charming, and was actually practising
8896 her steps about the drawing-room as long as she could be safe from the
8897 notice of her aunt Norris, who was entirely taken up at first in fresh
8898 arranging and injuring the noble fire which the butler had prepared.
8899
8900 Half an hour followed that would have been at least languid under any
8901 other circumstances, but Fanny's happiness still prevailed. It was but
8902 to think of her conversation with Edmund, and what was the restlessness
8903 of Mrs. Norris? What were the yawns of Lady Bertram?
8904
8905 The gentlemen joined them; and soon after began the sweet expectation of
8906 a carriage, when a general spirit of ease and enjoyment seemed diffused,
8907 and they all stood about and talked and laughed, and every moment had
8908 its pleasure and its hope. Fanny felt that there must be a struggle
8909 in Edmund's cheerfulness, but it was delightful to see the effort so
8910 successfully made.
8911
8912 When the carriages were really heard, when the guests began really to
8913 assemble, her own gaiety of heart was much subdued: the sight of so
8914 many strangers threw her back into herself; and besides the gravity and
8915 formality of the first great circle, which the manners of neither Sir
8916 Thomas nor Lady Bertram were of a kind to do away, she found herself
8917 occasionally called on to endure something worse. She was introduced
8918 here and there by her uncle, and forced to be spoken to, and to curtsey,
8919 and speak again. This was a hard duty, and she was never summoned to
8920 it without looking at William, as he walked about at his ease in the
8921 background of the scene, and longing to be with him.
8922
8923 The entrance of the Grants and Crawfords was a favourable epoch. The
8924 stiffness of the meeting soon gave way before their popular manners and
8925 more diffused intimacies: little groups were formed, and everybody grew
8926 comfortable. Fanny felt the advantage; and, drawing back from the toils
8927 of civility, would have been again most happy, could she have kept her
8928 eyes from wandering between Edmund and Mary Crawford. _She_ looked all
8929 loveliness--and what might not be the end of it? Her own musings
8930 were brought to an end on perceiving Mr. Crawford before her, and
8931 her thoughts were put into another channel by his engaging her almost
8932 instantly for the first two dances. Her happiness on this occasion was
8933 very much _a_ _la_ _mortal_, finely chequered. To be secure of a partner
8934 at first was a most essential good--for the moment of beginning was now
8935 growing seriously near; and she so little understood her own claims as
8936 to think that if Mr. Crawford had not asked her, she must have been the
8937 last to be sought after, and should have received a partner only through
8938 a series of inquiry, and bustle, and interference, which would have been
8939 terrible; but at the same time there was a pointedness in his manner of
8940 asking her which she did not like, and she saw his eye glancing for
8941 a moment at her necklace, with a smile--she thought there was a
8942 smile--which made her blush and feel wretched. And though there was no
8943 second glance to disturb her, though his object seemed then to be only
8944 quietly agreeable, she could not get the better of her embarrassment,
8945 heightened as it was by the idea of his perceiving it, and had no
8946 composure till he turned away to some one else. Then she could gradually
8947 rise up to the genuine satisfaction of having a partner, a voluntary
8948 partner, secured against the dancing began.
8949
8950 When the company were moving into the ballroom, she found herself
8951 for the first time near Miss Crawford, whose eyes and smiles were
8952 immediately and more unequivocally directed as her brother's had been,
8953 and who was beginning to speak on the subject, when Fanny, anxious
8954 to get the story over, hastened to give the explanation of the second
8955 necklace: the real chain. Miss Crawford listened; and all her intended
8956 compliments and insinuations to Fanny were forgotten: she felt only one
8957 thing; and her eyes, bright as they had been before, shewing they could
8958 yet be brighter, she exclaimed with eager pleasure, "Did he? Did Edmund?
8959 That was like himself. No other man would have thought of it. I honour
8960 him beyond expression." And she looked around as if longing to tell him
8961 so. He was not near, he was attending a party of ladies out of the room;
8962 and Mrs. Grant coming up to the two girls, and taking an arm of each,
8963 they followed with the rest.
8964
8965 Fanny's heart sunk, but there was no leisure for thinking long even of
8966 Miss Crawford's feelings. They were in the ballroom, the violins were
8967 playing, and her mind was in a flutter that forbade its fixing on
8968 anything serious. She must watch the general arrangements, and see how
8969 everything was done.
8970
8971 In a few minutes Sir Thomas came to her, and asked if she were engaged;
8972 and the "Yes, sir; to Mr. Crawford," was exactly what he had intended
8973 to hear. Mr. Crawford was not far off; Sir Thomas brought him to her,
8974 saying something which discovered to Fanny, that _she_ was to lead the
8975 way and open the ball; an idea that had never occurred to her before.
8976 Whenever she had thought of the minutiae of the evening, it had been as
8977 a matter of course that Edmund would begin with Miss Crawford; and the
8978 impression was so strong, that though _her_ _uncle_ spoke the contrary,
8979 she could not help an exclamation of surprise, a hint of her unfitness,
8980 an entreaty even to be excused. To be urging her opinion against Sir
8981 Thomas's was a proof of the extremity of the case; but such was her
8982 horror at the first suggestion, that she could actually look him in
8983 the face and say that she hoped it might be settled otherwise; in vain,
8984 however: Sir Thomas smiled, tried to encourage her, and then looked too
8985 serious, and said too decidedly, "It must be so, my dear," for her to
8986 hazard another word; and she found herself the next moment conducted by
8987 Mr. Crawford to the top of the room, and standing there to be joined by
8988 the rest of the dancers, couple after couple, as they were formed.
8989
8990 She could hardly believe it. To be placed above so many elegant young
8991 women! The distinction was too great. It was treating her like her
8992 cousins! And her thoughts flew to those absent cousins with most
8993 unfeigned and truly tender regret, that they were not at home to take
8994 their own place in the room, and have their share of a pleasure which
8995 would have been so very delightful to them. So often as she had heard
8996 them wish for a ball at home as the greatest of all felicities! And
8997 to have them away when it was given--and for _her_ to be opening the
8998 ball--and with Mr. Crawford too! She hoped they would not envy her that
8999 distinction _now_; but when she looked back to the state of things in
9000 the autumn, to what they had all been to each other when once dancing
9001 in that house before, the present arrangement was almost more than she
9002 could understand herself.
9003
9004 The ball began. It was rather honour than happiness to Fanny, for the
9005 first dance at least: her partner was in excellent spirits, and tried to
9006 impart them to her; but she was a great deal too much frightened to have
9007 any enjoyment till she could suppose herself no longer looked at. Young,
9008 pretty, and gentle, however, she had no awkwardnesses that were not
9009 as good as graces, and there were few persons present that were not
9010 disposed to praise her. She was attractive, she was modest, she was Sir
9011 Thomas's niece, and she was soon said to be admired by Mr. Crawford. It
9012 was enough to give her general favour. Sir Thomas himself was watching
9013 her progress down the dance with much complacency; he was proud of his
9014 niece; and without attributing all her personal beauty, as Mrs. Norris
9015 seemed to do, to her transplantation to Mansfield, he was pleased with
9016 himself for having supplied everything else: education and manners she
9017 owed to him.
9018
9019 Miss Crawford saw much of Sir Thomas's thoughts as he stood, and having,
9020 in spite of all his wrongs towards her, a general prevailing desire of
9021 recommending herself to him, took an opportunity of stepping aside to
9022 say something agreeable of Fanny. Her praise was warm, and he
9023 received it as she could wish, joining in it as far as discretion, and
9024 politeness, and slowness of speech would allow, and certainly appearing
9025 to greater advantage on the subject than his lady did soon afterwards,
9026 when Mary, perceiving her on a sofa very near, turned round before she
9027 began to dance, to compliment her on Miss Price's looks.
9028
9029 "Yes, she does look very well," was Lady Bertram's placid reply.
9030 "Chapman helped her to dress. I sent Chapman to her." Not but that
9031 she was really pleased to have Fanny admired; but she was so much more
9032 struck with her own kindness in sending Chapman to her, that she could
9033 not get it out of her head.
9034
9035 Miss Crawford knew Mrs. Norris too well to think of gratifying _her_
9036 by commendation of Fanny; to her, it was as the occasion offered--"Ah!
9037 ma'am, how much we want dear Mrs. Rushworth and Julia to-night!" and
9038 Mrs. Norris paid her with as many smiles and courteous words as she had
9039 time for, amid so much occupation as she found for herself in making
9040 up card-tables, giving hints to Sir Thomas, and trying to move all the
9041 chaperons to a better part of the room.
9042
9043 Miss Crawford blundered most towards Fanny herself in her intentions
9044 to please. She meant to be giving her little heart a happy flutter,
9045 and filling her with sensations of delightful self-consequence; and,
9046 misinterpreting Fanny's blushes, still thought she must be doing so when
9047 she went to her after the two first dances, and said, with a significant
9048 look, "Perhaps _you_ can tell me why my brother goes to town to-morrow?
9049 He says he has business there, but will not tell me what. The first time
9050 he ever denied me his confidence! But this is what we all come to.
9051 All are supplanted sooner or later. Now, I must apply to you for
9052 information. Pray, what is Henry going for?"
9053
9054 Fanny protested her ignorance as steadily as her embarrassment allowed.
9055
9056 "Well, then," replied Miss Crawford, laughing, "I must suppose it to be
9057 purely for the pleasure of conveying your brother, and of talking of you
9058 by the way."
9059
9060 Fanny was confused, but it was the confusion of discontent; while Miss
9061 Crawford wondered she did not smile, and thought her over-anxious,
9062 or thought her odd, or thought her anything rather than insensible of
9063 pleasure in Henry's attentions. Fanny had a good deal of enjoyment in
9064 the course of the evening; but Henry's attentions had very little to
9065 do with it. She would much rather _not_ have been asked by him again so
9066 very soon, and she wished she had not been obliged to suspect that his
9067 previous inquiries of Mrs. Norris, about the supper hour, were all for
9068 the sake of securing her at that part of the evening. But it was not to
9069 be avoided: he made her feel that she was the object of all; though she
9070 could not say that it was unpleasantly done, that there was indelicacy
9071 or ostentation in his manner; and sometimes, when he talked of William,
9072 he was really not unagreeable, and shewed even a warmth of heart
9073 which did him credit. But still his attentions made no part of her
9074 satisfaction. She was happy whenever she looked at William, and saw how
9075 perfectly he was enjoying himself, in every five minutes that she could
9076 walk about with him and hear his account of his partners; she was happy
9077 in knowing herself admired; and she was happy in having the two dances
9078 with Edmund still to look forward to, during the greatest part of the
9079 evening, her hand being so eagerly sought after that her indefinite
9080 engagement with _him_ was in continual perspective. She was happy even
9081 when they did take place; but not from any flow of spirits on his side,
9082 or any such expressions of tender gallantry as had blessed the morning.
9083 His mind was fagged, and her happiness sprung from being the friend with
9084 whom it could find repose. "I am worn out with civility," said he. "I
9085 have been talking incessantly all night, and with nothing to say. But
9086 with _you_, Fanny, there may be peace. You will not want to be talked
9087 to. Let us have the luxury of silence." Fanny would hardly even speak
9088 her agreement. A weariness, arising probably, in great measure, from the
9089 same feelings which he had acknowledged in the morning, was peculiarly
9090 to be respected, and they went down their two dances together with such
9091 sober tranquillity as might satisfy any looker-on that Sir Thomas had
9092 been bringing up no wife for his younger son.
9093
9094 The evening had afforded Edmund little pleasure. Miss Crawford had
9095 been in gay spirits when they first danced together, but it was not her
9096 gaiety that could do him good: it rather sank than raised his comfort;
9097 and afterwards, for he found himself still impelled to seek her
9098 again, she had absolutely pained him by her manner of speaking of the
9099 profession to which he was now on the point of belonging. They had
9100 talked, and they had been silent; he had reasoned, she had ridiculed;
9101 and they had parted at last with mutual vexation. Fanny, not able to
9102 refrain entirely from observing them, had seen enough to be tolerably
9103 satisfied. It was barbarous to be happy when Edmund was suffering. Yet
9104 some happiness must and would arise from the very conviction that he did
9105 suffer.
9106
9107 When her two dances with him were over, her inclination and strength for
9108 more were pretty well at an end; and Sir Thomas, having seen her walk
9109 rather than dance down the shortening set, breathless, and with her hand
9110 at her side, gave his orders for her sitting down entirely. From that
9111 time Mr. Crawford sat down likewise.
9112
9113 "Poor Fanny!" cried William, coming for a moment to visit her, and
9114 working away his partner's fan as if for life, "how soon she is knocked
9115 up! Why, the sport is but just begun. I hope we shall keep it up these
9116 two hours. How can you be tired so soon?"
9117
9118 "So soon! my good friend," said Sir Thomas, producing his watch with all
9119 necessary caution; "it is three o'clock, and your sister is not used to
9120 these sort of hours."
9121
9122 "Well, then, Fanny, you shall not get up to-morrow before I go. Sleep as
9123 long as you can, and never mind me."
9124
9125 "Oh! William."
9126
9127 "What! Did she think of being up before you set off?"
9128
9129 "Oh! yes, sir," cried Fanny, rising eagerly from her seat to be nearer
9130 her uncle; "I must get up and breakfast with him. It will be the last
9131 time, you know; the last morning."
9132
9133 "You had better not. He is to have breakfasted and be gone by half-past
9134 nine. Mr. Crawford, I think you call for him at half-past nine?"
9135
9136 Fanny was too urgent, however, and had too many tears in her eyes for
9137 denial; and it ended in a gracious "Well, well!" which was permission.
9138
9139 "Yes, half-past nine," said Crawford to William as the latter was
9140 leaving them, "and I shall be punctual, for there will be no kind sister
9141 to get up for _me_." And in a lower tone to Fanny, "I shall have only
9142 a desolate house to hurry from. Your brother will find my ideas of time
9143 and his own very different to-morrow."
9144
9145 After a short consideration, Sir Thomas asked Crawford to join the early
9146 breakfast party in that house instead of eating alone: he should himself
9147 be of it; and the readiness with which his invitation was accepted
9148 convinced him that the suspicions whence, he must confess to himself,
9149 this very ball had in great measure sprung, were well founded. Mr.
9150 Crawford was in love with Fanny. He had a pleasing anticipation of what
9151 would be. His niece, meanwhile, did not thank him for what he had just
9152 done. She had hoped to have William all to herself the last morning. It
9153 would have been an unspeakable indulgence. But though her wishes
9154 were overthrown, there was no spirit of murmuring within her. On the
9155 contrary, she was so totally unused to have her pleasure consulted, or
9156 to have anything take place at all in the way she could desire, that she
9157 was more disposed to wonder and rejoice in having carried her point so
9158 far, than to repine at the counteraction which followed.
9159
9160 Shortly afterward, Sir Thomas was again interfering a little with her
9161 inclination, by advising her to go immediately to bed. "Advise" was his
9162 word, but it was the advice of absolute power, and she had only to
9163 rise, and, with Mr. Crawford's very cordial adieus, pass quietly away;
9164 stopping at the entrance-door, like the Lady of Branxholm Hall, "one
9165 moment and no more," to view the happy scene, and take a last look at
9166 the five or six determined couple who were still hard at work; and then,
9167 creeping slowly up the principal staircase, pursued by the ceaseless
9168 country-dance, feverish with hopes and fears, soup and negus,
9169 sore-footed and fatigued, restless and agitated, yet feeling, in spite
9170 of everything, that a ball was indeed delightful.
9171
9172 In thus sending her away, Sir Thomas perhaps might not be thinking
9173 merely of her health. It might occur to him that Mr. Crawford had been
9174 sitting by her long enough, or he might mean to recommend her as a wife
9175 by shewing her persuadableness.
9176
9177
9178
9179 CHAPTER XXIX
9180
9181 The ball was over, and the breakfast was soon over too; the last kiss
9182 was given, and William was gone. Mr. Crawford had, as he foretold, been
9183 very punctual, and short and pleasant had been the meal.
9184
9185 After seeing William to the last moment, Fanny walked back to the
9186 breakfast-room with a very saddened heart to grieve over the melancholy
9187 change; and there her uncle kindly left her to cry in peace, conceiving,
9188 perhaps, that the deserted chair of each young man might exercise her
9189 tender enthusiasm, and that the remaining cold pork bones and mustard in
9190 William's plate might but divide her feelings with the broken egg-shells
9191 in Mr. Crawford's. She sat and cried _con_ _amore_ as her uncle
9192 intended, but it was _con_ _amore_ fraternal and no other. William was
9193 gone, and she now felt as if she had wasted half his visit in idle cares
9194 and selfish solicitudes unconnected with him.
9195
9196 Fanny's disposition was such that she could never even think of her
9197 aunt Norris in the meagreness and cheerlessness of her own small house,
9198 without reproaching herself for some little want of attention to her
9199 when they had been last together; much less could her feelings acquit
9200 her of having done and said and thought everything by William that was
9201 due to him for a whole fortnight.
9202
9203 It was a heavy, melancholy day. Soon after the second breakfast, Edmund
9204 bade them good-bye for a week, and mounted his horse for Peterborough,
9205 and then all were gone. Nothing remained of last night but remembrances,
9206 which she had nobody to share in. She talked to her aunt Bertram--she
9207 must talk to somebody of the ball; but her aunt had seen so little of
9208 what had passed, and had so little curiosity, that it was heavy work.
9209 Lady Bertram was not certain of anybody's dress or anybody's place at
9210 supper but her own. "She could not recollect what it was that she had
9211 heard about one of the Miss Maddoxes, or what it was that Lady Prescott
9212 had noticed in Fanny: she was not sure whether Colonel Harrison had been
9213 talking of Mr. Crawford or of William when he said he was the finest
9214 young man in the room--somebody had whispered something to her; she had
9215 forgot to ask Sir Thomas what it could be." And these were her longest
9216 speeches and clearest communications: the rest was only a languid "Yes,
9217 yes; very well; did you? did he? I did not see _that_; I should not know
9218 one from the other." This was very bad. It was only better than Mrs.
9219 Norris's sharp answers would have been; but she being gone home with
9220 all the supernumerary jellies to nurse a sick maid, there was peace
9221 and good-humour in their little party, though it could not boast much
9222 beside.
9223
9224 The evening was heavy like the day. "I cannot think what is the matter
9225 with me," said Lady Bertram, when the tea-things were removed. "I feel
9226 quite stupid. It must be sitting up so late last night. Fanny, you must
9227 do something to keep me awake. I cannot work. Fetch the cards; I feel so
9228 very stupid."
9229
9230 The cards were brought, and Fanny played at cribbage with her aunt till
9231 bedtime; and as Sir Thomas was reading to himself, no sounds were
9232 heard in the room for the next two hours beyond the reckonings of the
9233 game--"And _that_ makes thirty-one; four in hand and eight in crib. You
9234 are to deal, ma'am; shall I deal for you?" Fanny thought and thought
9235 again of the difference which twenty-four hours had made in that room,
9236 and all that part of the house. Last night it had been hope and smiles,
9237 bustle and motion, noise and brilliancy, in the drawing-room, and out
9238 of the drawing-room, and everywhere. Now it was languor, and all but
9239 solitude.
9240
9241 A good night's rest improved her spirits. She could think of William the
9242 next day more cheerfully; and as the morning afforded her an opportunity
9243 of talking over Thursday night with Mrs. Grant and Miss Crawford, in a
9244 very handsome style, with all the heightenings of imagination, and
9245 all the laughs of playfulness which are so essential to the shade of a
9246 departed ball, she could afterwards bring her mind without much effort
9247 into its everyday state, and easily conform to the tranquillity of the
9248 present quiet week.
9249
9250 They were indeed a smaller party than she had ever known there for
9251 a whole day together, and _he_ was gone on whom the comfort and
9252 cheerfulness of every family meeting and every meal chiefly depended.
9253 But this must be learned to be endured. He would soon be always gone;
9254 and she was thankful that she could now sit in the same room with her
9255 uncle, hear his voice, receive his questions, and even answer them,
9256 without such wretched feelings as she had formerly known.
9257
9258 "We miss our two young men," was Sir Thomas's observation on both the
9259 first and second day, as they formed their very reduced circle after
9260 dinner; and in consideration of Fanny's swimming eyes, nothing more was
9261 said on the first day than to drink their good health; but on the
9262 second it led to something farther. William was kindly commended and
9263 his promotion hoped for. "And there is no reason to suppose," added Sir
9264 Thomas, "but that his visits to us may now be tolerably frequent. As to
9265 Edmund, we must learn to do without him. This will be the last winter of
9266 his belonging to us, as he has done."
9267
9268 "Yes," said Lady Bertram, "but I wish he was not going away. They are
9269 all going away, I think. I wish they would stay at home."
9270
9271 This wish was levelled principally at Julia, who had just applied for
9272 permission to go to town with Maria; and as Sir Thomas thought it best
9273 for each daughter that the permission should be granted, Lady Bertram,
9274 though in her own good-nature she would not have prevented it, was
9275 lamenting the change it made in the prospect of Julia's return, which
9276 would otherwise have taken place about this time. A great deal of good
9277 sense followed on Sir Thomas's side, tending to reconcile his wife to
9278 the arrangement. Everything that a considerate parent _ought_ to feel
9279 was advanced for her use; and everything that an affectionate mother
9280 _must_ feel in promoting her children's enjoyment was attributed to her
9281 nature. Lady Bertram agreed to it all with a calm "Yes"; and at the end
9282 of a quarter of an hour's silent consideration spontaneously observed,
9283 "Sir Thomas, I have been thinking--and I am very glad we took Fanny as
9284 we did, for now the others are away we feel the good of it."
9285
9286 Sir Thomas immediately improved this compliment by adding, "Very true.
9287 We shew Fanny what a good girl we think her by praising her to her face,
9288 she is now a very valuable companion. If we have been kind to _her_, she
9289 is now quite as necessary to _us_."
9290
9291 "Yes," said Lady Bertram presently; "and it is a comfort to think that
9292 we shall always have _her_."
9293
9294 Sir Thomas paused, half smiled, glanced at his niece, and then gravely
9295 replied, "She will never leave us, I hope, till invited to some other
9296 home that may reasonably promise her greater happiness than she knows
9297 here."
9298
9299 "And _that_ is not very likely to be, Sir Thomas. Who should invite her?
9300 Maria might be very glad to see her at Sotherton now and then, but she
9301 would not think of asking her to live there; and I am sure she is better
9302 off here; and besides, I cannot do without her."
9303
9304 The week which passed so quietly and peaceably at the great house in
9305 Mansfield had a very different character at the Parsonage. To the young
9306 lady, at least, in each family, it brought very different feelings. What
9307 was tranquillity and comfort to Fanny was tediousness and vexation to
9308 Mary. Something arose from difference of disposition and habit: one so
9309 easily satisfied, the other so unused to endure; but still more might be
9310 imputed to difference of circumstances. In some points of interest they
9311 were exactly opposed to each other. To Fanny's mind, Edmund's absence
9312 was really, in its cause and its tendency, a relief. To Mary it was
9313 every way painful. She felt the want of his society every day, almost
9314 every hour, and was too much in want of it to derive anything but
9315 irritation from considering the object for which he went. He could not
9316 have devised anything more likely to raise his consequence than this
9317 week's absence, occurring as it did at the very time of her brother's
9318 going away, of William Price's going too, and completing the sort of
9319 general break-up of a party which had been so animated. She felt it
9320 keenly. They were now a miserable trio, confined within doors by a
9321 series of rain and snow, with nothing to do and no variety to hope for.
9322 Angry as she was with Edmund for adhering to his own notions, and acting
9323 on them in defiance of her (and she had been so angry that they had
9324 hardly parted friends at the ball), she could not help thinking of
9325 him continually when absent, dwelling on his merit and affection, and
9326 longing again for the almost daily meetings they lately had. His absence
9327 was unnecessarily long. He should not have planned such an absence--he
9328 should not have left home for a week, when her own departure from
9329 Mansfield was so near. Then she began to blame herself. She wished she
9330 had not spoken so warmly in their last conversation. She was afraid she
9331 had used some strong, some contemptuous expressions in speaking of the
9332 clergy, and that should not have been. It was ill-bred; it was wrong.
9333 She wished such words unsaid with all her heart.
9334
9335 Her vexation did not end with the week. All this was bad, but she had
9336 still more to feel when Friday came round again and brought no Edmund;
9337 when Saturday came and still no Edmund; and when, through the slight
9338 communication with the other family which Sunday produced, she learned
9339 that he had actually written home to defer his return, having promised
9340 to remain some days longer with his friend.
9341
9342 If she had felt impatience and regret before--if she had been sorry for
9343 what she said, and feared its too strong effect on him--she now felt
9344 and feared it all tenfold more. She had, moreover, to contend with one
9345 disagreeable emotion entirely new to her--jealousy. His friend Mr.
9346 Owen had sisters; he might find them attractive. But, at any rate, his
9347 staying away at a time when, according to all preceding plans, she was
9348 to remove to London, meant something that she could not bear. Had Henry
9349 returned, as he talked of doing, at the end of three or four days, she
9350 should now have been leaving Mansfield. It became absolutely necessary
9351 for her to get to Fanny and try to learn something more. She could not
9352 live any longer in such solitary wretchedness; and she made her way
9353 to the Park, through difficulties of walking which she had deemed
9354 unconquerable a week before, for the chance of hearing a little in
9355 addition, for the sake of at least hearing his name.
9356
9357 The first half-hour was lost, for Fanny and Lady Bertram were together,
9358 and unless she had Fanny to herself she could hope for nothing. But
9359 at last Lady Bertram left the room, and then almost immediately Miss
9360 Crawford thus began, with a voice as well regulated as she could--"And
9361 how do _you_ like your cousin Edmund's staying away so long? Being the
9362 only young person at home, I consider _you_ as the greatest sufferer.
9363 You must miss him. Does his staying longer surprise you?"
9364
9365 "I do not know," said Fanny hesitatingly. "Yes; I had not particularly
9366 expected it."
9367
9368 "Perhaps he will always stay longer than he talks of. It is the general
9369 way all young men do."
9370
9371 "He did not, the only time he went to see Mr. Owen before."
9372
9373 "He finds the house more agreeable _now_. He is a very--a very pleasing
9374 young man himself, and I cannot help being rather concerned at not
9375 seeing him again before I go to London, as will now undoubtedly be the
9376 case. I am looking for Henry every day, and as soon as he comes there
9377 will be nothing to detain me at Mansfield. I should like to have seen
9378 him once more, I confess. But you must give my compliments to him. Yes;
9379 I think it must be compliments. Is not there a something wanted,
9380 Miss Price, in our language--a something between compliments and--and
9381 love--to suit the sort of friendly acquaintance we have had together? So
9382 many months' acquaintance! But compliments may be sufficient here.
9383 Was his letter a long one? Does he give you much account of what he is
9384 doing? Is it Christmas gaieties that he is staying for?"
9385
9386 "I only heard a part of the letter; it was to my uncle; but I believe
9387 it was very short; indeed I am sure it was but a few lines. All that I
9388 heard was that his friend had pressed him to stay longer, and that he
9389 had agreed to do so. A _few_ days longer, or _some_ days longer; I am
9390 not quite sure which."
9391
9392 "Oh! if he wrote to his father; but I thought it might have been to Lady
9393 Bertram or you. But if he wrote to his father, no wonder he was concise.
9394 Who could write chat to Sir Thomas? If he had written to you, there
9395 would have been more particulars. You would have heard of balls
9396 and parties. He would have sent you a description of everything and
9397 everybody. How many Miss Owens are there?"
9398
9399 "Three grown up."
9400
9401 "Are they musical?"
9402
9403 "I do not at all know. I never heard."
9404
9405 "That is the first question, you know," said Miss Crawford, trying to
9406 appear gay and unconcerned, "which every woman who plays herself is sure
9407 to ask about another. But it is very foolish to ask questions about
9408 any young ladies--about any three sisters just grown up; for one knows,
9409 without being told, exactly what they are: all very accomplished and
9410 pleasing, and one very pretty. There is a beauty in every family; it is
9411 a regular thing. Two play on the pianoforte, and one on the harp; and
9412 all sing, or would sing if they were taught, or sing all the better for
9413 not being taught; or something like it."
9414
9415 "I know nothing of the Miss Owens," said Fanny calmly.
9416
9417 "You know nothing and you care less, as people say. Never did tone
9418 express indifference plainer. Indeed, how can one care for those one has
9419 never seen? Well, when your cousin comes back, he will find Mansfield
9420 very quiet; all the noisy ones gone, your brother and mine and myself. I
9421 do not like the idea of leaving Mrs. Grant now the time draws near. She
9422 does not like my going."
9423
9424 Fanny felt obliged to speak. "You cannot doubt your being missed by
9425 many," said she. "You will be very much missed."
9426
9427 Miss Crawford turned her eye on her, as if wanting to hear or see more,
9428 and then laughingly said, "Oh yes! missed as every noisy evil is missed
9429 when it is taken away; that is, there is a great difference felt. But I
9430 am not fishing; don't compliment me. If I _am_ missed, it will appear.
9431 I may be discovered by those who want to see me. I shall not be in any
9432 doubtful, or distant, or unapproachable region."
9433
9434 Now Fanny could not bring herself to speak, and Miss Crawford was
9435 disappointed; for she had hoped to hear some pleasant assurance of her
9436 power from one who she thought must know, and her spirits were clouded
9437 again.
9438
9439 "The Miss Owens," said she, soon afterwards; "suppose you were to have
9440 one of the Miss Owens settled at Thornton Lacey; how should you like it?
9441 Stranger things have happened. I dare say they are trying for it. And
9442 they are quite in the right, for it would be a very pretty establishment
9443 for them. I do not at all wonder or blame them. It is everybody's duty
9444 to do as well for themselves as they can. Sir Thomas Bertram's son is
9445 somebody; and now he is in their own line. Their father is a clergyman,
9446 and their brother is a clergyman, and they are all clergymen together.
9447 He is their lawful property; he fairly belongs to them. You don't speak,
9448 Fanny; Miss Price, you don't speak. But honestly now, do not you rather
9449 expect it than otherwise?"
9450
9451 "No," said Fanny stoutly, "I do not expect it at all."
9452
9453 "Not at all!" cried Miss Crawford with alacrity. "I wonder at that. But
9454 I dare say you know exactly--I always imagine you are--perhaps you do
9455 not think him likely to marry at all--or not at present."
9456
9457 "No, I do not," said Fanny softly, hoping she did not err either in the
9458 belief or the acknowledgment of it.
9459
9460 Her companion looked at her keenly; and gathering greater spirit from
9461 the blush soon produced from such a look, only said, "He is best off as
9462 he is," and turned the subject.
9463
9464
9465
9466 CHAPTER XXX
9467
9468 Miss Crawford's uneasiness was much lightened by this conversation, and
9469 she walked home again in spirits which might have defied almost another
9470 week of the same small party in the same bad weather, had they been put
9471 to the proof; but as that very evening brought her brother down from
9472 London again in quite, or more than quite, his usual cheerfulness, she
9473 had nothing farther to try her own. His still refusing to tell her what
9474 he had gone for was but the promotion of gaiety; a day before it might
9475 have irritated, but now it was a pleasant joke--suspected only of
9476 concealing something planned as a pleasant surprise to herself. And the
9477 next day _did_ bring a surprise to her. Henry had said he should just
9478 go and ask the Bertrams how they did, and be back in ten minutes, but
9479 he was gone above an hour; and when his sister, who had been waiting for
9480 him to walk with her in the garden, met him at last most impatiently in
9481 the sweep, and cried out, "My dear Henry, where can you have been
9482 all this time?" he had only to say that he had been sitting with Lady
9483 Bertram and Fanny.
9484
9485 "Sitting with them an hour and a half!" exclaimed Mary.
9486
9487 But this was only the beginning of her surprise.
9488
9489 "Yes, Mary," said he, drawing her arm within his, and walking along
9490 the sweep as if not knowing where he was: "I could not get away sooner;
9491 Fanny looked so lovely! I am quite determined, Mary. My mind is entirely
9492 made up. Will it astonish you? No: you must be aware that I am quite
9493 determined to marry Fanny Price."
9494
9495 The surprise was now complete; for, in spite of whatever his
9496 consciousness might suggest, a suspicion of his having any such views
9497 had never entered his sister's imagination; and she looked so truly the
9498 astonishment she felt, that he was obliged to repeat what he had said,
9499 and more fully and more solemnly. The conviction of his determination
9500 once admitted, it was not unwelcome. There was even pleasure with the
9501 surprise. Mary was in a state of mind to rejoice in a connexion with the
9502 Bertram family, and to be not displeased with her brother's marrying a
9503 little beneath him.
9504
9505 "Yes, Mary," was Henry's concluding assurance. "I am fairly caught.
9506 You know with what idle designs I began; but this is the end of them.
9507 I have, I flatter myself, made no inconsiderable progress in her
9508 affections; but my own are entirely fixed."
9509
9510 "Lucky, lucky girl!" cried Mary, as soon as she could speak; "what a
9511 match for her! My dearest Henry, this must be my _first_ feeling; but
9512 my _second_, which you shall have as sincerely, is, that I approve your
9513 choice from my soul, and foresee your happiness as heartily as I wish
9514 and desire it. You will have a sweet little wife; all gratitude and
9515 devotion. Exactly what you deserve. What an amazing match for her! Mrs.
9516 Norris often talks of her luck; what will she say now? The delight
9517 of all the family, indeed! And she has some _true_ friends in it! How
9518 _they_ will rejoice! But tell me all about it! Talk to me for ever. When
9519 did you begin to think seriously about her?"
9520
9521 Nothing could be more impossible than to answer such a question, though
9522 nothing could be more agreeable than to have it asked. "How the pleasing
9523 plague had stolen on him" he could not say; and before he had expressed
9524 the same sentiment with a little variation of words three times over,
9525 his sister eagerly interrupted him with, "Ah, my dear Henry, and this
9526 is what took you to London! This was your business! You chose to consult
9527 the Admiral before you made up your mind."
9528
9529 But this he stoutly denied. He knew his uncle too well to consult him on
9530 any matrimonial scheme. The Admiral hated marriage, and thought it never
9531 pardonable in a young man of independent fortune.
9532
9533 "When Fanny is known to him," continued Henry, "he will doat on her.
9534 She is exactly the woman to do away every prejudice of such a man as
9535 the Admiral, for she he would describe, if indeed he has now delicacy
9536 of language enough to embody his own ideas. But till it is absolutely
9537 settled--settled beyond all interference, he shall know nothing of the
9538 matter. No, Mary, you are quite mistaken. You have not discovered my
9539 business yet."
9540
9541 "Well, well, I am satisfied. I know now to whom it must relate, and am
9542 in no hurry for the rest. Fanny Price! wonderful, quite wonderful! That
9543 Mansfield should have done so much for--that _you_ should have found
9544 your fate in Mansfield! But you are quite right; you could not have
9545 chosen better. There is not a better girl in the world, and you do not
9546 want for fortune; and as to her connexions, they are more than good. The
9547 Bertrams are undoubtedly some of the first people in this country. She
9548 is niece to Sir Thomas Bertram; that will be enough for the world. But
9549 go on, go on. Tell me more. What are your plans? Does she know her own
9550 happiness?"
9551
9552 "No."
9553
9554 "What are you waiting for?"
9555
9556 "For--for very little more than opportunity. Mary, she is not like her
9557 cousins; but I think I shall not ask in vain."
9558
9559 "Oh no! you cannot. Were you even less pleasing--supposing her not to
9560 love you already (of which, however, I can have little doubt)--you would
9561 be safe. The gentleness and gratitude of her disposition would secure
9562 her all your own immediately. From my soul I do not think she would
9563 marry you _without_ love; that is, if there is a girl in the world
9564 capable of being uninfluenced by ambition, I can suppose it her; but ask
9565 her to love you, and she will never have the heart to refuse."
9566
9567 As soon as her eagerness could rest in silence, he was as happy to tell
9568 as she could be to listen; and a conversation followed almost as deeply
9569 interesting to her as to himself, though he had in fact nothing to
9570 relate but his own sensations, nothing to dwell on but Fanny's charms.
9571 Fanny's beauty of face and figure, Fanny's graces of manner and goodness
9572 of heart, were the exhaustless theme. The gentleness, modesty, and
9573 sweetness of her character were warmly expatiated on; that sweetness
9574 which makes so essential a part of every woman's worth in the judgment
9575 of man, that though he sometimes loves where it is not, he can never
9576 believe it absent. Her temper he had good reason to depend on and
9577 to praise. He had often seen it tried. Was there one of the family,
9578 excepting Edmund, who had not in some way or other continually exercised
9579 her patience and forbearance? Her affections were evidently strong. To
9580 see her with her brother! What could more delightfully prove that the
9581 warmth of her heart was equal to its gentleness? What could be more
9582 encouraging to a man who had her love in view? Then, her understanding
9583 was beyond every suspicion, quick and clear; and her manners were the
9584 mirror of her own modest and elegant mind. Nor was this all. Henry
9585 Crawford had too much sense not to feel the worth of good principles
9586 in a wife, though he was too little accustomed to serious reflection to
9587 know them by their proper name; but when he talked of her having such a
9588 steadiness and regularity of conduct, such a high notion of honour, and
9589 such an observance of decorum as might warrant any man in the fullest
9590 dependence on her faith and integrity, he expressed what was inspired by
9591 the knowledge of her being well principled and religious.
9592
9593 "I could so wholly and absolutely confide in her," said he; "and _that_
9594 is what I want."
9595
9596 Well might his sister, believing as she really did that his opinion of
9597 Fanny Price was scarcely beyond her merits, rejoice in her prospects.
9598
9599 "The more I think of it," she cried, "the more am I convinced that you
9600 are doing quite right; and though I should never have selected Fanny
9601 Price as the girl most likely to attach you, I am now persuaded she is
9602 the very one to make you happy. Your wicked project upon her peace turns
9603 out a clever thought indeed. You will both find your good in it."
9604
9605 "It was bad, very bad in me against such a creature; but I did not know
9606 her then; and she shall have no reason to lament the hour that first put
9607 it into my head. I will make her very happy, Mary; happier than she has
9608 ever yet been herself, or ever seen anybody else. I will not take her
9609 from Northamptonshire. I shall let Everingham, and rent a place in this
9610 neighbourhood; perhaps Stanwix Lodge. I shall let a seven years' lease
9611 of Everingham. I am sure of an excellent tenant at half a word. I could
9612 name three people now, who would give me my own terms and thank me."
9613
9614 "Ha!" cried Mary; "settle in Northamptonshire! That is pleasant! Then we
9615 shall be all together."
9616
9617 When she had spoken it, she recollected herself, and wished it unsaid;
9618 but there was no need of confusion; for her brother saw her only as the
9619 supposed inmate of Mansfield parsonage, and replied but to invite her in
9620 the kindest manner to his own house, and to claim the best right in her.
9621
9622 "You must give us more than half your time," said he. "I cannot admit
9623 Mrs. Grant to have an equal claim with Fanny and myself, for we shall
9624 both have a right in you. Fanny will be so truly your sister!"
9625
9626 Mary had only to be grateful and give general assurances; but she was
9627 now very fully purposed to be the guest of neither brother nor sister
9628 many months longer.
9629
9630 "You will divide your year between London and Northamptonshire?"
9631
9632 "Yes."
9633
9634 "That's right; and in London, of course, a house of your own: no longer
9635 with the Admiral. My dearest Henry, the advantage to you of getting away
9636 from the Admiral before your manners are hurt by the contagion of his,
9637 before you have contracted any of his foolish opinions, or learned to
9638 sit over your dinner as if it were the best blessing of life! _You_ are
9639 not sensible of the gain, for your regard for him has blinded you; but,
9640 in my estimation, your marrying early may be the saving of you. To have
9641 seen you grow like the Admiral in word or deed, look or gesture, would
9642 have broken my heart."
9643
9644 "Well, well, we do not think quite alike here. The Admiral has his
9645 faults, but he is a very good man, and has been more than a father to
9646 me. Few fathers would have let me have my own way half so much. You must
9647 not prejudice Fanny against him. I must have them love one another."
9648
9649 Mary refrained from saying what she felt, that there could not be two
9650 persons in existence whose characters and manners were less accordant:
9651 time would discover it to him; but she could not help _this_ reflection
9652 on the Admiral. "Henry, I think so highly of Fanny Price, that if I
9653 could suppose the next Mrs. Crawford would have half the reason which
9654 my poor ill-used aunt had to abhor the very name, I would prevent the
9655 marriage, if possible; but I know you: I know that a wife you _loved_
9656 would be the happiest of women, and that even when you ceased to
9657 love, she would yet find in you the liberality and good-breeding of a
9658 gentleman."
9659
9660 The impossibility of not doing everything in the world to make Fanny
9661 Price happy, or of ceasing to love Fanny Price, was of course the
9662 groundwork of his eloquent answer.
9663
9664 "Had you seen her this morning, Mary," he continued, "attending with
9665 such ineffable sweetness and patience to all the demands of her aunt's
9666 stupidity, working with her, and for her, her colour beautifully
9667 heightened as she leant over the work, then returning to her seat to
9668 finish a note which she was previously engaged in writing for that
9669 stupid woman's service, and all this with such unpretending gentleness,
9670 so much as if it were a matter of course that she was not to have a
9671 moment at her own command, her hair arranged as neatly as it always is,
9672 and one little curl falling forward as she wrote, which she now and then
9673 shook back, and in the midst of all this, still speaking at intervals to
9674 _me_, or listening, and as if she liked to listen, to what I said. Had
9675 you seen her so, Mary, you would not have implied the possibility of her
9676 power over my heart ever ceasing."
9677
9678 "My dearest Henry," cried Mary, stopping short, and smiling in his face,
9679 "how glad I am to see you so much in love! It quite delights me. But
9680 what will Mrs. Rushworth and Julia say?"
9681
9682 "I care neither what they say nor what they feel. They will now see what
9683 sort of woman it is that can attach me, that can attach a man of sense.
9684 I wish the discovery may do them any good. And they will now see their
9685 cousin treated as she ought to be, and I wish they may be heartily
9686 ashamed of their own abominable neglect and unkindness. They will be
9687 angry," he added, after a moment's silence, and in a cooler tone; "Mrs.
9688 Rushworth will be very angry. It will be a bitter pill to her; that is,
9689 like other bitter pills, it will have two moments' ill flavour, and then
9690 be swallowed and forgotten; for I am not such a coxcomb as to suppose
9691 her feelings more lasting than other women's, though _I_ was the object
9692 of them. Yes, Mary, my Fanny will feel a difference indeed: a daily,
9693 hourly difference, in the behaviour of every being who approaches her;
9694 and it will be the completion of my happiness to know that I am the doer
9695 of it, that I am the person to give the consequence so justly her due.
9696 Now she is dependent, helpless, friendless, neglected, forgotten."
9697
9698 "Nay, Henry, not by all; not forgotten by all; not friendless or
9699 forgotten. Her cousin Edmund never forgets her."
9700
9701 "Edmund! True, I believe he is, generally speaking, kind to her, and
9702 so is Sir Thomas in his way; but it is the way of a rich, superior,
9703 long-worded, arbitrary uncle. What can Sir Thomas and Edmund together
9704 do, what do they _do_ for her happiness, comfort, honour, and dignity in
9705 the world, to what I _shall_ do?"
9706
9707
9708
9709 CHAPTER XXXI
9710
9711 Henry Crawford was at Mansfield Park again the next morning, and at an
9712 earlier hour than common visiting warrants. The two ladies were together
9713 in the breakfast-room, and, fortunately for him, Lady Bertram was on the
9714 very point of quitting it as he entered. She was almost at the door, and
9715 not chusing by any means to take so much trouble in vain, she still went
9716 on, after a civil reception, a short sentence about being waited for,
9717 and a "Let Sir Thomas know" to the servant.
9718
9719 Henry, overjoyed to have her go, bowed and watched her off, and without
9720 losing another moment, turned instantly to Fanny, and, taking out some
9721 letters, said, with a most animated look, "I must acknowledge myself
9722 infinitely obliged to any creature who gives me such an opportunity
9723 of seeing you alone: I have been wishing it more than you can have any
9724 idea. Knowing as I do what your feelings as a sister are, I could hardly
9725 have borne that any one in the house should share with you in the
9726 first knowledge of the news I now bring. He is made. Your brother is a
9727 lieutenant. I have the infinite satisfaction of congratulating you on
9728 your brother's promotion. Here are the letters which announce it, this
9729 moment come to hand. You will, perhaps, like to see them."
9730
9731 Fanny could not speak, but he did not want her to speak. To see the
9732 expression of her eyes, the change of her complexion, the progress of
9733 her feelings, their doubt, confusion, and felicity, was enough. She took
9734 the letters as he gave them. The first was from the Admiral to inform
9735 his nephew, in a few words, of his having succeeded in the object he had
9736 undertaken, the promotion of young Price, and enclosing two more, one
9737 from the Secretary of the First Lord to a friend, whom the Admiral had
9738 set to work in the business, the other from that friend to himself,
9739 by which it appeared that his lordship had the very great happiness of
9740 attending to the recommendation of Sir Charles; that Sir Charles was
9741 much delighted in having such an opportunity of proving his regard
9742 for Admiral Crawford, and that the circumstance of Mr. William Price's
9743 commission as Second Lieutenant of H.M. Sloop Thrush being made out was
9744 spreading general joy through a wide circle of great people.
9745
9746 While her hand was trembling under these letters, her eye running from
9747 one to the other, and her heart swelling with emotion, Crawford thus
9748 continued, with unfeigned eagerness, to express his interest in the
9749 event--
9750
9751 "I will not talk of my own happiness," said he, "great as it is, for I
9752 think only of yours. Compared with you, who has a right to be happy? I
9753 have almost grudged myself my own prior knowledge of what you ought to
9754 have known before all the world. I have not lost a moment, however.
9755 The post was late this morning, but there has not been since a moment's
9756 delay. How impatient, how anxious, how wild I have been on the subject,
9757 I will not attempt to describe; how severely mortified, how cruelly
9758 disappointed, in not having it finished while I was in London! I was
9759 kept there from day to day in the hope of it, for nothing less dear
9760 to me than such an object would have detained me half the time from
9761 Mansfield. But though my uncle entered into my wishes with all the
9762 warmth I could desire, and exerted himself immediately, there were
9763 difficulties from the absence of one friend, and the engagements of
9764 another, which at last I could no longer bear to stay the end of, and
9765 knowing in what good hands I left the cause, I came away on Monday,
9766 trusting that many posts would not pass before I should be followed by
9767 such very letters as these. My uncle, who is the very best man in
9768 the world, has exerted himself, as I knew he would, after seeing your
9769 brother. He was delighted with him. I would not allow myself yesterday
9770 to say how delighted, or to repeat half that the Admiral said in his
9771 praise. I deferred it all till his praise should be proved the praise of
9772 a friend, as this day _does_ prove it. _Now_ I may say that even I could
9773 not require William Price to excite a greater interest, or be followed
9774 by warmer wishes and higher commendation, than were most voluntarily
9775 bestowed by my uncle after the evening they had passed together."
9776
9777 "Has this been all _your_ doing, then?" cried Fanny. "Good heaven! how
9778 very, very kind! Have you really--was it by _your_ desire? I beg your
9779 pardon, but I am bewildered. Did Admiral Crawford apply? How was it? I
9780 am stupefied."
9781
9782 Henry was most happy to make it more intelligible, by beginning at an
9783 earlier stage, and explaining very particularly what he had done. His
9784 last journey to London had been undertaken with no other view than that
9785 of introducing her brother in Hill Street, and prevailing on the Admiral
9786 to exert whatever interest he might have for getting him on. This had
9787 been his business. He had communicated it to no creature: he had not
9788 breathed a syllable of it even to Mary; while uncertain of the issue,
9789 he could not have borne any participation of his feelings, but this had
9790 been his business; and he spoke with such a glow of what his solicitude
9791 had been, and used such strong expressions, was so abounding in the
9792 _deepest_ _interest_, in _twofold_ _motives_, in _views_ _and_ _wishes_
9793 _more_ _than_ _could_ _be_ _told_, that Fanny could not have remained
9794 insensible of his drift, had she been able to attend; but her heart was
9795 so full and her senses still so astonished, that she could listen but
9796 imperfectly even to what he told her of William, and saying only when
9797 he paused, "How kind! how very kind! Oh, Mr. Crawford, we are infinitely
9798 obliged to you! Dearest, dearest William!" She jumped up and moved in
9799 haste towards the door, crying out, "I will go to my uncle. My uncle
9800 ought to know it as soon as possible." But this could not be suffered.
9801 The opportunity was too fair, and his feelings too impatient. He was
9802 after her immediately. "She must not go, she must allow him five minutes
9803 longer," and he took her hand and led her back to her seat, and was in
9804 the middle of his farther explanation, before she had suspected for what
9805 she was detained. When she did understand it, however, and found herself
9806 expected to believe that she had created sensations which his heart had
9807 never known before, and that everything he had done for William was to
9808 be placed to the account of his excessive and unequalled attachment
9809 to her, she was exceedingly distressed, and for some moments unable
9810 to speak. She considered it all as nonsense, as mere trifling and
9811 gallantry, which meant only to deceive for the hour; she could not but
9812 feel that it was treating her improperly and unworthily, and in such a
9813 way as she had not deserved; but it was like himself, and entirely of a
9814 piece with what she had seen before; and she would not allow herself to
9815 shew half the displeasure she felt, because he had been conferring an
9816 obligation, which no want of delicacy on his part could make a trifle
9817 to her. While her heart was still bounding with joy and gratitude on
9818 William's behalf, she could not be severely resentful of anything that
9819 injured only herself; and after having twice drawn back her hand, and
9820 twice attempted in vain to turn away from him, she got up, and said
9821 only, with much agitation, "Don't, Mr. Crawford, pray don't! I beg you
9822 would not. This is a sort of talking which is very unpleasant to me. I
9823 must go away. I cannot bear it." But he was still talking on, describing
9824 his affection, soliciting a return, and, finally, in words so plain as
9825 to bear but one meaning even to her, offering himself, hand, fortune,
9826 everything, to her acceptance. It was so; he had said it. Her
9827 astonishment and confusion increased; and though still not knowing
9828 how to suppose him serious, she could hardly stand. He pressed for an
9829 answer.
9830
9831 "No, no, no!" she cried, hiding her face. "This is all nonsense. Do not
9832 distress me. I can hear no more of this. Your kindness to William makes
9833 me more obliged to you than words can express; but I do not want, I
9834 cannot bear, I must not listen to such--No, no, don't think of me. But
9835 you are _not_ thinking of me. I know it is all nothing."
9836
9837 She had burst away from him, and at that moment Sir Thomas was heard
9838 speaking to a servant in his way towards the room they were in. It was
9839 no time for farther assurances or entreaty, though to part with her at
9840 a moment when her modesty alone seemed, to his sanguine and preassured
9841 mind, to stand in the way of the happiness he sought, was a cruel
9842 necessity. She rushed out at an opposite door from the one her uncle
9843 was approaching, and was walking up and down the East room in the
9844 utmost confusion of contrary feeling, before Sir Thomas's politeness
9845 or apologies were over, or he had reached the beginning of the joyful
9846 intelligence which his visitor came to communicate.
9847
9848 She was feeling, thinking, trembling about everything; agitated, happy,
9849 miserable, infinitely obliged, absolutely angry. It was all beyond
9850 belief! He was inexcusable, incomprehensible! But such were his habits
9851 that he could do nothing without a mixture of evil. He had previously
9852 made her the happiest of human beings, and now he had insulted--she knew
9853 not what to say, how to class, or how to regard it. She would not have
9854 him be serious, and yet what could excuse the use of such words and
9855 offers, if they meant but to trifle?
9856
9857 But William was a lieutenant. _That_ was a fact beyond a doubt, and
9858 without an alloy. She would think of it for ever and forget all the
9859 rest. Mr. Crawford would certainly never address her so again: he must
9860 have seen how unwelcome it was to her; and in that case, how gratefully
9861 she could esteem him for his friendship to William!
9862
9863 She would not stir farther from the East room than the head of the great
9864 staircase, till she had satisfied herself of Mr. Crawford's having left
9865 the house; but when convinced of his being gone, she was eager to go
9866 down and be with her uncle, and have all the happiness of his joy
9867 as well as her own, and all the benefit of his information or his
9868 conjectures as to what would now be William's destination. Sir Thomas
9869 was as joyful as she could desire, and very kind and communicative; and
9870 she had so comfortable a talk with him about William as to make her
9871 feel as if nothing had occurred to vex her, till she found, towards the
9872 close, that Mr. Crawford was engaged to return and dine there that
9873 very day. This was a most unwelcome hearing, for though he might think
9874 nothing of what had passed, it would be quite distressing to her to see
9875 him again so soon.
9876
9877 She tried to get the better of it; tried very hard, as the dinner hour
9878 approached, to feel and appear as usual; but it was quite impossible for
9879 her not to look most shy and uncomfortable when their visitor entered
9880 the room. She could not have supposed it in the power of any concurrence
9881 of circumstances to give her so many painful sensations on the first day
9882 of hearing of William's promotion.
9883
9884 Mr. Crawford was not only in the room--he was soon close to her. He
9885 had a note to deliver from his sister. Fanny could not look at him, but
9886 there was no consciousness of past folly in his voice. She opened her
9887 note immediately, glad to have anything to do, and happy, as she read
9888 it, to feel that the fidgetings of her aunt Norris, who was also to dine
9889 there, screened her a little from view.
9890
9891 "My dear Fanny,--for so I may now always call you, to the infinite
9892 relief of a tongue that has been stumbling at _Miss_ _Price_ for at
9893 least the last six weeks--I cannot let my brother go without sending you
9894 a few lines of general congratulation, and giving my most joyful consent
9895 and approval. Go on, my dear Fanny, and without fear; there can be no
9896 difficulties worth naming. I chuse to suppose that the assurance of my
9897 consent will be something; so you may smile upon him with your sweetest
9898 smiles this afternoon, and send him back to me even happier than he
9899 goes.--Yours affectionately, M. C."
9900
9901 These were not expressions to do Fanny any good; for though she read
9902 in too much haste and confusion to form the clearest judgment of Miss
9903 Crawford's meaning, it was evident that she meant to compliment her on
9904 her brother's attachment, and even to _appear_ to believe it serious.
9905 She did not know what to do, or what to think. There was wretchedness in
9906 the idea of its being serious; there was perplexity and agitation every
9907 way. She was distressed whenever Mr. Crawford spoke to her, and he spoke
9908 to her much too often; and she was afraid there was a something in his
9909 voice and manner in addressing her very different from what they were
9910 when he talked to the others. Her comfort in that day's dinner was
9911 quite destroyed: she could hardly eat anything; and when Sir Thomas
9912 good-humouredly observed that joy had taken away her appetite, she
9913 was ready to sink with shame, from the dread of Mr. Crawford's
9914 interpretation; for though nothing could have tempted her to turn
9915 her eyes to the right hand, where he sat, she felt that _his_ were
9916 immediately directed towards her.
9917
9918 She was more silent than ever. She would hardly join even when William
9919 was the subject, for his commission came all from the right hand too,
9920 and there was pain in the connexion.
9921
9922 She thought Lady Bertram sat longer than ever, and began to be in
9923 despair of ever getting away; but at last they were in the drawing-room,
9924 and she was able to think as she would, while her aunts finished the
9925 subject of William's appointment in their own style.
9926
9927 Mrs. Norris seemed as much delighted with the saving it would be to
9928 Sir Thomas as with any part of it. "_Now_ William would be able to keep
9929 himself, which would make a vast difference to his uncle, for it was
9930 unknown how much he had cost his uncle; and, indeed, it would make some
9931 difference in _her_ presents too. She was very glad that she had given
9932 William what she did at parting, very glad, indeed, that it had been in
9933 her power, without material inconvenience, just at that time to give him
9934 something rather considerable; that is, for _her_, with _her_ limited
9935 means, for now it would all be useful in helping to fit up his cabin.
9936 She knew he must be at some expense, that he would have many things to
9937 buy, though to be sure his father and mother would be able to put him in
9938 the way of getting everything very cheap; but she was very glad she had
9939 contributed her mite towards it."
9940
9941 "I am glad you gave him something considerable," said Lady Bertram, with
9942 most unsuspicious calmness, "for _I_ gave him only 10 pounds."
9943
9944 "Indeed!" cried Mrs. Norris, reddening. "Upon my word, he must have gone
9945 off with his pockets well lined, and at no expense for his journey to
9946 London either!"
9947
9948 "Sir Thomas told me 10 pounds would be enough."
9949
9950 Mrs. Norris, being not at all inclined to question its sufficiency,
9951 began to take the matter in another point.
9952
9953 "It is amazing," said she, "how much young people cost their friends,
9954 what with bringing them up and putting them out in the world! They
9955 little think how much it comes to, or what their parents, or their
9956 uncles and aunts, pay for them in the course of the year. Now, here are
9957 my sister Price's children; take them all together, I dare say nobody
9958 would believe what a sum they cost Sir Thomas every year, to say nothing
9959 of what _I_ do for them."
9960
9961 "Very true, sister, as you say. But, poor things! they cannot help
9962 it; and you know it makes very little difference to Sir Thomas. Fanny,
9963 William must not forget my shawl if he goes to the East Indies; and I
9964 shall give him a commission for anything else that is worth having. I
9965 wish he may go to the East Indies, that I may have my shawl. I think I
9966 will have two shawls, Fanny."
9967
9968 Fanny, meanwhile, speaking only when she could not help it, was very
9969 earnestly trying to understand what Mr. and Miss Crawford were at. There
9970 was everything in the world _against_ their being serious but his words
9971 and manner. Everything natural, probable, reasonable, was against it;
9972 all their habits and ways of thinking, and all her own demerits. How
9973 could _she_ have excited serious attachment in a man who had seen so
9974 many, and been admired by so many, and flirted with so many, infinitely
9975 her superiors; who seemed so little open to serious impressions, even
9976 where pains had been taken to please him; who thought so slightly, so
9977 carelessly, so unfeelingly on all such points; who was everything to
9978 everybody, and seemed to find no one essential to him? And farther,
9979 how could it be supposed that his sister, with all her high and worldly
9980 notions of matrimony, would be forwarding anything of a serious nature
9981 in such a quarter? Nothing could be more unnatural in either. Fanny
9982 was ashamed of her own doubts. Everything might be possible rather than
9983 serious attachment, or serious approbation of it toward her. She had
9984 quite convinced herself of this before Sir Thomas and Mr. Crawford
9985 joined them. The difficulty was in maintaining the conviction quite so
9986 absolutely after Mr. Crawford was in the room; for once or twice a
9987 look seemed forced on her which she did not know how to class among the
9988 common meaning; in any other man, at least, she would have said that
9989 it meant something very earnest, very pointed. But she still tried to
9990 believe it no more than what he might often have expressed towards her
9991 cousins and fifty other women.
9992
9993 She thought he was wishing to speak to her unheard by the rest. She
9994 fancied he was trying for it the whole evening at intervals, whenever
9995 Sir Thomas was out of the room, or at all engaged with Mrs. Norris, and
9996 she carefully refused him every opportunity.
9997
9998 At last--it seemed an at last to Fanny's nervousness, though not
9999 remarkably late--he began to talk of going away; but the comfort of the
10000 sound was impaired by his turning to her the next moment, and saying,
10001 "Have you nothing to send to Mary? No answer to her note? She will be
10002 disappointed if she receives nothing from you. Pray write to her, if it
10003 be only a line."
10004
10005 "Oh yes! certainly," cried Fanny, rising in haste, the haste of
10006 embarrassment and of wanting to get away--"I will write directly."
10007
10008 She went accordingly to the table, where she was in the habit of writing
10009 for her aunt, and prepared her materials without knowing what in the
10010 world to say. She had read Miss Crawford's note only once, and how to
10011 reply to anything so imperfectly understood was most distressing.
10012 Quite unpractised in such sort of note-writing, had there been time for
10013 scruples and fears as to style she would have felt them in abundance:
10014 but something must be instantly written; and with only one decided
10015 feeling, that of wishing not to appear to think anything really
10016 intended, she wrote thus, in great trembling both of spirits and hand--
10017
10018 "I am very much obliged to you, my dear Miss Crawford, for your kind
10019 congratulations, as far as they relate to my dearest William. The rest
10020 of your note I know means nothing; but I am so unequal to anything of
10021 the sort, that I hope you will excuse my begging you to take no farther
10022 notice. I have seen too much of Mr. Crawford not to understand his
10023 manners; if he understood me as well, he would, I dare say, behave
10024 differently. I do not know what I write, but it would be a great favour
10025 of you never to mention the subject again. With thanks for the honour of
10026 your note, I remain, dear Miss Crawford, etc., etc."
10027
10028 The conclusion was scarcely intelligible from increasing fright, for
10029 she found that Mr. Crawford, under pretence of receiving the note, was
10030 coming towards her.
10031
10032 "You cannot think I mean to hurry you," said he, in an undervoice,
10033 perceiving the amazing trepidation with which she made up the note, "you
10034 cannot think I have any such object. Do not hurry yourself, I entreat."
10035
10036 "Oh! I thank you; I have quite done, just done; it will be ready in a
10037 moment; I am very much obliged to you; if you will be so good as to give
10038 _that_ to Miss Crawford."
10039
10040 The note was held out, and must be taken; and as she instantly and with
10041 averted eyes walked towards the fireplace, where sat the others, he had
10042 nothing to do but to go in good earnest.
10043
10044 Fanny thought she had never known a day of greater agitation, both of
10045 pain and pleasure; but happily the pleasure was not of a sort to die
10046 with the day; for every day would restore the knowledge of William's
10047 advancement, whereas the pain, she hoped, would return no more. She had
10048 no doubt that her note must appear excessively ill-written, that
10049 the language would disgrace a child, for her distress had allowed no
10050 arrangement; but at least it would assure them both of her being neither
10051 imposed on nor gratified by Mr. Crawford's attentions.
10052
10053
10054
10055 CHAPTER XXXII
10056
10057 Fanny had by no means forgotten Mr. Crawford when she awoke the next
10058 morning; but she remembered the purport of her note, and was not less
10059 sanguine as to its effect than she had been the night before. If Mr.
10060 Crawford would but go away! That was what she most earnestly desired:
10061 go and take his sister with him, as he was to do, and as he returned to
10062 Mansfield on purpose to do. And why it was not done already she could
10063 not devise, for Miss Crawford certainly wanted no delay. Fanny had
10064 hoped, in the course of his yesterday's visit, to hear the day named;
10065 but he had only spoken of their journey as what would take place ere
10066 long.
10067
10068 Having so satisfactorily settled the conviction her note would convey,
10069 she could not but be astonished to see Mr. Crawford, as she accidentally
10070 did, coming up to the house again, and at an hour as early as the day
10071 before. His coming might have nothing to do with her, but she must avoid
10072 seeing him if possible; and being then on her way upstairs, she resolved
10073 there to remain, during the whole of his visit, unless actually sent
10074 for; and as Mrs. Norris was still in the house, there seemed little
10075 danger of her being wanted.
10076
10077 She sat some time in a good deal of agitation, listening, trembling, and
10078 fearing to be sent for every moment; but as no footsteps approached the
10079 East room, she grew gradually composed, could sit down, and be able to
10080 employ herself, and able to hope that Mr. Crawford had come and would go
10081 without her being obliged to know anything of the matter.
10082
10083 Nearly half an hour had passed, and she was growing very comfortable,
10084 when suddenly the sound of a step in regular approach was heard; a heavy
10085 step, an unusual step in that part of the house: it was her uncle's; she
10086 knew it as well as his voice; she had trembled at it as often, and began
10087 to tremble again, at the idea of his coming up to speak to her, whatever
10088 might be the subject. It was indeed Sir Thomas who opened the door and
10089 asked if she were there, and if he might come in. The terror of his
10090 former occasional visits to that room seemed all renewed, and she felt
10091 as if he were going to examine her again in French and English.
10092
10093 She was all attention, however, in placing a chair for him, and trying
10094 to appear honoured; and, in her agitation, had quite overlooked the
10095 deficiencies of her apartment, till he, stopping short as he entered,
10096 said, with much surprise, "Why have you no fire to-day?"
10097
10098 There was snow on the ground, and she was sitting in a shawl. She
10099 hesitated.
10100
10101 "I am not cold, sir: I never sit here long at this time of year."
10102
10103 "But you have a fire in general?"
10104
10105 "No, sir."
10106
10107 "How comes this about? Here must be some mistake. I understood that you
10108 had the use of this room by way of making you perfectly comfortable.
10109 In your bedchamber I know you _cannot_ have a fire. Here is some great
10110 misapprehension which must be rectified. It is highly unfit for you to
10111 sit, be it only half an hour a day, without a fire. You are not strong.
10112 You are chilly. Your aunt cannot be aware of this."
10113
10114 Fanny would rather have been silent; but being obliged to speak, she
10115 could not forbear, in justice to the aunt she loved best, from saying
10116 something in which the words "my aunt Norris" were distinguishable.
10117
10118 "I understand," cried her uncle, recollecting himself, and not wanting
10119 to hear more: "I understand. Your aunt Norris has always been an
10120 advocate, and very judiciously, for young people's being brought up
10121 without unnecessary indulgences; but there should be moderation in
10122 everything. She is also very hardy herself, which of course will
10123 influence her in her opinion of the wants of others. And on another
10124 account, too, I can perfectly comprehend. I know what her sentiments
10125 have always been. The principle was good in itself, but it may have
10126 been, and I believe _has_ _been_, carried too far in your case. I
10127 am aware that there has been sometimes, in some points, a misplaced
10128 distinction; but I think too well of you, Fanny, to suppose you will
10129 ever harbour resentment on that account. You have an understanding
10130 which will prevent you from receiving things only in part, and judging
10131 partially by the event. You will take in the whole of the past, you
10132 will consider times, persons, and probabilities, and you will feel that
10133 _they_ were not least your friends who were educating and preparing you
10134 for that mediocrity of condition which _seemed_ to be your lot. Though
10135 their caution may prove eventually unnecessary, it was kindly meant; and
10136 of this you may be assured, that every advantage of affluence will be
10137 doubled by the little privations and restrictions that may have been
10138 imposed. I am sure you will not disappoint my opinion of you, by failing
10139 at any time to treat your aunt Norris with the respect and attention
10140 that are due to her. But enough of this. Sit down, my dear. I must speak
10141 to you for a few minutes, but I will not detain you long."
10142
10143 Fanny obeyed, with eyes cast down and colour rising. After a moment's
10144 pause, Sir Thomas, trying to suppress a smile, went on.
10145
10146 "You are not aware, perhaps, that I have had a visitor this morning. I
10147 had not been long in my own room, after breakfast, when Mr. Crawford was
10148 shewn in. His errand you may probably conjecture."
10149
10150 Fanny's colour grew deeper and deeper; and her uncle, perceiving that
10151 she was embarrassed to a degree that made either speaking or looking
10152 up quite impossible, turned away his own eyes, and without any farther
10153 pause proceeded in his account of Mr. Crawford's visit.
10154
10155 Mr. Crawford's business had been to declare himself the lover of Fanny,
10156 make decided proposals for her, and entreat the sanction of the uncle,
10157 who seemed to stand in the place of her parents; and he had done it all
10158 so well, so openly, so liberally, so properly, that Sir Thomas, feeling,
10159 moreover, his own replies, and his own remarks to have been very much
10160 to the purpose, was exceedingly happy to give the particulars of their
10161 conversation; and little aware of what was passing in his niece's mind,
10162 conceived that by such details he must be gratifying her far more than
10163 himself. He talked, therefore, for several minutes without Fanny's
10164 daring to interrupt him. She had hardly even attained the wish to do it.
10165 Her mind was in too much confusion. She had changed her position; and,
10166 with her eyes fixed intently on one of the windows, was listening to her
10167 uncle in the utmost perturbation and dismay. For a moment he ceased, but
10168 she had barely become conscious of it, when, rising from his chair, he
10169 said, "And now, Fanny, having performed one part of my commission,
10170 and shewn you everything placed on a basis the most assured and
10171 satisfactory, I may execute the remainder by prevailing on you to
10172 accompany me downstairs, where, though I cannot but presume on having
10173 been no unacceptable companion myself, I must submit to your finding
10174 one still better worth listening to. Mr. Crawford, as you have perhaps
10175 foreseen, is yet in the house. He is in my room, and hoping to see you
10176 there."
10177
10178 There was a look, a start, an exclamation on hearing this, which
10179 astonished Sir Thomas; but what was his increase of astonishment on
10180 hearing her exclaim--"Oh! no, sir, I cannot, indeed I cannot go down to
10181 him. Mr. Crawford ought to know--he must know that: I told him enough
10182 yesterday to convince him; he spoke to me on this subject yesterday,
10183 and I told him without disguise that it was very disagreeable to me, and
10184 quite out of my power to return his good opinion."
10185
10186 "I do not catch your meaning," said Sir Thomas, sitting down again. "Out
10187 of your power to return his good opinion? What is all this? I know he
10188 spoke to you yesterday, and (as far as I understand) received as much
10189 encouragement to proceed as a well-judging young woman could permit
10190 herself to give. I was very much pleased with what I collected to have
10191 been your behaviour on the occasion; it shewed a discretion highly to
10192 be commended. But now, when he has made his overtures so properly, and
10193 honourably--what are your scruples _now_?"
10194
10195 "You are mistaken, sir," cried Fanny, forced by the anxiety of the
10196 moment even to tell her uncle that he was wrong; "you are quite
10197 mistaken. How could Mr. Crawford say such a thing? I gave him no
10198 encouragement yesterday. On the contrary, I told him, I cannot recollect
10199 my exact words, but I am sure I told him that I would not listen to him,
10200 that it was very unpleasant to me in every respect, and that I begged
10201 him never to talk to me in that manner again. I am sure I said as much
10202 as that and more; and I should have said still more, if I had been quite
10203 certain of his meaning anything seriously; but I did not like to be, I
10204 could not bear to be, imputing more than might be intended. I thought it
10205 might all pass for nothing with _him_."
10206
10207 She could say no more; her breath was almost gone.
10208
10209 "Am I to understand," said Sir Thomas, after a few moments' silence,
10210 "that you mean to _refuse_ Mr. Crawford?"
10211
10212 "Yes, sir."
10213
10214 "Refuse him?"
10215
10216 "Yes, sir."
10217
10218 "Refuse Mr. Crawford! Upon what plea? For what reason?"
10219
10220 "I--I cannot like him, sir, well enough to marry him."
10221
10222 "This is very strange!" said Sir Thomas, in a voice of calm displeasure.
10223 "There is something in this which my comprehension does not reach. Here
10224 is a young man wishing to pay his addresses to you, with everything to
10225 recommend him: not merely situation in life, fortune, and character,
10226 but with more than common agreeableness, with address and conversation
10227 pleasing to everybody. And he is not an acquaintance of to-day; you have
10228 now known him some time. His sister, moreover, is your intimate friend,
10229 and he has been doing _that_ for your brother, which I should suppose
10230 would have been almost sufficient recommendation to you, had there been
10231 no other. It is very uncertain when my interest might have got William
10232 on. He has done it already."
10233
10234 "Yes," said Fanny, in a faint voice, and looking down with fresh shame;
10235 and she did feel almost ashamed of herself, after such a picture as her
10236 uncle had drawn, for not liking Mr. Crawford.
10237
10238 "You must have been aware," continued Sir Thomas presently, "you must
10239 have been some time aware of a particularity in Mr. Crawford's manners
10240 to you. This cannot have taken you by surprise. You must have observed
10241 his attentions; and though you always received them very properly (I
10242 have no accusation to make on that head), I never perceived them to be
10243 unpleasant to you. I am half inclined to think, Fanny, that you do not
10244 quite know your own feelings."
10245
10246 "Oh yes, sir! indeed I do. His attentions were always--what I did not
10247 like."
10248
10249 Sir Thomas looked at her with deeper surprise. "This is beyond me,"
10250 said he. "This requires explanation. Young as you are, and having seen
10251 scarcely any one, it is hardly possible that your affections--"
10252
10253 He paused and eyed her fixedly. He saw her lips formed into a _no_,
10254 though the sound was inarticulate, but her face was like scarlet. That,
10255 however, in so modest a girl, might be very compatible with innocence;
10256 and chusing at least to appear satisfied, he quickly added, "No, no, I
10257 know _that_ is quite out of the question; quite impossible. Well, there
10258 is nothing more to be said."
10259
10260 And for a few minutes he did say nothing. He was deep in thought. His
10261 niece was deep in thought likewise, trying to harden and prepare herself
10262 against farther questioning. She would rather die than own the truth;
10263 and she hoped, by a little reflection, to fortify herself beyond
10264 betraying it.
10265
10266 "Independently of the interest which Mr. Crawford's _choice_ seemed to
10267 justify" said Sir Thomas, beginning again, and very composedly, "his
10268 wishing to marry at all so early is recommendatory to me. I am an
10269 advocate for early marriages, where there are means in proportion, and
10270 would have every young man, with a sufficient income, settle as soon
10271 after four-and-twenty as he can. This is so much my opinion, that I am
10272 sorry to think how little likely my own eldest son, your cousin, Mr.
10273 Bertram, is to marry early; but at present, as far as I can judge,
10274 matrimony makes no part of his plans or thoughts. I wish he were more
10275 likely to fix." Here was a glance at Fanny. "Edmund, I consider, from
10276 his dispositions and habits, as much more likely to marry early than
10277 his brother. _He_, indeed, I have lately thought, has seen the woman he
10278 could love, which, I am convinced, my eldest son has not. Am I right? Do
10279 you agree with me, my dear?"
10280
10281 "Yes, sir."
10282
10283 It was gently, but it was calmly said, and Sir Thomas was easy on the
10284 score of the cousins. But the removal of his alarm did his niece
10285 no service: as her unaccountableness was confirmed his displeasure
10286 increased; and getting up and walking about the room with a frown, which
10287 Fanny could picture to herself, though she dared not lift up her eyes,
10288 he shortly afterwards, and in a voice of authority, said, "Have you any
10289 reason, child, to think ill of Mr. Crawford's temper?"
10290
10291 "No, sir."
10292
10293 She longed to add, "But of his principles I have"; but her heart sunk
10294 under the appalling prospect of discussion, explanation, and probably
10295 non-conviction. Her ill opinion of him was founded chiefly on
10296 observations, which, for her cousins' sake, she could scarcely dare
10297 mention to their father. Maria and Julia, and especially Maria, were so
10298 closely implicated in Mr. Crawford's misconduct, that she could not give
10299 his character, such as she believed it, without betraying them. She had
10300 hoped that, to a man like her uncle, so discerning, so honourable, so
10301 good, the simple acknowledgment of settled _dislike_ on her side would
10302 have been sufficient. To her infinite grief she found it was not.
10303
10304 Sir Thomas came towards the table where she sat in trembling
10305 wretchedness, and with a good deal of cold sternness, said, "It is of no
10306 use, I perceive, to talk to you. We had better put an end to this most
10307 mortifying conference. Mr. Crawford must not be kept longer waiting. I
10308 will, therefore, only add, as thinking it my duty to mark my opinion of
10309 your conduct, that you have disappointed every expectation I had formed,
10310 and proved yourself of a character the very reverse of what I had
10311 supposed. For I _had_, Fanny, as I think my behaviour must have shewn,
10312 formed a very favourable opinion of you from the period of my return to
10313 England. I had thought you peculiarly free from wilfulness of temper,
10314 self-conceit, and every tendency to that independence of spirit which
10315 prevails so much in modern days, even in young women, and which in young
10316 women is offensive and disgusting beyond all common offence. But you
10317 have now shewn me that you can be wilful and perverse; that you can and
10318 will decide for yourself, without any consideration or deference for
10319 those who have surely some right to guide you, without even asking their
10320 advice. You have shewn yourself very, very different from anything that
10321 I had imagined. The advantage or disadvantage of your family, of your
10322 parents, your brothers and sisters, never seems to have had a moment's
10323 share in your thoughts on this occasion. How _they_ might be benefited,
10324 how _they_ must rejoice in such an establishment for you, is nothing to
10325 _you_. You think only of yourself, and because you do not feel for Mr.
10326 Crawford exactly what a young heated fancy imagines to be necessary for
10327 happiness, you resolve to refuse him at once, without wishing even for
10328 a little time to consider of it, a little more time for cool
10329 consideration, and for really examining your own inclinations; and are,
10330 in a wild fit of folly, throwing away from you such an opportunity of
10331 being settled in life, eligibly, honourably, nobly settled, as will,
10332 probably, never occur to you again. Here is a young man of sense, of
10333 character, of temper, of manners, and of fortune, exceedingly attached
10334 to you, and seeking your hand in the most handsome and disinterested
10335 way; and let me tell you, Fanny, that you may live eighteen years longer
10336 in the world without being addressed by a man of half Mr. Crawford's
10337 estate, or a tenth part of his merits. Gladly would I have bestowed
10338 either of my own daughters on him. Maria is nobly married; but had
10339 Mr. Crawford sought Julia's hand, I should have given it to him with
10340 superior and more heartfelt satisfaction than I gave Maria's to Mr.
10341 Rushworth." After half a moment's pause: "And I should have been very
10342 much surprised had either of my daughters, on receiving a proposal
10343 of marriage at any time which might carry with it only _half_ the
10344 eligibility of _this_, immediately and peremptorily, and without paying
10345 my opinion or my regard the compliment of any consultation, put a
10346 decided negative on it. I should have been much surprised and much hurt
10347 by such a proceeding. I should have thought it a gross violation of duty
10348 and respect. _You_ are not to be judged by the same rule. You do not
10349 owe me the duty of a child. But, Fanny, if your heart can acquit you of
10350 _ingratitude_--"
10351
10352 He ceased. Fanny was by this time crying so bitterly that, angry as he
10353 was, he would not press that article farther. Her heart was almost broke
10354 by such a picture of what she appeared to him; by such accusations,
10355 so heavy, so multiplied, so rising in dreadful gradation! Self-willed,
10356 obstinate, selfish, and ungrateful. He thought her all this. She had
10357 deceived his expectations; she had lost his good opinion. What was to
10358 become of her?
10359
10360 "I am very sorry," said she inarticulately, through her tears, "I am
10361 very sorry indeed."
10362
10363 "Sorry! yes, I hope you are sorry; and you will probably have reason to
10364 be long sorry for this day's transactions."
10365
10366 "If it were possible for me to do otherwise" said she, with another
10367 strong effort; "but I am so perfectly convinced that I could never make
10368 him happy, and that I should be miserable myself."
10369
10370 Another burst of tears; but in spite of that burst, and in spite of that
10371 great black word _miserable_, which served to introduce it, Sir Thomas
10372 began to think a little relenting, a little change of inclination, might
10373 have something to do with it; and to augur favourably from the personal
10374 entreaty of the young man himself. He knew her to be very timid, and
10375 exceedingly nervous; and thought it not improbable that her mind
10376 might be in such a state as a little time, a little pressing, a little
10377 patience, and a little impatience, a judicious mixture of all on the
10378 lover's side, might work their usual effect on. If the gentleman would
10379 but persevere, if he had but love enough to persevere, Sir Thomas began
10380 to have hopes; and these reflections having passed across his mind and
10381 cheered it, "Well," said he, in a tone of becoming gravity, but of less
10382 anger, "well, child, dry up your tears. There is no use in these tears;
10383 they can do no good. You must now come downstairs with me. Mr. Crawford
10384 has been kept waiting too long already. You must give him your own
10385 answer: we cannot expect him to be satisfied with less; and you only
10386 can explain to him the grounds of that misconception of your sentiments,
10387 which, unfortunately for himself, he certainly has imbibed. I am totally
10388 unequal to it."
10389
10390 But Fanny shewed such reluctance, such misery, at the idea of going down
10391 to him, that Sir Thomas, after a little consideration, judged it better
10392 to indulge her. His hopes from both gentleman and lady suffered a small
10393 depression in consequence; but when he looked at his niece, and saw the
10394 state of feature and complexion which her crying had brought her
10395 into, he thought there might be as much lost as gained by an immediate
10396 interview. With a few words, therefore, of no particular meaning, he
10397 walked off by himself, leaving his poor niece to sit and cry over what
10398 had passed, with very wretched feelings.
10399
10400 Her mind was all disorder. The past, present, future, everything was
10401 terrible. But her uncle's anger gave her the severest pain of all.
10402 Selfish and ungrateful! to have appeared so to him! She was miserable
10403 for ever. She had no one to take her part, to counsel, or speak for her.
10404 Her only friend was absent. He might have softened his father; but all,
10405 perhaps all, would think her selfish and ungrateful. She might have to
10406 endure the reproach again and again; she might hear it, or see it, or
10407 know it to exist for ever in every connexion about her. She could not
10408 but feel some resentment against Mr. Crawford; yet, if he really loved
10409 her, and were unhappy too! It was all wretchedness together.
10410
10411 In about a quarter of an hour her uncle returned; she was almost
10412 ready to faint at the sight of him. He spoke calmly, however, without
10413 austerity, without reproach, and she revived a little. There was
10414 comfort, too, in his words, as well as his manner, for he began with,
10415 "Mr. Crawford is gone: he has just left me. I need not repeat what has
10416 passed. I do not want to add to anything you may now be feeling, by an
10417 account of what he has felt. Suffice it, that he has behaved in the
10418 most gentlemanlike and generous manner, and has confirmed me in a most
10419 favourable opinion of his understanding, heart, and temper. Upon my
10420 representation of what you were suffering, he immediately, and with the
10421 greatest delicacy, ceased to urge to see you for the present."
10422
10423 Here Fanny, who had looked up, looked down again. "Of course," continued
10424 her uncle, "it cannot be supposed but that he should request to speak
10425 with you alone, be it only for five minutes; a request too natural,
10426 a claim too just to be denied. But there is no time fixed; perhaps
10427 to-morrow, or whenever your spirits are composed enough. For the present
10428 you have only to tranquillise yourself. Check these tears; they do but
10429 exhaust you. If, as I am willing to suppose, you wish to shew me any
10430 observance, you will not give way to these emotions, but endeavour to
10431 reason yourself into a stronger frame of mind. I advise you to go out:
10432 the air will do you good; go out for an hour on the gravel; you will
10433 have the shrubbery to yourself, and will be the better for air and
10434 exercise. And, Fanny" (turning back again for a moment), "I shall make
10435 no mention below of what has passed; I shall not even tell your aunt
10436 Bertram. There is no occasion for spreading the disappointment; say
10437 nothing about it yourself."
10438
10439 This was an order to be most joyfully obeyed; this was an act of
10440 kindness which Fanny felt at her heart. To be spared from her aunt
10441 Norris's interminable reproaches! he left her in a glow of gratitude.
10442 Anything might be bearable rather than such reproaches. Even to see Mr.
10443 Crawford would be less overpowering.
10444
10445 She walked out directly, as her uncle recommended, and followed his
10446 advice throughout, as far as she could; did check her tears; did
10447 earnestly try to compose her spirits and strengthen her mind. She wished
10448 to prove to him that she did desire his comfort, and sought to regain
10449 his favour; and he had given her another strong motive for exertion, in
10450 keeping the whole affair from the knowledge of her aunts. Not to excite
10451 suspicion by her look or manner was now an object worth attaining; and
10452 she felt equal to almost anything that might save her from her aunt
10453 Norris.
10454
10455 She was struck, quite struck, when, on returning from her walk and going
10456 into the East room again, the first thing which caught her eye was a
10457 fire lighted and burning. A fire! it seemed too much; just at that time
10458 to be giving her such an indulgence was exciting even painful gratitude.
10459 She wondered that Sir Thomas could have leisure to think of such a
10460 trifle again; but she soon found, from the voluntary information of the
10461 housemaid, who came in to attend it, that so it was to be every day. Sir
10462 Thomas had given orders for it.
10463
10464 "I must be a brute, indeed, if I can be really ungrateful!" said she, in
10465 soliloquy. "Heaven defend me from being ungrateful!"
10466
10467 She saw nothing more of her uncle, nor of her aunt Norris, till they met
10468 at dinner. Her uncle's behaviour to her was then as nearly as possible
10469 what it had been before; she was sure he did not mean there should be
10470 any change, and that it was only her own conscience that could fancy
10471 any; but her aunt was soon quarrelling with her; and when she found how
10472 much and how unpleasantly her having only walked out without her aunt's
10473 knowledge could be dwelt on, she felt all the reason she had to bless
10474 the kindness which saved her from the same spirit of reproach, exerted
10475 on a more momentous subject.
10476
10477 "If I had known you were going out, I should have got you just to go
10478 as far as my house with some orders for Nanny," said she, "which I have
10479 since, to my very great inconvenience, been obliged to go and carry
10480 myself. I could very ill spare the time, and you might have saved me the
10481 trouble, if you would only have been so good as to let us know you were
10482 going out. It would have made no difference to you, I suppose, whether
10483 you had walked in the shrubbery or gone to my house."
10484
10485 "I recommended the shrubbery to Fanny as the driest place," said Sir
10486 Thomas.
10487
10488 "Oh!" said Mrs. Norris, with a moment's check, "that was very kind of
10489 you, Sir Thomas; but you do not know how dry the path is to my house.
10490 Fanny would have had quite as good a walk there, I assure you, with the
10491 advantage of being of some use, and obliging her aunt: it is all her
10492 fault. If she would but have let us know she was going out but there is
10493 a something about Fanny, I have often observed it before--she likes to
10494 go her own way to work; she does not like to be dictated to; she takes
10495 her own independent walk whenever she can; she certainly has a little
10496 spirit of secrecy, and independence, and nonsense, about her, which I
10497 would advise her to get the better of."
10498
10499 As a general reflection on Fanny, Sir Thomas thought nothing could be
10500 more unjust, though he had been so lately expressing the same sentiments
10501 himself, and he tried to turn the conversation: tried repeatedly
10502 before he could succeed; for Mrs. Norris had not discernment enough to
10503 perceive, either now, or at any other time, to what degree he thought
10504 well of his niece, or how very far he was from wishing to have his own
10505 children's merits set off by the depreciation of hers. She was talking
10506 _at_ Fanny, and resenting this private walk half through the dinner.
10507
10508 It was over, however, at last; and the evening set in with more
10509 composure to Fanny, and more cheerfulness of spirits than she could
10510 have hoped for after so stormy a morning; but she trusted, in the first
10511 place, that she had done right: that her judgment had not misled her.
10512 For the purity of her intentions she could answer; and she was willing
10513 to hope, secondly, that her uncle's displeasure was abating, and would
10514 abate farther as he considered the matter with more impartiality, and
10515 felt, as a good man must feel, how wretched, and how unpardonable, how
10516 hopeless, and how wicked it was to marry without affection.
10517
10518 When the meeting with which she was threatened for the morrow was past,
10519 she could not but flatter herself that the subject would be finally
10520 concluded, and Mr. Crawford once gone from Mansfield, that everything
10521 would soon be as if no such subject had existed. She would not, could
10522 not believe, that Mr. Crawford's affection for her could distress him
10523 long; his mind was not of that sort. London would soon bring its cure.
10524 In London he would soon learn to wonder at his infatuation, and be
10525 thankful for the right reason in her which had saved him from its evil
10526 consequences.
10527
10528 While Fanny's mind was engaged in these sort of hopes, her uncle was,
10529 soon after tea, called out of the room; an occurrence too common to
10530 strike her, and she thought nothing of it till the butler reappeared ten
10531 minutes afterwards, and advancing decidedly towards herself, said,
10532 "Sir Thomas wishes to speak with you, ma'am, in his own room." Then it
10533 occurred to her what might be going on; a suspicion rushed over her mind
10534 which drove the colour from her cheeks; but instantly rising, she was
10535 preparing to obey, when Mrs. Norris called out, "Stay, stay, Fanny! what
10536 are you about? where are you going? don't be in such a hurry. Depend
10537 upon it, it is not you who are wanted; depend upon it, it is me"
10538 (looking at the butler); "but you are so very eager to put yourself
10539 forward. What should Sir Thomas want you for? It is me, Baddeley, you
10540 mean; I am coming this moment. You mean me, Baddeley, I am sure; Sir
10541 Thomas wants me, not Miss Price."
10542
10543 But Baddeley was stout. "No, ma'am, it is Miss Price; I am certain of
10544 its being Miss Price." And there was a half-smile with the words, which
10545 meant, "I do not think you would answer the purpose at all."
10546
10547 Mrs. Norris, much discontented, was obliged to compose herself to work
10548 again; and Fanny, walking off in agitating consciousness, found herself,
10549 as she anticipated, in another minute alone with Mr. Crawford.
10550
10551
10552
10553 CHAPTER XXXIII
10554
10555 The conference was neither so short nor so conclusive as the lady had
10556 designed. The gentleman was not so easily satisfied. He had all the
10557 disposition to persevere that Sir Thomas could wish him. He had vanity,
10558 which strongly inclined him in the first place to think she did love
10559 him, though she might not know it herself; and which, secondly, when
10560 constrained at last to admit that she did know her own present feelings,
10561 convinced him that he should be able in time to make those feelings what
10562 he wished.
10563
10564 He was in love, very much in love; and it was a love which, operating
10565 on an active, sanguine spirit, of more warmth than delicacy, made her
10566 affection appear of greater consequence because it was withheld, and
10567 determined him to have the glory, as well as the felicity, of forcing
10568 her to love him.
10569
10570 He would not despair: he would not desist. He had every well-grounded
10571 reason for solid attachment; he knew her to have all the worth that
10572 could justify the warmest hopes of lasting happiness with her; her
10573 conduct at this very time, by speaking the disinterestedness and
10574 delicacy of her character (qualities which he believed most rare
10575 indeed), was of a sort to heighten all his wishes, and confirm all his
10576 resolutions. He knew not that he had a pre-engaged heart to attack.
10577 Of _that_ he had no suspicion. He considered her rather as one who
10578 had never thought on the subject enough to be in danger; who had been
10579 guarded by youth, a youth of mind as lovely as of person; whose modesty
10580 had prevented her from understanding his attentions, and who was still
10581 overpowered by the suddenness of addresses so wholly unexpected, and the
10582 novelty of a situation which her fancy had never taken into account.
10583
10584 Must it not follow of course, that, when he was understood, he should
10585 succeed? He believed it fully. Love such as his, in a man like himself,
10586 must with perseverance secure a return, and at no great distance; and
10587 he had so much delight in the idea of obliging her to love him in a very
10588 short time, that her not loving him now was scarcely regretted. A little
10589 difficulty to be overcome was no evil to Henry Crawford. He rather
10590 derived spirits from it. He had been apt to gain hearts too easily. His
10591 situation was new and animating.
10592
10593 To Fanny, however, who had known too much opposition all her life to
10594 find any charm in it, all this was unintelligible. She found that he did
10595 mean to persevere; but how he could, after such language from her as she
10596 felt herself obliged to use, was not to be understood. She told him that
10597 she did not love him, could not love him, was sure she never should love
10598 him; that such a change was quite impossible; that the subject was most
10599 painful to her; that she must entreat him never to mention it again, to
10600 allow her to leave him at once, and let it be considered as concluded
10601 for ever. And when farther pressed, had added, that in her opinion their
10602 dispositions were so totally dissimilar as to make mutual affection
10603 incompatible; and that they were unfitted for each other by nature,
10604 education, and habit. All this she had said, and with the earnestness
10605 of sincerity; yet this was not enough, for he immediately denied there
10606 being anything uncongenial in their characters, or anything unfriendly
10607 in their situations; and positively declared, that he would still love,
10608 and still hope!
10609
10610 Fanny knew her own meaning, but was no judge of her own manner. Her
10611 manner was incurably gentle; and she was not aware how much it concealed
10612 the sternness of her purpose. Her diffidence, gratitude, and softness
10613 made every expression of indifference seem almost an effort of
10614 self-denial; seem, at least, to be giving nearly as much pain to herself
10615 as to him. Mr. Crawford was no longer the Mr. Crawford who, as the
10616 clandestine, insidious, treacherous admirer of Maria Bertram, had been
10617 her abhorrence, whom she had hated to see or to speak to, in whom she
10618 could believe no good quality to exist, and whose power, even of being
10619 agreeable, she had barely acknowledged. He was now the Mr. Crawford who
10620 was addressing herself with ardent, disinterested love; whose feelings
10621 were apparently become all that was honourable and upright, whose views
10622 of happiness were all fixed on a marriage of attachment; who was
10623 pouring out his sense of her merits, describing and describing again his
10624 affection, proving as far as words could prove it, and in the language,
10625 tone, and spirit of a man of talent too, that he sought her for her
10626 gentleness and her goodness; and to complete the whole, he was now the
10627 Mr. Crawford who had procured William's promotion!
10628
10629 Here was a change, and here were claims which could not but operate!
10630 She might have disdained him in all the dignity of angry virtue, in
10631 the grounds of Sotherton, or the theatre at Mansfield Park; but he
10632 approached her now with rights that demanded different treatment.
10633 She must be courteous, and she must be compassionate. She must have
10634 a sensation of being honoured, and whether thinking of herself or her
10635 brother, she must have a strong feeling of gratitude. The effect of the
10636 whole was a manner so pitying and agitated, and words intermingled with
10637 her refusal so expressive of obligation and concern, that to a temper of
10638 vanity and hope like Crawford's, the truth, or at least the strength
10639 of her indifference, might well be questionable; and he was not so
10640 irrational as Fanny considered him, in the professions of persevering,
10641 assiduous, and not desponding attachment which closed the interview.
10642
10643 It was with reluctance that he suffered her to go; but there was no look
10644 of despair in parting to belie his words, or give her hopes of his being
10645 less unreasonable than he professed himself.
10646
10647 Now she was angry. Some resentment did arise at a perseverance so
10648 selfish and ungenerous. Here was again a want of delicacy and regard for
10649 others which had formerly so struck and disgusted her. Here was again
10650 a something of the same Mr. Crawford whom she had so reprobated before.
10651 How evidently was there a gross want of feeling and humanity where his
10652 own pleasure was concerned; and alas! how always known no principle to
10653 supply as a duty what the heart was deficient in! Had her own affections
10654 been as free as perhaps they ought to have been, he never could have
10655 engaged them.
10656
10657 So thought Fanny, in good truth and sober sadness, as she sat musing
10658 over that too great indulgence and luxury of a fire upstairs: wondering
10659 at the past and present; wondering at what was yet to come, and in a
10660 nervous agitation which made nothing clear to her but the persuasion of
10661 her being never under any circumstances able to love Mr. Crawford, and
10662 the felicity of having a fire to sit over and think of it.
10663
10664 Sir Thomas was obliged, or obliged himself, to wait till the morrow for
10665 a knowledge of what had passed between the young people. He then saw
10666 Mr. Crawford, and received his account. The first feeling was
10667 disappointment: he had hoped better things; he had thought that an
10668 hour's entreaty from a young man like Crawford could not have worked so
10669 little change on a gentle-tempered girl like Fanny; but there was speedy
10670 comfort in the determined views and sanguine perseverance of the lover;
10671 and when seeing such confidence of success in the principal, Sir Thomas
10672 was soon able to depend on it himself.
10673
10674 Nothing was omitted, on his side, of civility, compliment, or kindness,
10675 that might assist the plan. Mr. Crawford's steadiness was honoured, and
10676 Fanny was praised, and the connexion was still the most desirable in the
10677 world. At Mansfield Park Mr. Crawford would always be welcome; he had
10678 only to consult his own judgment and feelings as to the frequency of his
10679 visits, at present or in future. In all his niece's family and friends,
10680 there could be but one opinion, one wish on the subject; the influence
10681 of all who loved her must incline one way.
10682
10683 Everything was said that could encourage, every encouragement received
10684 with grateful joy, and the gentlemen parted the best of friends.
10685
10686 Satisfied that the cause was now on a footing the most proper and
10687 hopeful, Sir Thomas resolved to abstain from all farther importunity
10688 with his niece, and to shew no open interference. Upon her disposition
10689 he believed kindness might be the best way of working. Entreaty should
10690 be from one quarter only. The forbearance of her family on a point,
10691 respecting which she could be in no doubt of their wishes, might be
10692 their surest means of forwarding it. Accordingly, on this principle, Sir
10693 Thomas took the first opportunity of saying to her, with a mild gravity,
10694 intended to be overcoming, "Well, Fanny, I have seen Mr. Crawford again,
10695 and learn from him exactly how matters stand between you. He is a most
10696 extraordinary young man, and whatever be the event, you must feel that
10697 you have created an attachment of no common character; though, young
10698 as you are, and little acquainted with the transient, varying, unsteady
10699 nature of love, as it generally exists, you cannot be struck as I
10700 am with all that is wonderful in a perseverance of this sort against
10701 discouragement. With him it is entirely a matter of feeling: he claims
10702 no merit in it; perhaps is entitled to none. Yet, having chosen so
10703 well, his constancy has a respectable stamp. Had his choice been less
10704 unexceptionable, I should have condemned his persevering."
10705
10706 "Indeed, sir," said Fanny, "I am very sorry that Mr. Crawford should
10707 continue to know that it is paying me a very great compliment, and I
10708 feel most undeservedly honoured; but I am so perfectly convinced, and I
10709 have told him so, that it never will be in my power--"
10710
10711 "My dear," interrupted Sir Thomas, "there is no occasion for this. Your
10712 feelings are as well known to me as my wishes and regrets must be
10713 to you. There is nothing more to be said or done. From this hour the
10714 subject is never to be revived between us. You will have nothing to
10715 fear, or to be agitated about. You cannot suppose me capable of trying
10716 to persuade you to marry against your inclinations. Your happiness and
10717 advantage are all that I have in view, and nothing is required of you
10718 but to bear with Mr. Crawford's endeavours to convince you that they may
10719 not be incompatible with his. He proceeds at his own risk. You are on
10720 safe ground. I have engaged for your seeing him whenever he calls, as
10721 you might have done had nothing of this sort occurred. You will see
10722 him with the rest of us, in the same manner, and, as much as you
10723 can, dismissing the recollection of everything unpleasant. He leaves
10724 Northamptonshire so soon, that even this slight sacrifice cannot be
10725 often demanded. The future must be very uncertain. And now, my dear
10726 Fanny, this subject is closed between us."
10727
10728 The promised departure was all that Fanny could think of with much
10729 satisfaction. Her uncle's kind expressions, however, and forbearing
10730 manner, were sensibly felt; and when she considered how much of the
10731 truth was unknown to him, she believed she had no right to wonder at
10732 the line of conduct he pursued. He, who had married a daughter to Mr.
10733 Rushworth: romantic delicacy was certainly not to be expected from him.
10734 She must do her duty, and trust that time might make her duty easier
10735 than it now was.
10736
10737 She could not, though only eighteen, suppose Mr. Crawford's attachment
10738 would hold out for ever; she could not but imagine that steady,
10739 unceasing discouragement from herself would put an end to it in time.
10740 How much time she might, in her own fancy, allot for its dominion, is
10741 another concern. It would not be fair to inquire into a young lady's
10742 exact estimate of her own perfections.
10743
10744 In spite of his intended silence, Sir Thomas found himself once more
10745 obliged to mention the subject to his niece, to prepare her briefly for
10746 its being imparted to her aunts; a measure which he would still have
10747 avoided, if possible, but which became necessary from the totally
10748 opposite feelings of Mr. Crawford as to any secrecy of proceeding. He
10749 had no idea of concealment. It was all known at the Parsonage, where
10750 he loved to talk over the future with both his sisters, and it would be
10751 rather gratifying to him to have enlightened witnesses of the progress
10752 of his success. When Sir Thomas understood this, he felt the necessity
10753 of making his own wife and sister-in-law acquainted with the business
10754 without delay; though, on Fanny's account, he almost dreaded the
10755 effect of the communication to Mrs. Norris as much as Fanny herself. He
10756 deprecated her mistaken but well-meaning zeal. Sir Thomas, indeed, was,
10757 by this time, not very far from classing Mrs. Norris as one of those
10758 well-meaning people who are always doing mistaken and very disagreeable
10759 things.
10760
10761 Mrs. Norris, however, relieved him. He pressed for the strictest
10762 forbearance and silence towards their niece; she not only promised, but
10763 did observe it. She only looked her increased ill-will. Angry she was:
10764 bitterly angry; but she was more angry with Fanny for having received
10765 such an offer than for refusing it. It was an injury and affront to
10766 Julia, who ought to have been Mr. Crawford's choice; and, independently
10767 of that, she disliked Fanny, because she had neglected her; and she
10768 would have grudged such an elevation to one whom she had been always
10769 trying to depress.
10770
10771 Sir Thomas gave her more credit for discretion on the occasion than she
10772 deserved; and Fanny could have blessed her for allowing her only to see
10773 her displeasure, and not to hear it.
10774
10775 Lady Bertram took it differently. She had been a beauty, and a
10776 prosperous beauty, all her life; and beauty and wealth were all that
10777 excited her respect. To know Fanny to be sought in marriage by a man of
10778 fortune, raised her, therefore, very much in her opinion. By convincing
10779 her that Fanny _was_ very pretty, which she had been doubting about
10780 before, and that she would be advantageously married, it made her feel a
10781 sort of credit in calling her niece.
10782
10783 "Well, Fanny," said she, as soon as they were alone together afterwards,
10784 and she really had known something like impatience to be alone with her,
10785 and her countenance, as she spoke, had extraordinary animation; "Well,
10786 Fanny, I have had a very agreeable surprise this morning. I must just
10787 speak of it _once_, I told Sir Thomas I must _once_, and then I
10788 shall have done. I give you joy, my dear niece." And looking at her
10789 complacently, she added, "Humph, we certainly are a handsome family!"
10790
10791 Fanny coloured, and doubted at first what to say; when, hoping to assail
10792 her on her vulnerable side, she presently answered--
10793
10794 "My dear aunt, _you_ cannot wish me to do differently from what I have
10795 done, I am sure. _You_ cannot wish me to marry; for you would miss me,
10796 should not you? Yes, I am sure you would miss me too much for that."
10797
10798 "No, my dear, I should not think of missing you, when such an offer as
10799 this comes in your way. I could do very well without you, if you were
10800 married to a man of such good estate as Mr. Crawford. And you must be
10801 aware, Fanny, that it is every young woman's duty to accept such a very
10802 unexceptionable offer as this."
10803
10804 This was almost the only rule of conduct, the only piece of advice,
10805 which Fanny had ever received from her aunt in the course of eight years
10806 and a half. It silenced her. She felt how unprofitable contention would
10807 be. If her aunt's feelings were against her, nothing could be hoped from
10808 attacking her understanding. Lady Bertram was quite talkative.
10809
10810 "I will tell you what, Fanny," said she, "I am sure he fell in love with
10811 you at the ball; I am sure the mischief was done that evening. You did
10812 look remarkably well. Everybody said so. Sir Thomas said so. And you
10813 know you had Chapman to help you to dress. I am very glad I sent
10814 Chapman to you. I shall tell Sir Thomas that I am sure it was done
10815 that evening." And still pursuing the same cheerful thoughts, she soon
10816 afterwards added, "And will tell you what, Fanny, which is more than I
10817 did for Maria: the next time Pug has a litter you shall have a puppy."
10818
10819
10820
10821 CHAPTER XXXIV
10822
10823 Edmund had great things to hear on his return. Many surprises were
10824 awaiting him. The first that occurred was not least in interest: the
10825 appearance of Henry Crawford and his sister walking together through the
10826 village as he rode into it. He had concluded--he had meant them to be
10827 far distant. His absence had been extended beyond a fortnight purposely
10828 to avoid Miss Crawford. He was returning to Mansfield with spirits ready
10829 to feed on melancholy remembrances, and tender associations, when her
10830 own fair self was before him, leaning on her brother's arm, and he found
10831 himself receiving a welcome, unquestionably friendly, from the woman
10832 whom, two moments before, he had been thinking of as seventy miles off,
10833 and as farther, much farther, from him in inclination than any distance
10834 could express.
10835
10836 Her reception of him was of a sort which he could not have hoped
10837 for, had he expected to see her. Coming as he did from such a purport
10838 fulfilled as had taken him away, he would have expected anything rather
10839 than a look of satisfaction, and words of simple, pleasant meaning.
10840 It was enough to set his heart in a glow, and to bring him home in the
10841 properest state for feeling the full value of the other joyful surprises
10842 at hand.
10843
10844 William's promotion, with all its particulars, he was soon master of;
10845 and with such a secret provision of comfort within his own breast to
10846 help the joy, he found in it a source of most gratifying sensation and
10847 unvarying cheerfulness all dinner-time.
10848
10849 After dinner, when he and his father were alone, he had Fanny's history;
10850 and then all the great events of the last fortnight, and the present
10851 situation of matters at Mansfield were known to him.
10852
10853 Fanny suspected what was going on. They sat so much longer than usual in
10854 the dining-parlour, that she was sure they must be talking of her; and
10855 when tea at last brought them away, and she was to be seen by Edmund
10856 again, she felt dreadfully guilty. He came to her, sat down by her, took
10857 her hand, and pressed it kindly; and at that moment she thought that,
10858 but for the occupation and the scene which the tea-things afforded, she
10859 must have betrayed her emotion in some unpardonable excess.
10860
10861 He was not intending, however, by such action, to be conveying to her
10862 that unqualified approbation and encouragement which her hopes drew
10863 from it. It was designed only to express his participation in all that
10864 interested her, and to tell her that he had been hearing what quickened
10865 every feeling of affection. He was, in fact, entirely on his father's
10866 side of the question. His surprise was not so great as his father's at
10867 her refusing Crawford, because, so far from supposing her to consider
10868 him with anything like a preference, he had always believed it to
10869 be rather the reverse, and could imagine her to be taken perfectly
10870 unprepared, but Sir Thomas could not regard the connexion as more
10871 desirable than he did. It had every recommendation to him; and while
10872 honouring her for what she had done under the influence of her present
10873 indifference, honouring her in rather stronger terms than Sir Thomas
10874 could quite echo, he was most earnest in hoping, and sanguine in
10875 believing, that it would be a match at last, and that, united by mutual
10876 affection, it would appear that their dispositions were as exactly
10877 fitted to make them blessed in each other, as he was now beginning
10878 seriously to consider them. Crawford had been too precipitate. He had
10879 not given her time to attach herself. He had begun at the wrong end.
10880 With such powers as his, however, and such a disposition as hers, Edmund
10881 trusted that everything would work out a happy conclusion. Meanwhile,
10882 he saw enough of Fanny's embarrassment to make him scrupulously guard
10883 against exciting it a second time, by any word, or look, or movement.
10884
10885 Crawford called the next day, and on the score of Edmund's return, Sir
10886 Thomas felt himself more than licensed to ask him to stay dinner; it was
10887 really a necessary compliment. He staid of course, and Edmund had then
10888 ample opportunity for observing how he sped with Fanny, and what degree
10889 of immediate encouragement for him might be extracted from her manners;
10890 and it was so little, so very, very little--every chance, every
10891 possibility of it, resting upon her embarrassment only; if there was
10892 not hope in her confusion, there was hope in nothing else--that he was
10893 almost ready to wonder at his friend's perseverance. Fanny was worth it
10894 all; he held her to be worth every effort of patience, every exertion of
10895 mind, but he did not think he could have gone on himself with any woman
10896 breathing, without something more to warm his courage than his eyes
10897 could discern in hers. He was very willing to hope that Crawford saw
10898 clearer, and this was the most comfortable conclusion for his friend
10899 that he could come to from all that he observed to pass before, and at,
10900 and after dinner.
10901
10902 In the evening a few circumstances occurred which he thought more
10903 promising. When he and Crawford walked into the drawing-room, his mother
10904 and Fanny were sitting as intently and silently at work as if there
10905 were nothing else to care for. Edmund could not help noticing their
10906 apparently deep tranquillity.
10907
10908 "We have not been so silent all the time," replied his mother. "Fanny
10909 has been reading to me, and only put the book down upon hearing you
10910 coming." And sure enough there was a book on the table which had the air
10911 of being very recently closed: a volume of Shakespeare. "She often
10912 reads to me out of those books; and she was in the middle of a very
10913 fine speech of that man's--what's his name, Fanny?--when we heard your
10914 footsteps."
10915
10916 Crawford took the volume. "Let me have the pleasure of finishing that
10917 speech to your ladyship," said he. "I shall find it immediately." And by
10918 carefully giving way to the inclination of the leaves, he did find it,
10919 or within a page or two, quite near enough to satisfy Lady Bertram, who
10920 assured him, as soon as he mentioned the name of Cardinal Wolsey, that
10921 he had got the very speech. Not a look or an offer of help had Fanny
10922 given; not a syllable for or against. All her attention was for her
10923 work. She seemed determined to be interested by nothing else. But taste
10924 was too strong in her. She could not abstract her mind five minutes: she
10925 was forced to listen; his reading was capital, and her pleasure in good
10926 reading extreme. To _good_ reading, however, she had been long used:
10927 her uncle read well, her cousins all, Edmund very well, but in Mr.
10928 Crawford's reading there was a variety of excellence beyond what she had
10929 ever met with. The King, the Queen, Buckingham, Wolsey, Cromwell, all
10930 were given in turn; for with the happiest knack, the happiest power of
10931 jumping and guessing, he could always alight at will on the best scene,
10932 or the best speeches of each; and whether it were dignity, or pride, or
10933 tenderness, or remorse, or whatever were to be expressed, he could do
10934 it with equal beauty. It was truly dramatic. His acting had first taught
10935 Fanny what pleasure a play might give, and his reading brought all his
10936 acting before her again; nay, perhaps with greater enjoyment, for it
10937 came unexpectedly, and with no such drawback as she had been used to
10938 suffer in seeing him on the stage with Miss Bertram.
10939
10940 Edmund watched the progress of her attention, and was amused and
10941 gratified by seeing how she gradually slackened in the needlework, which
10942 at the beginning seemed to occupy her totally: how it fell from her hand
10943 while she sat motionless over it, and at last, how the eyes which had
10944 appeared so studiously to avoid him throughout the day were turned and
10945 fixed on Crawford--fixed on him for minutes, fixed on him, in short,
10946 till the attraction drew Crawford's upon her, and the book was closed,
10947 and the charm was broken. Then she was shrinking again into herself,
10948 and blushing and working as hard as ever; but it had been enough to give
10949 Edmund encouragement for his friend, and as he cordially thanked him, he
10950 hoped to be expressing Fanny's secret feelings too.
10951
10952 "That play must be a favourite with you," said he; "you read as if you
10953 knew it well."
10954
10955 "It will be a favourite, I believe, from this hour," replied Crawford;
10956 "but I do not think I have had a volume of Shakespeare in my hand before
10957 since I was fifteen. I once saw Henry the Eighth acted, or I have heard
10958 of it from somebody who did, I am not certain which. But Shakespeare
10959 one gets acquainted with without knowing how. It is a part of an
10960 Englishman's constitution. His thoughts and beauties are so spread
10961 abroad that one touches them everywhere; one is intimate with him by
10962 instinct. No man of any brain can open at a good part of one of his
10963 plays without falling into the flow of his meaning immediately."
10964
10965 "No doubt one is familiar with Shakespeare in a degree," said Edmund,
10966 "from one's earliest years. His celebrated passages are quoted
10967 by everybody; they are in half the books we open, and we all talk
10968 Shakespeare, use his similes, and describe with his descriptions; but
10969 this is totally distinct from giving his sense as you gave it. To know
10970 him in bits and scraps is common enough; to know him pretty thoroughly
10971 is, perhaps, not uncommon; but to read him well aloud is no everyday
10972 talent."
10973
10974 "Sir, you do me honour," was Crawford's answer, with a bow of mock
10975 gravity.
10976
10977 Both gentlemen had a glance at Fanny, to see if a word of accordant
10978 praise could be extorted from her; yet both feeling that it could not
10979 be. Her praise had been given in her attention; _that_ must content
10980 them.
10981
10982 Lady Bertram's admiration was expressed, and strongly too. "It was
10983 really like being at a play," said she. "I wish Sir Thomas had been
10984 here."
10985
10986 Crawford was excessively pleased. If Lady Bertram, with all her
10987 incompetency and languor, could feel this, the inference of what her
10988 niece, alive and enlightened as she was, must feel, was elevating.
10989
10990 "You have a great turn for acting, I am sure, Mr. Crawford," said her
10991 ladyship soon afterwards; "and I will tell you what, I think you will
10992 have a theatre, some time or other, at your house in Norfolk. I mean
10993 when you are settled there. I do indeed. I think you will fit up a
10994 theatre at your house in Norfolk."
10995
10996 "Do you, ma'am?" cried he, with quickness. "No, no, that will never be.
10997 Your ladyship is quite mistaken. No theatre at Everingham! Oh no!" And
10998 he looked at Fanny with an expressive smile, which evidently meant,
10999 "That lady will never allow a theatre at Everingham."
11000
11001 Edmund saw it all, and saw Fanny so determined _not_ to see it, as to
11002 make it clear that the voice was enough to convey the full meaning of
11003 the protestation; and such a quick consciousness of compliment, such a
11004 ready comprehension of a hint, he thought, was rather favourable than
11005 not.
11006
11007 The subject of reading aloud was farther discussed. The two young men
11008 were the only talkers, but they, standing by the fire, talked over the
11009 too common neglect of the qualification, the total inattention to it,
11010 in the ordinary school-system for boys, the consequently natural, yet in
11011 some instances almost unnatural, degree of ignorance and uncouthness
11012 of men, of sensible and well-informed men, when suddenly called to the
11013 necessity of reading aloud, which had fallen within their notice, giving
11014 instances of blunders, and failures with their secondary causes, the
11015 want of management of the voice, of proper modulation and emphasis, of
11016 foresight and judgment, all proceeding from the first cause: want of
11017 early attention and habit; and Fanny was listening again with great
11018 entertainment.
11019
11020 "Even in my profession," said Edmund, with a smile, "how little the
11021 art of reading has been studied! how little a clear manner, and good
11022 delivery, have been attended to! I speak rather of the past, however,
11023 than the present. There is now a spirit of improvement abroad; but among
11024 those who were ordained twenty, thirty, forty years ago, the larger
11025 number, to judge by their performance, must have thought reading was
11026 reading, and preaching was preaching. It is different now. The subject
11027 is more justly considered. It is felt that distinctness and energy may
11028 have weight in recommending the most solid truths; and besides, there is
11029 more general observation and taste, a more critical knowledge diffused
11030 than formerly; in every congregation there is a larger proportion who
11031 know a little of the matter, and who can judge and criticise."
11032
11033 Edmund had already gone through the service once since his ordination;
11034 and upon this being understood, he had a variety of questions from
11035 Crawford as to his feelings and success; questions, which being made,
11036 though with the vivacity of friendly interest and quick taste, without
11037 any touch of that spirit of banter or air of levity which Edmund knew to
11038 be most offensive to Fanny, he had true pleasure in satisfying; and
11039 when Crawford proceeded to ask his opinion and give his own as to the
11040 properest manner in which particular passages in the service should be
11041 delivered, shewing it to be a subject on which he had thought before,
11042 and thought with judgment, Edmund was still more and more pleased. This
11043 would be the way to Fanny's heart. She was not to be won by all that
11044 gallantry and wit and good-nature together could do; or, at least,
11045 she would not be won by them nearly so soon, without the assistance of
11046 sentiment and feeling, and seriousness on serious subjects.
11047
11048 "Our liturgy," observed Crawford, "has beauties, which not even a
11049 careless, slovenly style of reading can destroy; but it has also
11050 redundancies and repetitions which require good reading not to be felt.
11051 For myself, at least, I must confess being not always so attentive as I
11052 ought to be" (here was a glance at Fanny); "that nineteen times out of
11053 twenty I am thinking how such a prayer ought to be read, and longing to
11054 have it to read myself. Did you speak?" stepping eagerly to Fanny, and
11055 addressing her in a softened voice; and upon her saying "No," he added,
11056 "Are you sure you did not speak? I saw your lips move. I fancied you
11057 might be going to tell me I ought to be more attentive, and not _allow_
11058 my thoughts to wander. Are not you going to tell me so?"
11059
11060 "No, indeed, you know your duty too well for me to--even supposing--"
11061
11062 She stopt, felt herself getting into a puzzle, and could not be
11063 prevailed on to add another word, not by dint of several minutes of
11064 supplication and waiting. He then returned to his former station, and
11065 went on as if there had been no such tender interruption.
11066
11067 "A sermon, well delivered, is more uncommon even than prayers well read.
11068 A sermon, good in itself, is no rare thing. It is more difficult
11069 to speak well than to compose well; that is, the rules and trick of
11070 composition are oftener an object of study. A thoroughly good sermon,
11071 thoroughly well delivered, is a capital gratification. I can never hear
11072 such a one without the greatest admiration and respect, and more than
11073 half a mind to take orders and preach myself. There is something in the
11074 eloquence of the pulpit, when it is really eloquence, which is entitled
11075 to the highest praise and honour. The preacher who can touch and affect
11076 such an heterogeneous mass of hearers, on subjects limited, and long
11077 worn threadbare in all common hands; who can say anything new or
11078 striking, anything that rouses the attention without offending the
11079 taste, or wearing out the feelings of his hearers, is a man whom one
11080 could not, in his public capacity, honour enough. I should like to be
11081 such a man."
11082
11083 Edmund laughed.
11084
11085 "I should indeed. I never listened to a distinguished preacher in my
11086 life without a sort of envy. But then, I must have a London audience.
11087 I could not preach but to the educated; to those who were capable of
11088 estimating my composition. And I do not know that I should be fond of
11089 preaching often; now and then, perhaps once or twice in the spring,
11090 after being anxiously expected for half a dozen Sundays together; but
11091 not for a constancy; it would not do for a constancy."
11092
11093 Here Fanny, who could not but listen, involuntarily shook her head,
11094 and Crawford was instantly by her side again, entreating to know her
11095 meaning; and as Edmund perceived, by his drawing in a chair, and sitting
11096 down close by her, that it was to be a very thorough attack, that looks
11097 and undertones were to be well tried, he sank as quietly as possible
11098 into a corner, turned his back, and took up a newspaper, very sincerely
11099 wishing that dear little Fanny might be persuaded into explaining away
11100 that shake of the head to the satisfaction of her ardent lover; and as
11101 earnestly trying to bury every sound of the business from himself in
11102 murmurs of his own, over the various advertisements of "A most desirable
11103 Estate in South Wales"; "To Parents and Guardians"; and a "Capital
11104 season'd Hunter."
11105
11106 Fanny, meanwhile, vexed with herself for not having been as motionless
11107 as she was speechless, and grieved to the heart to see Edmund's
11108 arrangements, was trying by everything in the power of her modest,
11109 gentle nature, to repulse Mr. Crawford, and avoid both his looks and
11110 inquiries; and he, unrepulsable, was persisting in both.
11111
11112 "What did that shake of the head mean?" said he. "What was it meant to
11113 express? Disapprobation, I fear. But of what? What had I been saying
11114 to displease you? Did you think me speaking improperly, lightly,
11115 irreverently on the subject? Only tell me if I was. Only tell me if
11116 I was wrong. I want to be set right. Nay, nay, I entreat you; for one
11117 moment put down your work. What did that shake of the head mean?"
11118
11119 In vain was her "Pray, sir, don't; pray, Mr. Crawford," repeated twice
11120 over; and in vain did she try to move away. In the same low, eager
11121 voice, and the same close neighbourhood, he went on, reurging the same
11122 questions as before. She grew more agitated and displeased.
11123
11124 "How can you, sir? You quite astonish me; I wonder how you can--"
11125
11126 "Do I astonish you?" said he. "Do you wonder? Is there anything in
11127 my present entreaty that you do not understand? I will explain to you
11128 instantly all that makes me urge you in this manner, all that gives me
11129 an interest in what you look and do, and excites my present curiosity. I
11130 will not leave you to wonder long."
11131
11132 In spite of herself, she could not help half a smile, but she said
11133 nothing.
11134
11135 "You shook your head at my acknowledging that I should not like to
11136 engage in the duties of a clergyman always for a constancy. Yes, that
11137 was the word. Constancy: I am not afraid of the word. I would spell it,
11138 read it, write it with anybody. I see nothing alarming in the word. Did
11139 you think I ought?"
11140
11141 "Perhaps, sir," said Fanny, wearied at last into speaking--"perhaps,
11142 sir, I thought it was a pity you did not always know yourself as well as
11143 you seemed to do at that moment."
11144
11145 Crawford, delighted to get her to speak at any rate, was determined
11146 to keep it up; and poor Fanny, who had hoped to silence him by such an
11147 extremity of reproof, found herself sadly mistaken, and that it was only
11148 a change from one object of curiosity and one set of words to another.
11149 He had always something to entreat the explanation of. The opportunity
11150 was too fair. None such had occurred since his seeing her in her uncle's
11151 room, none such might occur again before his leaving Mansfield. Lady
11152 Bertram's being just on the other side of the table was a trifle,
11153 for she might always be considered as only half-awake, and Edmund's
11154 advertisements were still of the first utility.
11155
11156 "Well," said Crawford, after a course of rapid questions and reluctant
11157 answers; "I am happier than I was, because I now understand more clearly
11158 your opinion of me. You think me unsteady: easily swayed by the whim of
11159 the moment, easily tempted, easily put aside. With such an opinion, no
11160 wonder that. But we shall see. It is not by protestations that I shall
11161 endeavour to convince you I am wronged; it is not by telling you that my
11162 affections are steady. My conduct shall speak for me; absence, distance,
11163 time shall speak for me. _They_ shall prove that, as far as you can be
11164 deserved by anybody, I do deserve you. You are infinitely my superior
11165 in merit; all _that_ I know. You have qualities which I had not before
11166 supposed to exist in such a degree in any human creature. You have some
11167 touches of the angel in you beyond what--not merely beyond what one
11168 sees, because one never sees anything like it--but beyond what one
11169 fancies might be. But still I am not frightened. It is not by equality
11170 of merit that you can be won. That is out of the question. It is he
11171 who sees and worships your merit the strongest, who loves you most
11172 devotedly, that has the best right to a return. There I build my
11173 confidence. By that right I do and will deserve you; and when once
11174 convinced that my attachment is what I declare it, I know you too well
11175 not to entertain the warmest hopes. Yes, dearest, sweetest Fanny. Nay"
11176 (seeing her draw back displeased), "forgive me. Perhaps I have as yet
11177 no right; but by what other name can I call you? Do you suppose you are
11178 ever present to my imagination under any other? No, it is 'Fanny' that
11179 I think of all day, and dream of all night. You have given the name such
11180 reality of sweetness, that nothing else can now be descriptive of you."
11181
11182 Fanny could hardly have kept her seat any longer, or have refrained from
11183 at least trying to get away in spite of all the too public opposition
11184 she foresaw to it, had it not been for the sound of approaching relief,
11185 the very sound which she had been long watching for, and long thinking
11186 strangely delayed.
11187
11188 The solemn procession, headed by Baddeley, of tea-board, urn, and
11189 cake-bearers, made its appearance, and delivered her from a grievous
11190 imprisonment of body and mind. Mr. Crawford was obliged to move. She was
11191 at liberty, she was busy, she was protected.
11192
11193 Edmund was not sorry to be admitted again among the number of those who
11194 might speak and hear. But though the conference had seemed full long to
11195 him, and though on looking at Fanny he saw rather a flush of vexation,
11196 he inclined to hope that so much could not have been said and listened
11197 to without some profit to the speaker.
11198
11199
11200
11201 CHAPTER XXXV
11202
11203 Edmund had determined that it belonged entirely to Fanny to chuse
11204 whether her situation with regard to Crawford should be mentioned
11205 between them or not; and that if she did not lead the way, it should
11206 never be touched on by him; but after a day or two of mutual reserve, he
11207 was induced by his father to change his mind, and try what his influence
11208 might do for his friend.
11209
11210 A day, and a very early day, was actually fixed for the Crawfords'
11211 departure; and Sir Thomas thought it might be as well to make one
11212 more effort for the young man before he left Mansfield, that all his
11213 professions and vows of unshaken attachment might have as much hope to
11214 sustain them as possible.
11215
11216 Sir Thomas was most cordially anxious for the perfection of Mr.
11217 Crawford's character in that point. He wished him to be a model of
11218 constancy; and fancied the best means of effecting it would be by not
11219 trying him too long.
11220
11221 Edmund was not unwilling to be persuaded to engage in the business; he
11222 wanted to know Fanny's feelings. She had been used to consult him in
11223 every difficulty, and he loved her too well to bear to be denied her
11224 confidence now; he hoped to be of service to her, he thought he must be
11225 of service to her; whom else had she to open her heart to? If she did
11226 not need counsel, she must need the comfort of communication. Fanny
11227 estranged from him, silent and reserved, was an unnatural state of
11228 things; a state which he must break through, and which he could easily
11229 learn to think she was wanting him to break through.
11230
11231 "I will speak to her, sir: I will take the first opportunity of speaking
11232 to her alone," was the result of such thoughts as these; and upon Sir
11233 Thomas's information of her being at that very time walking alone in the
11234 shrubbery, he instantly joined her.
11235
11236 "I am come to walk with you, Fanny," said he. "Shall I?" Drawing her
11237 arm within his. "It is a long while since we have had a comfortable walk
11238 together."
11239
11240 She assented to it all rather by look than word. Her spirits were low.
11241
11242 "But, Fanny," he presently added, "in order to have a comfortable walk,
11243 something more is necessary than merely pacing this gravel together. You
11244 must talk to me. I know you have something on your mind. I know what you
11245 are thinking of. You cannot suppose me uninformed. Am I to hear of it
11246 from everybody but Fanny herself?"
11247
11248 Fanny, at once agitated and dejected, replied, "If you hear of it from
11249 everybody, cousin, there can be nothing for me to tell."
11250
11251 "Not of facts, perhaps; but of feelings, Fanny. No one but you can tell
11252 me them. I do not mean to press you, however. If it is not what you wish
11253 yourself, I have done. I had thought it might be a relief."
11254
11255 "I am afraid we think too differently for me to find any relief in
11256 talking of what I feel."
11257
11258 "Do you suppose that we think differently? I have no idea of it. I dare
11259 say that, on a comparison of our opinions, they would be found as much
11260 alike as they have been used to be: to the point--I consider Crawford's
11261 proposals as most advantageous and desirable, if you could return his
11262 affection. I consider it as most natural that all your family should
11263 wish you could return it; but that, as you cannot, you have done exactly
11264 as you ought in refusing him. Can there be any disagreement between us
11265 here?"
11266
11267 "Oh no! But I thought you blamed me. I thought you were against me. This
11268 is such a comfort!"
11269
11270 "This comfort you might have had sooner, Fanny, had you sought it. But
11271 how could you possibly suppose me against you? How could you imagine me
11272 an advocate for marriage without love? Were I even careless in general
11273 on such matters, how could you imagine me so where your happiness was at
11274 stake?"
11275
11276 "My uncle thought me wrong, and I knew he had been talking to you."
11277
11278 "As far as you have gone, Fanny, I think you perfectly right. I may be
11279 sorry, I may be surprised--though hardly _that_, for you had not had
11280 time to attach yourself--but I think you perfectly right. Can it admit
11281 of a question? It is disgraceful to us if it does. You did not love him;
11282 nothing could have justified your accepting him."
11283
11284 Fanny had not felt so comfortable for days and days.
11285
11286 "So far your conduct has been faultless, and they were quite mistaken
11287 who wished you to do otherwise. But the matter does not end here.
11288 Crawford's is no common attachment; he perseveres, with the hope of
11289 creating that regard which had not been created before. This, we know,
11290 must be a work of time. But" (with an affectionate smile) "let him
11291 succeed at last, Fanny, let him succeed at last. You have proved
11292 yourself upright and disinterested, prove yourself grateful and
11293 tender-hearted; and then you will be the perfect model of a woman which
11294 I have always believed you born for."
11295
11296 "Oh! never, never, never! he never will succeed with me." And she spoke
11297 with a warmth which quite astonished Edmund, and which she blushed at
11298 the recollection of herself, when she saw his look, and heard him
11299 reply, "Never! Fanny!--so very determined and positive! This is not like
11300 yourself, your rational self."
11301
11302 "I mean," she cried, sorrowfully correcting herself, "that I _think_ I
11303 never shall, as far as the future can be answered for; I think I never
11304 shall return his regard."
11305
11306 "I must hope better things. I am aware, more aware than Crawford can be,
11307 that the man who means to make you love him (you having due notice of
11308 his intentions) must have very uphill work, for there are all your early
11309 attachments and habits in battle array; and before he can get your heart
11310 for his own use he has to unfasten it from all the holds upon things
11311 animate and inanimate, which so many years' growth have confirmed, and
11312 which are considerably tightened for the moment by the very idea
11313 of separation. I know that the apprehension of being forced to quit
11314 Mansfield will for a time be arming you against him. I wish he had not
11315 been obliged to tell you what he was trying for. I wish he had known you
11316 as well as I do, Fanny. Between us, I think we should have won you. My
11317 theoretical and his practical knowledge together could not have failed.
11318 He should have worked upon my plans. I must hope, however, that time,
11319 proving him (as I firmly believe it will) to deserve you by his steady
11320 affection, will give him his reward. I cannot suppose that you have not
11321 the _wish_ to love him--the natural wish of gratitude. You must have
11322 some feeling of that sort. You must be sorry for your own indifference."
11323
11324 "We are so totally unlike," said Fanny, avoiding a direct answer, "we
11325 are so very, very different in all our inclinations and ways, that
11326 I consider it as quite impossible we should ever be tolerably happy
11327 together, even if I _could_ like him. There never were two people more
11328 dissimilar. We have not one taste in common. We should be miserable."
11329
11330 "You are mistaken, Fanny. The dissimilarity is not so strong. You are
11331 quite enough alike. You _have_ tastes in common. You have moral and
11332 literary tastes in common. You have both warm hearts and benevolent
11333 feelings; and, Fanny, who that heard him read, and saw you listen to
11334 Shakespeare the other night, will think you unfitted as companions? You
11335 forget yourself: there is a decided difference in your tempers, I allow.
11336 He is lively, you are serious; but so much the better: his spirits will
11337 support yours. It is your disposition to be easily dejected and to fancy
11338 difficulties greater than they are. His cheerfulness will counteract
11339 this. He sees difficulties nowhere: and his pleasantness and gaiety will
11340 be a constant support to you. Your being so far unlike, Fanny, does not
11341 in the smallest degree make against the probability of your happiness
11342 together: do not imagine it. I am myself convinced that it is rather a
11343 favourable circumstance. I am perfectly persuaded that the tempers
11344 had better be unlike: I mean unlike in the flow of the spirits, in
11345 the manners, in the inclination for much or little company, in the
11346 propensity to talk or to be silent, to be grave or to be gay. Some
11347 opposition here is, I am thoroughly convinced, friendly to matrimonial
11348 happiness. I exclude extremes, of course; and a very close resemblance
11349 in all those points would be the likeliest way to produce an extreme.
11350 A counteraction, gentle and continual, is the best safeguard of manners
11351 and conduct."
11352
11353 Full well could Fanny guess where his thoughts were now: Miss Crawford's
11354 power was all returning. He had been speaking of her cheerfully from the
11355 hour of his coming home. His avoiding her was quite at an end. He had
11356 dined at the Parsonage only the preceding day.
11357
11358 After leaving him to his happier thoughts for some minutes, Fanny,
11359 feeling it due to herself, returned to Mr. Crawford, and said, "It
11360 is not merely in _temper_ that I consider him as totally unsuited to
11361 myself; though, in _that_ respect, I think the difference between us too
11362 great, infinitely too great: his spirits often oppress me; but there is
11363 something in him which I object to still more. I must say, cousin, that
11364 I cannot approve his character. I have not thought well of him from the
11365 time of the play. I then saw him behaving, as it appeared to me, so
11366 very improperly and unfeelingly--I may speak of it now because it is all
11367 over--so improperly by poor Mr. Rushworth, not seeming to care how he
11368 exposed or hurt him, and paying attentions to my cousin Maria, which--in
11369 short, at the time of the play, I received an impression which will
11370 never be got over."
11371
11372 "My dear Fanny," replied Edmund, scarcely hearing her to the end, "let
11373 us not, any of us, be judged by what we appeared at that period of
11374 general folly. The time of the play is a time which I hate to recollect.
11375 Maria was wrong, Crawford was wrong, we were all wrong together; but
11376 none so wrong as myself. Compared with me, all the rest were blameless.
11377 I was playing the fool with my eyes open."
11378
11379 "As a bystander," said Fanny, "perhaps I saw more than you did; and I do
11380 think that Mr. Rushworth was sometimes very jealous."
11381
11382 "Very possibly. No wonder. Nothing could be more improper than the whole
11383 business. I am shocked whenever I think that Maria could be capable of
11384 it; but, if she could undertake the part, we must not be surprised at
11385 the rest."
11386
11387 "Before the play, I am much mistaken if _Julia_ did not think he was
11388 paying her attentions."
11389
11390 "Julia! I have heard before from some one of his being in love with
11391 Julia; but I could never see anything of it. And, Fanny, though I hope I
11392 do justice to my sisters' good qualities, I think it very possible that
11393 they might, one or both, be more desirous of being admired by Crawford,
11394 and might shew that desire rather more unguardedly than was perfectly
11395 prudent. I can remember that they were evidently fond of his society;
11396 and with such encouragement, a man like Crawford, lively, and it may
11397 be, a little unthinking, might be led on to--there could be nothing very
11398 striking, because it is clear that he had no pretensions: his heart was
11399 reserved for you. And I must say, that its being for you has raised him
11400 inconceivably in my opinion. It does him the highest honour; it shews
11401 his proper estimation of the blessing of domestic happiness and pure
11402 attachment. It proves him unspoilt by his uncle. It proves him, in
11403 short, everything that I had been used to wish to believe him, and
11404 feared he was not."
11405
11406 "I am persuaded that he does not think, as he ought, on serious
11407 subjects."
11408
11409 "Say, rather, that he has not thought at all upon serious subjects,
11410 which I believe to be a good deal the case. How could it be otherwise,
11411 with such an education and adviser? Under the disadvantages, indeed,
11412 which both have had, is it not wonderful that they should be what they
11413 are? Crawford's _feelings_, I am ready to acknowledge, have hitherto
11414 been too much his guides. Happily, those feelings have generally been
11415 good. You will supply the rest; and a most fortunate man he is to attach
11416 himself to such a creature--to a woman who, firm as a rock in her own
11417 principles, has a gentleness of character so well adapted to recommend
11418 them. He has chosen his partner, indeed, with rare felicity. He will
11419 make you happy, Fanny; I know he will make you happy; but you will make
11420 him everything."
11421
11422 "I would not engage in such a charge," cried Fanny, in a shrinking
11423 accent; "in such an office of high responsibility!"
11424
11425 "As usual, believing yourself unequal to anything! fancying everything
11426 too much for you! Well, though I may not be able to persuade you into
11427 different feelings, you will be persuaded into them, I trust. I confess
11428 myself sincerely anxious that you may. I have no common interest in
11429 Crawford's well-doing. Next to your happiness, Fanny, his has the first
11430 claim on me. You are aware of my having no common interest in Crawford."
11431
11432 Fanny was too well aware of it to have anything to say; and they walked
11433 on together some fifty yards in mutual silence and abstraction. Edmund
11434 first began again--
11435
11436 "I was very much pleased by her manner of speaking of it yesterday,
11437 particularly pleased, because I had not depended upon her seeing
11438 everything in so just a light. I knew she was very fond of you; but yet
11439 I was afraid of her not estimating your worth to her brother quite as
11440 it deserved, and of her regretting that he had not rather fixed on
11441 some woman of distinction or fortune. I was afraid of the bias of those
11442 worldly maxims, which she has been too much used to hear. But it was
11443 very different. She spoke of you, Fanny, just as she ought. She desires
11444 the connexion as warmly as your uncle or myself. We had a long talk
11445 about it. I should not have mentioned the subject, though very anxious
11446 to know her sentiments; but I had not been in the room five minutes
11447 before she began introducing it with all that openness of heart, and
11448 sweet peculiarity of manner, that spirit and ingenuousness which are so
11449 much a part of herself. Mrs. Grant laughed at her for her rapidity."
11450
11451 "Was Mrs. Grant in the room, then?"
11452
11453 "Yes, when I reached the house I found the two sisters together by
11454 themselves; and when once we had begun, we had not done with you, Fanny,
11455 till Crawford and Dr. Grant came in."
11456
11457 "It is above a week since I saw Miss Crawford."
11458
11459 "Yes, she laments it; yet owns it may have been best. You will see her,
11460 however, before she goes. She is very angry with you, Fanny; you must be
11461 prepared for that. She calls herself very angry, but you can imagine her
11462 anger. It is the regret and disappointment of a sister, who thinks her
11463 brother has a right to everything he may wish for, at the first moment.
11464 She is hurt, as you would be for William; but she loves and esteems you
11465 with all her heart."
11466
11467 "I knew she would be very angry with me."
11468
11469 "My dearest Fanny," cried Edmund, pressing her arm closer to him, "do
11470 not let the idea of her anger distress you. It is anger to be talked
11471 of rather than felt. Her heart is made for love and kindness, not for
11472 resentment. I wish you could have overheard her tribute of praise;
11473 I wish you could have seen her countenance, when she said that you
11474 _should_ be Henry's wife. And I observed that she always spoke of you
11475 as 'Fanny,' which she was never used to do; and it had a sound of most
11476 sisterly cordiality."
11477
11478 "And Mrs. Grant, did she say--did she speak; was she there all the
11479 time?"
11480
11481 "Yes, she was agreeing exactly with her sister. The surprise of your
11482 refusal, Fanny, seems to have been unbounded. That you could refuse such
11483 a man as Henry Crawford seems more than they can understand. I said what
11484 I could for you; but in good truth, as they stated the case--you must
11485 prove yourself to be in your senses as soon as you can by a different
11486 conduct; nothing else will satisfy them. But this is teasing you. I have
11487 done. Do not turn away from me."
11488
11489 "I _should_ have thought," said Fanny, after a pause of recollection and
11490 exertion, "that every woman must have felt the possibility of a man's
11491 not being approved, not being loved by some one of her sex at least, let
11492 him be ever so generally agreeable. Let him have all the perfections
11493 in the world, I think it ought not to be set down as certain that a man
11494 must be acceptable to every woman he may happen to like himself. But,
11495 even supposing it is so, allowing Mr. Crawford to have all the claims
11496 which his sisters think he has, how was I to be prepared to meet him
11497 with any feeling answerable to his own? He took me wholly by surprise.
11498 I had not an idea that his behaviour to me before had any meaning; and
11499 surely I was not to be teaching myself to like him only because he was
11500 taking what seemed very idle notice of me. In my situation, it would
11501 have been the extreme of vanity to be forming expectations on Mr.
11502 Crawford. I am sure his sisters, rating him as they do, must have
11503 thought it so, supposing he had meant nothing. How, then, was I to
11504 be--to be in love with him the moment he said he was with me? How was I
11505 to have an attachment at his service, as soon as it was asked for? His
11506 sisters should consider me as well as him. The higher his deserts, the
11507 more improper for me ever to have thought of him. And, and--we think
11508 very differently of the nature of women, if they can imagine a woman so
11509 very soon capable of returning an affection as this seems to imply."
11510
11511 "My dear, dear Fanny, now I have the truth. I know this to be the truth;
11512 and most worthy of you are such feelings. I had attributed them to you
11513 before. I thought I could understand you. You have now given exactly
11514 the explanation which I ventured to make for you to your friend and Mrs.
11515 Grant, and they were both better satisfied, though your warm-hearted
11516 friend was still run away with a little by the enthusiasm of her
11517 fondness for Henry. I told them that you were of all human creatures the
11518 one over whom habit had most power and novelty least; and that the very
11519 circumstance of the novelty of Crawford's addresses was against him.
11520 Their being so new and so recent was all in their disfavour; that you
11521 could tolerate nothing that you were not used to; and a great deal more
11522 to the same purpose, to give them a knowledge of your character. Miss
11523 Crawford made us laugh by her plans of encouragement for her brother.
11524 She meant to urge him to persevere in the hope of being loved in time,
11525 and of having his addresses most kindly received at the end of about ten
11526 years' happy marriage."
11527
11528 Fanny could with difficulty give the smile that was here asked for. Her
11529 feelings were all in revolt. She feared she had been doing wrong: saying
11530 too much, overacting the caution which she had been fancying necessary;
11531 in guarding against one evil, laying herself open to another; and to
11532 have Miss Crawford's liveliness repeated to her at such a moment, and on
11533 such a subject, was a bitter aggravation.
11534
11535 Edmund saw weariness and distress in her face, and immediately resolved
11536 to forbear all farther discussion; and not even to mention the name
11537 of Crawford again, except as it might be connected with what _must_ be
11538 agreeable to her. On this principle, he soon afterwards observed--"They
11539 go on Monday. You are sure, therefore, of seeing your friend either
11540 to-morrow or Sunday. They really go on Monday; and I was within a trifle
11541 of being persuaded to stay at Lessingby till that very day! I had almost
11542 promised it. What a difference it might have made! Those five or six
11543 days more at Lessingby might have been felt all my life."
11544
11545 "You were near staying there?"
11546
11547 "Very. I was most kindly pressed, and had nearly consented. Had I
11548 received any letter from Mansfield, to tell me how you were all going
11549 on, I believe I should certainly have staid; but I knew nothing that
11550 had happened here for a fortnight, and felt that I had been away long
11551 enough."
11552
11553 "You spent your time pleasantly there?"
11554
11555 "Yes; that is, it was the fault of my own mind if I did not. They were
11556 all very pleasant. I doubt their finding me so. I took uneasiness with
11557 me, and there was no getting rid of it till I was in Mansfield again."
11558
11559 "The Miss Owens--you liked them, did not you?"
11560
11561 "Yes, very well. Pleasant, good-humoured, unaffected girls. But I am
11562 spoilt, Fanny, for common female society. Good-humoured, unaffected
11563 girls will not do for a man who has been used to sensible women. They
11564 are two distinct orders of being. You and Miss Crawford have made me too
11565 nice."
11566
11567 Still, however, Fanny was oppressed and wearied; he saw it in her looks,
11568 it could not be talked away; and attempting it no more, he led her
11569 directly, with the kind authority of a privileged guardian, into the
11570 house.
11571
11572
11573
11574 CHAPTER XXXVI
11575
11576 Edmund now believed himself perfectly acquainted with all that Fanny
11577 could tell, or could leave to be conjectured of her sentiments, and he
11578 was satisfied. It had been, as he before presumed, too hasty a measure
11579 on Crawford's side, and time must be given to make the idea first
11580 familiar, and then agreeable to her. She must be used to the
11581 consideration of his being in love with her, and then a return of
11582 affection might not be very distant.
11583
11584 He gave this opinion as the result of the conversation to his father;
11585 and recommended there being nothing more said to her: no farther
11586 attempts to influence or persuade; but that everything should be left to
11587 Crawford's assiduities, and the natural workings of her own mind.
11588
11589 Sir Thomas promised that it should be so. Edmund's account of Fanny's
11590 disposition he could believe to be just; he supposed she had all those
11591 feelings, but he must consider it as very unfortunate that she _had_;
11592 for, less willing than his son to trust to the future, he could not
11593 help fearing that if such very long allowances of time and habit were
11594 necessary for her, she might not have persuaded herself into receiving
11595 his addresses properly before the young man's inclination for paying
11596 them were over. There was nothing to be done, however, but to submit
11597 quietly and hope the best.
11598
11599 The promised visit from "her friend," as Edmund called Miss Crawford,
11600 was a formidable threat to Fanny, and she lived in continual terror of
11601 it. As a sister, so partial and so angry, and so little scrupulous of
11602 what she said, and in another light so triumphant and secure, she was in
11603 every way an object of painful alarm. Her displeasure, her penetration,
11604 and her happiness were all fearful to encounter; and the dependence of
11605 having others present when they met was Fanny's only support in looking
11606 forward to it. She absented herself as little as possible from Lady
11607 Bertram, kept away from the East room, and took no solitary walk in the
11608 shrubbery, in her caution to avoid any sudden attack.
11609
11610 She succeeded. She was safe in the breakfast-room, with her aunt, when
11611 Miss Crawford did come; and the first misery over, and Miss Crawford
11612 looking and speaking with much less particularity of expression than she
11613 had anticipated, Fanny began to hope there would be nothing worse to be
11614 endured than a half-hour of moderate agitation. But here she hoped too
11615 much; Miss Crawford was not the slave of opportunity. She was determined
11616 to see Fanny alone, and therefore said to her tolerably soon, in a low
11617 voice, "I must speak to you for a few minutes somewhere"; words that
11618 Fanny felt all over her, in all her pulses and all her nerves. Denial
11619 was impossible. Her habits of ready submission, on the contrary, made
11620 her almost instantly rise and lead the way out of the room. She did it
11621 with wretched feelings, but it was inevitable.
11622
11623 They were no sooner in the hall than all restraint of countenance was
11624 over on Miss Crawford's side. She immediately shook her head at Fanny
11625 with arch, yet affectionate reproach, and taking her hand, seemed hardly
11626 able to help beginning directly. She said nothing, however, but, "Sad,
11627 sad girl! I do not know when I shall have done scolding you," and had
11628 discretion enough to reserve the rest till they might be secure of
11629 having four walls to themselves. Fanny naturally turned upstairs, and
11630 took her guest to the apartment which was now always fit for comfortable
11631 use; opening the door, however, with a most aching heart, and feeling
11632 that she had a more distressing scene before her than ever that spot had
11633 yet witnessed. But the evil ready to burst on her was at least delayed
11634 by the sudden change in Miss Crawford's ideas; by the strong effect on
11635 her mind which the finding herself in the East room again produced.
11636
11637 "Ha!" she cried, with instant animation, "am I here again? The East
11638 room! Once only was I in this room before"; and after stopping to look
11639 about her, and seemingly to retrace all that had then passed, she added,
11640 "Once only before. Do you remember it? I came to rehearse. Your cousin
11641 came too; and we had a rehearsal. You were our audience and prompter.
11642 A delightful rehearsal. I shall never forget it. Here we were, just in
11643 this part of the room: here was your cousin, here was I, here were the
11644 chairs. Oh! why will such things ever pass away?"
11645
11646 Happily for her companion, she wanted no answer. Her mind was entirely
11647 self-engrossed. She was in a reverie of sweet remembrances.
11648
11649 "The scene we were rehearsing was so very remarkable! The subject of
11650 it so very--very--what shall I say? He was to be describing and
11651 recommending matrimony to me. I think I see him now, trying to be as
11652 demure and composed as Anhalt ought, through the two long speeches.
11653 'When two sympathetic hearts meet in the marriage state, matrimony
11654 may be called a happy life.' I suppose no time can ever wear out the
11655 impression I have of his looks and voice as he said those words. It was
11656 curious, very curious, that we should have such a scene to play! If I
11657 had the power of recalling any one week of my existence, it should be
11658 that week--that acting week. Say what you would, Fanny, it should be
11659 _that_; for I never knew such exquisite happiness in any other. His
11660 sturdy spirit to bend as it did! Oh! it was sweet beyond expression. But
11661 alas, that very evening destroyed it all. That very evening brought your
11662 most unwelcome uncle. Poor Sir Thomas, who was glad to see you? Yet,
11663 Fanny, do not imagine I would now speak disrespectfully of Sir Thomas,
11664 though I certainly did hate him for many a week. No, I do him justice
11665 now. He is just what the head of such a family should be. Nay, in sober
11666 sadness, I believe I now love you all." And having said so, with a
11667 degree of tenderness and consciousness which Fanny had never seen in her
11668 before, and now thought only too becoming, she turned away for a moment
11669 to recover herself. "I have had a little fit since I came into this
11670 room, as you may perceive," said she presently, with a playful smile,
11671 "but it is over now; so let us sit down and be comfortable; for as to
11672 scolding you, Fanny, which I came fully intending to do, I have not
11673 the heart for it when it comes to the point." And embracing her very
11674 affectionately, "Good, gentle Fanny! when I think of this being the
11675 last time of seeing you for I do not know how long, I feel it quite
11676 impossible to do anything but love you."
11677
11678 Fanny was affected. She had not foreseen anything of this, and her
11679 feelings could seldom withstand the melancholy influence of the word
11680 "last." She cried as if she had loved Miss Crawford more than she
11681 possibly could; and Miss Crawford, yet farther softened by the sight of
11682 such emotion, hung about her with fondness, and said, "I hate to leave
11683 you. I shall see no one half so amiable where I am going. Who says we
11684 shall not be sisters? I know we shall. I feel that we are born to
11685 be connected; and those tears convince me that you feel it too, dear
11686 Fanny."
11687
11688 Fanny roused herself, and replying only in part, said, "But you are
11689 only going from one set of friends to another. You are going to a very
11690 particular friend."
11691
11692 "Yes, very true. Mrs. Fraser has been my intimate friend for years. But
11693 I have not the least inclination to go near her. I can think only of the
11694 friends I am leaving: my excellent sister, yourself, and the Bertrams in
11695 general. You have all so much more _heart_ among you than one finds in
11696 the world at large. You all give me a feeling of being able to trust and
11697 confide in you, which in common intercourse one knows nothing of. I wish
11698 I had settled with Mrs. Fraser not to go to her till after Easter, a
11699 much better time for the visit, but now I cannot put her off. And when
11700 I have done with her I must go to her sister, Lady Stornaway, because
11701 _she_ was rather my most particular friend of the two, but I have not
11702 cared much for _her_ these three years."
11703
11704 After this speech the two girls sat many minutes silent, each
11705 thoughtful: Fanny meditating on the different sorts of friendship in the
11706 world, Mary on something of less philosophic tendency. _She_ first spoke
11707 again.
11708
11709 "How perfectly I remember my resolving to look for you upstairs, and
11710 setting off to find my way to the East room, without having an idea
11711 whereabouts it was! How well I remember what I was thinking of as I came
11712 along, and my looking in and seeing you here sitting at this table at
11713 work; and then your cousin's astonishment, when he opened the door, at
11714 seeing me here! To be sure, your uncle's returning that very evening!
11715 There never was anything quite like it."
11716
11717 Another short fit of abstraction followed, when, shaking it off, she
11718 thus attacked her companion.
11719
11720 "Why, Fanny, you are absolutely in a reverie. Thinking, I hope, of one
11721 who is always thinking of you. Oh! that I could transport you for a
11722 short time into our circle in town, that you might understand how your
11723 power over Henry is thought of there! Oh! the envyings and heartburnings
11724 of dozens and dozens; the wonder, the incredulity that will be felt at
11725 hearing what you have done! For as to secrecy, Henry is quite the hero
11726 of an old romance, and glories in his chains. You should come to London
11727 to know how to estimate your conquest. If you were to see how he is
11728 courted, and how I am courted for his sake! Now, I am well aware that
11729 I shall not be half so welcome to Mrs. Fraser in consequence of his
11730 situation with you. When she comes to know the truth she will, very
11731 likely, wish me in Northamptonshire again; for there is a daughter of
11732 Mr. Fraser, by a first wife, whom she is wild to get married, and
11733 wants Henry to take. Oh! she has been trying for him to such a degree.
11734 Innocent and quiet as you sit here, you cannot have an idea of the
11735 _sensation_ that you will be occasioning, of the curiosity there will
11736 be to see you, of the endless questions I shall have to answer! Poor
11737 Margaret Fraser will be at me for ever about your eyes and your teeth,
11738 and how you do your hair, and who makes your shoes. I wish Margaret were
11739 married, for my poor friend's sake, for I look upon the Frasers to be
11740 about as unhappy as most other married people. And yet it was a most
11741 desirable match for Janet at the time. We were all delighted. She could
11742 not do otherwise than accept him, for he was rich, and she had nothing;
11743 but he turns out ill-tempered and _exigeant_, and wants a young woman,
11744 a beautiful young woman of five-and-twenty, to be as steady as himself.
11745 And my friend does not manage him well; she does not seem to know how
11746 to make the best of it. There is a spirit of irritation which, to say
11747 nothing worse, is certainly very ill-bred. In their house I shall call
11748 to mind the conjugal manners of Mansfield Parsonage with respect. Even
11749 Dr. Grant does shew a thorough confidence in my sister, and a certain
11750 consideration for her judgment, which makes one feel there _is_
11751 attachment; but of that I shall see nothing with the Frasers. I shall
11752 be at Mansfield for ever, Fanny. My own sister as a wife, Sir Thomas
11753 Bertram as a husband, are my standards of perfection. Poor Janet has
11754 been sadly taken in, and yet there was nothing improper on her side:
11755 she did not run into the match inconsiderately; there was no want of
11756 foresight. She took three days to consider of his proposals, and during
11757 those three days asked the advice of everybody connected with her whose
11758 opinion was worth having, and especially applied to my late dear aunt,
11759 whose knowledge of the world made her judgment very generally and
11760 deservedly looked up to by all the young people of her acquaintance, and
11761 she was decidedly in favour of Mr. Fraser. This seems as if nothing were
11762 a security for matrimonial comfort. I have not so much to say for my
11763 friend Flora, who jilted a very nice young man in the Blues for the sake
11764 of that horrid Lord Stornaway, who has about as much sense, Fanny, as
11765 Mr. Rushworth, but much worse-looking, and with a blackguard character.
11766 I _had_ my doubts at the time about her being right, for he has not even
11767 the air of a gentleman, and now I am sure she was wrong. By the bye,
11768 Flora Ross was dying for Henry the first winter she came out. But were I
11769 to attempt to tell you of all the women whom I have known to be in love
11770 with him, I should never have done. It is you, only you, insensible
11771 Fanny, who can think of him with anything like indifference. But are you
11772 so insensible as you profess yourself? No, no, I see you are not."
11773
11774 There was, indeed, so deep a blush over Fanny's face at that moment as
11775 might warrant strong suspicion in a predisposed mind.
11776
11777 "Excellent creature! I will not tease you. Everything shall take its
11778 course. But, dear Fanny, you must allow that you were not so absolutely
11779 unprepared to have the question asked as your cousin fancies. It is not
11780 possible but that you must have had some thoughts on the subject, some
11781 surmises as to what might be. You must have seen that he was trying to
11782 please you by every attention in his power. Was not he devoted to you
11783 at the ball? And then before the ball, the necklace! Oh! you received
11784 it just as it was meant. You were as conscious as heart could desire. I
11785 remember it perfectly."
11786
11787 "Do you mean, then, that your brother knew of the necklace beforehand?
11788 Oh! Miss Crawford, _that_ was not fair."
11789
11790 "Knew of it! It was his own doing entirely, his own thought. I am
11791 ashamed to say that it had never entered my head, but I was delighted to
11792 act on his proposal for both your sakes."
11793
11794 "I will not say," replied Fanny, "that I was not half afraid at the time
11795 of its being so, for there was something in your look that frightened
11796 me, but not at first; I was as unsuspicious of it at first--indeed,
11797 indeed I was. It is as true as that I sit here. And had I had an idea
11798 of it, nothing should have induced me to accept the necklace. As to your
11799 brother's behaviour, certainly I was sensible of a particularity: I had
11800 been sensible of it some little time, perhaps two or three weeks; but
11801 then I considered it as meaning nothing: I put it down as simply being
11802 his way, and was as far from supposing as from wishing him to have any
11803 serious thoughts of me. I had not, Miss Crawford, been an inattentive
11804 observer of what was passing between him and some part of this family in
11805 the summer and autumn. I was quiet, but I was not blind. I could not
11806 but see that Mr. Crawford allowed himself in gallantries which did mean
11807 nothing."
11808
11809 "Ah! I cannot deny it. He has now and then been a sad flirt, and
11810 cared very little for the havoc he might be making in young ladies'
11811 affections. I have often scolded him for it, but it is his only fault;
11812 and there is this to be said, that very few young ladies have any
11813 affections worth caring for. And then, Fanny, the glory of fixing one
11814 who has been shot at by so many; of having it in one's power to pay off
11815 the debts of one's sex! Oh! I am sure it is not in woman's nature to
11816 refuse such a triumph."
11817
11818 Fanny shook her head. "I cannot think well of a man who sports with any
11819 woman's feelings; and there may often be a great deal more suffered than
11820 a stander-by can judge of."
11821
11822 "I do not defend him. I leave him entirely to your mercy, and when he
11823 has got you at Everingham, I do not care how much you lecture him. But
11824 this I will say, that his fault, the liking to make girls a little
11825 in love with him, is not half so dangerous to a wife's happiness as a
11826 tendency to fall in love himself, which he has never been addicted to.
11827 And I do seriously and truly believe that he is attached to you in a way
11828 that he never was to any woman before; that he loves you with all his
11829 heart, and will love you as nearly for ever as possible. If any man ever
11830 loved a woman for ever, I think Henry will do as much for you."
11831
11832 Fanny could not avoid a faint smile, but had nothing to say.
11833
11834 "I cannot imagine Henry ever to have been happier," continued Mary
11835 presently, "than when he had succeeded in getting your brother's
11836 commission."
11837
11838 She had made a sure push at Fanny's feelings here.
11839
11840 "Oh! yes. How very, very kind of him."
11841
11842 "I know he must have exerted himself very much, for I know the parties
11843 he had to move. The Admiral hates trouble, and scorns asking favours;
11844 and there are so many young men's claims to be attended to in the same
11845 way, that a friendship and energy, not very determined, is easily put
11846 by. What a happy creature William must be! I wish we could see him."
11847
11848 Poor Fanny's mind was thrown into the most distressing of all its
11849 varieties. The recollection of what had been done for William was always
11850 the most powerful disturber of every decision against Mr. Crawford; and
11851 she sat thinking deeply of it till Mary, who had been first watching
11852 her complacently, and then musing on something else, suddenly called
11853 her attention by saying: "I should like to sit talking with you here all
11854 day, but we must not forget the ladies below, and so good-bye, my dear,
11855 my amiable, my excellent Fanny, for though we shall nominally part in
11856 the breakfast-parlour, I must take leave of you here. And I do take
11857 leave, longing for a happy reunion, and trusting that when we meet
11858 again, it will be under circumstances which may open our hearts to each
11859 other without any remnant or shadow of reserve."
11860
11861 A very, very kind embrace, and some agitation of manner, accompanied
11862 these words.
11863
11864 "I shall see your cousin in town soon: he talks of being there tolerably
11865 soon; and Sir Thomas, I dare say, in the course of the spring; and your
11866 eldest cousin, and the Rushworths, and Julia, I am sure of meeting again
11867 and again, and all but you. I have two favours to ask, Fanny: one is
11868 your correspondence. You must write to me. And the other, that you will
11869 often call on Mrs. Grant, and make her amends for my being gone."
11870
11871 The first, at least, of these favours Fanny would rather not have been
11872 asked; but it was impossible for her to refuse the correspondence; it
11873 was impossible for her even not to accede to it more readily than
11874 her own judgment authorised. There was no resisting so much apparent
11875 affection. Her disposition was peculiarly calculated to value a fond
11876 treatment, and from having hitherto known so little of it, she was the
11877 more overcome by Miss Crawford's. Besides, there was gratitude towards
11878 her, for having made their _tete-a-tete_ so much less painful than her
11879 fears had predicted.
11880
11881 It was over, and she had escaped without reproaches and without
11882 detection. Her secret was still her own; and while that was the case,
11883 she thought she could resign herself to almost everything.
11884
11885 In the evening there was another parting. Henry Crawford came and
11886 sat some time with them; and her spirits not being previously in the
11887 strongest state, her heart was softened for a while towards him, because
11888 he really seemed to feel. Quite unlike his usual self, he scarcely said
11889 anything. He was evidently oppressed, and Fanny must grieve for him,
11890 though hoping she might never see him again till he were the husband of
11891 some other woman.
11892
11893 When it came to the moment of parting, he would take her hand, he would
11894 not be denied it; he said nothing, however, or nothing that she heard,
11895 and when he had left the room, she was better pleased that such a token
11896 of friendship had passed.
11897
11898 On the morrow the Crawfords were gone.
11899
11900
11901
11902 CHAPTER XXXVII
11903
11904 Mr. Crawford gone, Sir Thomas's next object was that he should be
11905 missed; and he entertained great hope that his niece would find a blank
11906 in the loss of those attentions which at the time she had felt, or
11907 fancied, an evil. She had tasted of consequence in its most flattering
11908 form; and he did hope that the loss of it, the sinking again into
11909 nothing, would awaken very wholesome regrets in her mind. He watched her
11910 with this idea; but he could hardly tell with what success. He hardly
11911 knew whether there were any difference in her spirits or not. She
11912 was always so gentle and retiring that her emotions were beyond his
11913 discrimination. He did not understand her: he felt that he did not; and
11914 therefore applied to Edmund to tell him how she stood affected on the
11915 present occasion, and whether she were more or less happy than she had
11916 been.
11917
11918 Edmund did not discern any symptoms of regret, and thought his father
11919 a little unreasonable in supposing the first three or four days could
11920 produce any.
11921
11922 What chiefly surprised Edmund was, that Crawford's sister, the friend
11923 and companion who had been so much to her, should not be more visibly
11924 regretted. He wondered that Fanny spoke so seldom of _her_, and had so
11925 little voluntarily to say of her concern at this separation.
11926
11927 Alas! it was this sister, this friend and companion, who was now the
11928 chief bane of Fanny's comfort. If she could have believed Mary's future
11929 fate as unconnected with Mansfield as she was determined the brother's
11930 should be, if she could have hoped her return thither to be as distant
11931 as she was much inclined to think his, she would have been light of
11932 heart indeed; but the more she recollected and observed, the more deeply
11933 was she convinced that everything was now in a fairer train for Miss
11934 Crawford's marrying Edmund than it had ever been before. On his side the
11935 inclination was stronger, on hers less equivocal. His objections, the
11936 scruples of his integrity, seemed all done away, nobody could tell
11937 how; and the doubts and hesitations of her ambition were equally got
11938 over--and equally without apparent reason. It could only be imputed to
11939 increasing attachment. His good and her bad feelings yielded to love,
11940 and such love must unite them. He was to go to town as soon as some
11941 business relative to Thornton Lacey were completed--perhaps within a
11942 fortnight; he talked of going, he loved to talk of it; and when once
11943 with her again, Fanny could not doubt the rest. Her acceptance must be
11944 as certain as his offer; and yet there were bad feelings still remaining
11945 which made the prospect of it most sorrowful to her, independently, she
11946 believed, independently of self.
11947
11948 In their very last conversation, Miss Crawford, in spite of some amiable
11949 sensations, and much personal kindness, had still been Miss Crawford;
11950 still shewn a mind led astray and bewildered, and without any suspicion
11951 of being so; darkened, yet fancying itself light. She might love, but
11952 she did not deserve Edmund by any other sentiment. Fanny believed there
11953 was scarcely a second feeling in common between them; and she may be
11954 forgiven by older sages for looking on the chance of Miss Crawford's
11955 future improvement as nearly desperate, for thinking that if Edmund's
11956 influence in this season of love had already done so little in clearing
11957 her judgment, and regulating her notions, his worth would be finally
11958 wasted on her even in years of matrimony.
11959
11960 Experience might have hoped more for any young people so circumstanced,
11961 and impartiality would not have denied to Miss Crawford's nature that
11962 participation of the general nature of women which would lead her to
11963 adopt the opinions of the man she loved and respected as her own. But
11964 as such were Fanny's persuasions, she suffered very much from them, and
11965 could never speak of Miss Crawford without pain.
11966
11967 Sir Thomas, meanwhile, went on with his own hopes and his own
11968 observations, still feeling a right, by all his knowledge of human
11969 nature, to expect to see the effect of the loss of power and consequence
11970 on his niece's spirits, and the past attentions of the lover producing a
11971 craving for their return; and he was soon afterwards able to account for
11972 his not yet completely and indubitably seeing all this, by the prospect
11973 of another visitor, whose approach he could allow to be quite enough to
11974 support the spirits he was watching. William had obtained a ten days'
11975 leave of absence, to be given to Northamptonshire, and was coming, the
11976 happiest of lieutenants, because the latest made, to shew his happiness
11977 and describe his uniform.
11978
11979 He came; and he would have been delighted to shew his uniform there too,
11980 had not cruel custom prohibited its appearance except on duty. So the
11981 uniform remained at Portsmouth, and Edmund conjectured that before Fanny
11982 had any chance of seeing it, all its own freshness and all the freshness
11983 of its wearer's feelings must be worn away. It would be sunk into a
11984 badge of disgrace; for what can be more unbecoming, or more worthless,
11985 than the uniform of a lieutenant, who has been a lieutenant a year or
11986 two, and sees others made commanders before him? So reasoned Edmund,
11987 till his father made him the confidant of a scheme which placed Fanny's
11988 chance of seeing the second lieutenant of H.M.S. Thrush in all his glory
11989 in another light.
11990
11991 This scheme was that she should accompany her brother back to
11992 Portsmouth, and spend a little time with her own family. It had occurred
11993 to Sir Thomas, in one of his dignified musings, as a right and desirable
11994 measure; but before he absolutely made up his mind, he consulted his
11995 son. Edmund considered it every way, and saw nothing but what was right.
11996 The thing was good in itself, and could not be done at a better time;
11997 and he had no doubt of it being highly agreeable to Fanny. This was
11998 enough to determine Sir Thomas; and a decisive "then so it shall be"
11999 closed that stage of the business; Sir Thomas retiring from it with some
12000 feelings of satisfaction, and views of good over and above what he had
12001 communicated to his son; for his prime motive in sending her away had
12002 very little to do with the propriety of her seeing her parents again,
12003 and nothing at all with any idea of making her happy. He certainly
12004 wished her to go willingly, but he as certainly wished her to be
12005 heartily sick of home before her visit ended; and that a little
12006 abstinence from the elegancies and luxuries of Mansfield Park would
12007 bring her mind into a sober state, and incline her to a juster estimate
12008 of the value of that home of greater permanence, and equal comfort, of
12009 which she had the offer.
12010
12011 It was a medicinal project upon his niece's understanding, which he must
12012 consider as at present diseased. A residence of eight or nine years in
12013 the abode of wealth and plenty had a little disordered her powers of
12014 comparing and judging. Her father's house would, in all probability,
12015 teach her the value of a good income; and he trusted that she would be
12016 the wiser and happier woman, all her life, for the experiment he had
12017 devised.
12018
12019 Had Fanny been at all addicted to raptures, she must have had a strong
12020 attack of them when she first understood what was intended, when her
12021 uncle first made her the offer of visiting the parents, and brothers,
12022 and sisters, from whom she had been divided almost half her life; of
12023 returning for a couple of months to the scenes of her infancy, with
12024 William for the protector and companion of her journey, and the
12025 certainty of continuing to see William to the last hour of his remaining
12026 on land. Had she ever given way to bursts of delight, it must have been
12027 then, for she was delighted, but her happiness was of a quiet, deep,
12028 heart-swelling sort; and though never a great talker, she was always
12029 more inclined to silence when feeling most strongly. At the moment she
12030 could only thank and accept. Afterwards, when familiarised with the
12031 visions of enjoyment so suddenly opened, she could speak more largely
12032 to William and Edmund of what she felt; but still there were emotions
12033 of tenderness that could not be clothed in words. The remembrance of all
12034 her earliest pleasures, and of what she had suffered in being torn from
12035 them, came over her with renewed strength, and it seemed as if to be
12036 at home again would heal every pain that had since grown out of the
12037 separation. To be in the centre of such a circle, loved by so many,
12038 and more loved by all than she had ever been before; to feel affection
12039 without fear or restraint; to feel herself the equal of those who
12040 surrounded her; to be at peace from all mention of the Crawfords, safe
12041 from every look which could be fancied a reproach on their account. This
12042 was a prospect to be dwelt on with a fondness that could be but half
12043 acknowledged.
12044
12045 Edmund, too--to be two months from _him_ (and perhaps she might be
12046 allowed to make her absence three) must do her good. At a distance,
12047 unassailed by his looks or his kindness, and safe from the perpetual
12048 irritation of knowing his heart, and striving to avoid his confidence,
12049 she should be able to reason herself into a properer state; she should
12050 be able to think of him as in London, and arranging everything there,
12051 without wretchedness. What might have been hard to bear at Mansfield was
12052 to become a slight evil at Portsmouth.
12053
12054 The only drawback was the doubt of her aunt Bertram's being comfortable
12055 without her. She was of use to no one else; but _there_ she might be
12056 missed to a degree that she did not like to think of; and that part of
12057 the arrangement was, indeed, the hardest for Sir Thomas to accomplish,
12058 and what only _he_ could have accomplished at all.
12059
12060 But he was master at Mansfield Park. When he had really resolved on
12061 any measure, he could always carry it through; and now by dint of long
12062 talking on the subject, explaining and dwelling on the duty of Fanny's
12063 sometimes seeing her family, he did induce his wife to let her go;
12064 obtaining it rather from submission, however, than conviction, for Lady
12065 Bertram was convinced of very little more than that Sir Thomas thought
12066 Fanny ought to go, and therefore that she must. In the calmness of
12067 her own dressing-room, in the impartial flow of her own meditations,
12068 unbiassed by his bewildering statements, she could not acknowledge any
12069 necessity for Fanny's ever going near a father and mother who had done
12070 without her so long, while she was so useful to herself. And as to the
12071 not missing her, which under Mrs. Norris's discussion was the point
12072 attempted to be proved, she set herself very steadily against admitting
12073 any such thing.
12074
12075 Sir Thomas had appealed to her reason, conscience, and dignity. He
12076 called it a sacrifice, and demanded it of her goodness and self-command
12077 as such. But Mrs. Norris wanted to persuade her that Fanny could be very
12078 well spared--_she_ being ready to give up all her own time to her as
12079 requested--and, in short, could not really be wanted or missed.
12080
12081 "That may be, sister," was all Lady Bertram's reply. "I dare say you are
12082 very right; but I am sure I shall miss her very much."
12083
12084 The next step was to communicate with Portsmouth. Fanny wrote to offer
12085 herself; and her mother's answer, though short, was so kind--a few
12086 simple lines expressed so natural and motherly a joy in the prospect
12087 of seeing her child again, as to confirm all the daughter's views of
12088 happiness in being with her--convincing her that she should now find a
12089 warm and affectionate friend in the "mama" who had certainly shewn no
12090 remarkable fondness for her formerly; but this she could easily suppose
12091 to have been her own fault or her own fancy. She had probably alienated
12092 love by the helplessness and fretfulness of a fearful temper, or been
12093 unreasonable in wanting a larger share than any one among so many could
12094 deserve. Now, when she knew better how to be useful, and how to forbear,
12095 and when her mother could be no longer occupied by the incessant
12096 demands of a house full of little children, there would be leisure and
12097 inclination for every comfort, and they should soon be what mother and
12098 daughter ought to be to each other.
12099
12100 William was almost as happy in the plan as his sister. It would be the
12101 greatest pleasure to him to have her there to the last moment before he
12102 sailed, and perhaps find her there still when he came in from his first
12103 cruise. And besides, he wanted her so very much to see the Thrush before
12104 she went out of harbour--the Thrush was certainly the finest sloop in
12105 the service--and there were several improvements in the dockyard, too,
12106 which he quite longed to shew her.
12107
12108 He did not scruple to add that her being at home for a while would be a
12109 great advantage to everybody.
12110
12111 "I do not know how it is," said he; "but we seem to want some of
12112 your nice ways and orderliness at my father's. The house is always in
12113 confusion. You will set things going in a better way, I am sure. You
12114 will tell my mother how it all ought to be, and you will be so useful to
12115 Susan, and you will teach Betsey, and make the boys love and mind you.
12116 How right and comfortable it will all be!"
12117
12118 By the time Mrs. Price's answer arrived, there remained but a very few
12119 days more to be spent at Mansfield; and for part of one of those days
12120 the young travellers were in a good deal of alarm on the subject of
12121 their journey, for when the mode of it came to be talked of, and Mrs.
12122 Norris found that all her anxiety to save her brother-in-law's money
12123 was vain, and that in spite of her wishes and hints for a less expensive
12124 conveyance of Fanny, they were to travel post; when she saw Sir Thomas
12125 actually give William notes for the purpose, she was struck with the
12126 idea of there being room for a third in the carriage, and suddenly
12127 seized with a strong inclination to go with them, to go and see her poor
12128 dear sister Price. She proclaimed her thoughts. She must say that she
12129 had more than half a mind to go with the young people; it would be such
12130 an indulgence to her; she had not seen her poor dear sister Price for
12131 more than twenty years; and it would be a help to the young people in
12132 their journey to have her older head to manage for them; and she could
12133 not help thinking her poor dear sister Price would feel it very unkind
12134 of her not to come by such an opportunity.
12135
12136 William and Fanny were horror-struck at the idea.
12137
12138 All the comfort of their comfortable journey would be destroyed at
12139 once. With woeful countenances they looked at each other. Their suspense
12140 lasted an hour or two. No one interfered to encourage or dissuade. Mrs.
12141 Norris was left to settle the matter by herself; and it ended, to the
12142 infinite joy of her nephew and niece, in the recollection that she could
12143 not possibly be spared from Mansfield Park at present; that she was a
12144 great deal too necessary to Sir Thomas and Lady Bertram for her to
12145 be able to answer it to herself to leave them even for a week, and
12146 therefore must certainly sacrifice every other pleasure to that of being
12147 useful to them.
12148
12149 It had, in fact, occurred to her, that though taken to Portsmouth for
12150 nothing, it would be hardly possible for her to avoid paying her own
12151 expenses back again. So her poor dear sister Price was left to all the
12152 disappointment of her missing such an opportunity, and another twenty
12153 years' absence, perhaps, begun.
12154
12155 Edmund's plans were affected by this Portsmouth journey, this absence of
12156 Fanny's. He too had a sacrifice to make to Mansfield Park as well as his
12157 aunt. He had intended, about this time, to be going to London; but he
12158 could not leave his father and mother just when everybody else of most
12159 importance to their comfort was leaving them; and with an effort, felt
12160 but not boasted of, he delayed for a week or two longer a journey which
12161 he was looking forward to with the hope of its fixing his happiness for
12162 ever.
12163
12164 He told Fanny of it. She knew so much already, that she must know
12165 everything. It made the substance of one other confidential discourse
12166 about Miss Crawford; and Fanny was the more affected from feeling it to
12167 be the last time in which Miss Crawford's name would ever be mentioned
12168 between them with any remains of liberty. Once afterwards she was
12169 alluded to by him. Lady Bertram had been telling her niece in the
12170 evening to write to her soon and often, and promising to be a good
12171 correspondent herself; and Edmund, at a convenient moment, then added
12172 in a whisper, "And _I_ shall write to you, Fanny, when I have anything
12173 worth writing about, anything to say that I think you will like to hear,
12174 and that you will not hear so soon from any other quarter." Had she
12175 doubted his meaning while she listened, the glow in his face, when she
12176 looked up at him, would have been decisive.
12177
12178 For this letter she must try to arm herself. That a letter from Edmund
12179 should be a subject of terror! She began to feel that she had not yet
12180 gone through all the changes of opinion and sentiment which the progress
12181 of time and variation of circumstances occasion in this world of
12182 changes. The vicissitudes of the human mind had not yet been exhausted
12183 by her.
12184
12185 Poor Fanny! though going as she did willingly and eagerly, the last
12186 evening at Mansfield Park must still be wretchedness. Her heart was
12187 completely sad at parting. She had tears for every room in the house,
12188 much more for every beloved inhabitant. She clung to her aunt, because
12189 she would miss her; she kissed the hand of her uncle with struggling
12190 sobs, because she had displeased him; and as for Edmund, she could
12191 neither speak, nor look, nor think, when the last moment came with
12192 _him_; and it was not till it was over that she knew he was giving her
12193 the affectionate farewell of a brother.
12194
12195 All this passed overnight, for the journey was to begin very early in
12196 the morning; and when the small, diminished party met at breakfast,
12197 William and Fanny were talked of as already advanced one stage.
12198
12199
12200
12201 CHAPTER XXXVIII
12202
12203 The novelty of travelling, and the happiness of being with William, soon
12204 produced their natural effect on Fanny's spirits, when Mansfield Park
12205 was fairly left behind; and by the time their first stage was ended, and
12206 they were to quit Sir Thomas's carriage, she was able to take leave of
12207 the old coachman, and send back proper messages, with cheerful looks.
12208
12209 Of pleasant talk between the brother and sister there was no end.
12210 Everything supplied an amusement to the high glee of William's mind, and
12211 he was full of frolic and joke in the intervals of their higher-toned
12212 subjects, all of which ended, if they did not begin, in praise of the
12213 Thrush, conjectures how she would be employed, schemes for an action
12214 with some superior force, which (supposing the first lieutenant out of
12215 the way, and William was not very merciful to the first lieutenant) was
12216 to give himself the next step as soon as possible, or speculations upon
12217 prize-money, which was to be generously distributed at home, with only
12218 the reservation of enough to make the little cottage comfortable,
12219 in which he and Fanny were to pass all their middle and later life
12220 together.
12221
12222 Fanny's immediate concerns, as far as they involved Mr. Crawford, made
12223 no part of their conversation. William knew what had passed, and from
12224 his heart lamented that his sister's feelings should be so cold towards
12225 a man whom he must consider as the first of human characters; but he was
12226 of an age to be all for love, and therefore unable to blame; and knowing
12227 her wish on the subject, he would not distress her by the slightest
12228 allusion.
12229
12230 She had reason to suppose herself not yet forgotten by Mr. Crawford. She
12231 had heard repeatedly from his sister within the three weeks which had
12232 passed since their leaving Mansfield, and in each letter there had been
12233 a few lines from himself, warm and determined like his speeches. It
12234 was a correspondence which Fanny found quite as unpleasant as she had
12235 feared. Miss Crawford's style of writing, lively and affectionate, was
12236 itself an evil, independent of what she was thus forced into reading
12237 from the brother's pen, for Edmund would never rest till she had read
12238 the chief of the letter to him; and then she had to listen to his
12239 admiration of her language, and the warmth of her attachments. There
12240 had, in fact, been so much of message, of allusion, of recollection, so
12241 much of Mansfield in every letter, that Fanny could not but suppose it
12242 meant for him to hear; and to find herself forced into a purpose of
12243 that kind, compelled into a correspondence which was bringing her the
12244 addresses of the man she did not love, and obliging her to administer
12245 to the adverse passion of the man she did, was cruelly mortifying. Here,
12246 too, her present removal promised advantage. When no longer under the
12247 same roof with Edmund, she trusted that Miss Crawford would have no
12248 motive for writing strong enough to overcome the trouble, and that at
12249 Portsmouth their correspondence would dwindle into nothing.
12250
12251 With such thoughts as these, among ten hundred others, Fanny proceeded
12252 in her journey safely and cheerfully, and as expeditiously as could
12253 rationally be hoped in the dirty month of February. They entered Oxford,
12254 but she could take only a hasty glimpse of Edmund's college as they
12255 passed along, and made no stop anywhere till they reached Newbury, where
12256 a comfortable meal, uniting dinner and supper, wound up the enjoyments
12257 and fatigues of the day.
12258
12259 The next morning saw them off again at an early hour; and with no
12260 events, and no delays, they regularly advanced, and were in the environs
12261 of Portsmouth while there was yet daylight for Fanny to look around her,
12262 and wonder at the new buildings. They passed the drawbridge, and
12263 entered the town; and the light was only beginning to fail as, guided
12264 by William's powerful voice, they were rattled into a narrow street,
12265 leading from the High Street, and drawn up before the door of a small
12266 house now inhabited by Mr. Price.
12267
12268 Fanny was all agitation and flutter; all hope and apprehension. The
12269 moment they stopped, a trollopy-looking maidservant, seemingly in
12270 waiting for them at the door, stepped forward, and more intent on
12271 telling the news than giving them any help, immediately began with, "The
12272 Thrush is gone out of harbour, please sir, and one of the officers has
12273 been here to--" She was interrupted by a fine tall boy of eleven years
12274 old, who, rushing out of the house, pushed the maid aside, and while
12275 William was opening the chaise-door himself, called out, "You are just
12276 in time. We have been looking for you this half-hour. The Thrush went
12277 out of harbour this morning. I saw her. It was a beautiful sight. And
12278 they think she will have her orders in a day or two. And Mr. Campbell
12279 was here at four o'clock to ask for you: he has got one of the Thrush's
12280 boats, and is going off to her at six, and hoped you would be here in
12281 time to go with him."
12282
12283 A stare or two at Fanny, as William helped her out of the carriage, was
12284 all the voluntary notice which this brother bestowed; but he made no
12285 objection to her kissing him, though still entirely engaged in detailing
12286 farther particulars of the Thrush's going out of harbour, in which
12287 he had a strong right of interest, being to commence his career of
12288 seamanship in her at this very time.
12289
12290 Another moment and Fanny was in the narrow entrance-passage of the
12291 house, and in her mother's arms, who met her there with looks of true
12292 kindness, and with features which Fanny loved the more, because they
12293 brought her aunt Bertram's before her, and there were her two sisters:
12294 Susan, a well-grown fine girl of fourteen, and Betsey, the youngest of
12295 the family, about five--both glad to see her in their way, though with
12296 no advantage of manner in receiving her. But manner Fanny did not want.
12297 Would they but love her, she should be satisfied.
12298
12299 She was then taken into a parlour, so small that her first conviction
12300 was of its being only a passage-room to something better, and she stood
12301 for a moment expecting to be invited on; but when she saw there was
12302 no other door, and that there were signs of habitation before her, she
12303 called back her thoughts, reproved herself, and grieved lest they should
12304 have been suspected. Her mother, however, could not stay long enough
12305 to suspect anything. She was gone again to the street-door, to welcome
12306 William. "Oh! my dear William, how glad I am to see you. But have you
12307 heard about the Thrush? She is gone out of harbour already; three days
12308 before we had any thought of it; and I do not know what I am to do about
12309 Sam's things, they will never be ready in time; for she may have her
12310 orders to-morrow, perhaps. It takes me quite unawares. And now you must
12311 be off for Spithead too. Campbell has been here, quite in a worry about
12312 you; and now what shall we do? I thought to have had such a comfortable
12313 evening with you, and here everything comes upon me at once."
12314
12315 Her son answered cheerfully, telling her that everything was always for
12316 the best; and making light of his own inconvenience in being obliged to
12317 hurry away so soon.
12318
12319 "To be sure, I had much rather she had stayed in harbour, that I might
12320 have sat a few hours with you in comfort; but as there is a boat ashore,
12321 I had better go off at once, and there is no help for it. Whereabouts
12322 does the Thrush lay at Spithead? Near the Canopus? But no matter; here's
12323 Fanny in the parlour, and why should we stay in the passage? Come,
12324 mother, you have hardly looked at your own dear Fanny yet."
12325
12326 In they both came, and Mrs. Price having kindly kissed her daughter
12327 again, and commented a little on her growth, began with very natural
12328 solicitude to feel for their fatigues and wants as travellers.
12329
12330 "Poor dears! how tired you must both be! and now, what will you have? I
12331 began to think you would never come. Betsey and I have been watching for
12332 you this half-hour. And when did you get anything to eat? And what would
12333 you like to have now? I could not tell whether you would be for some
12334 meat, or only a dish of tea, after your journey, or else I would have
12335 got something ready. And now I am afraid Campbell will be here before
12336 there is time to dress a steak, and we have no butcher at hand. It is
12337 very inconvenient to have no butcher in the street. We were better off
12338 in our last house. Perhaps you would like some tea as soon as it can be
12339 got."
12340
12341 They both declared they should prefer it to anything. "Then, Betsey, my
12342 dear, run into the kitchen and see if Rebecca has put the water on; and
12343 tell her to bring in the tea-things as soon as she can. I wish we could
12344 get the bell mended; but Betsey is a very handy little messenger."
12345
12346 Betsey went with alacrity, proud to shew her abilities before her fine
12347 new sister.
12348
12349 "Dear me!" continued the anxious mother, "what a sad fire we have got,
12350 and I dare say you are both starved with cold. Draw your chair nearer,
12351 my dear. I cannot think what Rebecca has been about. I am sure I told
12352 her to bring some coals half an hour ago. Susan, you should have taken
12353 care of the fire."
12354
12355 "I was upstairs, mama, moving my things," said Susan, in a fearless,
12356 self-defending tone, which startled Fanny. "You know you had but just
12357 settled that my sister Fanny and I should have the other room; and I
12358 could not get Rebecca to give me any help."
12359
12360 Farther discussion was prevented by various bustles: first, the driver
12361 came to be paid; then there was a squabble between Sam and Rebecca about
12362 the manner of carrying up his sister's trunk, which he would manage all
12363 his own way; and lastly, in walked Mr. Price himself, his own loud voice
12364 preceding him, as with something of the oath kind he kicked away his
12365 son's port-manteau and his daughter's bandbox in the passage, and called
12366 out for a candle; no candle was brought, however, and he walked into the
12367 room.
12368
12369 Fanny with doubting feelings had risen to meet him, but sank down again
12370 on finding herself undistinguished in the dusk, and unthought of. With
12371 a friendly shake of his son's hand, and an eager voice, he instantly
12372 began--"Ha! welcome back, my boy. Glad to see you. Have you heard the
12373 news? The Thrush went out of harbour this morning. Sharp is the
12374 word, you see! By G--, you are just in time! The doctor has been here
12375 inquiring for you: he has got one of the boats, and is to be off for
12376 Spithead by six, so you had better go with him. I have been to Turner's
12377 about your mess; it is all in a way to be done. I should not wonder if
12378 you had your orders to-morrow: but you cannot sail with this wind, if
12379 you are to cruise to the westward; and Captain Walsh thinks you will
12380 certainly have a cruise to the westward, with the Elephant. By G--, I
12381 wish you may! But old Scholey was saying, just now, that he thought you
12382 would be sent first to the Texel. Well, well, we are ready, whatever
12383 happens. But by G--, you lost a fine sight by not being here in the
12384 morning to see the Thrush go out of harbour! I would not have been out
12385 of the way for a thousand pounds. Old Scholey ran in at breakfast-time,
12386 to say she had slipped her moorings and was coming out, I jumped up, and
12387 made but two steps to the platform. If ever there was a perfect beauty
12388 afloat, she is one; and there she lays at Spithead, and anybody in
12389 England would take her for an eight-and-twenty. I was upon the platform
12390 two hours this afternoon looking at her. She lays close to the Endymion,
12391 between her and the Cleopatra, just to the eastward of the sheer hulk."
12392
12393 "Ha!" cried William, "_that's_ just where I should have put her myself.
12394 It's the best berth at Spithead. But here is my sister, sir; here is
12395 Fanny," turning and leading her forward; "it is so dark you do not see
12396 her."
12397
12398 With an acknowledgment that he had quite forgot her, Mr. Price now
12399 received his daughter; and having given her a cordial hug, and observed
12400 that she was grown into a woman, and he supposed would be wanting a
12401 husband soon, seemed very much inclined to forget her again. Fanny
12402 shrunk back to her seat, with feelings sadly pained by his language and
12403 his smell of spirits; and he talked on only to his son, and only of the
12404 Thrush, though William, warmly interested as he was in that subject,
12405 more than once tried to make his father think of Fanny, and her long
12406 absence and long journey.
12407
12408 After sitting some time longer, a candle was obtained; but as there was
12409 still no appearance of tea, nor, from Betsey's reports from the kitchen,
12410 much hope of any under a considerable period, William determined to
12411 go and change his dress, and make the necessary preparations for
12412 his removal on board directly, that he might have his tea in comfort
12413 afterwards.
12414
12415 As he left the room, two rosy-faced boys, ragged and dirty, about eight
12416 and nine years old, rushed into it just released from school, and coming
12417 eagerly to see their sister, and tell that the Thrush was gone out of
12418 harbour; Tom and Charles. Charles had been born since Fanny's going
12419 away, but Tom she had often helped to nurse, and now felt a particular
12420 pleasure in seeing again. Both were kissed very tenderly, but Tom she
12421 wanted to keep by her, to try to trace the features of the baby she had
12422 loved, and talked to, of his infant preference of herself. Tom, however,
12423 had no mind for such treatment: he came home not to stand and be talked
12424 to, but to run about and make a noise; and both boys had soon burst from
12425 her, and slammed the parlour-door till her temples ached.
12426
12427 She had now seen all that were at home; there remained only two brothers
12428 between herself and Susan, one of whom was a clerk in a public office
12429 in London, and the other midshipman on board an Indiaman. But though she
12430 had _seen_ all the members of the family, she had not yet _heard_ all
12431 the noise they could make. Another quarter of an hour brought her a
12432 great deal more. William was soon calling out from the landing-place of
12433 the second story for his mother and for Rebecca. He was in distress
12434 for something that he had left there, and did not find again. A key was
12435 mislaid, Betsey accused of having got at his new hat, and some slight,
12436 but essential alteration of his uniform waistcoat, which he had been
12437 promised to have done for him, entirely neglected.
12438
12439 Mrs. Price, Rebecca, and Betsey all went up to defend themselves, all
12440 talking together, but Rebecca loudest, and the job was to be done as
12441 well as it could in a great hurry; William trying in vain to send Betsey
12442 down again, or keep her from being troublesome where she was; the whole
12443 of which, as almost every door in the house was open, could be plainly
12444 distinguished in the parlour, except when drowned at intervals by the
12445 superior noise of Sam, Tom, and Charles chasing each other up and down
12446 stairs, and tumbling about and hallooing.
12447
12448 Fanny was almost stunned. The smallness of the house and thinness of the
12449 walls brought everything so close to her, that, added to the fatigue of
12450 her journey, and all her recent agitation, she hardly knew how to
12451 bear it. _Within_ the room all was tranquil enough, for Susan having
12452 disappeared with the others, there were soon only her father and herself
12453 remaining; and he, taking out a newspaper, the accustomary loan of a
12454 neighbour, applied himself to studying it, without seeming to recollect
12455 her existence. The solitary candle was held between himself and the
12456 paper, without any reference to her possible convenience; but she had
12457 nothing to do, and was glad to have the light screened from her aching
12458 head, as she sat in bewildered, broken, sorrowful contemplation.
12459
12460 She was at home. But, alas! it was not such a home, she had not such a
12461 welcome, as--she checked herself; she was unreasonable. What right had
12462 she to be of importance to her family? She could have none, so long lost
12463 sight of! William's concerns must be dearest, they always had been, and
12464 he had every right. Yet to have so little said or asked about herself,
12465 to have scarcely an inquiry made after Mansfield! It did pain her to
12466 have Mansfield forgotten; the friends who had done so much--the dear,
12467 dear friends! But here, one subject swallowed up all the rest. Perhaps
12468 it must be so. The destination of the Thrush must be now preeminently
12469 interesting. A day or two might shew the difference. _She_ only was to
12470 blame. Yet she thought it would not have been so at Mansfield. No, in
12471 her uncle's house there would have been a consideration of times and
12472 seasons, a regulation of subject, a propriety, an attention towards
12473 everybody which there was not here.
12474
12475 The only interruption which thoughts like these received for nearly half
12476 an hour was from a sudden burst of her father's, not at all calculated
12477 to compose them. At a more than ordinary pitch of thumping and hallooing
12478 in the passage, he exclaimed, "Devil take those young dogs! How they are
12479 singing out! Ay, Sam's voice louder than all the rest! That boy is fit
12480 for a boatswain. Holla, you there! Sam, stop your confounded pipe, or I
12481 shall be after you."
12482
12483 This threat was so palpably disregarded, that though within five minutes
12484 afterwards the three boys all burst into the room together and sat down,
12485 Fanny could not consider it as a proof of anything more than their
12486 being for the time thoroughly fagged, which their hot faces and panting
12487 breaths seemed to prove, especially as they were still kicking each
12488 other's shins, and hallooing out at sudden starts immediately under
12489 their father's eye.
12490
12491 The next opening of the door brought something more welcome: it was for
12492 the tea-things, which she had begun almost to despair of seeing that
12493 evening. Susan and an attendant girl, whose inferior appearance informed
12494 Fanny, to her great surprise, that she had previously seen the upper
12495 servant, brought in everything necessary for the meal; Susan looking, as
12496 she put the kettle on the fire and glanced at her sister, as if divided
12497 between the agreeable triumph of shewing her activity and usefulness,
12498 and the dread of being thought to demean herself by such an office. "She
12499 had been into the kitchen," she said, "to hurry Sally and help make the
12500 toast, and spread the bread and butter, or she did not know when they
12501 should have got tea, and she was sure her sister must want something
12502 after her journey."
12503
12504 Fanny was very thankful. She could not but own that she should be very
12505 glad of a little tea, and Susan immediately set about making it, as if
12506 pleased to have the employment all to herself; and with only a little
12507 unnecessary bustle, and some few injudicious attempts at keeping her
12508 brothers in better order than she could, acquitted herself very well.
12509 Fanny's spirit was as much refreshed as her body; her head and heart
12510 were soon the better for such well-timed kindness. Susan had an open,
12511 sensible countenance; she was like William, and Fanny hoped to find her
12512 like him in disposition and goodwill towards herself.
12513
12514 In this more placid state of things William reentered, followed not
12515 far behind by his mother and Betsey. He, complete in his lieutenant's
12516 uniform, looking and moving all the taller, firmer, and more graceful
12517 for it, and with the happiest smile over his face, walked up directly
12518 to Fanny, who, rising from her seat, looked at him for a moment in
12519 speechless admiration, and then threw her arms round his neck to sob out
12520 her various emotions of pain and pleasure.
12521
12522 Anxious not to appear unhappy, she soon recovered herself; and wiping
12523 away her tears, was able to notice and admire all the striking parts
12524 of his dress; listening with reviving spirits to his cheerful hopes of
12525 being on shore some part of every day before they sailed, and even of
12526 getting her to Spithead to see the sloop.
12527
12528 The next bustle brought in Mr. Campbell, the surgeon of the Thrush, a
12529 very well-behaved young man, who came to call for his friend, and for
12530 whom there was with some contrivance found a chair, and with some hasty
12531 washing of the young tea-maker's, a cup and saucer; and after another
12532 quarter of an hour of earnest talk between the gentlemen, noise rising
12533 upon noise, and bustle upon bustle, men and boys at last all in motion
12534 together, the moment came for setting off; everything was ready, William
12535 took leave, and all of them were gone; for the three boys, in spite
12536 of their mother's entreaty, determined to see their brother and Mr.
12537 Campbell to the sally-port; and Mr. Price walked off at the same time to
12538 carry back his neighbour's newspaper.
12539
12540 Something like tranquillity might now be hoped for; and accordingly,
12541 when Rebecca had been prevailed on to carry away the tea-things,
12542 and Mrs. Price had walked about the room some time looking for a
12543 shirt-sleeve, which Betsey at last hunted out from a drawer in the
12544 kitchen, the small party of females were pretty well composed, and the
12545 mother having lamented again over the impossibility of getting Sam ready
12546 in time, was at leisure to think of her eldest daughter and the friends
12547 she had come from.
12548
12549 A few inquiries began: but one of the earliest--"How did sister Bertram
12550 manage about her servants?" "Was she as much plagued as herself to get
12551 tolerable servants?"--soon led her mind away from Northamptonshire, and
12552 fixed it on her own domestic grievances, and the shocking character of
12553 all the Portsmouth servants, of whom she believed her own two were the
12554 very worst, engrossed her completely. The Bertrams were all forgotten
12555 in detailing the faults of Rebecca, against whom Susan had also much
12556 to depose, and little Betsey a great deal more, and who did seem so
12557 thoroughly without a single recommendation, that Fanny could not help
12558 modestly presuming that her mother meant to part with her when her year
12559 was up.
12560
12561 "Her year!" cried Mrs. Price; "I am sure I hope I shall be rid of her
12562 before she has staid a year, for that will not be up till November.
12563 Servants are come to such a pass, my dear, in Portsmouth, that it is
12564 quite a miracle if one keeps them more than half a year. I have no hope
12565 of ever being settled; and if I was to part with Rebecca, I should
12566 only get something worse. And yet I do not think I am a very difficult
12567 mistress to please; and I am sure the place is easy enough, for there is
12568 always a girl under her, and I often do half the work myself."
12569
12570 Fanny was silent; but not from being convinced that there might not be a
12571 remedy found for some of these evils. As she now sat looking at Betsey,
12572 she could not but think particularly of another sister, a very pretty
12573 little girl, whom she had left there not much younger when she went into
12574 Northamptonshire, who had died a few years afterwards. There had been
12575 something remarkably amiable about her. Fanny in those early days had
12576 preferred her to Susan; and when the news of her death had at last
12577 reached Mansfield, had for a short time been quite afflicted. The sight
12578 of Betsey brought the image of little Mary back again, but she would
12579 not have pained her mother by alluding to her for the world. While
12580 considering her with these ideas, Betsey, at a small distance, was
12581 holding out something to catch her eyes, meaning to screen it at the
12582 same time from Susan's.
12583
12584 "What have you got there, my love?" said Fanny; "come and shew it to
12585 me."
12586
12587 It was a silver knife. Up jumped Susan, claiming it as her own, and
12588 trying to get it away; but the child ran to her mother's protection,
12589 and Susan could only reproach, which she did very warmly, and evidently
12590 hoping to interest Fanny on her side. "It was very hard that she was not
12591 to have her _own_ knife; it was her own knife; little sister Mary had
12592 left it to her upon her deathbed, and she ought to have had it to keep
12593 herself long ago. But mama kept it from her, and was always letting
12594 Betsey get hold of it; and the end of it would be that Betsey would
12595 spoil it, and get it for her own, though mama had _promised_ her that
12596 Betsey should not have it in her own hands."
12597
12598 Fanny was quite shocked. Every feeling of duty, honour, and tenderness
12599 was wounded by her sister's speech and her mother's reply.
12600
12601 "Now, Susan," cried Mrs. Price, in a complaining voice, "now, how can
12602 you be so cross? You are always quarrelling about that knife. I wish you
12603 would not be so quarrelsome. Poor little Betsey; how cross Susan is to
12604 you! But you should not have taken it out, my dear, when I sent you to
12605 the drawer. You know I told you not to touch it, because Susan is so
12606 cross about it. I must hide it another time, Betsey. Poor Mary little
12607 thought it would be such a bone of contention when she gave it me to
12608 keep, only two hours before she died. Poor little soul! she could but
12609 just speak to be heard, and she said so prettily, 'Let sister Susan have
12610 my knife, mama, when I am dead and buried.' Poor little dear! she was so
12611 fond of it, Fanny, that she would have it lay by her in bed, all through
12612 her illness. It was the gift of her good godmother, old Mrs. Admiral
12613 Maxwell, only six weeks before she was taken for death. Poor little
12614 sweet creature! Well, she was taken away from evil to come. My own
12615 Betsey" (fondling her), "_you_ have not the luck of such a good
12616 godmother. Aunt Norris lives too far off to think of such little people
12617 as you."
12618
12619 Fanny had indeed nothing to convey from aunt Norris, but a message to
12620 say she hoped that her god-daughter was a good girl, and learnt her
12621 book. There had been at one moment a slight murmur in the drawing-room
12622 at Mansfield Park about sending her a prayer-book; but no second sound
12623 had been heard of such a purpose. Mrs. Norris, however, had gone home
12624 and taken down two old prayer-books of her husband with that idea; but,
12625 upon examination, the ardour of generosity went off. One was found
12626 to have too small a print for a child's eyes, and the other to be too
12627 cumbersome for her to carry about.
12628
12629 Fanny, fatigued and fatigued again, was thankful to accept the first
12630 invitation of going to bed; and before Betsey had finished her cry at
12631 being allowed to sit up only one hour extraordinary in honour of sister,
12632 she was off, leaving all below in confusion and noise again; the boys
12633 begging for toasted cheese, her father calling out for his rum and
12634 water, and Rebecca never where she ought to be.
12635
12636 There was nothing to raise her spirits in the confined and scantily
12637 furnished chamber that she was to share with Susan. The smallness of
12638 the rooms above and below, indeed, and the narrowness of the passage and
12639 staircase, struck her beyond her imagination. She soon learned to think
12640 with respect of her own little attic at Mansfield Park, in _that_ house
12641 reckoned too small for anybody's comfort.
12642
12643
12644
12645 CHAPTER XXXIX
12646
12647 Could Sir Thomas have seen all his niece's feelings, when she wrote her
12648 first letter to her aunt, he would not have despaired; for though a good
12649 night's rest, a pleasant morning, the hope of soon seeing William again,
12650 and the comparatively quiet state of the house, from Tom and Charles
12651 being gone to school, Sam on some project of his own, and her father
12652 on his usual lounges, enabled her to express herself cheerfully on the
12653 subject of home, there were still, to her own perfect consciousness,
12654 many drawbacks suppressed. Could he have seen only half that she felt
12655 before the end of a week, he would have thought Mr. Crawford sure of
12656 her, and been delighted with his own sagacity.
12657
12658 Before the week ended, it was all disappointment. In the first place,
12659 William was gone. The Thrush had had her orders, the wind had changed,
12660 and he was sailed within four days from their reaching Portsmouth; and
12661 during those days she had seen him only twice, in a short and
12662 hurried way, when he had come ashore on duty. There had been no free
12663 conversation, no walk on the ramparts, no visit to the dockyard, no
12664 acquaintance with the Thrush, nothing of all that they had planned and
12665 depended on. Everything in that quarter failed her, except William's
12666 affection. His last thought on leaving home was for her. He stepped back
12667 again to the door to say, "Take care of Fanny, mother. She is tender,
12668 and not used to rough it like the rest of us. I charge you, take care of
12669 Fanny."
12670
12671 William was gone: and the home he had left her in was, Fanny could not
12672 conceal it from herself, in almost every respect the very reverse of
12673 what she could have wished. It was the abode of noise, disorder, and
12674 impropriety. Nobody was in their right place, nothing was done as it
12675 ought to be. She could not respect her parents as she had hoped. On her
12676 father, her confidence had not been sanguine, but he was more negligent
12677 of his family, his habits were worse, and his manners coarser, than
12678 she had been prepared for. He did not want abilities but he had no
12679 curiosity, and no information beyond his profession; he read only
12680 the newspaper and the navy-list; he talked only of the dockyard, the
12681 harbour, Spithead, and the Motherbank; he swore and he drank, he was
12682 dirty and gross. She had never been able to recall anything approaching
12683 to tenderness in his former treatment of herself. There had remained
12684 only a general impression of roughness and loudness; and now he scarcely
12685 ever noticed her, but to make her the object of a coarse joke.
12686
12687 Her disappointment in her mother was greater: _there_ she had hoped
12688 much, and found almost nothing. Every flattering scheme of being of
12689 consequence to her soon fell to the ground. Mrs. Price was not unkind;
12690 but, instead of gaining on her affection and confidence, and becoming
12691 more and more dear, her daughter never met with greater kindness from
12692 her than on the first day of her arrival. The instinct of nature was
12693 soon satisfied, and Mrs. Price's attachment had no other source. Her
12694 heart and her time were already quite full; she had neither leisure nor
12695 affection to bestow on Fanny. Her daughters never had been much to her.
12696 She was fond of her sons, especially of William, but Betsey was the
12697 first of her girls whom she had ever much regarded. To her she was most
12698 injudiciously indulgent. William was her pride; Betsey her darling;
12699 and John, Richard, Sam, Tom, and Charles occupied all the rest of her
12700 maternal solicitude, alternately her worries and her comforts. These
12701 shared her heart: her time was given chiefly to her house and her
12702 servants. Her days were spent in a kind of slow bustle; all was busy
12703 without getting on, always behindhand and lamenting it, without altering
12704 her ways; wishing to be an economist, without contrivance or regularity;
12705 dissatisfied with her servants, without skill to make them better, and
12706 whether helping, or reprimanding, or indulging them, without any power
12707 of engaging their respect.
12708
12709 Of her two sisters, Mrs. Price very much more resembled Lady Bertram
12710 than Mrs. Norris. She was a manager by necessity, without any of Mrs.
12711 Norris's inclination for it, or any of her activity. Her disposition
12712 was naturally easy and indolent, like Lady Bertram's; and a situation of
12713 similar affluence and do-nothingness would have been much more suited
12714 to her capacity than the exertions and self-denials of the one which her
12715 imprudent marriage had placed her in. She might have made just as good a
12716 woman of consequence as Lady Bertram, but Mrs. Norris would have been a
12717 more respectable mother of nine children on a small income.
12718
12719 Much of all this Fanny could not but be sensible of. She might scruple
12720 to make use of the words, but she must and did feel that her mother was
12721 a partial, ill-judging parent, a dawdle, a slattern, who neither taught
12722 nor restrained her children, whose house was the scene of mismanagement
12723 and discomfort from beginning to end, and who had no talent, no
12724 conversation, no affection towards herself; no curiosity to know her
12725 better, no desire of her friendship, and no inclination for her company
12726 that could lessen her sense of such feelings.
12727
12728 Fanny was very anxious to be useful, and not to appear above her home,
12729 or in any way disqualified or disinclined, by her foreign education,
12730 from contributing her help to its comforts, and therefore set about
12731 working for Sam immediately; and by working early and late, with
12732 perseverance and great despatch, did so much that the boy was shipped
12733 off at last, with more than half his linen ready. She had great pleasure
12734 in feeling her usefulness, but could not conceive how they would have
12735 managed without her.
12736
12737 Sam, loud and overbearing as he was, she rather regretted when he went,
12738 for he was clever and intelligent, and glad to be employed in any errand
12739 in the town; and though spurning the remonstrances of Susan, given as
12740 they were, though very reasonable in themselves, with ill-timed and
12741 powerless warmth, was beginning to be influenced by Fanny's services
12742 and gentle persuasions; and she found that the best of the three younger
12743 ones was gone in him: Tom and Charles being at least as many years as
12744 they were his juniors distant from that age of feeling and reason, which
12745 might suggest the expediency of making friends, and of endeavouring to
12746 be less disagreeable. Their sister soon despaired of making the smallest
12747 impression on _them_; they were quite untameable by any means of address
12748 which she had spirits or time to attempt. Every afternoon brought a
12749 return of their riotous games all over the house; and she very early
12750 learned to sigh at the approach of Saturday's constant half-holiday.
12751
12752 Betsey, too, a spoiled child, trained up to think the alphabet her
12753 greatest enemy, left to be with the servants at her pleasure, and
12754 then encouraged to report any evil of them, she was almost as ready to
12755 despair of being able to love or assist; and of Susan's temper she
12756 had many doubts. Her continual disagreements with her mother, her rash
12757 squabbles with Tom and Charles, and petulance with Betsey, were at least
12758 so distressing to Fanny that, though admitting they were by no means
12759 without provocation, she feared the disposition that could push them to
12760 such length must be far from amiable, and from affording any repose to
12761 herself.
12762
12763 Such was the home which was to put Mansfield out of her head, and
12764 teach her to think of her cousin Edmund with moderated feelings. On the
12765 contrary, she could think of nothing but Mansfield, its beloved inmates,
12766 its happy ways. Everything where she now was in full contrast to it. The
12767 elegance, propriety, regularity, harmony, and perhaps, above all, the
12768 peace and tranquillity of Mansfield, were brought to her remembrance
12769 every hour of the day, by the prevalence of everything opposite to them
12770 _here_.
12771
12772 The living in incessant noise was, to a frame and temper delicate and
12773 nervous like Fanny's, an evil which no superadded elegance or harmony
12774 could have entirely atoned for. It was the greatest misery of all. At
12775 Mansfield, no sounds of contention, no raised voice, no abrupt bursts,
12776 no tread of violence, was ever heard; all proceeded in a regular course
12777 of cheerful orderliness; everybody had their due importance; everybody's
12778 feelings were consulted. If tenderness could be ever supposed wanting,
12779 good sense and good breeding supplied its place; and as to the little
12780 irritations sometimes introduced by aunt Norris, they were short, they
12781 were trifling, they were as a drop of water to the ocean, compared with
12782 the ceaseless tumult of her present abode. Here everybody was noisy,
12783 every voice was loud (excepting, perhaps, her mother's, which resembled
12784 the soft monotony of Lady Bertram's, only worn into fretfulness).
12785 Whatever was wanted was hallooed for, and the servants hallooed out
12786 their excuses from the kitchen. The doors were in constant banging, the
12787 stairs were never at rest, nothing was done without a clatter, nobody
12788 sat still, and nobody could command attention when they spoke.
12789
12790 In a review of the two houses, as they appeared to her before the end
12791 of a week, Fanny was tempted to apply to them Dr. Johnson's celebrated
12792 judgment as to matrimony and celibacy, and say, that though Mansfield
12793 Park might have some pains, Portsmouth could have no pleasures.
12794
12795
12796
12797 CHAPTER XL
12798
12799 Fanny was right enough in not expecting to hear from Miss Crawford now
12800 at the rapid rate in which their correspondence had begun; Mary's next
12801 letter was after a decidedly longer interval than the last, but she
12802 was not right in supposing that such an interval would be felt a great
12803 relief to herself. Here was another strange revolution of mind! She was
12804 really glad to receive the letter when it did come. In her present exile
12805 from good society, and distance from everything that had been wont to
12806 interest her, a letter from one belonging to the set where her heart
12807 lived, written with affection, and some degree of elegance, was
12808 thoroughly acceptable. The usual plea of increasing engagements was made
12809 in excuse for not having written to her earlier; "And now that I have
12810 begun," she continued, "my letter will not be worth your reading, for
12811 there will be no little offering of love at the end, no three or four
12812 lines _passionnees_ from the most devoted H. C. in the world, for
12813 Henry is in Norfolk; business called him to Everingham ten days ago, or
12814 perhaps he only pretended to call, for the sake of being travelling
12815 at the same time that you were. But there he is, and, by the bye, his
12816 absence may sufficiently account for any remissness of his sister's in
12817 writing, for there has been no 'Well, Mary, when do you write to Fanny?
12818 Is not it time for you to write to Fanny?' to spur me on. At last, after
12819 various attempts at meeting, I have seen your cousins, 'dear Julia and
12820 dearest Mrs. Rushworth'; they found me at home yesterday, and we were
12821 glad to see each other again. We _seemed_ _very_ glad to see each other,
12822 and I do really think we were a little. We had a vast deal to say. Shall
12823 I tell you how Mrs. Rushworth looked when your name was mentioned? I did
12824 not use to think her wanting in self-possession, but she had not quite
12825 enough for the demands of yesterday. Upon the whole, Julia was in the
12826 best looks of the two, at least after you were spoken of. There was no
12827 recovering the complexion from the moment that I spoke of 'Fanny,' and
12828 spoke of her as a sister should. But Mrs. Rushworth's day of good looks
12829 will come; we have cards for her first party on the 28th. Then she
12830 will be in beauty, for she will open one of the best houses in Wimpole
12831 Street. I was in it two years ago, when it was Lady Lascelle's, and
12832 prefer it to almost any I know in London, and certainly she will then
12833 feel, to use a vulgar phrase, that she has got her pennyworth for her
12834 penny. Henry could not have afforded her such a house. I hope she will
12835 recollect it, and be satisfied, as well as she may, with moving the
12836 queen of a palace, though the king may appear best in the background;
12837 and as I have no desire to tease her, I shall never _force_ your name
12838 upon her again. She will grow sober by degrees. From all that I hear
12839 and guess, Baron Wildenheim's attentions to Julia continue, but I do not
12840 know that he has any serious encouragement. She ought to do better.
12841 A poor honourable is no catch, and I cannot imagine any liking in the
12842 case, for take away his rants, and the poor baron has nothing. What a
12843 difference a vowel makes! If his rents were but equal to his rants! Your
12844 cousin Edmund moves slowly; detained, perchance, by parish duties. There
12845 may be some old woman at Thornton Lacey to be converted. I am unwilling
12846 to fancy myself neglected for a _young_ one. Adieu! my dear sweet Fanny,
12847 this is a long letter from London: write me a pretty one in reply to
12848 gladden Henry's eyes, when he comes back, and send me an account of all
12849 the dashing young captains whom you disdain for his sake."
12850
12851 There was great food for meditation in this letter, and chiefly for
12852 unpleasant meditation; and yet, with all the uneasiness it supplied, it
12853 connected her with the absent, it told her of people and things about
12854 whom she had never felt so much curiosity as now, and she would
12855 have been glad to have been sure of such a letter every week. Her
12856 correspondence with her aunt Bertram was her only concern of higher
12857 interest.
12858
12859 As for any society in Portsmouth, that could at all make amends for
12860 deficiencies at home, there were none within the circle of her father's
12861 and mother's acquaintance to afford her the smallest satisfaction: she
12862 saw nobody in whose favour she could wish to overcome her own shyness
12863 and reserve. The men appeared to her all coarse, the women all pert,
12864 everybody underbred; and she gave as little contentment as she received
12865 from introductions either to old or new acquaintance. The young ladies
12866 who approached her at first with some respect, in consideration of her
12867 coming from a baronet's family, were soon offended by what they termed
12868 "airs"; for, as she neither played on the pianoforte nor wore fine
12869 pelisses, they could, on farther observation, admit no right of
12870 superiority.
12871
12872 The first solid consolation which Fanny received for the evils of home,
12873 the first which her judgment could entirely approve, and which gave any
12874 promise of durability, was in a better knowledge of Susan, and a hope of
12875 being of service to her. Susan had always behaved pleasantly to herself,
12876 but the determined character of her general manners had astonished
12877 and alarmed her, and it was at least a fortnight before she began to
12878 understand a disposition so totally different from her own. Susan saw
12879 that much was wrong at home, and wanted to set it right. That a girl of
12880 fourteen, acting only on her own unassisted reason, should err in the
12881 method of reform, was not wonderful; and Fanny soon became more disposed
12882 to admire the natural light of the mind which could so early distinguish
12883 justly, than to censure severely the faults of conduct to which it led.
12884 Susan was only acting on the same truths, and pursuing the same system,
12885 which her own judgment acknowledged, but which her more supine and
12886 yielding temper would have shrunk from asserting. Susan tried to be
12887 useful, where _she_ could only have gone away and cried; and that Susan
12888 was useful she could perceive; that things, bad as they were, would
12889 have been worse but for such interposition, and that both her mother and
12890 Betsey were restrained from some excesses of very offensive indulgence
12891 and vulgarity.
12892
12893 In every argument with her mother, Susan had in point of reason the
12894 advantage, and never was there any maternal tenderness to buy her off.
12895 The blind fondness which was for ever producing evil around her she had
12896 never known. There was no gratitude for affection past or present to
12897 make her better bear with its excesses to the others.
12898
12899 All this became gradually evident, and gradually placed Susan before her
12900 sister as an object of mingled compassion and respect. That her manner
12901 was wrong, however, at times very wrong, her measures often ill-chosen
12902 and ill-timed, and her looks and language very often indefensible, Fanny
12903 could not cease to feel; but she began to hope they might be rectified.
12904 Susan, she found, looked up to her and wished for her good opinion; and
12905 new as anything like an office of authority was to Fanny, new as it
12906 was to imagine herself capable of guiding or informing any one, she did
12907 resolve to give occasional hints to Susan, and endeavour to exercise for
12908 her advantage the juster notions of what was due to everybody, and what
12909 would be wisest for herself, which her own more favoured education had
12910 fixed in her.
12911
12912 Her influence, or at least the consciousness and use of it, originated
12913 in an act of kindness by Susan, which, after many hesitations of
12914 delicacy, she at last worked herself up to. It had very early occurred
12915 to her that a small sum of money might, perhaps, restore peace for
12916 ever on the sore subject of the silver knife, canvassed as it now was
12917 continually, and the riches which she was in possession of herself,
12918 her uncle having given her 10 pounds at parting, made her as able as she was
12919 willing to be generous. But she was so wholly unused to confer favours,
12920 except on the very poor, so unpractised in removing evils, or bestowing
12921 kindnesses among her equals, and so fearful of appearing to elevate
12922 herself as a great lady at home, that it took some time to determine
12923 that it would not be unbecoming in her to make such a present. It
12924 was made, however, at last: a silver knife was bought for Betsey, and
12925 accepted with great delight, its newness giving it every advantage
12926 over the other that could be desired; Susan was established in the full
12927 possession of her own, Betsey handsomely declaring that now she had got
12928 one so much prettier herself, she should never want _that_ again; and
12929 no reproach seemed conveyed to the equally satisfied mother, which Fanny
12930 had almost feared to be impossible. The deed thoroughly answered: a
12931 source of domestic altercation was entirely done away, and it was the
12932 means of opening Susan's heart to her, and giving her something more to
12933 love and be interested in. Susan shewed that she had delicacy: pleased
12934 as she was to be mistress of property which she had been struggling for
12935 at least two years, she yet feared that her sister's judgment had been
12936 against her, and that a reproof was designed her for having so struggled
12937 as to make the purchase necessary for the tranquillity of the house.
12938
12939 Her temper was open. She acknowledged her fears, blamed herself for
12940 having contended so warmly; and from that hour Fanny, understanding the
12941 worth of her disposition and perceiving how fully she was inclined to
12942 seek her good opinion and refer to her judgment, began to feel again the
12943 blessing of affection, and to entertain the hope of being useful to a
12944 mind so much in need of help, and so much deserving it. She gave advice,
12945 advice too sound to be resisted by a good understanding, and given so
12946 mildly and considerately as not to irritate an imperfect temper, and she
12947 had the happiness of observing its good effects not unfrequently.
12948 More was not expected by one who, while seeing all the obligation and
12949 expediency of submission and forbearance, saw also with sympathetic
12950 acuteness of feeling all that must be hourly grating to a girl like
12951 Susan. Her greatest wonder on the subject soon became--not that Susan
12952 should have been provoked into disrespect and impatience against her
12953 better knowledge--but that so much better knowledge, so many good
12954 notions should have been hers at all; and that, brought up in the midst
12955 of negligence and error, she should have formed such proper opinions
12956 of what ought to be; she, who had had no cousin Edmund to direct her
12957 thoughts or fix her principles.
12958
12959 The intimacy thus begun between them was a material advantage to
12960 each. By sitting together upstairs, they avoided a great deal of the
12961 disturbance of the house; Fanny had peace, and Susan learned to think it
12962 no misfortune to be quietly employed. They sat without a fire; but
12963 that was a privation familiar even to Fanny, and she suffered the
12964 less because reminded by it of the East room. It was the only point of
12965 resemblance. In space, light, furniture, and prospect, there was
12966 nothing alike in the two apartments; and she often heaved a sigh at the
12967 remembrance of all her books and boxes, and various comforts there. By
12968 degrees the girls came to spend the chief of the morning upstairs, at
12969 first only in working and talking, but after a few days, the remembrance
12970 of the said books grew so potent and stimulative that Fanny found it
12971 impossible not to try for books again. There were none in her father's
12972 house; but wealth is luxurious and daring, and some of hers found its
12973 way to a circulating library. She became a subscriber; amazed at being
12974 anything _in propria persona_, amazed at her own doings in every way, to
12975 be a renter, a chuser of books! And to be having any one's improvement
12976 in view in her choice! But so it was. Susan had read nothing, and Fanny
12977 longed to give her a share in her own first pleasures, and inspire a
12978 taste for the biography and poetry which she delighted in herself.
12979
12980 In this occupation she hoped, moreover, to bury some of the
12981 recollections of Mansfield, which were too apt to seize her mind if her
12982 fingers only were busy; and, especially at this time, hoped it might
12983 be useful in diverting her thoughts from pursuing Edmund to London,
12984 whither, on the authority of her aunt's last letter, she knew he was
12985 gone. She had no doubt of what would ensue. The promised notification
12986 was hanging over her head. The postman's knock within the neighbourhood
12987 was beginning to bring its daily terrors, and if reading could banish
12988 the idea for even half an hour, it was something gained.
12989
12990
12991
12992 CHAPTER XLI
12993
12994 A week was gone since Edmund might be supposed in town, and Fanny had
12995 heard nothing of him. There were three different conclusions to be drawn
12996 from his silence, between which her mind was in fluctuation; each of
12997 them at times being held the most probable. Either his going had been
12998 again delayed, or he had yet procured no opportunity of seeing Miss
12999 Crawford alone, or he was too happy for letter-writing!
13000
13001 One morning, about this time, Fanny having now been nearly four weeks
13002 from Mansfield, a point which she never failed to think over and
13003 calculate every day, as she and Susan were preparing to remove, as
13004 usual, upstairs, they were stopped by the knock of a visitor, whom they
13005 felt they could not avoid, from Rebecca's alertness in going to the
13006 door, a duty which always interested her beyond any other.
13007
13008 It was a gentleman's voice; it was a voice that Fanny was just turning
13009 pale about, when Mr. Crawford walked into the room.
13010
13011 Good sense, like hers, will always act when really called upon; and she
13012 found that she had been able to name him to her mother, and recall her
13013 remembrance of the name, as that of "William's friend," though she could
13014 not previously have believed herself capable of uttering a syllable
13015 at such a moment. The consciousness of his being known there only as
13016 William's friend was some support. Having introduced him, however, and
13017 being all reseated, the terrors that occurred of what this visit might
13018 lead to were overpowering, and she fancied herself on the point of
13019 fainting away.
13020
13021 While trying to keep herself alive, their visitor, who had at first
13022 approached her with as animated a countenance as ever, was wisely and
13023 kindly keeping his eyes away, and giving her time to recover, while he
13024 devoted himself entirely to her mother, addressing her, and attending
13025 to her with the utmost politeness and propriety, at the same time with
13026 a degree of friendliness, of interest at least, which was making his
13027 manner perfect.
13028
13029 Mrs. Price's manners were also at their best. Warmed by the sight of
13030 such a friend to her son, and regulated by the wish of appearing to
13031 advantage before him, she was overflowing with gratitude--artless,
13032 maternal gratitude--which could not be unpleasing. Mr. Price was out,
13033 which she regretted very much. Fanny was just recovered enough to
13034 feel that _she_ could not regret it; for to her many other sources of
13035 uneasiness was added the severe one of shame for the home in which he
13036 found her. She might scold herself for the weakness, but there was no
13037 scolding it away. She was ashamed, and she would have been yet more
13038 ashamed of her father than of all the rest.
13039
13040 They talked of William, a subject on which Mrs. Price could never tire;
13041 and Mr. Crawford was as warm in his commendation as even her heart could
13042 wish. She felt that she had never seen so agreeable a man in her life;
13043 and was only astonished to find that, so great and so agreeable as he
13044 was, he should be come down to Portsmouth neither on a visit to the
13045 port-admiral, nor the commissioner, nor yet with the intention of going
13046 over to the island, nor of seeing the dockyard. Nothing of all that she
13047 had been used to think of as the proof of importance, or the employment
13048 of wealth, had brought him to Portsmouth. He had reached it late the
13049 night before, was come for a day or two, was staying at the Crown, had
13050 accidentally met with a navy officer or two of his acquaintance since
13051 his arrival, but had no object of that kind in coming.
13052
13053 By the time he had given all this information, it was not unreasonable
13054 to suppose that Fanny might be looked at and spoken to; and she was
13055 tolerably able to bear his eye, and hear that he had spent half an hour
13056 with his sister the evening before his leaving London; that she had
13057 sent her best and kindest love, but had had no time for writing; that he
13058 thought himself lucky in seeing Mary for even half an hour, having spent
13059 scarcely twenty-four hours in London, after his return from Norfolk,
13060 before he set off again; that her cousin Edmund was in town, had been in
13061 town, he understood, a few days; that he had not seen him himself, but
13062 that he was well, had left them all well at Mansfield, and was to dine,
13063 as yesterday, with the Frasers.
13064
13065 Fanny listened collectedly, even to the last-mentioned circumstance;
13066 nay, it seemed a relief to her worn mind to be at any certainty; and the
13067 words, "then by this time it is all settled," passed internally, without
13068 more evidence of emotion than a faint blush.
13069
13070 After talking a little more about Mansfield, a subject in which her
13071 interest was most apparent, Crawford began to hint at the expediency of
13072 an early walk. "It was a lovely morning, and at that season of the year
13073 a fine morning so often turned off, that it was wisest for everybody
13074 not to delay their exercise"; and such hints producing nothing, he soon
13075 proceeded to a positive recommendation to Mrs. Price and her
13076 daughters to take their walk without loss of time. Now they came to an
13077 understanding. Mrs. Price, it appeared, scarcely ever stirred out of
13078 doors, except of a Sunday; she owned she could seldom, with her large
13079 family, find time for a walk. "Would she not, then, persuade her
13080 daughters to take advantage of such weather, and allow him the pleasure
13081 of attending them?" Mrs. Price was greatly obliged and very complying.
13082 "Her daughters were very much confined; Portsmouth was a sad place; they
13083 did not often get out; and she knew they had some errands in the town,
13084 which they would be very glad to do." And the consequence was, that
13085 Fanny, strange as it was--strange, awkward, and distressing--found
13086 herself and Susan, within ten minutes, walking towards the High Street
13087 with Mr. Crawford.
13088
13089 It was soon pain upon pain, confusion upon confusion; for they were
13090 hardly in the High Street before they met her father, whose
13091 appearance was not the better from its being Saturday. He stopt; and,
13092 ungentlemanlike as he looked, Fanny was obliged to introduce him to Mr.
13093 Crawford. She could not have a doubt of the manner in which Mr. Crawford
13094 must be struck. He must be ashamed and disgusted altogether. He must
13095 soon give her up, and cease to have the smallest inclination for the
13096 match; and yet, though she had been so much wanting his affection to
13097 be cured, this was a sort of cure that would be almost as bad as the
13098 complaint; and I believe there is scarcely a young lady in the United
13099 Kingdoms who would not rather put up with the misfortune of being sought
13100 by a clever, agreeable man, than have him driven away by the vulgarity
13101 of her nearest relations.
13102
13103 Mr. Crawford probably could not regard his future father-in-law with any
13104 idea of taking him for a model in dress; but (as Fanny instantly, and to
13105 her great relief, discerned) her father was a very different man, a
13106 very different Mr. Price in his behaviour to this most highly respected
13107 stranger, from what he was in his own family at home. His manners
13108 now, though not polished, were more than passable: they were grateful,
13109 animated, manly; his expressions were those of an attached father, and
13110 a sensible man; his loud tones did very well in the open air, and there
13111 was not a single oath to be heard. Such was his instinctive compliment
13112 to the good manners of Mr. Crawford; and, be the consequence what it
13113 might, Fanny's immediate feelings were infinitely soothed.
13114
13115 The conclusion of the two gentlemen's civilities was an offer of Mr.
13116 Price's to take Mr. Crawford into the dockyard, which Mr. Crawford,
13117 desirous of accepting as a favour what was intended as such, though
13118 he had seen the dockyard again and again, and hoping to be so much the
13119 longer with Fanny, was very gratefully disposed to avail himself of, if
13120 the Miss Prices were not afraid of the fatigue; and as it was somehow or
13121 other ascertained, or inferred, or at least acted upon, that they were
13122 not at all afraid, to the dockyard they were all to go; and but for
13123 Mr. Crawford, Mr. Price would have turned thither directly, without the
13124 smallest consideration for his daughters' errands in the High Street. He
13125 took care, however, that they should be allowed to go to the shops they
13126 came out expressly to visit; and it did not delay them long, for Fanny
13127 could so little bear to excite impatience, or be waited for, that before
13128 the gentlemen, as they stood at the door, could do more than begin upon
13129 the last naval regulations, or settle the number of three-deckers now in
13130 commission, their companions were ready to proceed.
13131
13132 They were then to set forward for the dockyard at once, and the walk
13133 would have been conducted--according to Mr. Crawford's opinion--in a
13134 singular manner, had Mr. Price been allowed the entire regulation of it,
13135 as the two girls, he found, would have been left to follow, and keep up
13136 with them or not, as they could, while they walked on together at their
13137 own hasty pace. He was able to introduce some improvement occasionally,
13138 though by no means to the extent he wished; he absolutely would not walk
13139 away from them; and at any crossing or any crowd, when Mr. Price was
13140 only calling out, "Come, girls; come, Fan; come, Sue, take care of
13141 yourselves; keep a sharp lookout!" he would give them his particular
13142 attendance.
13143
13144 Once fairly in the dockyard, he began to reckon upon some happy
13145 intercourse with Fanny, as they were very soon joined by a brother
13146 lounger of Mr. Price's, who was come to take his daily survey of how
13147 things went on, and who must prove a far more worthy companion than
13148 himself; and after a time the two officers seemed very well satisfied
13149 going about together, and discussing matters of equal and never-failing
13150 interest, while the young people sat down upon some timbers in the yard,
13151 or found a seat on board a vessel in the stocks which they all went to
13152 look at. Fanny was most conveniently in want of rest. Crawford could not
13153 have wished her more fatigued or more ready to sit down; but he could
13154 have wished her sister away. A quick-looking girl of Susan's age was the
13155 very worst third in the world: totally different from Lady Bertram, all
13156 eyes and ears; and there was no introducing the main point before her.
13157 He must content himself with being only generally agreeable, and letting
13158 Susan have her share of entertainment, with the indulgence, now and
13159 then, of a look or hint for the better-informed and conscious Fanny.
13160 Norfolk was what he had mostly to talk of: there he had been some time,
13161 and everything there was rising in importance from his present schemes.
13162 Such a man could come from no place, no society, without importing
13163 something to amuse; his journeys and his acquaintance were all of use,
13164 and Susan was entertained in a way quite new to her. For Fanny, somewhat
13165 more was related than the accidental agreeableness of the parties he had
13166 been in. For her approbation, the particular reason of his going into
13167 Norfolk at all, at this unusual time of year, was given. It had been
13168 real business, relative to the renewal of a lease in which the welfare
13169 of a large and--he believed--industrious family was at stake. He had
13170 suspected his agent of some underhand dealing; of meaning to bias
13171 him against the deserving; and he had determined to go himself, and
13172 thoroughly investigate the merits of the case. He had gone, had done
13173 even more good than he had foreseen, had been useful to more than his
13174 first plan had comprehended, and was now able to congratulate himself
13175 upon it, and to feel that in performing a duty, he had secured agreeable
13176 recollections for his own mind. He had introduced himself to some
13177 tenants whom he had never seen before; he had begun making acquaintance
13178 with cottages whose very existence, though on his own estate, had been
13179 hitherto unknown to him. This was aimed, and well aimed, at Fanny. It
13180 was pleasing to hear him speak so properly; here he had been acting as
13181 he ought to do. To be the friend of the poor and the oppressed! Nothing
13182 could be more grateful to her; and she was on the point of giving him an
13183 approving look, when it was all frightened off by his adding a something
13184 too pointed of his hoping soon to have an assistant, a friend, a guide
13185 in every plan of utility or charity for Everingham: a somebody that
13186 would make Everingham and all about it a dearer object than it had ever
13187 been yet.
13188
13189 She turned away, and wished he would not say such things. She was
13190 willing to allow he might have more good qualities than she had been
13191 wont to suppose. She began to feel the possibility of his turning out
13192 well at last; but he was and must ever be completely unsuited to her,
13193 and ought not to think of her.
13194
13195 He perceived that enough had been said of Everingham, and that it would
13196 be as well to talk of something else, and turned to Mansfield. He could
13197 not have chosen better; that was a topic to bring back her attention and
13198 her looks almost instantly. It was a real indulgence to her to hear or
13199 to speak of Mansfield. Now so long divided from everybody who knew the
13200 place, she felt it quite the voice of a friend when he mentioned it,
13201 and led the way to her fond exclamations in praise of its beauties and
13202 comforts, and by his honourable tribute to its inhabitants allowed her
13203 to gratify her own heart in the warmest eulogium, in speaking of her
13204 uncle as all that was clever and good, and her aunt as having the
13205 sweetest of all sweet tempers.
13206
13207 He had a great attachment to Mansfield himself; he said so; he looked
13208 forward with the hope of spending much, very much, of his time there;
13209 always there, or in the neighbourhood. He particularly built upon a very
13210 happy summer and autumn there this year; he felt that it would be so: he
13211 depended upon it; a summer and autumn infinitely superior to the last.
13212 As animated, as diversified, as social, but with circumstances of
13213 superiority undescribable.
13214
13215 "Mansfield, Sotherton, Thornton Lacey," he continued; "what a society
13216 will be comprised in those houses! And at Michaelmas, perhaps, a fourth
13217 may be added: some small hunting-box in the vicinity of everything so
13218 dear; for as to any partnership in Thornton Lacey, as Edmund Bertram
13219 once good-humouredly proposed, I hope I foresee two objections: two
13220 fair, excellent, irresistible objections to that plan."
13221
13222 Fanny was doubly silenced here; though when the moment was passed,
13223 could regret that she had not forced herself into the acknowledged
13224 comprehension of one half of his meaning, and encouraged him to say
13225 something more of his sister and Edmund. It was a subject which she must
13226 learn to speak of, and the weakness that shrunk from it would soon be
13227 quite unpardonable.
13228
13229 When Mr. Price and his friend had seen all that they wished, or had time
13230 for, the others were ready to return; and in the course of their walk
13231 back, Mr. Crawford contrived a minute's privacy for telling Fanny that
13232 his only business in Portsmouth was to see her; that he was come down
13233 for a couple of days on her account, and hers only, and because he could
13234 not endure a longer total separation. She was sorry, really sorry; and
13235 yet in spite of this and the two or three other things which she wished
13236 he had not said, she thought him altogether improved since she had seen
13237 him; he was much more gentle, obliging, and attentive to other people's
13238 feelings than he had ever been at Mansfield; she had never seen him so
13239 agreeable--so _near_ being agreeable; his behaviour to her father could
13240 not offend, and there was something particularly kind and proper in the
13241 notice he took of Susan. He was decidedly improved. She wished the next
13242 day over, she wished he had come only for one day; but it was not
13243 so very bad as she would have expected: the pleasure of talking of
13244 Mansfield was so very great!
13245
13246 Before they parted, she had to thank him for another pleasure, and one
13247 of no trivial kind. Her father asked him to do them the honour of taking
13248 his mutton with them, and Fanny had time for only one thrill of horror,
13249 before he declared himself prevented by a prior engagement. He was
13250 engaged to dinner already both for that day and the next; he had met
13251 with some acquaintance at the Crown who would not be denied; he should
13252 have the honour, however, of waiting on them again on the morrow, etc.,
13253 and so they parted--Fanny in a state of actual felicity from escaping so
13254 horrible an evil!
13255
13256 To have had him join their family dinner-party, and see all their
13257 deficiencies, would have been dreadful! Rebecca's cookery and Rebecca's
13258 waiting, and Betsey's eating at table without restraint, and pulling
13259 everything about as she chose, were what Fanny herself was not yet
13260 enough inured to for her often to make a tolerable meal. _She_ was nice
13261 only from natural delicacy, but _he_ had been brought up in a school of
13262 luxury and epicurism.
13263
13264
13265
13266 CHAPTER XLII
13267
13268 The Prices were just setting off for church the next day when Mr.
13269 Crawford appeared again. He came, not to stop, but to join them; he was
13270 asked to go with them to the Garrison chapel, which was exactly what he
13271 had intended, and they all walked thither together.
13272
13273 The family were now seen to advantage. Nature had given them no
13274 inconsiderable share of beauty, and every Sunday dressed them in their
13275 cleanest skins and best attire. Sunday always brought this comfort to
13276 Fanny, and on this Sunday she felt it more than ever. Her poor mother
13277 now did not look so very unworthy of being Lady Bertram's sister as she
13278 was but too apt to look. It often grieved her to the heart to think of
13279 the contrast between them; to think that where nature had made so little
13280 difference, circumstances should have made so much, and that her mother,
13281 as handsome as Lady Bertram, and some years her junior, should have an
13282 appearance so much more worn and faded, so comfortless, so slatternly,
13283 so shabby. But Sunday made her a very creditable and tolerably
13284 cheerful-looking Mrs. Price, coming abroad with a fine family of
13285 children, feeling a little respite of her weekly cares, and only
13286 discomposed if she saw her boys run into danger, or Rebecca pass by with
13287 a flower in her hat.
13288
13289 In chapel they were obliged to divide, but Mr. Crawford took care not to
13290 be divided from the female branch; and after chapel he still continued
13291 with them, and made one in the family party on the ramparts.
13292
13293 Mrs. Price took her weekly walk on the ramparts every fine Sunday
13294 throughout the year, always going directly after morning service and
13295 staying till dinner-time. It was her public place: there she met her
13296 acquaintance, heard a little news, talked over the badness of the
13297 Portsmouth servants, and wound up her spirits for the six days ensuing.
13298
13299 Thither they now went; Mr. Crawford most happy to consider the Miss
13300 Prices as his peculiar charge; and before they had been there long,
13301 somehow or other, there was no saying how, Fanny could not have believed
13302 it, but he was walking between them with an arm of each under his,
13303 and she did not know how to prevent or put an end to it. It made her
13304 uncomfortable for a time, but yet there were enjoyments in the day and
13305 in the view which would be felt.
13306
13307 The day was uncommonly lovely. It was really March; but it was April in
13308 its mild air, brisk soft wind, and bright sun, occasionally clouded for
13309 a minute; and everything looked so beautiful under the influence of such
13310 a sky, the effects of the shadows pursuing each other on the ships at
13311 Spithead and the island beyond, with the ever-varying hues of the sea,
13312 now at high water, dancing in its glee and dashing against the ramparts
13313 with so fine a sound, produced altogether such a combination of charms
13314 for Fanny, as made her gradually almost careless of the circumstances
13315 under which she felt them. Nay, had she been without his arm, she would
13316 soon have known that she needed it, for she wanted strength for a two
13317 hours' saunter of this kind, coming, as it generally did, upon a week's
13318 previous inactivity. Fanny was beginning to feel the effect of being
13319 debarred from her usual regular exercise; she had lost ground as to
13320 health since her being in Portsmouth; and but for Mr. Crawford and the
13321 beauty of the weather would soon have been knocked up now.
13322
13323 The loveliness of the day, and of the view, he felt like herself. They
13324 often stopt with the same sentiment and taste, leaning against the wall,
13325 some minutes, to look and admire; and considering he was not Edmund,
13326 Fanny could not but allow that he was sufficiently open to the charms
13327 of nature, and very well able to express his admiration. She had a few
13328 tender reveries now and then, which he could sometimes take advantage
13329 of to look in her face without detection; and the result of these looks
13330 was, that though as bewitching as ever, her face was less blooming than
13331 it ought to be. She _said_ she was very well, and did not like to be
13332 supposed otherwise; but take it all in all, he was convinced that her
13333 present residence could not be comfortable, and therefore could not
13334 be salutary for her, and he was growing anxious for her being again at
13335 Mansfield, where her own happiness, and his in seeing her, must be so
13336 much greater.
13337
13338 "You have been here a month, I think?" said he.
13339
13340 "No; not quite a month. It is only four weeks to-morrow since I left
13341 Mansfield."
13342
13343 "You are a most accurate and honest reckoner. I should call that a
13344 month."
13345
13346 "I did not arrive here till Tuesday evening."
13347
13348 "And it is to be a two months' visit, is not?"
13349
13350 "Yes. My uncle talked of two months. I suppose it will not be less."
13351
13352 "And how are you to be conveyed back again? Who comes for you?"
13353
13354 "I do not know. I have heard nothing about it yet from my aunt. Perhaps
13355 I may be to stay longer. It may not be convenient for me to be fetched
13356 exactly at the two months' end."
13357
13358 After a moment's reflection, Mr. Crawford replied, "I know Mansfield, I
13359 know its way, I know its faults towards _you_. I know the danger of
13360 your being so far forgotten, as to have your comforts give way to the
13361 imaginary convenience of any single being in the family. I am aware
13362 that you may be left here week after week, if Sir Thomas cannot settle
13363 everything for coming himself, or sending your aunt's maid for you,
13364 without involving the slightest alteration of the arrangements which he
13365 may have laid down for the next quarter of a year. This will not do. Two
13366 months is an ample allowance; I should think six weeks quite enough.
13367 I am considering your sister's health," said he, addressing himself to
13368 Susan, "which I think the confinement of Portsmouth unfavourable to. She
13369 requires constant air and exercise. When you know her as well as I do,
13370 I am sure you will agree that she does, and that she ought never to
13371 be long banished from the free air and liberty of the country. If,
13372 therefore" (turning again to Fanny), "you find yourself growing unwell,
13373 and any difficulties arise about your returning to Mansfield, without
13374 waiting for the two months to be ended, _that_ must not be regarded
13375 as of any consequence, if you feel yourself at all less strong or
13376 comfortable than usual, and will only let my sister know it, give her
13377 only the slightest hint, she and I will immediately come down, and take
13378 you back to Mansfield. You know the ease and the pleasure with which
13379 this would be done. You know all that would be felt on the occasion."
13380
13381 Fanny thanked him, but tried to laugh it off.
13382
13383 "I am perfectly serious," he replied, "as you perfectly know. And I
13384 hope you will not be cruelly concealing any tendency to indisposition.
13385 Indeed, you shall _not_; it shall not be in your power; for so long only
13386 as you positively say, in every letter to Mary, 'I am well,' and I
13387 know you cannot speak or write a falsehood, so long only shall you be
13388 considered as well."
13389
13390 Fanny thanked him again, but was affected and distressed to a degree
13391 that made it impossible for her to say much, or even to be certain of
13392 what she ought to say. This was towards the close of their walk. He
13393 attended them to the last, and left them only at the door of their own
13394 house, when he knew them to be going to dinner, and therefore pretended
13395 to be waited for elsewhere.
13396
13397 "I wish you were not so tired," said he, still detaining Fanny after all
13398 the others were in the house--"I wish I left you in stronger health. Is
13399 there anything I can do for you in town? I have half an idea of going
13400 into Norfolk again soon. I am not satisfied about Maddison. I am sure
13401 he still means to impose on me if possible, and get a cousin of his own
13402 into a certain mill, which I design for somebody else. I must come to an
13403 understanding with him. I must make him know that I will not be tricked
13404 on the south side of Everingham, any more than on the north: that I will
13405 be master of my own property. I was not explicit enough with him before.
13406 The mischief such a man does on an estate, both as to the credit of his
13407 employer and the welfare of the poor, is inconceivable. I have a great
13408 mind to go back into Norfolk directly, and put everything at once on
13409 such a footing as cannot be afterwards swerved from. Maddison is a
13410 clever fellow; I do not wish to displace him, provided he does not try
13411 to displace _me_; but it would be simple to be duped by a man who has no
13412 right of creditor to dupe me, and worse than simple to let him give me a
13413 hard-hearted, griping fellow for a tenant, instead of an honest man,
13414 to whom I have given half a promise already. Would it not be worse than
13415 simple? Shall I go? Do you advise it?"
13416
13417 "I advise! You know very well what is right."
13418
13419 "Yes. When you give me your opinion, I always know what is right. Your
13420 judgment is my rule of right."
13421
13422 "Oh, no! do not say so. We have all a better guide in ourselves, if we
13423 would attend to it, than any other person can be. Good-bye; I wish you a
13424 pleasant journey to-morrow."
13425
13426 "Is there nothing I can do for you in town?"
13427
13428 "Nothing; I am much obliged to you."
13429
13430 "Have you no message for anybody?"
13431
13432 "My love to your sister, if you please; and when you see my cousin, my
13433 cousin Edmund, I wish you would be so good as to say that I suppose I
13434 shall soon hear from him."
13435
13436 "Certainly; and if he is lazy or negligent, I will write his excuses
13437 myself."
13438
13439 He could say no more, for Fanny would be no longer detained. He pressed
13440 her hand, looked at her, and was gone. _He_ went to while away the next
13441 three hours as he could, with his other acquaintance, till the best
13442 dinner that a capital inn afforded was ready for their enjoyment, and
13443 _she_ turned in to her more simple one immediately.
13444
13445 Their general fare bore a very different character; and could he have
13446 suspected how many privations, besides that of exercise, she endured in
13447 her father's house, he would have wondered that her looks were not much
13448 more affected than he found them. She was so little equal to Rebecca's
13449 puddings and Rebecca's hashes, brought to table, as they all were, with
13450 such accompaniments of half-cleaned plates, and not half-cleaned knives
13451 and forks, that she was very often constrained to defer her heartiest
13452 meal till she could send her brothers in the evening for biscuits and
13453 buns. After being nursed up at Mansfield, it was too late in the day
13454 to be hardened at Portsmouth; and though Sir Thomas, had he known all,
13455 might have thought his niece in the most promising way of being starved,
13456 both mind and body, into a much juster value for Mr. Crawford's good
13457 company and good fortune, he would probably have feared to push his
13458 experiment farther, lest she might die under the cure.
13459
13460 Fanny was out of spirits all the rest of the day. Though tolerably
13461 secure of not seeing Mr. Crawford again, she could not help being low.
13462 It was parting with somebody of the nature of a friend; and though, in
13463 one light, glad to have him gone, it seemed as if she was now deserted
13464 by everybody; it was a sort of renewed separation from Mansfield; and
13465 she could not think of his returning to town, and being frequently with
13466 Mary and Edmund, without feelings so near akin to envy as made her hate
13467 herself for having them.
13468
13469 Her dejection had no abatement from anything passing around her; a
13470 friend or two of her father's, as always happened if he was not with
13471 them, spent the long, long evening there; and from six o'clock till
13472 half-past nine, there was little intermission of noise or grog. She
13473 was very low. The wonderful improvement which she still fancied in Mr.
13474 Crawford was the nearest to administering comfort of anything within the
13475 current of her thoughts. Not considering in how different a circle she
13476 had been just seeing him, nor how much might be owing to contrast, she
13477 was quite persuaded of his being astonishingly more gentle and regardful
13478 of others than formerly. And, if in little things, must it not be so in
13479 great? So anxious for her health and comfort, so very feeling as he now
13480 expressed himself, and really seemed, might not it be fairly supposed
13481 that he would not much longer persevere in a suit so distressing to her?
13482
13483
13484
13485 CHAPTER XLIII
13486
13487 It was presumed that Mr. Crawford was travelling back, to London, on the
13488 morrow, for nothing more was seen of him at Mr. Price's; and two days
13489 afterwards, it was a fact ascertained to Fanny by the following letter
13490 from his sister, opened and read by her, on another account, with the
13491 most anxious curiosity:--
13492
13493 "I have to inform you, my dearest Fanny, that Henry has been down to
13494 Portsmouth to see you; that he had a delightful walk with you to the
13495 dockyard last Saturday, and one still more to be dwelt on the next day,
13496 on the ramparts; when the balmy air, the sparkling sea, and your sweet
13497 looks and conversation were altogether in the most delicious harmony,
13498 and afforded sensations which are to raise ecstasy even in retrospect.
13499 This, as well as I understand, is to be the substance of my information.
13500 He makes me write, but I do not know what else is to be communicated,
13501 except this said visit to Portsmouth, and these two said walks, and his
13502 introduction to your family, especially to a fair sister of yours, a
13503 fine girl of fifteen, who was of the party on the ramparts, taking her
13504 first lesson, I presume, in love. I have not time for writing much, but
13505 it would be out of place if I had, for this is to be a mere letter of
13506 business, penned for the purpose of conveying necessary information,
13507 which could not be delayed without risk of evil. My dear, dear Fanny,
13508 if I had you here, how I would talk to you! You should listen to me till
13509 you were tired, and advise me till you were still tired more; but it is
13510 impossible to put a hundredth part of my great mind on paper, so I will
13511 abstain altogether, and leave you to guess what you like. I have no news
13512 for you. You have politics, of course; and it would be too bad to plague
13513 you with the names of people and parties that fill up my time. I ought
13514 to have sent you an account of your cousin's first party, but I was
13515 lazy, and now it is too long ago; suffice it, that everything was just
13516 as it ought to be, in a style that any of her connexions must have been
13517 gratified to witness, and that her own dress and manners did her the
13518 greatest credit. My friend, Mrs. Fraser, is mad for such a house, and it
13519 would not make _me_ miserable. I go to Lady Stornaway after Easter;
13520 she seems in high spirits, and very happy. I fancy Lord S. is very
13521 good-humoured and pleasant in his own family, and I do not think him so
13522 very ill-looking as I did--at least, one sees many worse. He will not
13523 do by the side of your cousin Edmund. Of the last-mentioned hero, what
13524 shall I say? If I avoided his name entirely, it would look suspicious.
13525 I will say, then, that we have seen him two or three times, and that
13526 my friends here are very much struck with his gentlemanlike appearance.
13527 Mrs. Fraser (no bad judge) declares she knows but three men in town
13528 who have so good a person, height, and air; and I must confess, when he
13529 dined here the other day, there were none to compare with him, and
13530 we were a party of sixteen. Luckily there is no distinction of dress
13531 nowadays to tell tales, but--but--but Yours affectionately."
13532
13533 "I had almost forgot (it was Edmund's fault: he gets into my head more
13534 than does me good) one very material thing I had to say from Henry and
13535 myself--I mean about our taking you back into Northamptonshire. My dear
13536 little creature, do not stay at Portsmouth to lose your pretty looks.
13537 Those vile sea-breezes are the ruin of beauty and health. My poor aunt
13538 always felt affected if within ten miles of the sea, which the Admiral
13539 of course never believed, but I know it was so. I am at your service
13540 and Henry's, at an hour's notice. I should like the scheme, and we would
13541 make a little circuit, and shew you Everingham in our way, and perhaps
13542 you would not mind passing through London, and seeing the inside of St.
13543 George's, Hanover Square. Only keep your cousin Edmund from me at such
13544 a time: I should not like to be tempted. What a long letter! one word
13545 more. Henry, I find, has some idea of going into Norfolk again upon
13546 some business that _you_ approve; but this cannot possibly be permitted
13547 before the middle of next week; that is, he cannot anyhow be spared till
13548 after the 14th, for _we_ have a party that evening. The value of a man
13549 like Henry, on such an occasion, is what you can have no conception
13550 of; so you must take it upon my word to be inestimable. He will see the
13551 Rushworths, which own I am not sorry for--having a little curiosity, and
13552 so I think has he--though he will not acknowledge it."
13553
13554 This was a letter to be run through eagerly, to be read deliberately,
13555 to supply matter for much reflection, and to leave everything in greater
13556 suspense than ever. The only certainty to be drawn from it was, that
13557 nothing decisive had yet taken place. Edmund had not yet spoken. How
13558 Miss Crawford really felt, how she meant to act, or might act without
13559 or against her meaning; whether his importance to her were quite what
13560 it had been before the last separation; whether, if lessened, it were
13561 likely to lessen more, or to recover itself, were subjects for endless
13562 conjecture, and to be thought of on that day and many days to come,
13563 without producing any conclusion. The idea that returned the oftenest
13564 was that Miss Crawford, after proving herself cooled and staggered by
13565 a return to London habits, would yet prove herself in the end too much
13566 attached to him to give him up. She would try to be more ambitious than
13567 her heart would allow. She would hesitate, she would tease, she would
13568 condition, she would require a great deal, but she would finally accept.
13569
13570 This was Fanny's most frequent expectation. A house in town--that, she
13571 thought, must be impossible. Yet there was no saying what Miss Crawford
13572 might not ask. The prospect for her cousin grew worse and worse. The
13573 woman who could speak of him, and speak only of his appearance! What an
13574 unworthy attachment! To be deriving support from the commendations of
13575 Mrs. Fraser! _She_ who had known him intimately half a year! Fanny was
13576 ashamed of her. Those parts of the letter which related only to Mr.
13577 Crawford and herself, touched her, in comparison, slightly. Whether Mr.
13578 Crawford went into Norfolk before or after the 14th was certainly no
13579 concern of hers, though, everything considered, she thought he _would_
13580 go without delay. That Miss Crawford should endeavour to secure a
13581 meeting between him and Mrs. Rushworth, was all in her worst line of
13582 conduct, and grossly unkind and ill-judged; but she hoped _he_ would
13583 not be actuated by any such degrading curiosity. He acknowledged no such
13584 inducement, and his sister ought to have given him credit for better
13585 feelings than her own.
13586
13587 She was yet more impatient for another letter from town after receiving
13588 this than she had been before; and for a few days was so unsettled by
13589 it altogether, by what had come, and what might come, that her usual
13590 readings and conversation with Susan were much suspended. She could
13591 not command her attention as she wished. If Mr. Crawford remembered her
13592 message to her cousin, she thought it very likely, most likely, that he
13593 would write to her at all events; it would be most consistent with his
13594 usual kindness; and till she got rid of this idea, till it gradually
13595 wore off, by no letters appearing in the course of three or four days
13596 more, she was in a most restless, anxious state.
13597
13598 At length, a something like composure succeeded. Suspense must be
13599 submitted to, and must not be allowed to wear her out, and make her
13600 useless. Time did something, her own exertions something more, and she
13601 resumed her attentions to Susan, and again awakened the same interest in
13602 them.
13603
13604 Susan was growing very fond of her, and though without any of the early
13605 delight in books which had been so strong in Fanny, with a disposition
13606 much less inclined to sedentary pursuits, or to information for
13607 information's sake, she had so strong a desire of not _appearing_
13608 ignorant, as, with a good clear understanding, made her a most
13609 attentive, profitable, thankful pupil. Fanny was her oracle. Fanny's
13610 explanations and remarks were a most important addition to every essay,
13611 or every chapter of history. What Fanny told her of former times dwelt
13612 more on her mind than the pages of Goldsmith; and she paid her sister
13613 the compliment of preferring her style to that of any printed author.
13614 The early habit of reading was wanting.
13615
13616 Their conversations, however, were not always on subjects so high as
13617 history or morals. Others had their hour; and of lesser matters, none
13618 returned so often, or remained so long between them, as Mansfield Park,
13619 a description of the people, the manners, the amusements, the ways
13620 of Mansfield Park. Susan, who had an innate taste for the genteel and
13621 well-appointed, was eager to hear, and Fanny could not but indulge
13622 herself in dwelling on so beloved a theme. She hoped it was not wrong;
13623 though, after a time, Susan's very great admiration of everything
13624 said or done in her uncle's house, and earnest longing to go into
13625 Northamptonshire, seemed almost to blame her for exciting feelings which
13626 could not be gratified.
13627
13628 Poor Susan was very little better fitted for home than her elder sister;
13629 and as Fanny grew thoroughly to understand this, she began to feel that
13630 when her own release from Portsmouth came, her happiness would have a
13631 material drawback in leaving Susan behind. That a girl so capable of
13632 being made everything good should be left in such hands, distressed her
13633 more and more. Were _she_ likely to have a home to invite her to, what
13634 a blessing it would be! And had it been possible for her to return Mr.
13635 Crawford's regard, the probability of his being very far from objecting
13636 to such a measure would have been the greatest increase of all her own
13637 comforts. She thought he was really good-tempered, and could fancy his
13638 entering into a plan of that sort most pleasantly.
13639
13640
13641
13642 CHAPTER XLIV
13643
13644 Seven weeks of the two months were very nearly gone, when the one
13645 letter, the letter from Edmund, so long expected, was put into Fanny's
13646 hands. As she opened, and saw its length, she prepared herself for a
13647 minute detail of happiness and a profusion of love and praise towards
13648 the fortunate creature who was now mistress of his fate. These were the
13649 contents--
13650
13651 "My Dear Fanny,--Excuse me that I have not written before. Crawford told
13652 me that you were wishing to hear from me, but I found it impossible to
13653 write from London, and persuaded myself that you would understand my
13654 silence. Could I have sent a few happy lines, they should not have been
13655 wanting, but nothing of that nature was ever in my power. I am returned
13656 to Mansfield in a less assured state than when I left it. My hopes are
13657 much weaker. You are probably aware of this already. So very fond of you
13658 as Miss Crawford is, it is most natural that she should tell you enough
13659 of her own feelings to furnish a tolerable guess at mine. I will not be
13660 prevented, however, from making my own communication. Our confidences in
13661 you need not clash. I ask no questions. There is something soothing
13662 in the idea that we have the same friend, and that whatever unhappy
13663 differences of opinion may exist between us, we are united in our love
13664 of you. It will be a comfort to me to tell you how things now are, and
13665 what are my present plans, if plans I can be said to have. I have been
13666 returned since Saturday. I was three weeks in London, and saw her (for
13667 London) very often. I had every attention from the Frasers that could be
13668 reasonably expected. I dare say I was not reasonable in carrying with
13669 me hopes of an intercourse at all like that of Mansfield. It was her
13670 manner, however, rather than any unfrequency of meeting. Had she been
13671 different when I did see her, I should have made no complaint, but from
13672 the very first she was altered: my first reception was so unlike what I
13673 had hoped, that I had almost resolved on leaving London again directly.
13674 I need not particularise. You know the weak side of her character, and
13675 may imagine the sentiments and expressions which were torturing me. She
13676 was in high spirits, and surrounded by those who were giving all the
13677 support of their own bad sense to her too lively mind. I do not like
13678 Mrs. Fraser. She is a cold-hearted, vain woman, who has married entirely
13679 from convenience, and though evidently unhappy in her marriage,
13680 places her disappointment not to faults of judgment, or temper, or
13681 disproportion of age, but to her being, after all, less affluent than
13682 many of her acquaintance, especially than her sister, Lady Stornaway,
13683 and is the determined supporter of everything mercenary and ambitious,
13684 provided it be only mercenary and ambitious enough. I look upon her
13685 intimacy with those two sisters as the greatest misfortune of her life
13686 and mine. They have been leading her astray for years. Could she be
13687 detached from them!--and sometimes I do not despair of it, for the
13688 affection appears to me principally on their side. They are very fond of
13689 her; but I am sure she does not love them as she loves you. When I think
13690 of her great attachment to you, indeed, and the whole of her judicious,
13691 upright conduct as a sister, she appears a very different creature,
13692 capable of everything noble, and I am ready to blame myself for a too
13693 harsh construction of a playful manner. I cannot give her up, Fanny. She
13694 is the only woman in the world whom I could ever think of as a wife. If
13695 I did not believe that she had some regard for me, of course I should
13696 not say this, but I do believe it. I am convinced that she is not
13697 without a decided preference. I have no jealousy of any individual. It
13698 is the influence of the fashionable world altogether that I am jealous
13699 of. It is the habits of wealth that I fear. Her ideas are not higher
13700 than her own fortune may warrant, but they are beyond what our incomes
13701 united could authorise. There is comfort, however, even here. I could
13702 better bear to lose her because not rich enough, than because of my
13703 profession. That would only prove her affection not equal to sacrifices,
13704 which, in fact, I am scarcely justified in asking; and, if I am refused,
13705 that, I think, will be the honest motive. Her prejudices, I trust, are
13706 not so strong as they were. You have my thoughts exactly as they arise,
13707 my dear Fanny; perhaps they are sometimes contradictory, but it will
13708 not be a less faithful picture of my mind. Having once begun, it is a
13709 pleasure to me to tell you all I feel. I cannot give her up. Connected
13710 as we already are, and, I hope, are to be, to give up Mary Crawford
13711 would be to give up the society of some of those most dear to me; to
13712 banish myself from the very houses and friends whom, under any other
13713 distress, I should turn to for consolation. The loss of Mary I must
13714 consider as comprehending the loss of Crawford and of Fanny. Were it a
13715 decided thing, an actual refusal, I hope I should know how to bear it,
13716 and how to endeavour to weaken her hold on my heart, and in the course
13717 of a few years--but I am writing nonsense. Were I refused, I must bear
13718 it; and till I am, I can never cease to try for her. This is the truth.
13719 The only question is _how_? What may be the likeliest means? I have
13720 sometimes thought of going to London again after Easter, and sometimes
13721 resolved on doing nothing till she returns to Mansfield. Even now, she
13722 speaks with pleasure of being in Mansfield in June; but June is at
13723 a great distance, and I believe I shall write to her. I have nearly
13724 determined on explaining myself by letter. To be at an early certainty
13725 is a material object. My present state is miserably irksome. Considering
13726 everything, I think a letter will be decidedly the best method of
13727 explanation. I shall be able to write much that I could not say, and
13728 shall be giving her time for reflection before she resolves on her
13729 answer, and I am less afraid of the result of reflection than of an
13730 immediate hasty impulse; I think I am. My greatest danger would lie in
13731 her consulting Mrs. Fraser, and I at a distance unable to help my own
13732 cause. A letter exposes to all the evil of consultation, and where
13733 the mind is anything short of perfect decision, an adviser may, in an
13734 unlucky moment, lead it to do what it may afterwards regret. I must
13735 think this matter over a little. This long letter, full of my own
13736 concerns alone, will be enough to tire even the friendship of a Fanny.
13737 The last time I saw Crawford was at Mrs. Fraser's party. I am more
13738 and more satisfied with all that I see and hear of him. There is not a
13739 shadow of wavering. He thoroughly knows his own mind, and acts up to his
13740 resolutions: an inestimable quality. I could not see him and my eldest
13741 sister in the same room without recollecting what you once told me,
13742 and I acknowledge that they did not meet as friends. There was
13743 marked coolness on her side. They scarcely spoke. I saw him draw back
13744 surprised, and I was sorry that Mrs. Rushworth should resent any former
13745 supposed slight to Miss Bertram. You will wish to hear my opinion
13746 of Maria's degree of comfort as a wife. There is no appearance of
13747 unhappiness. I hope they get on pretty well together. I dined twice in
13748 Wimpole Street, and might have been there oftener, but it is mortifying
13749 to be with Rushworth as a brother. Julia seems to enjoy London
13750 exceedingly. I had little enjoyment there, but have less here. We are
13751 not a lively party. You are very much wanted. I miss you more than I
13752 can express. My mother desires her best love, and hopes to hear from
13753 you soon. She talks of you almost every hour, and I am sorry to find
13754 how many weeks more she is likely to be without you. My father means
13755 to fetch you himself, but it will not be till after Easter, when he has
13756 business in town. You are happy at Portsmouth, I hope, but this must
13757 not be a yearly visit. I want you at home, that I may have your opinion
13758 about Thornton Lacey. I have little heart for extensive improvements
13759 till I know that it will ever have a mistress. I think I shall certainly
13760 write. It is quite settled that the Grants go to Bath; they leave
13761 Mansfield on Monday. I am glad of it. I am not comfortable enough to be
13762 fit for anybody; but your aunt seems to feel out of luck that such an
13763 article of Mansfield news should fall to my pen instead of hers.--Yours
13764 ever, my dearest Fanny."
13765
13766 "I never will, no, I certainly never will wish for a letter again," was
13767 Fanny's secret declaration as she finished this. "What do they bring but
13768 disappointment and sorrow? Not till after Easter! How shall I bear it?
13769 And my poor aunt talking of me every hour!"
13770
13771 Fanny checked the tendency of these thoughts as well as she could, but
13772 she was within half a minute of starting the idea that Sir Thomas was
13773 quite unkind, both to her aunt and to herself. As for the main subject
13774 of the letter, there was nothing in that to soothe irritation. She was
13775 almost vexed into displeasure and anger against Edmund. "There is no
13776 good in this delay," said she. "Why is not it settled? He is blinded,
13777 and nothing will open his eyes; nothing can, after having had truths
13778 before him so long in vain. He will marry her, and be poor and
13779 miserable. God grant that her influence do not make him cease to be
13780 respectable!" She looked over the letter again. "'So very fond of me!'
13781 'tis nonsense all. She loves nobody but herself and her brother. Her
13782 friends leading her astray for years! She is quite as likely to have led
13783 _them_ astray. They have all, perhaps, been corrupting one another; but
13784 if they are so much fonder of her than she is of them, she is the less
13785 likely to have been hurt, except by their flattery. 'The only woman in
13786 the world whom he could ever think of as a wife.' I firmly believe it.
13787 It is an attachment to govern his whole life. Accepted or refused, his
13788 heart is wedded to her for ever. 'The loss of Mary I must consider as
13789 comprehending the loss of Crawford and Fanny.' Edmund, you do not know
13790 me. The families would never be connected if you did not connect
13791 them! Oh! write, write. Finish it at once. Let there be an end of this
13792 suspense. Fix, commit, condemn yourself."
13793
13794 Such sensations, however, were too near akin to resentment to be long
13795 guiding Fanny's soliloquies. She was soon more softened and sorrowful.
13796 His warm regard, his kind expressions, his confidential treatment,
13797 touched her strongly. He was only too good to everybody. It was a
13798 letter, in short, which she would not but have had for the world, and
13799 which could never be valued enough. This was the end of it.
13800
13801 Everybody at all addicted to letter-writing, without having much to say,
13802 which will include a large proportion of the female world at least, must
13803 feel with Lady Bertram that she was out of luck in having such a capital
13804 piece of Mansfield news as the certainty of the Grants going to Bath,
13805 occur at a time when she could make no advantage of it, and will admit
13806 that it must have been very mortifying to her to see it fall to the
13807 share of her thankless son, and treated as concisely as possible at the
13808 end of a long letter, instead of having it to spread over the largest
13809 part of a page of her own. For though Lady Bertram rather shone in the
13810 epistolary line, having early in her marriage, from the want of other
13811 employment, and the circumstance of Sir Thomas's being in Parliament,
13812 got into the way of making and keeping correspondents, and formed for
13813 herself a very creditable, common-place, amplifying style, so that a
13814 very little matter was enough for her: she could not do entirely without
13815 any; she must have something to write about, even to her niece; and
13816 being so soon to lose all the benefit of Dr. Grant's gouty symptoms and
13817 Mrs. Grant's morning calls, it was very hard upon her to be deprived of
13818 one of the last epistolary uses she could put them to.
13819
13820 There was a rich amends, however, preparing for her. Lady Bertram's
13821 hour of good luck came. Within a few days from the receipt of Edmund's
13822 letter, Fanny had one from her aunt, beginning thus--
13823
13824 "My Dear Fanny,--I take up my pen to communicate some very alarming
13825 intelligence, which I make no doubt will give you much concern".
13826
13827 This was a great deal better than to have to take up the pen to acquaint
13828 her with all the particulars of the Grants' intended journey, for the
13829 present intelligence was of a nature to promise occupation for the pen
13830 for many days to come, being no less than the dangerous illness of her
13831 eldest son, of which they had received notice by express a few hours
13832 before.
13833
13834 Tom had gone from London with a party of young men to Newmarket, where
13835 a neglected fall and a good deal of drinking had brought on a fever; and
13836 when the party broke up, being unable to move, had been left by himself
13837 at the house of one of these young men to the comforts of sickness and
13838 solitude, and the attendance only of servants. Instead of being soon
13839 well enough to follow his friends, as he had then hoped, his disorder
13840 increased considerably, and it was not long before he thought so ill of
13841 himself as to be as ready as his physician to have a letter despatched
13842 to Mansfield.
13843
13844 "This distressing intelligence, as you may suppose," observed
13845 her ladyship, after giving the substance of it, "has agitated us
13846 exceedingly, and we cannot prevent ourselves from being greatly alarmed
13847 and apprehensive for the poor invalid, whose state Sir Thomas fears
13848 may be very critical; and Edmund kindly proposes attending his brother
13849 immediately, but I am happy to add that Sir Thomas will not leave me on
13850 this distressing occasion, as it would be too trying for me. We shall
13851 greatly miss Edmund in our small circle, but I trust and hope he
13852 will find the poor invalid in a less alarming state than might be
13853 apprehended, and that he will be able to bring him to Mansfield shortly,
13854 which Sir Thomas proposes should be done, and thinks best on every
13855 account, and I flatter myself the poor sufferer will soon be able to
13856 bear the removal without material inconvenience or injury. As I
13857 have little doubt of your feeling for us, my dear Fanny, under these
13858 distressing circumstances, I will write again very soon."
13859
13860 Fanny's feelings on the occasion were indeed considerably more warm and
13861 genuine than her aunt's style of writing. She felt truly for them all.
13862 Tom dangerously ill, Edmund gone to attend him, and the sadly small
13863 party remaining at Mansfield, were cares to shut out every other care,
13864 or almost every other. She could just find selfishness enough to wonder
13865 whether Edmund _had_ written to Miss Crawford before this summons came,
13866 but no sentiment dwelt long with her that was not purely affectionate
13867 and disinterestedly anxious. Her aunt did not neglect her: she wrote
13868 again and again; they were receiving frequent accounts from Edmund,
13869 and these accounts were as regularly transmitted to Fanny, in the same
13870 diffuse style, and the same medley of trusts, hopes, and fears, all
13871 following and producing each other at haphazard. It was a sort of
13872 playing at being frightened. The sufferings which Lady Bertram did not
13873 see had little power over her fancy; and she wrote very comfortably
13874 about agitation, and anxiety, and poor invalids, till Tom was actually
13875 conveyed to Mansfield, and her own eyes had beheld his altered
13876 appearance. Then a letter which she had been previously preparing for
13877 Fanny was finished in a different style, in the language of real feeling
13878 and alarm; then she wrote as she might have spoken. "He is just come, my
13879 dear Fanny, and is taken upstairs; and I am so shocked to see him, that
13880 I do not know what to do. I am sure he has been very ill. Poor Tom! I am
13881 quite grieved for him, and very much frightened, and so is Sir Thomas;
13882 and how glad I should be if you were here to comfort me. But Sir
13883 Thomas hopes he will be better to-morrow, and says we must consider his
13884 journey."
13885
13886 The real solicitude now awakened in the maternal bosom was not
13887 soon over. Tom's extreme impatience to be removed to Mansfield, and
13888 experience those comforts of home and family which had been little
13889 thought of in uninterrupted health, had probably induced his being
13890 conveyed thither too early, as a return of fever came on, and for a week
13891 he was in a more alarming state than ever. They were all very seriously
13892 frightened. Lady Bertram wrote her daily terrors to her niece, who
13893 might now be said to live upon letters, and pass all her time between
13894 suffering from that of to-day and looking forward to to-morrow's.
13895 Without any particular affection for her eldest cousin, her tenderness
13896 of heart made her feel that she could not spare him, and the purity of
13897 her principles added yet a keener solicitude, when she considered how
13898 little useful, how little self-denying his life had (apparently) been.
13899
13900 Susan was her only companion and listener on this, as on more common
13901 occasions. Susan was always ready to hear and to sympathise. Nobody else
13902 could be interested in so remote an evil as illness in a family above an
13903 hundred miles off; not even Mrs. Price, beyond a brief question or two,
13904 if she saw her daughter with a letter in her hand, and now and then the
13905 quiet observation of, "My poor sister Bertram must be in a great deal of
13906 trouble."
13907
13908 So long divided and so differently situated, the ties of blood were
13909 little more than nothing. An attachment, originally as tranquil as their
13910 tempers, was now become a mere name. Mrs. Price did quite as much for
13911 Lady Bertram as Lady Bertram would have done for Mrs. Price. Three or
13912 four Prices might have been swept away, any or all except Fanny and
13913 William, and Lady Bertram would have thought little about it; or perhaps
13914 might have caught from Mrs. Norris's lips the cant of its being a very
13915 happy thing and a great blessing to their poor dear sister Price to have
13916 them so well provided for.
13917
13918
13919
13920 CHAPTER XLV
13921
13922 At about the week's end from his return to Mansfield, Tom's immediate
13923 danger was over, and he was so far pronounced safe as to make his mother
13924 perfectly easy; for being now used to the sight of him in his suffering,
13925 helpless state, and hearing only the best, and never thinking beyond
13926 what she heard, with no disposition for alarm and no aptitude at a hint,
13927 Lady Bertram was the happiest subject in the world for a little medical
13928 imposition. The fever was subdued; the fever had been his complaint;
13929 of course he would soon be well again. Lady Bertram could think nothing
13930 less, and Fanny shared her aunt's security, till she received a few
13931 lines from Edmund, written purposely to give her a clearer idea of his
13932 brother's situation, and acquaint her with the apprehensions which
13933 he and his father had imbibed from the physician with respect to some
13934 strong hectic symptoms, which seemed to seize the frame on the departure
13935 of the fever. They judged it best that Lady Bertram should not be
13936 harassed by alarms which, it was to be hoped, would prove unfounded;
13937 but there was no reason why Fanny should not know the truth. They were
13938 apprehensive for his lungs.
13939
13940 A very few lines from Edmund shewed her the patient and the sickroom
13941 in a juster and stronger light than all Lady Bertram's sheets of paper
13942 could do. There was hardly any one in the house who might not have
13943 described, from personal observation, better than herself; not one who
13944 was not more useful at times to her son. She could do nothing but glide
13945 in quietly and look at him; but when able to talk or be talked to, or
13946 read to, Edmund was the companion he preferred. His aunt worried him by
13947 her cares, and Sir Thomas knew not how to bring down his conversation or
13948 his voice to the level of irritation and feebleness. Edmund was all in
13949 all. Fanny would certainly believe him so at least, and must find that
13950 her estimation of him was higher than ever when he appeared as the
13951 attendant, supporter, cheerer of a suffering brother. There was not only
13952 the debility of recent illness to assist: there was also, as she now
13953 learnt, nerves much affected, spirits much depressed to calm and raise,
13954 and her own imagination added that there must be a mind to be properly
13955 guided.
13956
13957 The family were not consumptive, and she was more inclined to hope than
13958 fear for her cousin, except when she thought of Miss Crawford; but Miss
13959 Crawford gave her the idea of being the child of good luck, and to her
13960 selfishness and vanity it would be good luck to have Edmund the only
13961 son.
13962
13963 Even in the sick chamber the fortunate Mary was not forgotten. Edmund's
13964 letter had this postscript. "On the subject of my last, I had actually
13965 begun a letter when called away by Tom's illness, but I have now changed
13966 my mind, and fear to trust the influence of friends. When Tom is better,
13967 I shall go."
13968
13969 Such was the state of Mansfield, and so it continued, with scarcely any
13970 change, till Easter. A line occasionally added by Edmund to his
13971 mother's letter was enough for Fanny's information. Tom's amendment was
13972 alarmingly slow.
13973
13974 Easter came particularly late this year, as Fanny had most sorrowfully
13975 considered, on first learning that she had no chance of leaving
13976 Portsmouth till after it. It came, and she had yet heard nothing of her
13977 return--nothing even of the going to London, which was to precede
13978 her return. Her aunt often expressed a wish for her, but there was no
13979 notice, no message from the uncle on whom all depended. She supposed
13980 he could not yet leave his son, but it was a cruel, a terrible delay
13981 to her. The end of April was coming on; it would soon be almost three
13982 months, instead of two, that she had been absent from them all, and that
13983 her days had been passing in a state of penance, which she loved them
13984 too well to hope they would thoroughly understand; and who could yet say
13985 when there might be leisure to think of or fetch her?
13986
13987 Her eagerness, her impatience, her longings to be with them, were such
13988 as to bring a line or two of Cowper's Tirocinium for ever before her.
13989 "With what intense desire she wants her home," was continually on her
13990 tongue, as the truest description of a yearning which she could not
13991 suppose any schoolboy's bosom to feel more keenly.
13992
13993 When she had been coming to Portsmouth, she had loved to call it her
13994 home, had been fond of saying that she was going home; the word had
13995 been very dear to her, and so it still was, but it must be applied to
13996 Mansfield. _That_ was now the home. Portsmouth was Portsmouth; Mansfield
13997 was home. They had been long so arranged in the indulgence of her secret
13998 meditations, and nothing was more consolatory to her than to find her
13999 aunt using the same language: "I cannot but say I much regret your being
14000 from home at this distressing time, so very trying to my spirits. I
14001 trust and hope, and sincerely wish you may never be absent from home so
14002 long again," were most delightful sentences to her. Still, however, it
14003 was her private regale. Delicacy to her parents made her careful not to
14004 betray such a preference of her uncle's house. It was always: "When I go
14005 back into Northamptonshire, or when I return to Mansfield, I shall do
14006 so and so." For a great while it was so, but at last the longing grew
14007 stronger, it overthrew caution, and she found herself talking of what
14008 she should do when she went home before she was aware. She reproached
14009 herself, coloured, and looked fearfully towards her father and mother.
14010 She need not have been uneasy. There was no sign of displeasure, or even
14011 of hearing her. They were perfectly free from any jealousy of Mansfield.
14012 She was as welcome to wish herself there as to be there.
14013
14014 It was sad to Fanny to lose all the pleasures of spring. She had not
14015 known before what pleasures she _had_ to lose in passing March and April
14016 in a town. She had not known before how much the beginnings and progress
14017 of vegetation had delighted her. What animation, both of body and mind,
14018 she had derived from watching the advance of that season which cannot,
14019 in spite of its capriciousness, be unlovely, and seeing its increasing
14020 beauties from the earliest flowers in the warmest divisions of her
14021 aunt's garden, to the opening of leaves of her uncle's plantations, and
14022 the glory of his woods. To be losing such pleasures was no trifle; to
14023 be losing them, because she was in the midst of closeness and noise,
14024 to have confinement, bad air, bad smells, substituted for liberty,
14025 freshness, fragrance, and verdure, was infinitely worse: but even these
14026 incitements to regret were feeble, compared with what arose from the
14027 conviction of being missed by her best friends, and the longing to be
14028 useful to those who were wanting her!
14029
14030 Could she have been at home, she might have been of service to every
14031 creature in the house. She felt that she must have been of use to all.
14032 To all she must have saved some trouble of head or hand; and were it
14033 only in supporting the spirits of her aunt Bertram, keeping her from
14034 the evil of solitude, or the still greater evil of a restless, officious
14035 companion, too apt to be heightening danger in order to enhance her own
14036 importance, her being there would have been a general good. She loved to
14037 fancy how she could have read to her aunt, how she could have talked to
14038 her, and tried at once to make her feel the blessing of what was, and
14039 prepare her mind for what might be; and how many walks up and down
14040 stairs she might have saved her, and how many messages she might have
14041 carried.
14042
14043 It astonished her that Tom's sisters could be satisfied with remaining
14044 in London at such a time, through an illness which had now, under
14045 different degrees of danger, lasted several weeks. _They_ might return
14046 to Mansfield when they chose; travelling could be no difficulty to
14047 _them_, and she could not comprehend how both could still keep away.
14048 If Mrs. Rushworth could imagine any interfering obligations, Julia was
14049 certainly able to quit London whenever she chose. It appeared from one
14050 of her aunt's letters that Julia had offered to return if wanted, but
14051 this was all. It was evident that she would rather remain where she was.
14052
14053 Fanny was disposed to think the influence of London very much at war
14054 with all respectable attachments. She saw the proof of it in Miss
14055 Crawford, as well as in her cousins; _her_ attachment to Edmund had been
14056 respectable, the most respectable part of her character; her friendship
14057 for herself had at least been blameless. Where was either sentiment now?
14058 It was so long since Fanny had had any letter from her, that she had
14059 some reason to think lightly of the friendship which had been so dwelt
14060 on. It was weeks since she had heard anything of Miss Crawford or of
14061 her other connexions in town, except through Mansfield, and she was
14062 beginning to suppose that she might never know whether Mr. Crawford had
14063 gone into Norfolk again or not till they met, and might never hear from
14064 his sister any more this spring, when the following letter was received
14065 to revive old and create some new sensations--
14066
14067 "Forgive me, my dear Fanny, as soon as you can, for my long silence, and
14068 behave as if you could forgive me directly. This is my modest request
14069 and expectation, for you are so good, that I depend upon being treated
14070 better than I deserve, and I write now to beg an immediate answer. I
14071 want to know the state of things at Mansfield Park, and you, no doubt,
14072 are perfectly able to give it. One should be a brute not to feel for the
14073 distress they are in; and from what I hear, poor Mr. Bertram has a bad
14074 chance of ultimate recovery. I thought little of his illness at first.
14075 I looked upon him as the sort of person to be made a fuss with, and to
14076 make a fuss himself in any trifling disorder, and was chiefly concerned
14077 for those who had to nurse him; but now it is confidently asserted that
14078 he is really in a decline, that the symptoms are most alarming, and that
14079 part of the family, at least, are aware of it. If it be so, I am sure
14080 you must be included in that part, that discerning part, and therefore
14081 entreat you to let me know how far I have been rightly informed. I need
14082 not say how rejoiced I shall be to hear there has been any mistake, but
14083 the report is so prevalent that I confess I cannot help trembling. To
14084 have such a fine young man cut off in the flower of his days is most
14085 melancholy. Poor Sir Thomas will feel it dreadfully. I really am quite
14086 agitated on the subject. Fanny, Fanny, I see you smile and look cunning,
14087 but, upon my honour, I never bribed a physician in my life. Poor young
14088 man! If he is to die, there will be _two_ poor young men less in the
14089 world; and with a fearless face and bold voice would I say to any one,
14090 that wealth and consequence could fall into no hands more deserving of
14091 them. It was a foolish precipitation last Christmas, but the evil of
14092 a few days may be blotted out in part. Varnish and gilding hide many
14093 stains. It will be but the loss of the Esquire after his name. With real
14094 affection, Fanny, like mine, more might be overlooked. Write to me by
14095 return of post, judge of my anxiety, and do not trifle with it. Tell me
14096 the real truth, as you have it from the fountainhead. And now, do
14097 not trouble yourself to be ashamed of either my feelings or your own.
14098 Believe me, they are not only natural, they are philanthropic and
14099 virtuous. I put it to your conscience, whether 'Sir Edmund' would not do
14100 more good with all the Bertram property than any other possible 'Sir.'
14101 Had the Grants been at home I would not have troubled you, but you are
14102 now the only one I can apply to for the truth, his sisters not being
14103 within my reach. Mrs. R. has been spending the Easter with the Aylmers
14104 at Twickenham (as to be sure you know), and is not yet returned; and
14105 Julia is with the cousins who live near Bedford Square, but I forget
14106 their name and street. Could I immediately apply to either, however, I
14107 should still prefer you, because it strikes me that they have all along
14108 been so unwilling to have their own amusements cut up, as to shut their
14109 eyes to the truth. I suppose Mrs. R.'s Easter holidays will not last
14110 much longer; no doubt they are thorough holidays to her. The Aylmers
14111 are pleasant people; and her husband away, she can have nothing but
14112 enjoyment. I give her credit for promoting his going dutifully down to
14113 Bath, to fetch his mother; but how will she and the dowager agree in one
14114 house? Henry is not at hand, so I have nothing to say from him. Do not
14115 you think Edmund would have been in town again long ago, but for this
14116 illness?--Yours ever, Mary."
14117
14118 "I had actually begun folding my letter when Henry walked in, but he
14119 brings no intelligence to prevent my sending it. Mrs. R. knows a decline
14120 is apprehended; he saw her this morning: she returns to Wimpole Street
14121 to-day; the old lady is come. Now do not make yourself uneasy with any
14122 queer fancies because he has been spending a few days at Richmond. He
14123 does it every spring. Be assured he cares for nobody but you. At this
14124 very moment he is wild to see you, and occupied only in contriving the
14125 means for doing so, and for making his pleasure conduce to yours. In
14126 proof, he repeats, and more eagerly, what he said at Portsmouth about
14127 our conveying you home, and I join him in it with all my soul. Dear
14128 Fanny, write directly, and tell us to come. It will do us all good.
14129 He and I can go to the Parsonage, you know, and be no trouble to our
14130 friends at Mansfield Park. It would really be gratifying to see them
14131 all again, and a little addition of society might be of infinite use to
14132 them; and as to yourself, you must feel yourself to be so wanted there,
14133 that you cannot in conscience--conscientious as you are--keep away, when
14134 you have the means of returning. I have not time or patience to give
14135 half Henry's messages; be satisfied that the spirit of each and every
14136 one is unalterable affection."
14137
14138 Fanny's disgust at the greater part of this letter, with her extreme
14139 reluctance to bring the writer of it and her cousin Edmund together,
14140 would have made her (as she felt) incapable of judging impartially
14141 whether the concluding offer might be accepted or not. To herself,
14142 individually, it was most tempting. To be finding herself, perhaps
14143 within three days, transported to Mansfield, was an image of the
14144 greatest felicity, but it would have been a material drawback to be
14145 owing such felicity to persons in whose feelings and conduct, at the
14146 present moment, she saw so much to condemn: the sister's feelings,
14147 the brother's conduct, _her_ cold-hearted ambition, _his_ thoughtless
14148 vanity. To have him still the acquaintance, the flirt perhaps, of Mrs.
14149 Rushworth! She was mortified. She had thought better of him. Happily,
14150 however, she was not left to weigh and decide between opposite
14151 inclinations and doubtful notions of right; there was no occasion to
14152 determine whether she ought to keep Edmund and Mary asunder or not. She
14153 had a rule to apply to, which settled everything. Her awe of her uncle,
14154 and her dread of taking a liberty with him, made it instantly plain to
14155 her what she had to do. She must absolutely decline the proposal. If he
14156 wanted, he would send for her; and even to offer an early return was
14157 a presumption which hardly anything would have seemed to justify. She
14158 thanked Miss Crawford, but gave a decided negative. "Her uncle,
14159 she understood, meant to fetch her; and as her cousin's illness had
14160 continued so many weeks without her being thought at all necessary,
14161 she must suppose her return would be unwelcome at present, and that she
14162 should be felt an encumbrance."
14163
14164 Her representation of her cousin's state at this time was exactly
14165 according to her own belief of it, and such as she supposed would convey
14166 to the sanguine mind of her correspondent the hope of everything she was
14167 wishing for. Edmund would be forgiven for being a clergyman, it seemed,
14168 under certain conditions of wealth; and this, she suspected, was all
14169 the conquest of prejudice which he was so ready to congratulate himself
14170 upon. She had only learnt to think nothing of consequence but money.
14171
14172
14173
14174 CHAPTER XLVI
14175
14176 As Fanny could not doubt that her answer was conveying a real
14177 disappointment, she was rather in expectation, from her knowledge of
14178 Miss Crawford's temper, of being urged again; and though no second
14179 letter arrived for the space of a week, she had still the same feeling
14180 when it did come.
14181
14182 On receiving it, she could instantly decide on its containing little
14183 writing, and was persuaded of its having the air of a letter of haste
14184 and business. Its object was unquestionable; and two moments were enough
14185 to start the probability of its being merely to give her notice that
14186 they should be in Portsmouth that very day, and to throw her into all
14187 the agitation of doubting what she ought to do in such a case. If two
14188 moments, however, can surround with difficulties, a third can disperse
14189 them; and before she had opened the letter, the possibility of Mr. and
14190 Miss Crawford's having applied to her uncle and obtained his permission
14191 was giving her ease. This was the letter--
14192
14193 "A most scandalous, ill-natured rumour has just reached me, and I write,
14194 dear Fanny, to warn you against giving the least credit to it, should it
14195 spread into the country. Depend upon it, there is some mistake, and that
14196 a day or two will clear it up; at any rate, that Henry is blameless, and
14197 in spite of a moment's _etourderie_, thinks of nobody but you. Say not a
14198 word of it; hear nothing, surmise nothing, whisper nothing till I
14199 write again. I am sure it will be all hushed up, and nothing proved but
14200 Rushworth's folly. If they are gone, I would lay my life they are only
14201 gone to Mansfield Park, and Julia with them. But why would not you let
14202 us come for you? I wish you may not repent it.--Yours, etc."
14203
14204 Fanny stood aghast. As no scandalous, ill-natured rumour had reached
14205 her, it was impossible for her to understand much of this strange
14206 letter. She could only perceive that it must relate to Wimpole Street
14207 and Mr. Crawford, and only conjecture that something very imprudent had
14208 just occurred in that quarter to draw the notice of the world, and to
14209 excite her jealousy, in Miss Crawford's apprehension, if she heard it.
14210 Miss Crawford need not be alarmed for her. She was only sorry for the
14211 parties concerned and for Mansfield, if the report should spread so far;
14212 but she hoped it might not. If the Rushworths were gone themselves to
14213 Mansfield, as was to be inferred from what Miss Crawford said, it was
14214 not likely that anything unpleasant should have preceded them, or at
14215 least should make any impression.
14216
14217 As to Mr. Crawford, she hoped it might give him a knowledge of his own
14218 disposition, convince him that he was not capable of being steadily
14219 attached to any one woman in the world, and shame him from persisting
14220 any longer in addressing herself.
14221
14222 It was very strange! She had begun to think he really loved her, and to
14223 fancy his affection for her something more than common; and his sister
14224 still said that he cared for nobody else. Yet there must have been some
14225 marked display of attentions to her cousin, there must have been some
14226 strong indiscretion, since her correspondent was not of a sort to regard
14227 a slight one.
14228
14229 Very uncomfortable she was, and must continue, till she heard from
14230 Miss Crawford again. It was impossible to banish the letter from her
14231 thoughts, and she could not relieve herself by speaking of it to any
14232 human being. Miss Crawford need not have urged secrecy with so much
14233 warmth; she might have trusted to her sense of what was due to her
14234 cousin.
14235
14236 The next day came and brought no second letter. Fanny was disappointed.
14237 She could still think of little else all the morning; but, when her
14238 father came back in the afternoon with the daily newspaper as usual, she
14239 was so far from expecting any elucidation through such a channel that
14240 the subject was for a moment out of her head.
14241
14242 She was deep in other musing. The remembrance of her first evening in
14243 that room, of her father and his newspaper, came across her. No candle
14244 was now wanted. The sun was yet an hour and half above the horizon. She
14245 felt that she had, indeed, been three months there; and the sun's rays
14246 falling strongly into the parlour, instead of cheering, made her still
14247 more melancholy, for sunshine appeared to her a totally different
14248 thing in a town and in the country. Here, its power was only a glare:
14249 a stifling, sickly glare, serving but to bring forward stains and dirt
14250 that might otherwise have slept. There was neither health nor gaiety in
14251 sunshine in a town. She sat in a blaze of oppressive heat, in a cloud
14252 of moving dust, and her eyes could only wander from the walls, marked by
14253 her father's head, to the table cut and notched by her brothers, where
14254 stood the tea-board never thoroughly cleaned, the cups and saucers wiped
14255 in streaks, the milk a mixture of motes floating in thin blue, and the
14256 bread and butter growing every minute more greasy than even Rebecca's
14257 hands had first produced it. Her father read his newspaper, and her
14258 mother lamented over the ragged carpet as usual, while the tea was
14259 in preparation, and wished Rebecca would mend it; and Fanny was first
14260 roused by his calling out to her, after humphing and considering over
14261 a particular paragraph: "What's the name of your great cousins in town,
14262 Fan?"
14263
14264 A moment's recollection enabled her to say, "Rushworth, sir."
14265
14266 "And don't they live in Wimpole Street?"
14267
14268 "Yes, sir."
14269
14270 "Then, there's the devil to pay among them, that's all! There" (holding
14271 out the paper to her); "much good may such fine relations do you. I
14272 don't know what Sir Thomas may think of such matters; he may be too much
14273 of the courtier and fine gentleman to like his daughter the less. But,
14274 by G--! if she belonged to _me_, I'd give her the rope's end as long as
14275 I could stand over her. A little flogging for man and woman too would be
14276 the best way of preventing such things."
14277
14278 Fanny read to herself that "it was with infinite concern the newspaper
14279 had to announce to the world a matrimonial _fracas_ in the family of
14280 Mr. R. of Wimpole Street; the beautiful Mrs. R., whose name had not long
14281 been enrolled in the lists of Hymen, and who had promised to become
14282 so brilliant a leader in the fashionable world, having quitted her
14283 husband's roof in company with the well-known and captivating Mr. C.,
14284 the intimate friend and associate of Mr. R., and it was not known even
14285 to the editor of the newspaper whither they were gone."
14286
14287 "It is a mistake, sir," said Fanny instantly; "it must be a mistake, it
14288 cannot be true; it must mean some other people."
14289
14290 She spoke from the instinctive wish of delaying shame; she spoke with
14291 a resolution which sprung from despair, for she spoke what she did not,
14292 could not believe herself. It had been the shock of conviction as she
14293 read. The truth rushed on her; and how she could have spoken at all,
14294 how she could even have breathed, was afterwards matter of wonder to
14295 herself.
14296
14297 Mr. Price cared too little about the report to make her much answer.
14298 "It might be all a lie," he acknowledged; "but so many fine ladies were
14299 going to the devil nowadays that way, that there was no answering for
14300 anybody."
14301
14302 "Indeed, I hope it is not true," said Mrs. Price plaintively; "it would
14303 be so very shocking! If I have spoken once to Rebecca about that carpet,
14304 I am sure I have spoke at least a dozen times; have not I, Betsey? And
14305 it would not be ten minutes' work."
14306
14307 The horror of a mind like Fanny's, as it received the conviction of such
14308 guilt, and began to take in some part of the misery that must ensue, can
14309 hardly be described. At first, it was a sort of stupefaction; but every
14310 moment was quickening her perception of the horrible evil. She could not
14311 doubt, she dared not indulge a hope, of the paragraph being false. Miss
14312 Crawford's letter, which she had read so often as to make every line
14313 her own, was in frightful conformity with it. Her eager defence of her
14314 brother, her hope of its being _hushed_ _up_, her evident agitation,
14315 were all of a piece with something very bad; and if there was a woman
14316 of character in existence, who could treat as a trifle this sin of the
14317 first magnitude, who would try to gloss it over, and desire to have it
14318 unpunished, she could believe Miss Crawford to be the woman! Now she
14319 could see her own mistake as to _who_ were gone, or _said_ to be
14320 gone. It was not Mr. and Mrs. Rushworth; it was Mrs. Rushworth and Mr.
14321 Crawford.
14322
14323 Fanny seemed to herself never to have been shocked before. There was no
14324 possibility of rest. The evening passed without a pause of misery, the
14325 night was totally sleepless. She passed only from feelings of sickness
14326 to shudderings of horror; and from hot fits of fever to cold. The event
14327 was so shocking, that there were moments even when her heart revolted
14328 from it as impossible: when she thought it could not be. A woman married
14329 only six months ago; a man professing himself devoted, even _engaged_ to
14330 another; that other her near relation; the whole family, both families
14331 connected as they were by tie upon tie; all friends, all intimate
14332 together! It was too horrible a confusion of guilt, too gross a
14333 complication of evil, for human nature, not in a state of utter
14334 barbarism, to be capable of! yet her judgment told her it was so.
14335 _His_ unsettled affections, wavering with his vanity, _Maria's_
14336 decided attachment, and no sufficient principle on either side, gave it
14337 possibility: Miss Crawford's letter stampt it a fact.
14338
14339 What would be the consequence? Whom would it not injure? Whose views
14340 might it not affect? Whose peace would it not cut up for ever? Miss
14341 Crawford, herself, Edmund; but it was dangerous, perhaps, to tread
14342 such ground. She confined herself, or tried to confine herself, to the
14343 simple, indubitable family misery which must envelop all, if it were
14344 indeed a matter of certified guilt and public exposure. The mother's
14345 sufferings, the father's; there she paused. Julia's, Tom's, Edmund's;
14346 there a yet longer pause. They were the two on whom it would fall most
14347 horribly. Sir Thomas's parental solicitude and high sense of honour and
14348 decorum, Edmund's upright principles, unsuspicious temper, and genuine
14349 strength of feeling, made her think it scarcely possible for them to
14350 support life and reason under such disgrace; and it appeared to her
14351 that, as far as this world alone was concerned, the greatest blessing to
14352 every one of kindred with Mrs. Rushworth would be instant annihilation.
14353
14354 Nothing happened the next day, or the next, to weaken her terrors. Two
14355 posts came in, and brought no refutation, public or private. There was
14356 no second letter to explain away the first from Miss Crawford; there was
14357 no intelligence from Mansfield, though it was now full time for her
14358 to hear again from her aunt. This was an evil omen. She had, indeed,
14359 scarcely the shadow of a hope to soothe her mind, and was reduced to so
14360 low and wan and trembling a condition, as no mother, not unkind, except
14361 Mrs. Price could have overlooked, when the third day did bring the
14362 sickening knock, and a letter was again put into her hands. It bore the
14363 London postmark, and came from Edmund.
14364
14365 "Dear Fanny,--You know our present wretchedness. May God support you
14366 under your share! We have been here two days, but there is nothing to
14367 be done. They cannot be traced. You may not have heard of the last
14368 blow--Julia's elopement; she is gone to Scotland with Yates. She left
14369 London a few hours before we entered it. At any other time this would
14370 have been felt dreadfully. Now it seems nothing; yet it is an heavy
14371 aggravation. My father is not overpowered. More cannot be hoped. He is
14372 still able to think and act; and I write, by his desire, to propose your
14373 returning home. He is anxious to get you there for my mother's sake. I
14374 shall be at Portsmouth the morning after you receive this, and hope to
14375 find you ready to set off for Mansfield. My father wishes you to invite
14376 Susan to go with you for a few months. Settle it as you like; say what
14377 is proper; I am sure you will feel such an instance of his kindness at
14378 such a moment! Do justice to his meaning, however I may confuse it. You
14379 may imagine something of my present state. There is no end of the evil
14380 let loose upon us. You will see me early by the mail.--Yours, etc."
14381
14382 Never had Fanny more wanted a cordial. Never had she felt such a one
14383 as this letter contained. To-morrow! to leave Portsmouth to-morrow!
14384 She was, she felt she was, in the greatest danger of being exquisitely
14385 happy, while so many were miserable. The evil which brought such good
14386 to her! She dreaded lest she should learn to be insensible of it. To be
14387 going so soon, sent for so kindly, sent for as a comfort, and with leave
14388 to take Susan, was altogether such a combination of blessings as set her
14389 heart in a glow, and for a time seemed to distance every pain, and
14390 make her incapable of suitably sharing the distress even of those
14391 whose distress she thought of most. Julia's elopement could affect her
14392 comparatively but little; she was amazed and shocked; but it could not
14393 occupy her, could not dwell on her mind. She was obliged to call herself
14394 to think of it, and acknowledge it to be terrible and grievous, or it
14395 was escaping her, in the midst of all the agitating pressing joyful
14396 cares attending this summons to herself.
14397
14398 There is nothing like employment, active indispensable employment, for
14399 relieving sorrow. Employment, even melancholy, may dispel melancholy,
14400 and her occupations were hopeful. She had so much to do, that not even
14401 the horrible story of Mrs. Rushworth--now fixed to the last point of
14402 certainty could affect her as it had done before. She had not time to
14403 be miserable. Within twenty-four hours she was hoping to be gone; her
14404 father and mother must be spoken to, Susan prepared, everything got
14405 ready. Business followed business; the day was hardly long enough. The
14406 happiness she was imparting, too, happiness very little alloyed by the
14407 black communication which must briefly precede it--the joyful consent
14408 of her father and mother to Susan's going with her--the general
14409 satisfaction with which the going of both seemed regarded, and the
14410 ecstasy of Susan herself, was all serving to support her spirits.
14411
14412 The affliction of the Bertrams was little felt in the family. Mrs. Price
14413 talked of her poor sister for a few minutes, but how to find anything to
14414 hold Susan's clothes, because Rebecca took away all the boxes and spoilt
14415 them, was much more in her thoughts: and as for Susan, now unexpectedly
14416 gratified in the first wish of her heart, and knowing nothing personally
14417 of those who had sinned, or of those who were sorrowing--if she could
14418 help rejoicing from beginning to end, it was as much as ought to be
14419 expected from human virtue at fourteen.
14420
14421 As nothing was really left for the decision of Mrs. Price, or the good
14422 offices of Rebecca, everything was rationally and duly accomplished,
14423 and the girls were ready for the morrow. The advantage of much sleep
14424 to prepare them for their journey was impossible. The cousin who was
14425 travelling towards them could hardly have less than visited their
14426 agitated spirits--one all happiness, the other all varying and
14427 indescribable perturbation.
14428
14429 By eight in the morning Edmund was in the house. The girls heard his
14430 entrance from above, and Fanny went down. The idea of immediately seeing
14431 him, with the knowledge of what he must be suffering, brought back all
14432 her own first feelings. He so near her, and in misery. She was ready to
14433 sink as she entered the parlour. He was alone, and met her instantly;
14434 and she found herself pressed to his heart with only these words, just
14435 articulate, "My Fanny, my only sister; my only comfort now!" She could
14436 say nothing; nor for some minutes could he say more.
14437
14438 He turned away to recover himself, and when he spoke again, though his
14439 voice still faltered, his manner shewed the wish of self-command, and
14440 the resolution of avoiding any farther allusion. "Have you breakfasted?
14441 When shall you be ready? Does Susan go?" were questions following each
14442 other rapidly. His great object was to be off as soon as possible. When
14443 Mansfield was considered, time was precious; and the state of his own
14444 mind made him find relief only in motion. It was settled that he should
14445 order the carriage to the door in half an hour. Fanny answered for their
14446 having breakfasted and being quite ready in half an hour. He had already
14447 ate, and declined staying for their meal. He would walk round the
14448 ramparts, and join them with the carriage. He was gone again; glad to
14449 get away even from Fanny.
14450
14451 He looked very ill; evidently suffering under violent emotions, which he
14452 was determined to suppress. She knew it must be so, but it was terrible
14453 to her.
14454
14455 The carriage came; and he entered the house again at the same
14456 moment, just in time to spend a few minutes with the family, and be a
14457 witness--but that he saw nothing--of the tranquil manner in which the
14458 daughters were parted with, and just in time to prevent their sitting
14459 down to the breakfast-table, which, by dint of much unusual activity,
14460 was quite and completely ready as the carriage drove from the door.
14461 Fanny's last meal in her father's house was in character with her first:
14462 she was dismissed from it as hospitably as she had been welcomed.
14463
14464 How her heart swelled with joy and gratitude as she passed the barriers
14465 of Portsmouth, and how Susan's face wore its broadest smiles, may be
14466 easily conceived. Sitting forwards, however, and screened by her bonnet,
14467 those smiles were unseen.
14468
14469 The journey was likely to be a silent one. Edmund's deep sighs often
14470 reached Fanny. Had he been alone with her, his heart must have opened
14471 in spite of every resolution; but Susan's presence drove him quite into
14472 himself, and his attempts to talk on indifferent subjects could never be
14473 long supported.
14474
14475 Fanny watched him with never-failing solicitude, and sometimes catching
14476 his eye, revived an affectionate smile, which comforted her; but the
14477 first day's journey passed without her hearing a word from him on the
14478 subjects that were weighing him down. The next morning produced a
14479 little more. Just before their setting out from Oxford, while Susan was
14480 stationed at a window, in eager observation of the departure of a
14481 large family from the inn, the other two were standing by the fire; and
14482 Edmund, particularly struck by the alteration in Fanny's looks, and from
14483 his ignorance of the daily evils of her father's house, attributing an
14484 undue share of the change, attributing _all_ to the recent event, took
14485 her hand, and said in a low, but very expressive tone, "No wonder--you
14486 must feel it--you must suffer. How a man who had once loved, could
14487 desert you! But _yours_--your regard was new compared with----Fanny,
14488 think of _me_!"
14489
14490 The first division of their journey occupied a long day, and brought
14491 them, almost knocked up, to Oxford; but the second was over at a much
14492 earlier hour. They were in the environs of Mansfield long before the
14493 usual dinner-time, and as they approached the beloved place, the hearts
14494 of both sisters sank a little. Fanny began to dread the meeting with her
14495 aunts and Tom, under so dreadful a humiliation; and Susan to feel
14496 with some anxiety, that all her best manners, all her lately acquired
14497 knowledge of what was practised here, was on the point of being called
14498 into action. Visions of good and ill breeding, of old vulgarisms and new
14499 gentilities, were before her; and she was meditating much upon silver
14500 forks, napkins, and finger-glasses. Fanny had been everywhere awake to
14501 the difference of the country since February; but when they entered the
14502 Park her perceptions and her pleasures were of the keenest sort. It was
14503 three months, full three months, since her quitting it, and the
14504 change was from winter to summer. Her eye fell everywhere on lawns
14505 and plantations of the freshest green; and the trees, though not fully
14506 clothed, were in that delightful state when farther beauty is known to
14507 be at hand, and when, while much is actually given to the sight, more
14508 yet remains for the imagination. Her enjoyment, however, was for herself
14509 alone. Edmund could not share it. She looked at him, but he was leaning
14510 back, sunk in a deeper gloom than ever, and with eyes closed, as if the
14511 view of cheerfulness oppressed him, and the lovely scenes of home must
14512 be shut out.
14513
14514 It made her melancholy again; and the knowledge of what must be enduring
14515 there, invested even the house, modern, airy, and well situated as it
14516 was, with a melancholy aspect.
14517
14518 By one of the suffering party within they were expected with such
14519 impatience as she had never known before. Fanny had scarcely passed the
14520 solemn-looking servants, when Lady Bertram came from the drawing-room
14521 to meet her; came with no indolent step; and falling on her neck, said,
14522 "Dear Fanny! now I shall be comfortable."
14523
14524
14525
14526 CHAPTER XLVII
14527
14528 It had been a miserable party, each of the three believing themselves
14529 most miserable. Mrs. Norris, however, as most attached to Maria, was
14530 really the greatest sufferer. Maria was her first favourite, the dearest
14531 of all; the match had been her own contriving, as she had been wont with
14532 such pride of heart to feel and say, and this conclusion of it almost
14533 overpowered her.
14534
14535 She was an altered creature, quieted, stupefied, indifferent to
14536 everything that passed. The being left with her sister and nephew, and
14537 all the house under her care, had been an advantage entirely thrown
14538 away; she had been unable to direct or dictate, or even fancy herself
14539 useful. When really touched by affliction, her active powers had been
14540 all benumbed; and neither Lady Bertram nor Tom had received from her the
14541 smallest support or attempt at support. She had done no more for them
14542 than they had done for each other. They had been all solitary, helpless,
14543 and forlorn alike; and now the arrival of the others only established
14544 her superiority in wretchedness. Her companions were relieved, but there
14545 was no good for _her_. Edmund was almost as welcome to his brother
14546 as Fanny to her aunt; but Mrs. Norris, instead of having comfort from
14547 either, was but the more irritated by the sight of the person whom, in
14548 the blindness of her anger, she could have charged as the daemon of the
14549 piece. Had Fanny accepted Mr. Crawford this could not have happened.
14550
14551 Susan too was a grievance. She had not spirits to notice her in more
14552 than a few repulsive looks, but she felt her as a spy, and an intruder,
14553 and an indigent niece, and everything most odious. By her other aunt,
14554 Susan was received with quiet kindness. Lady Bertram could not give her
14555 much time, or many words, but she felt her, as Fanny's sister, to have
14556 a claim at Mansfield, and was ready to kiss and like her; and Susan
14557 was more than satisfied, for she came perfectly aware that nothing but
14558 ill-humour was to be expected from aunt Norris; and was so provided
14559 with happiness, so strong in that best of blessings, an escape from
14560 many certain evils, that she could have stood against a great deal more
14561 indifference than she met with from the others.
14562
14563 She was now left a good deal to herself, to get acquainted with the
14564 house and grounds as she could, and spent her days very happily in so
14565 doing, while those who might otherwise have attended to her were shut
14566 up, or wholly occupied each with the person quite dependent on them, at
14567 this time, for everything like comfort; Edmund trying to bury his own
14568 feelings in exertions for the relief of his brother's, and Fanny devoted
14569 to her aunt Bertram, returning to every former office with more than
14570 former zeal, and thinking she could never do enough for one who seemed
14571 so much to want her.
14572
14573 To talk over the dreadful business with Fanny, talk and lament, was all
14574 Lady Bertram's consolation. To be listened to and borne with, and hear
14575 the voice of kindness and sympathy in return, was everything that could
14576 be done for her. To be otherwise comforted was out of the question. The
14577 case admitted of no comfort. Lady Bertram did not think deeply, but,
14578 guided by Sir Thomas, she thought justly on all important points; and
14579 she saw, therefore, in all its enormity, what had happened, and neither
14580 endeavoured herself, nor required Fanny to advise her, to think little
14581 of guilt and infamy.
14582
14583 Her affections were not acute, nor was her mind tenacious. After a time,
14584 Fanny found it not impossible to direct her thoughts to other subjects,
14585 and revive some interest in the usual occupations; but whenever Lady
14586 Bertram _was_ fixed on the event, she could see it only in one light, as
14587 comprehending the loss of a daughter, and a disgrace never to be wiped
14588 off.
14589
14590 Fanny learnt from her all the particulars which had yet transpired. Her
14591 aunt was no very methodical narrator, but with the help of some letters
14592 to and from Sir Thomas, and what she already knew herself, and could
14593 reasonably combine, she was soon able to understand quite as much as she
14594 wished of the circumstances attending the story.
14595
14596 Mrs. Rushworth had gone, for the Easter holidays, to Twickenham, with
14597 a family whom she had just grown intimate with: a family of lively,
14598 agreeable manners, and probably of morals and discretion to suit, for to
14599 _their_ house Mr. Crawford had constant access at all times. His having
14600 been in the same neighbourhood Fanny already knew. Mr. Rushworth had
14601 been gone at this time to Bath, to pass a few days with his mother, and
14602 bring her back to town, and Maria was with these friends without any
14603 restraint, without even Julia; for Julia had removed from Wimpole Street
14604 two or three weeks before, on a visit to some relations of Sir Thomas;
14605 a removal which her father and mother were now disposed to attribute
14606 to some view of convenience on Mr. Yates's account. Very soon after the
14607 Rushworths' return to Wimpole Street, Sir Thomas had received a letter
14608 from an old and most particular friend in London, who hearing and
14609 witnessing a good deal to alarm him in that quarter, wrote to recommend
14610 Sir Thomas's coming to London himself, and using his influence with his
14611 daughter to put an end to the intimacy which was already exposing her to
14612 unpleasant remarks, and evidently making Mr. Rushworth uneasy.
14613
14614 Sir Thomas was preparing to act upon this letter, without communicating
14615 its contents to any creature at Mansfield, when it was followed by
14616 another, sent express from the same friend, to break to him the almost
14617 desperate situation in which affairs then stood with the young people.
14618 Mrs. Rushworth had left her husband's house: Mr. Rushworth had been
14619 in great anger and distress to _him_ (Mr. Harding) for his advice; Mr.
14620 Harding feared there had been _at_ _least_ very flagrant indiscretion.
14621 The maidservant of Mrs. Rushworth, senior, threatened alarmingly. He
14622 was doing all in his power to quiet everything, with the hope of Mrs.
14623 Rushworth's return, but was so much counteracted in Wimpole Street by
14624 the influence of Mr. Rushworth's mother, that the worst consequences
14625 might be apprehended.
14626
14627 This dreadful communication could not be kept from the rest of the
14628 family. Sir Thomas set off, Edmund would go with him, and the others had
14629 been left in a state of wretchedness, inferior only to what followed
14630 the receipt of the next letters from London. Everything was by that time
14631 public beyond a hope. The servant of Mrs. Rushworth, the mother, had
14632 exposure in her power, and supported by her mistress, was not to be
14633 silenced. The two ladies, even in the short time they had been
14634 together, had disagreed; and the bitterness of the elder against her
14635 daughter-in-law might perhaps arise almost as much from the personal
14636 disrespect with which she had herself been treated as from sensibility
14637 for her son.
14638
14639 However that might be, she was unmanageable. But had she been less
14640 obstinate, or of less weight with her son, who was always guided by the
14641 last speaker, by the person who could get hold of and shut him up, the
14642 case would still have been hopeless, for Mrs. Rushworth did not appear
14643 again, and there was every reason to conclude her to be concealed
14644 somewhere with Mr. Crawford, who had quitted his uncle's house, as for a
14645 journey, on the very day of her absenting herself.
14646
14647 Sir Thomas, however, remained yet a little longer in town, in the hope
14648 of discovering and snatching her from farther vice, though all was lost
14649 on the side of character.
14650
14651 _His_ present state Fanny could hardly bear to think of. There was but
14652 one of his children who was not at this time a source of misery to
14653 him. Tom's complaints had been greatly heightened by the shock of his
14654 sister's conduct, and his recovery so much thrown back by it, that even
14655 Lady Bertram had been struck by the difference, and all her alarms were
14656 regularly sent off to her husband; and Julia's elopement, the additional
14657 blow which had met him on his arrival in London, though its force had
14658 been deadened at the moment, must, she knew, be sorely felt. She saw
14659 that it was. His letters expressed how much he deplored it. Under any
14660 circumstances it would have been an unwelcome alliance; but to have it
14661 so clandestinely formed, and such a period chosen for its completion,
14662 placed Julia's feelings in a most unfavourable light, and severely
14663 aggravated the folly of her choice. He called it a bad thing, done in
14664 the worst manner, and at the worst time; and though Julia was yet as
14665 more pardonable than Maria as folly than vice, he could not but
14666 regard the step she had taken as opening the worst probabilities of a
14667 conclusion hereafter like her sister's. Such was his opinion of the set
14668 into which she had thrown herself.
14669
14670 Fanny felt for him most acutely. He could have no comfort but in Edmund.
14671 Every other child must be racking his heart. His displeasure against
14672 herself she trusted, reasoning differently from Mrs. Norris, would now
14673 be done away. _She_ should be justified. Mr. Crawford would have fully
14674 acquitted her conduct in refusing him; but this, though most material
14675 to herself, would be poor consolation to Sir Thomas. Her uncle's
14676 displeasure was terrible to her; but what could her justification or her
14677 gratitude and attachment do for him? His stay must be on Edmund alone.
14678
14679 She was mistaken, however, in supposing that Edmund gave his father no
14680 present pain. It was of a much less poignant nature than what the others
14681 excited; but Sir Thomas was considering his happiness as very deeply
14682 involved in the offence of his sister and friend; cut off by it, as
14683 he must be, from the woman whom he had been pursuing with undoubted
14684 attachment and strong probability of success; and who, in everything but
14685 this despicable brother, would have been so eligible a connexion. He was
14686 aware of what Edmund must be suffering on his own behalf, in addition
14687 to all the rest, when they were in town: he had seen or conjectured
14688 his feelings; and, having reason to think that one interview with Miss
14689 Crawford had taken place, from which Edmund derived only increased
14690 distress, had been as anxious on that account as on others to get him
14691 out of town, and had engaged him in taking Fanny home to her aunt, with
14692 a view to his relief and benefit, no less than theirs. Fanny was not in
14693 the secret of her uncle's feelings, Sir Thomas not in the secret of Miss
14694 Crawford's character. Had he been privy to her conversation with his
14695 son, he would not have wished her to belong to him, though her twenty
14696 thousand pounds had been forty.
14697
14698 That Edmund must be for ever divided from Miss Crawford did not admit
14699 of a doubt with Fanny; and yet, till she knew that he felt the same, her
14700 own conviction was insufficient. She thought he did, but she wanted to
14701 be assured of it. If he would now speak to her with the unreserve which
14702 had sometimes been too much for her before, it would be most consoling;
14703 but _that_ she found was not to be. She seldom saw him: never alone. He
14704 probably avoided being alone with her. What was to be inferred? That
14705 his judgment submitted to all his own peculiar and bitter share of this
14706 family affliction, but that it was too keenly felt to be a subject of
14707 the slightest communication. This must be his state. He yielded, but it
14708 was with agonies which did not admit of speech. Long, long would it be
14709 ere Miss Crawford's name passed his lips again, or she could hope for a
14710 renewal of such confidential intercourse as had been.
14711
14712 It _was_ long. They reached Mansfield on Thursday, and it was not till
14713 Sunday evening that Edmund began to talk to her on the subject. Sitting
14714 with her on Sunday evening--a wet Sunday evening--the very time of
14715 all others when, if a friend is at hand, the heart must be opened, and
14716 everything told; no one else in the room, except his mother, who,
14717 after hearing an affecting sermon, had cried herself to sleep, it was
14718 impossible not to speak; and so, with the usual beginnings, hardly to
14719 be traced as to what came first, and the usual declaration that if she
14720 would listen to him for a few minutes, he should be very brief, and
14721 certainly never tax her kindness in the same way again; she need not
14722 fear a repetition; it would be a subject prohibited entirely: he entered
14723 upon the luxury of relating circumstances and sensations of the first
14724 interest to himself, to one of whose affectionate sympathy he was quite
14725 convinced.
14726
14727 How Fanny listened, with what curiosity and concern, what pain and what
14728 delight, how the agitation of his voice was watched, and how carefully
14729 her own eyes were fixed on any object but himself, may be imagined. The
14730 opening was alarming. He had seen Miss Crawford. He had been invited to
14731 see her. He had received a note from Lady Stornaway to beg him to call;
14732 and regarding it as what was meant to be the last, last interview
14733 of friendship, and investing her with all the feelings of shame and
14734 wretchedness which Crawford's sister ought to have known, he had gone to
14735 her in such a state of mind, so softened, so devoted, as made it for a
14736 few moments impossible to Fanny's fears that it should be the last. But
14737 as he proceeded in his story, these fears were over. She had met him,
14738 he said, with a serious--certainly a serious--even an agitated air;
14739 but before he had been able to speak one intelligible sentence, she had
14740 introduced the subject in a manner which he owned had shocked him. "'I
14741 heard you were in town,' said she; 'I wanted to see you. Let us talk
14742 over this sad business. What can equal the folly of our two relations?'
14743 I could not answer, but I believe my looks spoke. She felt reproved.
14744 Sometimes how quick to feel! With a graver look and voice she then
14745 added, 'I do not mean to defend Henry at your sister's expense.' So
14746 she began, but how she went on, Fanny, is not fit, is hardly fit to be
14747 repeated to you. I cannot recall all her words. I would not dwell upon
14748 them if I could. Their substance was great anger at the _folly_ of each.
14749 She reprobated her brother's folly in being drawn on by a woman whom he
14750 had never cared for, to do what must lose him the woman he adored; but
14751 still more the folly of poor Maria, in sacrificing such a situation,
14752 plunging into such difficulties, under the idea of being really loved
14753 by a man who had long ago made his indifference clear. Guess what I must
14754 have felt. To hear the woman whom--no harsher name than folly given!
14755 So voluntarily, so freely, so coolly to canvass it! No reluctance, no
14756 horror, no feminine, shall I say, no modest loathings? This is what the
14757 world does. For where, Fanny, shall we find a woman whom nature had so
14758 richly endowed? Spoilt, spoilt!"
14759
14760 After a little reflection, he went on with a sort of desperate calmness.
14761 "I will tell you everything, and then have done for ever. She saw it
14762 only as folly, and that folly stamped only by exposure. The want of
14763 common discretion, of caution: his going down to Richmond for the whole
14764 time of her being at Twickenham; her putting herself in the power of
14765 a servant; it was the detection, in short--oh, Fanny! it was the
14766 detection, not the offence, which she reprobated. It was the imprudence
14767 which had brought things to extremity, and obliged her brother to give
14768 up every dearer plan in order to fly with her."
14769
14770 He stopt. "And what," said Fanny (believing herself required to speak),
14771 "what could you say?"
14772
14773 "Nothing, nothing to be understood. I was like a man stunned. She
14774 went on, began to talk of you; yes, then she began to talk of you,
14775 regretting, as well she might, the loss of such a--. There she spoke
14776 very rationally. But she has always done justice to you. 'He has thrown
14777 away,' said she, 'such a woman as he will never see again. She would
14778 have fixed him; she would have made him happy for ever.' My dearest
14779 Fanny, I am giving you, I hope, more pleasure than pain by this
14780 retrospect of what might have been--but what never can be now. You do
14781 not wish me to be silent? If you do, give me but a look, a word, and I
14782 have done."
14783
14784 No look or word was given.
14785
14786 "Thank God," said he. "We were all disposed to wonder, but it seems to
14787 have been the merciful appointment of Providence that the heart which
14788 knew no guile should not suffer. She spoke of you with high praise and
14789 warm affection; yet, even here, there was alloy, a dash of evil; for in
14790 the midst of it she could exclaim, 'Why would not she have him? It is
14791 all her fault. Simple girl! I shall never forgive her. Had she accepted
14792 him as she ought, they might now have been on the point of marriage, and
14793 Henry would have been too happy and too busy to want any other object.
14794 He would have taken no pains to be on terms with Mrs. Rushworth again.
14795 It would have all ended in a regular standing flirtation, in yearly
14796 meetings at Sotherton and Everingham.' Could you have believed it
14797 possible? But the charm is broken. My eyes are opened."
14798
14799 "Cruel!" said Fanny, "quite cruel. At such a moment to give way to
14800 gaiety, to speak with lightness, and to you! Absolute cruelty."
14801
14802 "Cruelty, do you call it? We differ there. No, hers is not a cruel
14803 nature. I do not consider her as meaning to wound my feelings. The evil
14804 lies yet deeper: in her total ignorance, unsuspiciousness of there being
14805 such feelings; in a perversion of mind which made it natural to her to
14806 treat the subject as she did. She was speaking only as she had been used
14807 to hear others speak, as she imagined everybody else would speak. Hers
14808 are not faults of temper. She would not voluntarily give unnecessary
14809 pain to any one, and though I may deceive myself, I cannot but think
14810 that for me, for my feelings, she would--Hers are faults of principle,
14811 Fanny; of blunted delicacy and a corrupted, vitiated mind. Perhaps it
14812 is best for me, since it leaves me so little to regret. Not so, however.
14813 Gladly would I submit to all the increased pain of losing her, rather
14814 than have to think of her as I do. I told her so."
14815
14816 "Did you?"
14817
14818 "Yes; when I left her I told her so."
14819
14820 "How long were you together?"
14821
14822 "Five-and-twenty minutes. Well, she went on to say that what remained
14823 now to be done was to bring about a marriage between them. She spoke of
14824 it, Fanny, with a steadier voice than I can." He was obliged to pause
14825 more than once as he continued. "'We must persuade Henry to marry
14826 her,' said she; 'and what with honour, and the certainty of having shut
14827 himself out for ever from Fanny, I do not despair of it. Fanny he must
14828 give up. I do not think that even _he_ could now hope to succeed with
14829 one of her stamp, and therefore I hope we may find no insuperable
14830 difficulty. My influence, which is not small shall all go that way; and
14831 when once married, and properly supported by her own family, people of
14832 respectability as they are, she may recover her footing in society to a
14833 certain degree. In some circles, we know, she would never be admitted,
14834 but with good dinners, and large parties, there will always be those
14835 who will be glad of her acquaintance; and there is, undoubtedly, more
14836 liberality and candour on those points than formerly. What I advise
14837 is, that your father be quiet. Do not let him injure his own cause by
14838 interference. Persuade him to let things take their course. If by any
14839 officious exertions of his, she is induced to leave Henry's protection,
14840 there will be much less chance of his marrying her than if she remain
14841 with him. I know how he is likely to be influenced. Let Sir Thomas trust
14842 to his honour and compassion, and it may all end well; but if he get his
14843 daughter away, it will be destroying the chief hold.'"
14844
14845 After repeating this, Edmund was so much affected that Fanny, watching
14846 him with silent, but most tender concern, was almost sorry that the
14847 subject had been entered on at all. It was long before he could speak
14848 again. At last, "Now, Fanny," said he, "I shall soon have done. I have
14849 told you the substance of all that she said. As soon as I could speak,
14850 I replied that I had not supposed it possible, coming in such a state of
14851 mind into that house as I had done, that anything could occur to make
14852 me suffer more, but that she had been inflicting deeper wounds in almost
14853 every sentence. That though I had, in the course of our acquaintance,
14854 been often sensible of some difference in our opinions, on points,
14855 too, of some moment, it had not entered my imagination to conceive the
14856 difference could be such as she had now proved it. That the manner in
14857 which she treated the dreadful crime committed by her brother and my
14858 sister (with whom lay the greater seduction I pretended not to say),
14859 but the manner in which she spoke of the crime itself, giving it every
14860 reproach but the right; considering its ill consequences only as they
14861 were to be braved or overborne by a defiance of decency and impudence in
14862 wrong; and last of all, and above all, recommending to us a compliance,
14863 a compromise, an acquiescence in the continuance of the sin, on the
14864 chance of a marriage which, thinking as I now thought of her brother,
14865 should rather be prevented than sought; all this together most
14866 grievously convinced me that I had never understood her before, and
14867 that, as far as related to mind, it had been the creature of my own
14868 imagination, not Miss Crawford, that I had been too apt to dwell on
14869 for many months past. That, perhaps, it was best for me; I had less to
14870 regret in sacrificing a friendship, feelings, hopes which must, at any
14871 rate, have been torn from me now. And yet, that I must and would confess
14872 that, could I have restored her to what she had appeared to me before,
14873 I would infinitely prefer any increase of the pain of parting, for the
14874 sake of carrying with me the right of tenderness and esteem. This is
14875 what I said, the purport of it; but, as you may imagine, not spoken
14876 so collectedly or methodically as I have repeated it to you. She was
14877 astonished, exceedingly astonished--more than astonished. I saw her
14878 change countenance. She turned extremely red. I imagined I saw a
14879 mixture of many feelings: a great, though short struggle; half a wish of
14880 yielding to truths, half a sense of shame, but habit, habit carried
14881 it. She would have laughed if she could. It was a sort of laugh, as she
14882 answered, 'A pretty good lecture, upon my word. Was it part of your last
14883 sermon? At this rate you will soon reform everybody at Mansfield and
14884 Thornton Lacey; and when I hear of you next, it may be as a celebrated
14885 preacher in some great society of Methodists, or as a missionary into
14886 foreign parts.' She tried to speak carelessly, but she was not so
14887 careless as she wanted to appear. I only said in reply, that from my
14888 heart I wished her well, and earnestly hoped that she might soon learn
14889 to think more justly, and not owe the most valuable knowledge we could
14890 any of us acquire, the knowledge of ourselves and of our duty, to the
14891 lessons of affliction, and immediately left the room. I had gone a few
14892 steps, Fanny, when I heard the door open behind me. 'Mr. Bertram,' said
14893 she. I looked back. 'Mr. Bertram,' said she, with a smile; but it was
14894 a smile ill-suited to the conversation that had passed, a saucy playful
14895 smile, seeming to invite in order to subdue me; at least it appeared so
14896 to me. I resisted; it was the impulse of the moment to resist, and still
14897 walked on. I have since, sometimes, for a moment, regretted that I did
14898 not go back, but I know I was right, and such has been the end of our
14899 acquaintance. And what an acquaintance has it been! How have I been
14900 deceived! Equally in brother and sister deceived! I thank you for your
14901 patience, Fanny. This has been the greatest relief, and now we will have
14902 done."
14903
14904 And such was Fanny's dependence on his words, that for five minutes
14905 she thought they _had_ done. Then, however, it all came on again, or
14906 something very like it, and nothing less than Lady Bertram's rousing
14907 thoroughly up could really close such a conversation. Till that
14908 happened, they continued to talk of Miss Crawford alone, and how she had
14909 attached him, and how delightful nature had made her, and how excellent
14910 she would have been, had she fallen into good hands earlier. Fanny, now
14911 at liberty to speak openly, felt more than justified in adding to
14912 his knowledge of her real character, by some hint of what share his
14913 brother's state of health might be supposed to have in her wish for a
14914 complete reconciliation. This was not an agreeable intimation. Nature
14915 resisted it for a while. It would have been a vast deal pleasanter to
14916 have had her more disinterested in her attachment; but his vanity was
14917 not of a strength to fight long against reason. He submitted to believe
14918 that Tom's illness had influenced her, only reserving for himself this
14919 consoling thought, that considering the many counteractions of opposing
14920 habits, she had certainly been _more_ attached to him than could have
14921 been expected, and for his sake been more near doing right. Fanny
14922 thought exactly the same; and they were also quite agreed in their
14923 opinion of the lasting effect, the indelible impression, which such
14924 a disappointment must make on his mind. Time would undoubtedly abate
14925 somewhat of his sufferings, but still it was a sort of thing which he
14926 never could get entirely the better of; and as to his ever meeting with
14927 any other woman who could--it was too impossible to be named but with
14928 indignation. Fanny's friendship was all that he had to cling to.
14929
14930
14931
14932 CHAPTER XLVIII
14933
14934 Let other pens dwell on guilt and misery. I quit such odious subjects
14935 as soon as I can, impatient to restore everybody, not greatly in fault
14936 themselves, to tolerable comfort, and to have done with all the rest.
14937
14938 My Fanny, indeed, at this very time, I have the satisfaction of knowing,
14939 must have been happy in spite of everything. She must have been a happy
14940 creature in spite of all that she felt, or thought she felt, for the
14941 distress of those around her. She had sources of delight that must force
14942 their way. She was returned to Mansfield Park, she was useful, she was
14943 beloved; she was safe from Mr. Crawford; and when Sir Thomas came back
14944 she had every proof that could be given in his then melancholy state of
14945 spirits, of his perfect approbation and increased regard; and happy as
14946 all this must make her, she would still have been happy without any of
14947 it, for Edmund was no longer the dupe of Miss Crawford.
14948
14949 It is true that Edmund was very far from happy himself. He was suffering
14950 from disappointment and regret, grieving over what was, and wishing for
14951 what could never be. She knew it was so, and was sorry; but it was with
14952 a sorrow so founded on satisfaction, so tending to ease, and so much in
14953 harmony with every dearest sensation, that there are few who might not
14954 have been glad to exchange their greatest gaiety for it.
14955
14956 Sir Thomas, poor Sir Thomas, a parent, and conscious of errors in his
14957 own conduct as a parent, was the longest to suffer. He felt that he
14958 ought not to have allowed the marriage; that his daughter's sentiments
14959 had been sufficiently known to him to render him culpable in authorising
14960 it; that in so doing he had sacrificed the right to the expedient, and
14961 been governed by motives of selfishness and worldly wisdom. These were
14962 reflections that required some time to soften; but time will do almost
14963 everything; and though little comfort arose on Mrs. Rushworth's side for
14964 the misery she had occasioned, comfort was to be found greater than
14965 he had supposed in his other children. Julia's match became a less
14966 desperate business than he had considered it at first. She was humble,
14967 and wishing to be forgiven; and Mr. Yates, desirous of being really
14968 received into the family, was disposed to look up to him and be guided.
14969 He was not very solid; but there was a hope of his becoming less
14970 trifling, of his being at least tolerably domestic and quiet; and at any
14971 rate, there was comfort in finding his estate rather more, and his debts
14972 much less, than he had feared, and in being consulted and treated as
14973 the friend best worth attending to. There was comfort also in Tom, who
14974 gradually regained his health, without regaining the thoughtlessness and
14975 selfishness of his previous habits. He was the better for ever for his
14976 illness. He had suffered, and he had learned to think: two advantages
14977 that he had never known before; and the self-reproach arising from the
14978 deplorable event in Wimpole Street, to which he felt himself accessory
14979 by all the dangerous intimacy of his unjustifiable theatre, made an
14980 impression on his mind which, at the age of six-and-twenty, with no want
14981 of sense or good companions, was durable in its happy effects. He became
14982 what he ought to be: useful to his father, steady and quiet, and not
14983 living merely for himself.
14984
14985 Here was comfort indeed! and quite as soon as Sir Thomas could place
14986 dependence on such sources of good, Edmund was contributing to his
14987 father's ease by improvement in the only point in which he had given
14988 him pain before--improvement in his spirits. After wandering about and
14989 sitting under trees with Fanny all the summer evenings, he had so well
14990 talked his mind into submission as to be very tolerably cheerful again.
14991
14992 These were the circumstances and the hopes which gradually brought their
14993 alleviation to Sir Thomas, deadening his sense of what was lost, and
14994 in part reconciling him to himself; though the anguish arising from the
14995 conviction of his own errors in the education of his daughters was never
14996 to be entirely done away.
14997
14998 Too late he became aware how unfavourable to the character of any young
14999 people must be the totally opposite treatment which Maria and Julia had
15000 been always experiencing at home, where the excessive indulgence and
15001 flattery of their aunt had been continually contrasted with his own
15002 severity. He saw how ill he had judged, in expecting to counteract what
15003 was wrong in Mrs. Norris by its reverse in himself; clearly saw that he
15004 had but increased the evil by teaching them to repress their spirits in
15005 his presence so as to make their real disposition unknown to him, and
15006 sending them for all their indulgences to a person who had been able to
15007 attach them only by the blindness of her affection, and the excess of
15008 her praise.
15009
15010 Here had been grievous mismanagement; but, bad as it was, he gradually
15011 grew to feel that it had not been the most direful mistake in his plan
15012 of education. Something must have been wanting _within_, or time would
15013 have worn away much of its ill effect. He feared that principle, active
15014 principle, had been wanting; that they had never been properly taught
15015 to govern their inclinations and tempers by that sense of duty which can
15016 alone suffice. They had been instructed theoretically in their religion,
15017 but never required to bring it into daily practice. To be distinguished
15018 for elegance and accomplishments, the authorised object of their youth,
15019 could have had no useful influence that way, no moral effect on the
15020 mind. He had meant them to be good, but his cares had been directed to
15021 the understanding and manners, not the disposition; and of the necessity
15022 of self-denial and humility, he feared they had never heard from any
15023 lips that could profit them.
15024
15025 Bitterly did he deplore a deficiency which now he could scarcely
15026 comprehend to have been possible. Wretchedly did he feel, that with all
15027 the cost and care of an anxious and expensive education, he had brought
15028 up his daughters without their understanding their first duties, or his
15029 being acquainted with their character and temper.
15030
15031 The high spirit and strong passions of Mrs. Rushworth, especially, were
15032 made known to him only in their sad result. She was not to be prevailed
15033 on to leave Mr. Crawford. She hoped to marry him, and they continued
15034 together till she was obliged to be convinced that such hope was vain,
15035 and till the disappointment and wretchedness arising from the conviction
15036 rendered her temper so bad, and her feelings for him so like hatred,
15037 as to make them for a while each other's punishment, and then induce a
15038 voluntary separation.
15039
15040 She had lived with him to be reproached as the ruin of all his happiness
15041 in Fanny, and carried away no better consolation in leaving him than
15042 that she _had_ divided them. What can exceed the misery of such a mind
15043 in such a situation?
15044
15045 Mr. Rushworth had no difficulty in procuring a divorce; and so ended a
15046 marriage contracted under such circumstances as to make any better end
15047 the effect of good luck not to be reckoned on. She had despised him,
15048 and loved another; and he had been very much aware that it was so. The
15049 indignities of stupidity, and the disappointments of selfish passion,
15050 can excite little pity. His punishment followed his conduct, as did a
15051 deeper punishment the deeper guilt of his wife. _He_ was released from
15052 the engagement to be mortified and unhappy, till some other pretty girl
15053 could attract him into matrimony again, and he might set forward on a
15054 second, and, it is to be hoped, more prosperous trial of the state: if
15055 duped, to be duped at least with good humour and good luck; while she
15056 must withdraw with infinitely stronger feelings to a retirement and
15057 reproach which could allow no second spring of hope or character.
15058
15059 Where she could be placed became a subject of most melancholy and
15060 momentous consultation. Mrs. Norris, whose attachment seemed to augment
15061 with the demerits of her niece, would have had her received at home
15062 and countenanced by them all. Sir Thomas would not hear of it; and Mrs.
15063 Norris's anger against Fanny was so much the greater, from considering
15064 _her_ residence there as the motive. She persisted in placing his
15065 scruples to _her_ account, though Sir Thomas very solemnly assured her
15066 that, had there been no young woman in question, had there been no young
15067 person of either sex belonging to him, to be endangered by the society
15068 or hurt by the character of Mrs. Rushworth, he would never have offered
15069 so great an insult to the neighbourhood as to expect it to notice her.
15070 As a daughter, he hoped a penitent one, she should be protected by him,
15071 and secured in every comfort, and supported by every encouragement to do
15072 right, which their relative situations admitted; but farther than _that_
15073 he could not go. Maria had destroyed her own character, and he would
15074 not, by a vain attempt to restore what never could be restored, by
15075 affording his sanction to vice, or in seeking to lessen its disgrace, be
15076 anywise accessory to introducing such misery in another man's family as
15077 he had known himself.
15078
15079 It ended in Mrs. Norris's resolving to quit Mansfield and devote herself
15080 to her unfortunate Maria, and in an establishment being formed for them
15081 in another country, remote and private, where, shut up together with
15082 little society, on one side no affection, on the other no judgment,
15083 it may be reasonably supposed that their tempers became their mutual
15084 punishment.
15085
15086 Mrs. Norris's removal from Mansfield was the great supplementary comfort
15087 of Sir Thomas's life. His opinion of her had been sinking from the day
15088 of his return from Antigua: in every transaction together from that
15089 period, in their daily intercourse, in business, or in chat, she had
15090 been regularly losing ground in his esteem, and convincing him that
15091 either time had done her much disservice, or that he had considerably
15092 over-rated her sense, and wonderfully borne with her manners before. He
15093 had felt her as an hourly evil, which was so much the worse, as there
15094 seemed no chance of its ceasing but with life; she seemed a part of
15095 himself that must be borne for ever. To be relieved from her, therefore,
15096 was so great a felicity that, had she not left bitter remembrances
15097 behind her, there might have been danger of his learning almost to
15098 approve the evil which produced such a good.
15099
15100 She was regretted by no one at Mansfield. She had never been able to
15101 attach even those she loved best; and since Mrs. Rushworth's elopement,
15102 her temper had been in a state of such irritation as to make her
15103 everywhere tormenting. Not even Fanny had tears for aunt Norris, not
15104 even when she was gone for ever.
15105
15106 That Julia escaped better than Maria was owing, in some measure, to a
15107 favourable difference of disposition and circumstance, but in a greater
15108 to her having been less the darling of that very aunt, less flattered
15109 and less spoilt. Her beauty and acquirements had held but a second
15110 place. She had been always used to think herself a little inferior to
15111 Maria. Her temper was naturally the easiest of the two; her feelings,
15112 though quick, were more controllable, and education had not given her so
15113 very hurtful a degree of self-consequence.
15114
15115 She had submitted the best to the disappointment in Henry Crawford.
15116 After the first bitterness of the conviction of being slighted was over,
15117 she had been tolerably soon in a fair way of not thinking of him again;
15118 and when the acquaintance was renewed in town, and Mr. Rushworth's house
15119 became Crawford's object, she had had the merit of withdrawing herself
15120 from it, and of chusing that time to pay a visit to her other friends,
15121 in order to secure herself from being again too much attracted. This had
15122 been her motive in going to her cousin's. Mr. Yates's convenience had
15123 had nothing to do with it. She had been allowing his attentions some
15124 time, but with very little idea of ever accepting him; and had not her
15125 sister's conduct burst forth as it did, and her increased dread of her
15126 father and of home, on that event, imagining its certain consequence
15127 to herself would be greater severity and restraint, made her hastily
15128 resolve on avoiding such immediate horrors at all risks, it is probable
15129 that Mr. Yates would never have succeeded. She had not eloped with any
15130 worse feelings than those of selfish alarm. It had appeared to her the
15131 only thing to be done. Maria's guilt had induced Julia's folly.
15132
15133 Henry Crawford, ruined by early independence and bad domestic example,
15134 indulged in the freaks of a cold-blooded vanity a little too long. Once
15135 it had, by an opening undesigned and unmerited, led him into the way of
15136 happiness. Could he have been satisfied with the conquest of one
15137 amiable woman's affections, could he have found sufficient exultation
15138 in overcoming the reluctance, in working himself into the esteem and
15139 tenderness of Fanny Price, there would have been every probability of
15140 success and felicity for him. His affection had already done something.
15141 Her influence over him had already given him some influence over her.
15142 Would he have deserved more, there can be no doubt that more would have
15143 been obtained, especially when that marriage had taken place, which
15144 would have given him the assistance of her conscience in subduing her
15145 first inclination, and brought them very often together. Would he have
15146 persevered, and uprightly, Fanny must have been his reward, and a reward
15147 very voluntarily bestowed, within a reasonable period from Edmund's
15148 marrying Mary.
15149
15150 Had he done as he intended, and as he knew he ought, by going down to
15151 Everingham after his return from Portsmouth, he might have been deciding
15152 his own happy destiny. But he was pressed to stay for Mrs. Fraser's
15153 party; his staying was made of flattering consequence, and he was to
15154 meet Mrs. Rushworth there. Curiosity and vanity were both engaged, and
15155 the temptation of immediate pleasure was too strong for a mind unused to
15156 make any sacrifice to right: he resolved to defer his Norfolk journey,
15157 resolved that writing should answer the purpose of it, or that its
15158 purpose was unimportant, and staid. He saw Mrs. Rushworth, was received
15159 by her with a coldness which ought to have been repulsive, and have
15160 established apparent indifference between them for ever; but he was
15161 mortified, he could not bear to be thrown off by the woman whose smiles
15162 had been so wholly at his command: he must exert himself to subdue so
15163 proud a display of resentment; it was anger on Fanny's account; he must
15164 get the better of it, and make Mrs. Rushworth Maria Bertram again in her
15165 treatment of himself.
15166
15167 In this spirit he began the attack, and by animated perseverance had
15168 soon re-established the sort of familiar intercourse, of gallantry,
15169 of flirtation, which bounded his views; but in triumphing over the
15170 discretion which, though beginning in anger, might have saved them both,
15171 he had put himself in the power of feelings on her side more strong
15172 than he had supposed. She loved him; there was no withdrawing attentions
15173 avowedly dear to her. He was entangled by his own vanity, with as little
15174 excuse of love as possible, and without the smallest inconstancy of mind
15175 towards her cousin. To keep Fanny and the Bertrams from a knowledge of
15176 what was passing became his first object. Secrecy could not have been
15177 more desirable for Mrs. Rushworth's credit than he felt it for his own.
15178 When he returned from Richmond, he would have been glad to see Mrs.
15179 Rushworth no more. All that followed was the result of her imprudence;
15180 and he went off with her at last, because he could not help it,
15181 regretting Fanny even at the moment, but regretting her infinitely more
15182 when all the bustle of the intrigue was over, and a very few months had
15183 taught him, by the force of contrast, to place a yet higher value on the
15184 sweetness of her temper, the purity of her mind, and the excellence of
15185 her principles.
15186
15187 That punishment, the public punishment of disgrace, should in a just
15188 measure attend _his_ share of the offence is, we know, not one of the
15189 barriers which society gives to virtue. In this world the penalty is
15190 less equal than could be wished; but without presuming to look forward
15191 to a juster appointment hereafter, we may fairly consider a man of
15192 sense, like Henry Crawford, to be providing for himself no small
15193 portion of vexation and regret: vexation that must rise sometimes
15194 to self-reproach, and regret to wretchedness, in having so requited
15195 hospitality, so injured family peace, so forfeited his best, most
15196 estimable, and endeared acquaintance, and so lost the woman whom he had
15197 rationally as well as passionately loved.
15198
15199 After what had passed to wound and alienate the two families, the
15200 continuance of the Bertrams and Grants in such close neighbourhood would
15201 have been most distressing; but the absence of the latter, for some
15202 months purposely lengthened, ended very fortunately in the necessity, or
15203 at least the practicability, of a permanent removal. Dr. Grant, through
15204 an interest on which he had almost ceased to form hopes, succeeded to
15205 a stall in Westminster, which, as affording an occasion for leaving
15206 Mansfield, an excuse for residence in London, and an increase of income
15207 to answer the expenses of the change, was highly acceptable to those who
15208 went and those who staid.
15209
15210 Mrs. Grant, with a temper to love and be loved, must have gone with some
15211 regret from the scenes and people she had been used to; but the same
15212 happiness of disposition must in any place, and any society, secure her
15213 a great deal to enjoy, and she had again a home to offer Mary; and Mary
15214 had had enough of her own friends, enough of vanity, ambition, love, and
15215 disappointment in the course of the last half-year, to be in need of the
15216 true kindness of her sister's heart, and the rational tranquillity
15217 of her ways. They lived together; and when Dr. Grant had brought on
15218 apoplexy and death, by three great institutionary dinners in one week,
15219 they still lived together; for Mary, though perfectly resolved against
15220 ever attaching herself to a younger brother again, was long in finding
15221 among the dashing representatives, or idle heir-apparents, who were at
15222 the command of her beauty, and her £20,000, any one who could satisfy the
15223 better taste she had acquired at Mansfield, whose character and manners
15224 could authorise a hope of the domestic happiness she had there learned
15225 to estimate, or put Edmund Bertram sufficiently out of her head.
15226
15227 Edmund had greatly the advantage of her in this respect. He had not to
15228 wait and wish with vacant affections for an object worthy to succeed her
15229 in them. Scarcely had he done regretting Mary Crawford, and observing to
15230 Fanny how impossible it was that he should ever meet with such another
15231 woman, before it began to strike him whether a very different kind of
15232 woman might not do just as well, or a great deal better: whether Fanny
15233 herself were not growing as dear, as important to him in all her smiles
15234 and all her ways, as Mary Crawford had ever been; and whether it might
15235 not be a possible, an hopeful undertaking to persuade her that her warm
15236 and sisterly regard for him would be foundation enough for wedded love.
15237
15238 I purposely abstain from dates on this occasion, that every one may
15239 be at liberty to fix their own, aware that the cure of unconquerable
15240 passions, and the transfer of unchanging attachments, must vary much as
15241 to time in different people. I only entreat everybody to believe that
15242 exactly at the time when it was quite natural that it should be so, and
15243 not a week earlier, Edmund did cease to care about Miss Crawford, and
15244 became as anxious to marry Fanny as Fanny herself could desire.
15245
15246 With such a regard for her, indeed, as his had long been, a regard
15247 founded on the most endearing claims of innocence and helplessness, and
15248 completed by every recommendation of growing worth, what could be more
15249 natural than the change? Loving, guiding, protecting her, as he had been
15250 doing ever since her being ten years old, her mind in so great a degree
15251 formed by his care, and her comfort depending on his kindness, an
15252 object to him of such close and peculiar interest, dearer by all his own
15253 importance with her than any one else at Mansfield, what was there now
15254 to add, but that he should learn to prefer soft light eyes to sparkling
15255 dark ones. And being always with her, and always talking confidentially,
15256 and his feelings exactly in that favourable state which a recent
15257 disappointment gives, those soft light eyes could not be very long in
15258 obtaining the pre-eminence.
15259
15260 Having once set out, and felt that he had done so on this road to
15261 happiness, there was nothing on the side of prudence to stop him or make
15262 his progress slow; no doubts of her deserving, no fears of opposition of
15263 taste, no need of drawing new hopes of happiness from dissimilarity
15264 of temper. Her mind, disposition, opinions, and habits wanted no
15265 half-concealment, no self-deception on the present, no reliance on
15266 future improvement. Even in the midst of his late infatuation, he had
15267 acknowledged Fanny's mental superiority. What must be his sense of it
15268 now, therefore? She was of course only too good for him; but as nobody
15269 minds having what is too good for them, he was very steadily earnest in
15270 the pursuit of the blessing, and it was not possible that encouragement
15271 from her should be long wanting. Timid, anxious, doubting as she was, it
15272 was still impossible that such tenderness as hers should not, at times,
15273 hold out the strongest hope of success, though it remained for a later
15274 period to tell him the whole delightful and astonishing truth. His
15275 happiness in knowing himself to have been so long the beloved of such a
15276 heart, must have been great enough to warrant any strength of language
15277 in which he could clothe it to her or to himself; it must have been
15278 a delightful happiness. But there was happiness elsewhere which no
15279 description can reach. Let no one presume to give the feelings of a
15280 young woman on receiving the assurance of that affection of which she
15281 has scarcely allowed herself to entertain a hope.
15282
15283 Their own inclinations ascertained, there were no difficulties behind,
15284 no drawback of poverty or parent. It was a match which Sir Thomas's
15285 wishes had even forestalled. Sick of ambitious and mercenary connexions,
15286 prizing more and more the sterling good of principle and temper, and
15287 chiefly anxious to bind by the strongest securities all that remained to
15288 him of domestic felicity, he had pondered with genuine satisfaction on
15289 the more than possibility of the two young friends finding their natural
15290 consolation in each other for all that had occurred of disappointment to
15291 either; and the joyful consent which met Edmund's application, the high
15292 sense of having realised a great acquisition in the promise of Fanny for
15293 a daughter, formed just such a contrast with his early opinion on the
15294 subject when the poor little girl's coming had been first agitated, as
15295 time is for ever producing between the plans and decisions of mortals,
15296 for their own instruction, and their neighbours' entertainment.
15297
15298 Fanny was indeed the daughter that he wanted. His charitable kindness
15299 had been rearing a prime comfort for himself. His liberality had a rich
15300 repayment, and the general goodness of his intentions by her deserved
15301 it. He might have made her childhood happier; but it had been an error
15302 of judgment only which had given him the appearance of harshness, and
15303 deprived him of her early love; and now, on really knowing each other,
15304 their mutual attachment became very strong. After settling her at
15305 Thornton Lacey with every kind attention to her comfort, the object of
15306 almost every day was to see her there, or to get her away from it.
15307
15308 Selfishly dear as she had long been to Lady Bertram, she could not be
15309 parted with willingly by _her_. No happiness of son or niece could make
15310 her wish the marriage. But it was possible to part with her, because
15311 Susan remained to supply her place. Susan became the stationary niece,
15312 delighted to be so; and equally well adapted for it by a readiness of
15313 mind, and an inclination for usefulness, as Fanny had been by sweetness
15314 of temper, and strong feelings of gratitude. Susan could never be
15315 spared. First as a comfort to Fanny, then as an auxiliary, and last as
15316 her substitute, she was established at Mansfield, with every appearance
15317 of equal permanency. Her more fearless disposition and happier nerves
15318 made everything easy to her there. With quickness in understanding
15319 the tempers of those she had to deal with, and no natural timidity to
15320 restrain any consequent wishes, she was soon welcome and useful to all;
15321 and after Fanny's removal succeeded so naturally to her influence over
15322 the hourly comfort of her aunt, as gradually to become, perhaps, the
15323 most beloved of the two. In _her_ usefulness, in Fanny's excellence,
15324 in William's continued good conduct and rising fame, and in the general
15325 well-doing and success of the other members of the family, all assisting
15326 to advance each other, and doing credit to his countenance and aid, Sir
15327 Thomas saw repeated, and for ever repeated, reason to rejoice in what he
15328 had done for them all, and acknowledge the advantages of early hardship
15329 and discipline, and the consciousness of being born to struggle and
15330 endure.
15331
15332 With so much true merit and true love, and no want of fortune and
15333 friends, the happiness of the married cousins must appear as secure as
15334 earthly happiness can be. Equally formed for domestic life, and attached
15335 to country pleasures, their home was the home of affection and comfort;
15336 and to complete the picture of good, the acquisition of Mansfield
15337 living, by the death of Dr. Grant, occurred just after they had been
15338 married long enough to begin to want an increase of income, and feel
15339 their distance from the paternal abode an inconvenience.
15340
15341 On that event they removed to Mansfield; and the Parsonage there,
15342 which, under each of its two former owners, Fanny had never been able
15343 to approach but with some painful sensation of restraint or alarm, soon
15344 grew as dear to her heart, and as thoroughly perfect in her eyes, as
15345 everything else within the view and patronage of Mansfield Park had long
15346 been.
15347
15348
15349 THE END